summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-21 20:57:22 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-21 20:57:22 -0800
commita210868941f6da3ca46ae1bedcf7ce04df6f2053 (patch)
treec70678240f555fde31f3aee776dbfa92a295b1a8
parent1981cff8d04cb854d60395e0696980b5d60bb3be (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/68174-0.txt9939
-rw-r--r--old/68174-0.zipbin206698 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/68174-h.zipbin1708882 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/68174-h/68174-h.htm12551
-rw-r--r--old/68174-h/images/cover.jpgbin1171274 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/68174-h/images/coversmall.jpgbin256952 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/68174-h/images/i_frontis.jpgbin95158 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/68174-h/images/i_title.jpgbin34996 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/68174-h/images/i_titlelogo.jpgbin19567 -> 0 bytes
12 files changed, 17 insertions, 22490 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..423a91d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #68174 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/68174)
diff --git a/old/68174-0.txt b/old/68174-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index a2ff002..0000000
--- a/old/68174-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9939 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Princess Athura, by Samuel W.
-Odell
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The Princess Athura
- A romance of Iran
-
-Author: Samuel W. Odell
-
-Illustrator: Jay Hambidge
-
-Release Date: May 25, 2022 [eBook #68174]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: MFR, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by The
- Internet Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PRINCESS ATHURA ***
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
- THE
- PRINCESS ATHURA
-
- _A ROMANCE OF IRAN_
-
- BY
- SAMUEL W. ODELL
-
- [Illustration]
-
- NEW YORK
- THOMAS Y. CROWELL COMPANY
- PUBLISHERS
-
-
-
-
- Copyright, 1913, by
- THOMAS Y. CROWELL COMPANY
-
- _Published April, 1913_
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
-
- I THE GREAT KING’S LAST BATTLE 1
-
- II AN OATH 15
-
- III PREXASPES 29
-
- IV ATHURA 42
-
- V CAMBYSES 58
-
- VI PERSEPOLIS 76
-
- VII “I AM CYRUS, THE KING, THE ACHÆMENIAN!” 92
-
- VIII A ROYAL COUNCIL AND A ROYAL HUNT 101
-
- IX THE DEEPER THINGS 121
-
- X A FAREWELL FEAST 133
-
- XI THE GREAT KING INTRODUCES A STRANGE CUSTOM 151
-
- XII THE FORCE OF AN OATH 165
-
- XIII A CLASH OF WILLS 179
-
- XIV THE WAR AGAINST EGYPT 198
-
- XV THE MADNESS OF CAMBYSES 219
-
- XVI THE END OF OATH-KEEPING 235
-
- XVII THE EARLESS KING 254
-
- XVIII THE SPIDER’S WEB 266
-
- XIX A GALLOPING TO AND FRO 280
-
- XX THE OVERTHROW OF THE MAGI 297
-
- XXI KING OF KINGS 305
-
-
-
-
-
-THE PRINCESS ATHURA
-
-A Romance of Iran
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-THE GREAT KING’S LAST BATTLE
-
-
-It was morning on the plains of Asia. Long-legged herons stood in the
-shallows of the yellow Jaxartes, bathing their feet in its sluggish
-flood and warming their bodies in the first rays of the sun. They were
-silently and uneasily watching a host of armed men drawn out in long
-battle-lines across the lowlands bordering the southern margin of the
-stream.
-
-Where the armed host stood was a sandy plain, about two miles wide.
-Beyond this was a low range of sand-hills, which trended away to the
-southeast, enlarging the plain as they receded from the river. Cutting
-through hills and plain to join the river-bed was a dry water-course,
-where, in winters only, a torrent flowed. In it were some stunted trees
-and scattered thickets of shrubs. To the north of the river was a
-vast plain on which the dry, yellow grass had been withered by summer
-sun and wind. Far in the east appeared dimly through a blue haze the
-summits of high mountains. Westward the river had yet to flow half its
-length to the Oxian swamps. Here it was wide and shallow and its banks
-were low and marshy.
-
-The rays of the sun sparkled on the brazen breastplates and shining
-blades of battle-axes, on the spear-points and gilded helmets, of
-two hundred thousand men, who here awaited the approach of a far more
-numerous host coming down from the east along the river towards them.
-The light rested softly upon the stern, bearded faces of veterans of
-many wars and the softer cheeks of young men on this, their first
-campaign. They were men of Iran for the most part, though some were
-Assyrians, Babylonians, Arabs, Hebrews, or Greeks from the Ionian
-cities. They were followers of Cyrus, the King of Kings, the Great
-King, ever victorious Lord of the World.
-
-Those about to attack them were Touranian horsemen, known to ancient
-history as Scythians, Massagetæ, Sacæ, and to modern history as
-Tartars, Turks, or Kalmuks. The hearts of the soldiers of Cyrus were
-glad. For the long, dusty marches in pursuit of an ever retreating
-enemy would now end in a riot of blood and slaughter, and perhaps they
-might then set their faces homeward. No doubt of victory entered their
-minds. They were led by Cyrus, the invincible. It mattered not if the
-enemy outnumbered them three to one, as their scouts had reported.
-There would be more killing and a greater victory.
-
-Racial hatred, reaching back beyond history and tradition to the
-distant age when the first family of man threw off branches to
-different parts of the earth and the branches immediately claimed the
-pleasant places and fought each other for them, animated both parties
-to the coming conflict. The folklore of the early Aryans is largely
-composed of tales concerning heroes who had saved their people from the
-ravages of those fierce men of the North, the Touranians. Century after
-century the wandering hordes of the great northern plains hovered, like
-threatening clouds, along the boundaries of Iran, looking across the
-mountains from their own arid and wind-swept abodes to the rich and
-pleasant hills and valleys of the South. The children of those tribes,
-in the days of Tamerlane and Mohammed, broke over all barriers, crushed
-Eastern civilization, and put back the clock of progress a thousand
-years.
-
-Once even before the time of Cyrus, the wild Touranians had passed over
-the mountains and pushed through into Mesopotamia, bearing woe to the
-nations. Then, one day, their captains sat down to a banquet prepared
-by the conquered ones and instead of meats were fed with sword-blows
-and dagger-thrusts. Having thus been deprived of leaders, the Touranian
-conquerors had suffered disaster; and all had been either killed,
-enslaved, or driven back across the mountains. Stories of that invasion
-were thereafter told at every fireside of the Bactrians, Medes,
-Persians, and their kindred tribes; and the mothers in Iran frightened
-their children into obedience by threatening to hand them over to the
-dreaded monsters of Touran.
-
-Having conquered all civilized Asia, Cyrus had thought to rest in
-his palaces at Hamadan, or Susa, Babylon, or Pasargadæ; but there
-had come word from ancient Balk, or Bactra, the mother city of all
-Aryans, warning him that the Touranians were gathering for war in
-numbers so immense that help must be sent. The great war-king had at
-once responded. With half a million men he had marched into Bactra, to
-the aid of King Hystaspis, who, under him, ruled there, and, passing
-through the mountains on its northern border, he had driven back the
-leading troops of the enemy. The Touranians had retreated, seeking to
-draw him into the great plains, where they hoped that they might crush
-him with overwhelming numbers. He had followed carefully, building
-forts as he advanced, that his supply-line might be safe, and leaving
-strong detachments to guard them. With less than half his army, though
-its best part, he had arrived at the great river, Jaxartes, and had
-waited there for the enemy to assemble and attack him. Now they were
-coming and he was ready.
-
-Cyrus had chosen the battle-ground. He had marched out of his camp,
-situated a mile or so down the river, and had taken position where the
-narrow plain enabled him to mass his forces, with the sand-hills to
-protect his right, the river his left, and the dry water-course his
-front. The enemy, coming down towards him, would be compressed into an
-ever narrowing field where their immense superiority in numbers would
-not give them undue advantage. Knowing that the Touranians were all
-mounted and were accustomed to charge in mass at headlong speed, he
-hoped to draw them into the great ditch at his front in such confusion
-that the impetus of their assault would be broken. For this purpose
-he threw out to the east of the ditch about one thousand paces a
-curtain of light cavalry, which had orders to draw an assault, retreat
-rapidly before it, and take refuge behind the infantry. The position
-of the infantry was a line about halfway down the western slope of the
-water-course, and it would not be perceived by the pursuers until they
-should arrive at the upper margin of the eastern slope. Keeping five
-thousand of his heavy cavalry, known as the Imperial Guard, in reserve
-on the high ground at his extreme left near the river, he had stationed
-the remainder, about fifteen thousand strong, behind the crests of the
-sand-hills at his extreme right; and it would be their duty as soon
-as the Touranians should join battle, to make a détour to the right,
-descend from the hills upon their rear, and there attack. Thus, by the
-grace of Ahura-Mazda, Cyrus hoped, the enemy would be placed between
-his veteran infantry and his invincible cavalry, and so be ground to
-pieces.
-
-Near the margin of the river in front of the army was a group of men
-whose dress and demeanor denoted them leaders. One of these, to whom
-the others gave worshipful attention, was mounted on a noble Nisæan
-stallion. He was watching the distant mass of enemies with searching
-attention. He seemed indeed a king and worthy to be a King of Kings.
-Historians and storytellers have surrounded him with heroic luster. His
-countenance was eagle-like. His forehead was high, his nose sharp and
-slightly bridged, and his chin firm. The piercing glance of his black
-eyes never failed to read men nor to impress them with the necessity of
-instant obedience to orders. His demeanor was humorous and kind toward
-friends but fierce and terrible to evil-doers or to an enemy. Despite
-his sixty years, forty of which had been spent in war, his body was
-erect and soldierly. A helmet, glittering with gold, was on his head,
-and from beneath it his straight gray hair fell to the collar of his
-cloak. A white, silky beard covered the lower portion of his face and
-lay upon the silver breast-scales of the flexible coat-of-mail which
-covered his body and hips. Brazen greaves, fastened to soft leathern
-breeches, protected his limbs. His only weapon was a short sword,
-pendent from a belt around his waist. The trappings of his horse were
-rich. Its chest and neck were also protected by link mail.
-
-In the group of officers surrounding the Great King, there were two
-of no less royal birth than he. One was Hystaspis, King of Iran, his
-cousin, one of the Achæmenides, the family that had ruled in Iran
-for ages. Cyrus had been King of Fars, or Persia, before he became
-King of Kings. Hystaspis had ruled in Bactra, the ancient seat of the
-Aryan race. Astyages was king of Medea and grandfather of Cyrus, whose
-mother was a Medean princess. He claimed suzerainty over all Iran.
-Cyrus had conquered his grandfather in war and, having dethroned him,
-had stepped up into the exalted position of King of Kings. He had then
-placed Persia under control of Hystaspis, who loyally supported him
-and acknowledged him as the overlord of all Iran. Cyrus was a warrior.
-Hystaspis was a student, a lover of peace and a mystic, though he ruled
-his people well as a statesman and showed qualities of a great warrior
-when necessity demanded. In his youthful days he had known the famous
-Zoroaster, the seer of Iran, who had reduced to writing the ancient
-songs and the ritual of religious worship of his race and had preached
-new life into its creed. Hystaspis was milder, more benevolent, and
-less alight with energy than Cyrus.
-
-Prince Darius Hystaspis, son of the King of Iran, was the other royal
-person in the group. He had dismounted from his war-horse and, with
-folded arms, was standing at its head, also watching the enemy. Six
-feet in height and well-proportioned, youthful and gallant, he was an
-ideal soldier. A helmet of gold and silver leaves covered his black,
-short-cropped hair save at the temples. A coat of leaf-mail protected
-his chest and his limbs halfway to the knee and was confined at his
-waist by a broad leather belt studded with gems set in golden buttons.
-A bronze plate further protected his breast, and greaves of the same
-metal were fastened to his leather riding-breeches as a protection to
-his legs. High-laced leather shoes encased his feet. A short sword hung
-at his belt, and a short-handled battle-ax swung from the saddle on his
-horse. A soldier from boyhood and already a veteran, having served
-in Cyrus’ last campaign against Babylon, yet he was, like his father,
-a student, and had learned wisdom of the greatest seer of that age,
-Belteshazzer, the Hebrew. His shaven cheeks were fair and glowing with
-the health of right living. His eyes were blue and clear and were set
-deeply beneath dark eyebrows and a lofty forehead. He was the idol of
-all Aryans, and, next to Cyrus, the hero of the army. He was commander
-of the Imperial Guard, and to him had been entrusted the duty of
-leading the Guard in the flank movement by which Cyrus hoped to crush
-the enemy.
-
-Otanes, a giant in size, the noblest of Iran’s seven great nobles, was
-another of the group. He was shield-bearer to Cyrus and commander of
-his chosen body-guard. There was also Hydarnes, another of the seven
-nobles, a short, heavy man whose long, upturned mustache and beetling
-eyebrows were his most prominent features. He was commander of the
-Persian infantry. Vomisces, one of the seven nobles and commander of
-the allied infantry, the Babylonian, Assyrian, and Hebrew levies, and
-Gobryas, another one of the seven, a young man, blood-brother and
-closest friend of Prince Darius, were in the group. There was also
-Prexaspes, a Medean noble, commander of the light-armed cavalry, a
-brave, ambitious man, richly dressed in jeweled armor and having his
-hair and whiskers curled and perfumed. He was a cynical, unscrupulous,
-and pleasure-loving man, but energetic, resourceful, and brave. Of him
-we shall hear much in this story. A number of orderlies waited near by
-to receive and transmit the Great King’s commands.
-
-The herons in the Jaxartes have become restless but have not yet flown.
-While they wait and while Cyrus is watching the enemy, we may study
-the private soldiers to whose blows he will owe his victory, if he
-wins. They were not of the same quality as those effeminate men who,
-in later years, were unable to withstand the Greeks under the great
-Alexander. This was true at least of the Aryans who constituted the
-bulk of the army.
-
-Passing along the front of the light-armed cavalry, we observe the
-dusky Arab, with his curved scimiter and long javelin, his bow and
-arrows. He is clothed in turban, short tunic, loose cloak, brazen
-breastplate, and leathern breeches. He is mounted on the beautiful,
-swift horse of the desert which he loves as his own brother. Here
-also we see famous bowmen from Edom and Canaan, slingers from the
-Mediterranean isles, and Syrians from Mesopotamia, severally arrayed in
-their national costumes. When we pass along the lines of infantry, we
-note a distinctive army dress. Each soldier wears on his head a high,
-round felt cap; on his body, a stout, leathern, tight-fitting jacket,
-or tunic, with skirt extending halfway to the knee, and on his legs
-linen trousers, confined at the ankles by the tops of the soft leathern
-shoes with which his feet are shod. A bronze breastplate covers his
-chest, and bars of the same metal are on his arms and shoulders. The
-front rank, as it stands in position, is protected by wicker shields,
-covered with heavy leather, braced with metal bands. These shields are
-about seven feet long and are placed upright with the pointed lower
-ends thrust into the earth. Behind them, as a wall, the spearmen are
-comparatively safe from the enemy’s javelins and arrows. If the fight
-comes to close quarters, the shields may be easily thrown down; then
-for his further protection, the soldier must rely on a small, round
-targe held in place by straps on his left forearm.
-
-Each heavy-armed infantryman in the six front ranks carries a heavy
-spear about seven feet long and a short sword somewhat like a long
-dagger. A short-handled battle-ax with sharp, shearing blade and
-pointed beak is hung by a strap over his shoulder. The soldiers in the
-rear ranks, instead of the heavy spear and battle-ax, carry bundles of
-light javelins, for casting at short range, and long bows with sheaths
-of arrows, for fighting at long range. Protected by the wicker wall
-and the hedge of spears in the fore, they will meet the assault with
-showers of darts cast over the front ranks or, advancing behind the
-charging spearmen, will gall the enemy thus before the shock of the
-hand-to-hand fight comes.
-
-At intervals along the lines stand the captains of hundreds and
-commanders of thousands, distinguished from private soldiers only by
-richer armor and plumes of horse-hair on their caps.
-
-We next note the soldiers of the Imperial Guard. They are all large
-men, none of them over forty years of age, every one of noble birth,
-and all belong to the military class of Iran. They know but one
-calling, that of arms. All had entered military service at the age of
-sixteen, had been enrolled in the Guards at the age of twenty, and
-will remain there until they shall reach their fortieth year, at which
-time they will either be made civil officers or promoted and placed
-in command of companies and divisions of the imperial armies. Their
-armor consists of brazen helmets for their heads, chain-mail for their
-bodies, and brazen greaves for their legs and arms. A round shield,
-held on the left forearm in battle, will give further protection. A
-long, sharp javelin, a sword, and a battle-ax are their weapons. Their
-horses are protected by chain-mail on neck, forehead, and breast.
-
-Cyrus, having satisfied himself that the Touranians were really coming
-to battle, turned to his generals and said: “At last the Touranians
-have decided to fight! We must not only repel this attack but must
-utterly destroy them, so that hereafter the terror of our name shall
-command peace! Take no prisoners! This day we shall avenge the wrongs
-of Iran in the death of its ancient enemies! Should it happen that I
-be slain in this battle, my cousin, the King of Iran, will command. In
-case he also should fall, his son, our beloved Prince, will command.”
-
-His piercing black eyes rested a moment upon the Prince’s countenance.
-The latter flushed with pleasure at the honor done him, and bowed in
-acknowledgment. The King continued: “The King of Iran will remain at
-my side. I shall need his advice. There will be no change in the plans
-announced last evening. With the help of Ahura-Mazda, this day we will
-fill that torrent-bed with Touranian dead! You, Prince of Iran, have
-the most important duty. Ride down upon their rear as soon as you see
-their front ranks engaged with our infantry. Officers, go to your
-places! Let the skirmishers advance farther into the plain!”
-
-The group scattered, each officer riding to his place. Cyrus and the
-King of Iran retired across the torrent-bed to the eminence at the rear
-of the left wing of the army. The Prince of Iran mounted and hurried to
-his command. Trumpets sounded. The light cavalry of the skirmish line
-moved briskly out upon the plain. The Touranians came on, a vast throng
-with but little semblance of order. Their leaders rode in advance at
-intervals, and the front ranks only preserved an irregular alignment.
-The two opposing forces slowly drew near each other. The shaggy coats
-made of hairy skins, the tall, peaked caps, and the fierce, dark faces
-of the Touranians soon became plainly visible to their opponents. The
-former were surprised at the apparent weakness of the latter and began
-to utter shouts of derision and defiance. These shouts presently
-blended into a great roar as the soldiers demanded of their leaders the
-right to charge.
-
-But the Touranian leaders were wary. They thought that but a fraction
-of the Persian army was here, possibly an advance guard sent out to
-delay their progress. They were puzzled and hesitated. But when the
-enemy halted at long bowshot distance and sent a flight of arrows into
-their crowded battalions, they lost control of their men. Screams of
-agony arose, and a roar of angry shouts. Another flight of arrows and
-a third smote the Touranians. Their own bowmen sought to reply, but
-their bows were weak and their arrows fell short. Then came a vast
-forward movement of the mass. Leaders were swallowed up in the midst of
-galloping squadrons. The skirmishers of Iran retreated, but turned in
-their saddles and shot backwards with fatal effect. Eager to overtake
-the flying archers, the Touranians threw caution to the winds and urged
-their horses to full speed. The earth shook with the beat of a million
-hoofs, and the air was rent by the terrific volume of savage war-cries.
-No line of infantry ever formed could have withstood the impetus of
-that charge if unprotected by ditch or wall.
-
-The herons, affrighted, spread their broad wings, sprang out of the
-yellow waters of the Jaxartes, and hastily flapped away. The conflict
-had begun.
-
-After pausing at the margin of the torrent-bed to send one last flight
-of arrows into their pursuers, the skirmishers of Cyrus quickly
-descended into and crossed it, passed through the ranks of the
-infantry, which opened to permit their passage, and formed in line
-on the ridge beyond. The Touranian leaders were surprised when the
-fugitives disappeared from their view in the chasm as if the earth
-had swallowed them up, and, guessing the reason, frantically screamed
-orders for their men to halt. But the noise was so great that the
-orders were unheard. The shaggy horses of the leading ranks came at
-full speed to the margin of the torrent-bed and, unable to halt,
-plunged headlong down into it. Many horses and riders went down and
-were ridden over, crushed and mangled. Some retained their footing and
-struggled across the bottom of the ditch and up the opposite slope
-to assault the Aryan infantry. But the momentum of their rush was
-lost. The gleaming hedge of spears, protruding from behind the wicker
-shields, was terrible to horse and rider. The Touranians struck at
-the spear-points with their curved scimiters and endeavored to force
-ways between them. Masses of horsemen poured into the great ditch and
-struggled forward. Pushed on from behind, those in front could not
-avoid contact with the darting spears, which, in the hands of sinewy
-and practiced veterans, gashed horse and rider and threw them down in
-dying, struggling heaps.
-
-The rear ranks of Cyrus’ army came into action. They hurled clouds
-of javelins and arrows over the heads of the men in front upon the
-confused mass of assailants. The slaughter was horrible. But the
-Touranians in the front could not retreat had they desired. Those in
-front were crowded on, over dead and dying, upon the darting spears and
-against the wicker shields, overthrowing the shields and pushing back
-the Aryan infantry by sheer weight. Especially at the extreme left,
-where Cyrus was watching the struggle, did this backward movement of
-his lines take place. Here the water-course was wider and shallower
-than elsewhere and the advance was not so difficult. Here and there
-the Touranians succeeded in getting between the Aryan spears and
-with fierce strokes opened ways into the midst of the infantry. The
-latter, dropping their spears, fought with battle-ax and sword. The
-contest became a mad swirl of screaming, plunging horses, shouting
-men, gleaming swords, and slashing axes. Heads were crushed, limbs
-lopped off, bodies hurled to earth, horses brained and hamstrung. Ever
-the stout veterans of Cyrus faced their enemy, unterrified, sweating,
-grunting, and cursing, as they stabbed and hewed; but they were forced
-back step by step.
-
-Cyrus watched the struggle with anxiety. There seemed no end to the
-on-pressing masses of the enemy. More and yet more poured down into the
-vale of death and pushed across to the assault. Javelins and arrows
-were becoming exhausted. The infantrymen were fighting furiously, but
-were beginning to show weariness. Casting his eyes often to the distant
-hills, he presently noted with satisfaction that the Prince of Iran
-and his guards were passing down into the plain at the rear of the
-enemy’s left. He then ordered the light-armed cavalry to the assistance
-of the infantry at the center and right, and placing himself at the
-head of that division of the Imperial Guard held in reserve, he led
-it into the affray just as the infantry, pressed back by sheer weight
-of numbers, seemed about to be overwhelmed. The heavy horsemen of the
-Guard rode forward smartly and plunged into the battle. Prodigies of
-valor were performed. The infantrymen, seeing their King in their midst
-swinging his battle-ax with deadly effect, renewed their efforts. Huge
-Otanes with mighty strokes and protecting shield endeavored to ward off
-from Cyrus all blows aimed at him. King Hystaspis of Iran rode along
-the battle-lines towards the right. Everywhere the battle was close,
-fierce, and deadly.
-
-Meanwhile the Prince of Iran with the Guard rode down into the plain,
-and with javelins at rest charged the Touranians in flank and rear.
-This soon relieved the pressure in front. Confusion and terror seized
-the Touranians. Those who sought to resist went down before the shock
-of the huge Persian horses and the thrust of the long javelins.
-
-The contest became a slaughter. Thousands of the luckless Touranians
-rode into the river, seeking to ford it and thus escape; but quicksands
-and treacherous water-holes swallowed them up or mired them down,
-so that they became easy prey to the pursuing archers. The Aryan
-infantry assumed the offensive, crossed the torrent-bed, and drove the
-Touranians back upon the lances of the Guard, who in turn hurled them
-back upon the infantry. The larger part died. Some broke through and
-fled. The noon sun looked down upon heaps of slain and wounded, upon
-despairing squads flying over hill and plain, and upon a river whose
-waters were red with blood and choked with bodies. The Aryan victory
-was complete, overwhelming, and decisive.
-
-But the victors also suffered. Their loss was heavy in men, but worst
-of all they had lost their Great King. Cyrus at the head of the Guard
-had ridden into the press and restored the battle. When the assault
-on their rear caused the Touranians to give back, he had followed
-furiously. Then an arrow struck him in the neck just above the collar
-of his coat-of-mail, inflicting a deep wound. He reeled from the shock,
-plucked out the weapon with his own hands, and then fell fainting from
-his horse into the arms of Otanes, who carried him back out of the
-battle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-AN OATH
-
-
-The wounded King was tenderly borne to his pavilion in the camp, and
-his injury was dressed by the most skillful surgeons in the army. He
-was weakened by loss of blood, however, and suffered much pain. He
-became feverish. The surgeons had but little skill in those days; and
-the wound was deep and infected. He suffered the pain with heroic
-resignation and, after a while, fell into a restless sleep, in which he
-tossed about and muttered continually.
-
-Meanwhile the King of Iran, having taken chief command, pushed the
-victory to completion and recalled the troops to their camp from the
-bloody plain only when the last enemy had disappeared or died.
-
-Prince Darius and the Imperial Guard pursued the fugitives as long as
-they held together in a body, but when they scattered, some crossing
-the Jaxartes and others taking refuge in the southern hills where it
-was difficult to follow them with heavy horse, he left further pursuit
-to the light-armed cavalry and returned to camp with his shouting,
-singing troopers. He did not learn of the King’s condition until within
-bowshot of camp, where an orderly from his father met him bearing the
-sad news. At once the shouts and songs of his troopers were turned to
-sighs and tears. They entered the camp in silence. They were dusty,
-blood-stained, and weary, and their joy of victory had given place to
-dejection. The Great King’s headquarters were in the midst of the
-camp. The Prince caused his battalions to form around the pavilion in a
-square, with their faces toward it. Then, leaving them still mounted,
-he went in to inquire concerning the King’s condition.
-
-It was almost sundown. The herons, which had fled away in the morning,
-were now returning with heavy wings to the marshes along the river.
-They did not alight, however, but hurriedly flapped away when they
-found the marshes filled with the dead bodies of men and horses.
-
-The Prince found the chief captains of the army assembled in the outer
-room of the pavilion. His father was wearily reclining on a couch,
-while the others stood near in whispering groups; but he rose as the
-Prince entered, and embraced him and kissed his cheeks, exclaiming:
-
-“My son, to the Guard belongs much of the glory of our great victory.
-Never have I seen a movement so well made or a blow struck at more
-opportune time. But alas for the Great King! He is sorely wounded and
-has a fever. He is now sleeping, but he mutters and tosses in his
-sleep.”
-
-“May we go in and see him? The Guard waits anxiously to hear his
-condition,” inquired the Prince.
-
-The King of Iran called the chief surgeon out of the inner room where
-the wounded monarch lay and, after a whispered consultation with him,
-bade his son follow and went into the inner room with him. The stricken
-man lay on a silk-covered couch, apparently asleep, while an attendant
-waved a fan above his head. Aroused by their entrance, the Great King
-opened his eyes, half-raised himself upon his elbow, and stared wildly
-at them. The surgeon gently sought to repress his movements. He
-quickly recognized the King of Iran and the Prince and smiled as he
-sank back upon the couch.
-
-The surgeon bowed low before him and exclaimed: “Let not my lord move!
-It may open the wound and cause it to bleed afresh!”
-
-But Cyrus impatiently waved him aside, and said weakly: “Let be! If I
-am to die, I die; if I am to live, I will live! I have had a vision!
-Draw near, my good cousin and my beloved Prince! Is the victory
-complete? Did many escape?”
-
-The King of Iran answered: “It is your most glorious victory, O King of
-Kings! Hundreds of thousands of dead Touranians testify to the valor of
-your arms and the effectiveness of your battle-plans.”
-
-“It is well!” he sighed. “To you, my beloved Prince, is due the thanks
-of your King, of the army, of all Iran! Oh, my heart leaped when I saw
-the Guard with spears at rest ride down upon the enemy! It was then
-that I rushed into the battle. Now I lie here! So be it! I know that I
-am about to die. I have had a vision. Now I would see the sun set, lest
-I never see it again. Cause the curtains to be rolled up. This close
-air stifles me!”
-
-Servants quickly rolled up the heavy side-curtains of the pavilion. At
-a motion of the sufferer the Prince knelt by his side, placed an arm
-beneath his shoulders, and gently raised him. Instantly the Guards,
-standing at attention about the tent, uncovered their heads, bowed to
-their horses’ necks, and roared out a salute, while tears streamed
-down their grimy cheeks and many wept aloud. The men of Iran were
-emotional, weeping or laughing like children as the mood seized them.
-The Great King smiled upon them and feebly waved his hand in greeting.
-He whispered to the Prince:
-
-“How they love me! It is sweet to die surrounded by those who love
-you. Ah, if I might now have my children here! I would give them a
-parting blessing and die in peace. My sweet daughters, Athura, the
-wise, and Artistone, my babe! Bardya, my strong Prince, and Cambyses,--
-But, lay me down! The sun is setting! So sets my life!”
-
-“Say not so, my lord!” exclaimed the Prince, his eyes swimming in
-tears. “It has been a glorious day!”
-
-“True, my son! And the wrongs of Iran have been avenged. A nation of
-warriors has been wiped out. No more will the Tourans threaten my
-people. We shall make this river the boundary of our empire. Fortresses
-and cities must be built along it so that never again may the yellow
-men of the plains carry desolation south of it. Advise my sons to this
-policy. Nay, tell them I have ordered it so!”
-
-The Great King closed his eyes. The tent-sides were then dropped. The
-troopers dismounted and went into camp, satisfied to have seen the
-King alive, and praying to Ahura-Mazda, Giver of Life, that he might
-recover. The King of Iran, with uncovered head, stood for a while
-looking down upon the sufferer, while his son still knelt at the side
-of the couch. Presently Cyrus opened his eyes and looked intently upon
-the sad countenance of the Prince.
-
-“Would that you were my own son, Darius Hystaspis!” he exclaimed. “I
-love you well and I know that you have deserved well of me. Ask of me
-what you will. It shall be decreed ere I die!”
-
-The Prince bowed his head till his forehead touched the King’s hands,
-which nervously clasped his own strong right hand between their palms.
-Then he looked up into the grave eyes of his father inquiringly. The
-latter indicated by a nod that he should speak what was in his mind.
-
-“O King of Kings,” he said, “you have been as a father to me! If I have
-found favor with you, let my reward be very great! I ask no less than
-that you will give me for my wife your daughter, Athura!”
-
-Cyrus was greatly pleased. He smiled approvingly as he answered: “Truly
-you ask much! But not too much; and you shall have her, if she so
-wills. I doubt not that she will gladly consent. She must marry whom
-she will. Her mother married me even against her father’s will and she
-was ever the light and joy of life to me. In her love I rejoiced all
-the days of her life. I have given her no successor. I go to meet her
-soon. I rejoice to call you son. Would that Athura were here to wed you
-now! I pledge her to you. Now I have a request to make of you, and your
-royal father. I constituted my son, Cambyses, regent in my absence,
-that he might learn to rule. My soul is exceedingly anxious concerning
-him. His passions are great; he is violent and he endures no opposition
-to his will. He will need advisers and supporters. My son, Bardya, is
-of better nature; he is brave but impulsive. Much have I thought of
-them. It will depend upon you two, King and Prince of Iran, whether the
-family of Cyrus shall continue to reign. This I have seen. I ask of you
-that you will pledge me your royal oaths that, as long as Cambyses or
-Bardya live, you will support them on my throne--Cambyses first, and
-Bardya second.”
-
-He ceased. The Prince again looked up to his father, who had listened
-attentively and who now spoke without hesitation: “My son, we are Kings
-of Iran only. Cyrus, our cousin, is King of Kings. By his own genius he
-has made this great empire. It is his. He conquered it. He extended his
-scepter over other peoples. We forfeit none of our hereditary rights by
-swearing as he requests. As for me, I am ready to swear!”
-
-“And I also!” added the Prince.
-
-The Great King extended his two hands and took the right hands of
-father and son between his palms, saying, “Is it an oath in the hearing
-of Ahura-Mazda and His recording angel?”
-
-“It is an oath!” they solemnly answered.
-
-“It is well,” said the King, releasing them. “May Shraosha, the swift
-messenger of God, take those oaths and register them in heaven! Now
-I will tell of my vision. I saw Mount Demavend, and, upon its snowy
-summit, I beheld a great eagle. He spread his wings and, behold! they
-reached across all the heavens and their shadow covered the earth. The
-countenance of the eagle, Prince Darius, when I closely observed it,
-was your countenance. Shall it come to pass that you will overshadow
-the world? Or will you spread your protecting wings in days to come
-over this empire and by your help shall my sons reign well? Ahura-Mazda
-knows! Let his will be done!”
-
-The King’s weak voice ceased. He closed his eyes. The Prince and his
-father remained silent. A rising wind touched the tent and made it
-quiver. In the adjacent room was a low murmur of conversation. After a
-moment’s silence the Great King again opened his eyes and continued:
-
-“Since this empire of mine is new and my will has been its law, there
-are no laws by which succession to my throne may be regulated. By
-right of birth, Cambyses should succeed to the supreme power. Yet I
-am not happy in him. He is inclined to evil ways and regards not the
-customs of our race. He runs after the folly of the Medes. He seeks the
-pleasures of Babylon. I have thought much on this. Perhaps it would be
-just that he should be given Medea, Susiana, Babylonia, and all the
-western provinces to rule, since their customs he follows. Bardya is
-not so. He loves our ancient customs. To him I will give supreme rule
-over Iran and the provinces of Hind, of Hyrcania, and the Scyths and
-of all our eastern conquests; but he shall acknowledge Cambyses as
-overlord of the world, aiding him with an army in war, but undisturbed
-by him in peace. Thus will I do justly and satisfy all Iran, whose
-people love not Cambyses. I will make a testament and a decree ere I
-die. Call hither my scribe. I would relieve my mind of care by making
-such decree. Call in the nobles of Iran to hear my will!”
-
-The scribe came. The nobles of Iran entered the room. They saw the
-King’s will written down on Egyptian papyrus. Two copies were made.
-The King signed them and impressed thereon his seal. Then, greatly
-exhausted, he indicated that he would be alone; and all left his
-presence to seek refreshment after the day of toil, and to discuss the
-Great King’s last decree.
-
-It was the duty of the Prince, as commander of the Imperial Guard,
-to appoint the watches at the King’s pavilion. Otanes, the King’s
-shield-bearer and personal guard, slept in the outer room and stood at
-the door on state occasions. There were usually with Otanes several
-noble youths who acted as pages or orderlies to the Great King. But on
-this night the King of Iran and several others of the nobility kept
-silent watch in the outer room, anxiously consulting the surgeons
-as they went in and out upon their ministrations. The Prince, after
-setting a double guard around the pavilion, went alone down to the
-river and for an hour slowly paced back and forth on the low bank along
-the shore. He wished to be alone with his thoughts.
-
-A violent wind was blowing from the north. The lap and wash of waves,
-thrown up by its power, and the rustle of reeds and grass, were
-the only sounds coming to his ears. The subdued noise of the vast
-encampment drifted away behind him as he looked out across the stream.
-The moon had not yet appeared. The stars were dim and hazy behind
-dust-clouds raised by the great wind. Alone thus, though thousands
-of men were near, while the whispers of the moving air suggested the
-voices of those wailing spirits released from their mortal bodies in
-this day’s slaughter, the young man reviewed the past and contemplated
-uneasily the future.
-
-First in his thoughts, as indeed she had been for years, was Athura,
-eldest daughter of Cyrus, known to the Greek historians as Atossa,
-the most famous, most beautiful, and most queenlike woman of her age.
-He had loved her from the day when he, a youth of fourteen, and she,
-a child of ten years, had first met and played together in the great
-park surrounding his father’s palace at Persepolis, where she had come
-to visit with her mother, the queen. She had often been his companion
-in sports since the time he had entered the service of the Great King,
-as a page. Lately he had not seen her often, as his service in the
-Imperial Guard had called him away to the wars. But, when he had last
-met her in the ancient city, Bactra, to which place she had accompanied
-her father when he started on this expedition, they had made mutual
-avowals of love and pledges of faith, subject to her father’s consent.
-Now the expedition was ended. He had the consent of Cyrus to their
-marriage. Happiness seemed to be in store for him.
-
-But the future was not without clouds. Cyrus was dying. What then?
-The hate-filled countenance of Cambyses arose before his mind. The
-large, square body of that Prince, the bullet head, the black, dull
-eye, the fat face, usually expressive of scorn, he well remembered.
-He seemed to hear again the brutal laugh, the bitter gibe or threat,
-the coarse words, and the raucous tones of the Prince, as he had heard
-them often when as boys they played together. Cambyses had hated him,
-apparently for no other reason than that he could not bully him as he
-was accustomed to bully other boys. More than once they had engaged
-in personal encounters; and the officers, who ever guarded the King’s
-children, had to interfere and separate them. Some of these combats had
-arisen when he had gone to rescue Athura or Bardya from their brother’s
-abuse. Cambyses also hated Bardya, whom Cyrus loved. More than once
-Cyrus himself had inflicted corporal punishment upon the elder Prince
-for abusing his playmates, and in later years he had often caused him
-to be confined in his room as a punishment. If Cyrus should die, the
-violent, degraded, drunken Cambyses would be King, with power absolute
-of life and death, and able to wreak vengeance upon the royal brother
-and sisters, as he had often sworn he would do, when he should come
-into power.
-
-Prince Darius did not fear Cambyses. But if Cambyses should disregard
-his father’s will and forbid the marriage of Darius and Athura, what
-would be the result? The Prince involuntarily laid his hand on the hilt
-of his sword. Cambyses could be overthrown, since the people and the
-army of Iran loved him not; and the younger Prince Bardya would then
-reign. Bardya was a friend of Darius and would approve the marriage.
-But to the Prince came the remembrance of his oath to Cyrus. He had
-sworn to uphold Cambyses. No matter what the Prince should do or what
-wrong he should inflict upon him or his friends, he must henceforth
-support him on his throne! As the possibilities involved in that oath
-occurred to his mind, the young man smote his hands together and
-groaned. But he said to himself that perhaps Cambyses, the King, would
-be different from Cambyses, the man. In any event, the nobles of Iran
-and the King, his father, would compel Cambyses to give Athura to him.
-Cambyses would not dare refuse to regard his own father’s pledge.
-
-The moon appeared, a dim, pale disk behind a veil of flying dust. The
-wind increased in violence. Thin, broken clouds floated across the sky.
-The river, vaguely seen, was filled with choppy waves. The howl of a
-wolf came faintly from beyond the stream. A great sadness, a sense of
-impending danger, filled the soul of the Prince.
-
-A voice aroused him, saying, “Gracious Prince, the King has awakened
-and is calling for you!” It was one of the King’s pages who thus
-summoned him. Throwing off his depression, he followed the youth
-into the tent, pausing only at the door to direct the guards to take
-additional precautions to prevent the wind from throwing down the
-swaying shelter. The King turned a wan, pain-drawn countenance towards
-him as he entered and beckoned him to a low stool at the side of his
-couch.
-
-“My son,” he said, speaking slowly and with difficulty, “I am unable
-to sleep. This wound pains me greatly and the wind roars about the
-tent. I am very lonely. I seem to stand naked and alone before God! I
-am about to step out into the dark. I would have you near me. You have
-been with me so many years that you are to me as a son. Now that I have
-promised my daughter to you, I have a double claim upon you. Sit here,
-unless you are weary and must sleep. It has been a long, hard day, but
-a glorious one for Iran!”
-
-“Father, I am not weary,” replied the Prince. “My heart is heavy for
-you! I pray God you may recover! Is the wound so bad, then? Once before
-you were hurt in battle and recovered.”
-
-“This wound is fatal. It is poisoned. The weapon that pierced me was
-unclean. Even now I feel it throb and burn. I know the symptoms. I
-have watched many a dying officer, wounded by unclean darts. But I am
-at peace. I have been a man of war all my life; but I have ever had
-right with me. I have lived uprightly and wronged none. Justice has
-never been sold by me. Oppression has been rebuked. I have crushed the
-rulers of nations to free their people from tyranny and misrule. I do
-not fear to die. I am an Aryan. Ahura-Mazda is God and there is none
-other! My mind dwells much on the future, my son. Discourse to me of
-that. You sat at the feet of Belteshazzer, the wise, he that was chief
-of the college of wisdom in Babylon. He talked to me often of God and
-of his own people. I made a decree that his people should be returned
-to their home at Jerusalem and rebuild their temple to God. Call this
-to my son’s remembrance, when you go to him, and say to him that I lay
-it upon him to obey. What said Belteshazzer of that which lies beyond
-death?”
-
-“He taught that the spirit continues to live after the body dies.”
-
-“Yes, truly, so said he to me! But in that he agrees with our
-Zoroaster.”
-
-“He taught much as did the great Master. Indeed, he agrees that
-Ahura-Mazda, the Holy One, the Father of Truth, the Life-Giving Spirit,
-is but another name for the same God he worships as Jah, who is the
-Father of all spirits and the Giver of Life. He teaches that there is
-one God, a loving Father, the Eternal One; and that in the far-distant
-past there were but one man and one woman, from whom sprang all the
-races of men; and that all worshiped one God, the Father of all; but
-that many of their children have forgotten Him and have wandered away,
-making Gods of their own imaginings. He is a mighty prophet and holds
-communion with messengers from God and with spirits.”
-
-“I have heard wonderful things of him, how that fire will not burn him
-nor wild beasts harm him. What says Zoroaster of the dying?”
-
-“He taught that Shraosha, the swift messenger, stands ready to receive
-the soul and to conduct it over the bridge that is straight and
-narrow into paradise, where the great angel, Bohman, will greet it
-and say, ‘How happy art thou who hast come hither from mortality to
-immortality!’ Then will the soul enter upon eternal blessedness.”
-
-“You said that Belteshazzer talks with unseen spirits and is a mighty
-prophet. Do not the Magi also call up the dead and prophesy?”
-
-“They say so, Sire. But Belteshazzer says that they are liars and that
-their art is black. He admits that they may talk with spirits, but
-accuses them of dealing with demons and evil spirits. They worship the
-spirits who inhabit the dark places of earth and work ill to men.”
-
-The Great King lay silent a moment with closed eyes. At length, heaving
-a deep sigh, he said:
-
-“It is all a mystery! But I shall soon know. I am troubled concerning
-Cambyses. I have heard that he has dealings with the Magi and has
-attended their worship. God forbid that he should fall into their
-hands! They are a vile sect, regarding neither oath nor promise. They
-prey upon the weak and superstitious. They would throw down our ancient
-laws. I have not been intolerant of others’ creeds or ever interfered
-with their religion. Each nation has continued to worship God in its
-own manner, giving obedience to me only in matters of government. Can
-it be said that one God is better than the other? How was I to judge
-the unknown things of God? But I know that God rules, whether named
-Ahura-Mazda, Jah, Merodach, Jove, or Ra. Men know him not!”
-
-Again he fell silent, with closed eyes and pallid face turned to the
-dim light of the lamps which hung from the ridge-pole by chains,
-flaring in the currents of air and swinging to and fro as the tent
-rocked under the shocks of the mighty wind.
-
-Rousing himself again, he continued: “I feel that my spirit will soon
-depart. When it does, I lay upon you the task of conveying my body to
-Pasargadæ, where you shall deposit it in a suitable tomb. Take half
-of the Guard with you. Leave the remainder here with the King, your
-father, who must finish the work I have begun and establish fortresses
-along this river so that never again may the Touranians recover the
-land we have conquered, or further molest Iran. Let my body be entombed
-after the fashion of our fathers. Take a message to Bardya and say
-that I have blessed him. Restrain him with your advice, that he do not
-rebel and bring on war with his brother. Take my love and blessing to
-Athura and Artistone. Into your care I give Athura. May long years of
-happiness be yours! But I am very weary and I would sleep. Sit here by
-me. It is pleasant to know that you are near!”
-
-The King closed his eyes and sank into a stupor. The Prince bent his
-head upon his hands and silently wept. Presently becoming calmer, he
-sat still in meditation, listening to the irregular breathing of the
-sufferer. After a while he also slept, with his head resting on his
-arms, which were folded across his knees. The hours went by, while the
-great wind continued to bellow around and to whip the awnings of the
-pavilion and while the life of the Great King slowly flickered out.
-Darius was awakened by the surgeons, who, alarmed at the long silence
-in the sick-room, had come in to look at the King.
-
-“Great Cyrus is dead!” he heard one of them say.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-PREXASPES
-
-
-Cyrus, the Great King, had been conquered by a greater King. The
-generals and nobles of his army gathered in solemn council on the day
-following his death. The King of Iran presided. On him, as upon an
-anchor in a storm, the others depended; and it was in the hearts of
-many to declare him successor to the mighty dead. There was no love in
-their hearts towards Cambyses, the heir. His open contempt for their
-ancient customs and religion and his erratic and brutal disposition had
-not attracted them. The army had given the throne and his distinctive
-eminence as King of Kings to Cyrus; it could give them to another, now
-that he was gone, in spite of his expressed will.
-
-At the right hand of the King stood the Prince, his son, his eyes
-heavy with sorrow. Otanes, Gobryas, Hydarnes, Vomisces, and a score of
-Persians of lesser note were there; and also Prexaspes, the Mede.
-
-As usual Prexaspes was carefully dressed; he was ornate in golden,
-jewel-set armor and half enveloped in a silken cloak, the famous
-Medean robe. His hair and beard were curled and perfumed. He moved
-with exaggerated grace and carried his fine head haughtily. His
-brothers-in-arms could ill conceal their contempt for his foppish
-manners. They were rough, ready men, straight of look and direct of
-speech. They loved not an Aryan who copied the manners of Babylon and
-Nineveh and, as they suspected, the vices of those ultra-civilized
-peoples. But they knew that Prexaspes was a brave and able commander of
-horse and on that account ignored his manners. He was a fair sample of
-the higher classes of Medes, who, residing on the borders of the more
-effeminate peoples of the great Mesopotamian valley, had been infected
-by their manners and customs.
-
-The Medes, in the former days, when they had conquered the lands
-now occupied by them, had been sturdy, simple people. Centuries of
-intercourse with the Assyrians and Babylonians had materially changed
-their qualities and had not only affected their dress and manner of
-living, but had injected into their ancient religion, which was a
-monotheistic creed, new ideas that were polytheistic, much to the
-indignation of their brethren of Persia and Bactra who still clung to
-the ancient faith. The Medes had permitted the fire-worshipers of the
-northern provinces to practice their occult arts and had to some extent
-adopted those practices. There had, as a consequence, grown up a priest
-class of Magi, or seers, wise men, prophets, who claimed to communicate
-with the gods of hill, mountain, and plain, and who did undeniably
-work wonders that could not be duplicated by the priests in the Aryan
-temples, and thereby not only discomfited the latter in the eyes of the
-people, but impressed the rulers of Medea in their favor.
-
-It was said that Prexaspes was a follower of the Magi, but on that
-subject he adroitly avoided conversation. Cyrus, whose policy had ever
-been to conciliate those he conquered, had recognized the military
-ability of Prexaspes and had forborne to examine closely into his creed
-or his manner of life. In return the latter had given him faithful
-service and had been extremely useful in dealing with the Medean
-nobility and in recruiting for the army.
-
-As soon as all who had been bidden were assembled, the King of Iran
-addressed them briefly: “I have called you together to consider the
-great calamity that has befallen this army and the empire. Great Cyrus
-sleeps with his fathers. The decisive victory of yesterday resulted
-thus in greater loss to us than to the enemy. The command of this army
-has fallen upon me until a messenger can be sent to bring orders from
-Cambyses, who, by the will of his august father, succeeds to the throne
-of the King of Kings. It was the will of Cyrus that we hold all this
-country and make the Jaxartes the future boundary of Iran. It shall be
-done. We shall remain here until the enemy shall fully submit, and we
-shall build fortresses along this river. On this spot where great Cyrus
-departed this life, let us found a city named in honor of the Great
-King. It shall be a monument to his glorious victory and a bulwark of
-the empire. What say you?”
-
-He paused. Otanes, upon whom the King’s eyes rested, answered: “Let it
-be so! Let the King’s will be law!” Nods and exclamations of assent
-came from the company.
-
-The King continued: “The Great King ordered that his body be taken to
-Pasargadæ, there to rest in the tomb prepared by him and in which rests
-the body of his wife. He directed that my son take the Imperial Guard
-for an escort and convey his body, when embalmed, to its resting-place.
-This shall be done. As for me, I shall remain here until the frontier
-be made safe. My son shall select such of you as he desires to
-accompany him on his honorable mission. It will be necessary to send
-a special messenger to Cambyses with the Great King’s last decree.
-He shall travel with the Guard and my son until he reach Bactra; but
-then he must go more swiftly, in order that Cambyses may make fitting
-preparation for the funeral of his father. Who will volunteer for this
-service?”
-
-Silence fell upon the company. There was no desire in any of them to
-greet Cambyses. They would rather have deposed him. But Prexaspes stood
-forth and said: “O King, if it please you, I will bear the message to
-Cambyses, the King of Kings.”
-
-The King regarded Prexaspes a moment thoughtfully. He liked not this
-man, but he could think of no reason to deny him. He said:
-
-“You shall go. But swear before us here that you will faithfully carry
-to Cambyses this decree and assure him of our support!”
-
-“I swear!” responded Prexaspes, solemnly, lifting both hands towards
-the sun and turning his face to it. A frown passed over the calm
-features of the King. He liked not this exhibition of Mithra worship.
-But he made no comment, only saying:
-
-“Say to the Great King, Cambyses, that I, Hystaspis, King of Iran,
-have sworn to support him and his brother on their thrones according
-to the will of Cyrus; and my word shall be kept! Advise him also that
-the ancient laws and customs in Iran must not be disregarded. His great
-father gave heed to them; and on them the Aryan peoples lay great
-weight. In their observance will he gain strength; and the men of Iran
-will in return dash to pieces his enemies. Do I not speak truth?”
-
-The speaker’s eyes glanced inquiringly over the company. The black,
-sparkling eyes of Prexaspes likewise swept over it and noted the
-expression on every countenance. Nods of approval and unanimous spoken
-assent indicated the sentiment of all. Prexaspes, bowing low before
-the King, answered:
-
-“I will exactly report your words, O King! I shall take great pleasure
-in assuring the Great King that all here are his loyal supporters.”
-
-The King was about to dismiss the council, when a messenger rode up
-from the east in great haste. He was from the pickets stationed near
-the battlefield. The King waited till he had dismounted and drawn near.
-
-“A message, gracious King, from Captain Mardux of the scouts!” cried
-the messenger, bowing low till his hands touched the earth.
-
-“Speak!” commanded the King.
-
-“The captain is approaching with a company of Touran princes, who come
-to the Great King to tender submission. He has halted at the outer
-limits of the camp to await your orders. Shall he slay them or bring
-them hither?”
-
-“Bring them hither!”
-
-The messenger again bowed low, backed from the circle, and sprang on
-his horse. As soon as he was gone, the King said:
-
-“It will be best not to inform these men of the death of Cyrus. No lie
-need be spoken. But I am the King. Cyrus is not dead but sleepeth. Send
-hither an interpreter.”
-
-Gobryas, to whom the last command was spoken, departed to summon an
-interpreter. Meanwhile the King caused a purple-covered chair to be
-brought out and placed on a platform made of camp-chests covered with
-a costly rug. In this he seated himself, and with his son at his right
-hand, Otanes at his left, and the other nobles near, all dressed in
-glittering mail and fully armed, he was ready to receive and impress
-the coming delegation. A glittering crown of gold studded with gems,
-high and pointed, like the miter of a priest, was placed on his
-head. In his hand was a scepter, a silver rod tipped with a golden
-pomegranate. Right royal was his aspect; and the stern countenances of
-his captains added to the impressiveness of the scene.
-
-Captain Mardux, a stout, bluff soldier, who had won his promotion from
-the ranks by prowess and shrewdness, presently rode up with a company
-of cavalry, escorting five men of swarthy countenance, long-haired,
-almond-eyed, mounted on powerful ponies, sitting on goatskins instead
-of saddles, and clothed in silken garments and pointed fur caps. The
-captain caused them to dismount and led them before the King, where,
-in obedience to an expressive gesture of the captain’s hands, they
-threw themselves flat upon the earth in salutation. Here they lay
-face-downward while the captain reported as follows:
-
-“These dogs, O King, came to us with hands in air, showing themselves
-unarmed and asked to be taken to the Great King. I know some words of
-their language and so understood that they come as messengers from the
-Tourans.”
-
-“It is well, Mardux. Bid them rise to their knees.”
-
-Captain Mardux roused the prostrate men with his toe and made them
-assume a kneeling posture. From this position, they glanced with ferret
-eyes at the King and his supporters. They were evidently greatly
-impressed, but their sullen countenances exhibited no fear. Gobryas now
-appeared with an interpreter, a man of Bactra who had conducted trading
-expeditions over the great plains in more peaceable days. Thereupon the
-following colloquy occurred between the King and one of them:
-
-“Who are you and whence come you?”
-
-“We are messengers of the Queen of the Massagetæ. We come from her
-encampment, a day’s journey eastward.”
-
-“What seek you?”
-
-“We come to greet the Great King, Cyrus, whose power even the gods
-cannot withstand. Behold! our King is dead on yonder field, and the
-King’s son is dead. Our people are broken. The bodies of our slain
-choke the great river. Only old men and children are left. Who can
-withstand Cyrus? Like the lightning and the whirlwind he sweeps up
-from the south! He smites and men are not! We come to tender unto him
-a handful of earth, a broken twig, and a cup of water, and to ask his
-pardon, that we may henceforth be his men and live under the shadow of
-his arms.”
-
-“Cyrus, the Great King, sleeps and we cannot awaken him. Behold me, the
-King of Iran, Hystaspis! I will receive your tokens of submission.”
-
-“It is well! We know of you, O King of Iran, surnamed the Just. Have we
-not heard of your strong arm and most just and merciful heart? If it be
-permitted, we will arise and present to you our tokens of submission,
-asking mercy for our remnant of people.”
-
-“It is permitted!”
-
-The men arose. One produced a small casket of carved wood inlaid with
-ivory, and opening it so that it revealed the brown earth of the desert
-therein, he solemnly placed it in the outstretched hand of the King.
-Another produced a twig of wood plucked from a stunted oak, and another
-a small jar of water, which were solemnly received and passed on to
-Otanes by the King, who then said:
-
-“Hear now the King’s sentence! You are pardoned. Enough blood has been
-shed to atone for past injury. You are brave men whom the Great King
-will delight to own as his children. Your lands and all your property
-are forfeit to him, but these he will let you use so long as you serve
-him in good faith. But in order that you may enjoy his protection,
-it will be necessary for you to render to him each summer season ten
-thousand good horses, as many cattle, and a like number of sheep. That
-he may have evidence of your good faith and in order that your people
-may be instructed in his laws, you must send to our city of Bactra
-each year one hundred of your most noble youths, to enter the King’s
-service, whose lives shall be forfeit should you rebel. Furthermore,
-you shall maintain for the King’s service ten thousand horsemen, fully
-equipped, who shall march whither he wills. You shall guard these lands
-against all foes. In return for these light services, the power of the
-Great King shall be over you, your foes shall be his foes, and his
-mighty arm will give you peace. You shall go out and come in according
-to your customs, but you shall molest no man who acknowledges the Great
-King as his master. I have spoken!”
-
-The ambassadors bowed themselves to the earth, and their spokesman
-replied:
-
-“Let all these conditions be written on tablets, O Gracious King! Most
-merciful and gracious is your heart! Our people will most gladly submit
-and will faithfully observe these conditions. And now we beg that as an
-earnest of our good intent, we may bring to you our first offering of
-ten thousand horses, ten thousand sheep, and as many cattle, for the
-use of our Lord and his army. So may the Great King see that we deal
-not with crooked tongues or lying lips.”
-
-“It is so ordered!” assented the King, graciously. “While we have a
-sufficiency of victuals, fresh meat will be welcome to the army. The
-treaty shall be written on tablets. Go now with Captain Mardux and
-partake of refreshments ere you return to your people. Say to them that
-we shall build here a great city to be named the City of Cyrus, and it
-shall be a place for trade where they may exchange the product of their
-herds for the fruits of the south countries. Let them send laborers to
-assist, and the King’s bounty shall be sufficient for them. But of this
-we will give you further information at a future day.”
-
-The ambassadors withdrew, greatly pleased that the sentence of the King
-was not more burdensome. A week later, the required horses, cattle, and
-sheep were brought to the camp, and the one hundred youths as hostages
-were surrendered. Within a year, the walls of a city were begun and
-a colony of loyal Aryans located within them as the nucleus of an
-emporium which flourished there a thousand years, rejoicing in the name
-of the Great King who there died for his race.
-
-Meanwhile expert embalmers, who had learned their art in Egypt,
-prepared the body of Cyrus for its long journey to the city of his
-fathers. When well prepared, it was enclosed in a heavy casket, placed
-on a four-wheeled chariot drawn by ten royal white stallions, and,
-encompassed by the Imperial Guard, was conveyed to its tomb. The great
-army, drawn up in two long parallel lines, gave sad farewell to its
-hero-king as the funeral car passed along between, escorted by the
-Guard; and tears streamed down every Aryan cheek. To Prince Hystaspis,
-who led the van, with Gobryas at his side, a roar of acclamation, a
-royal salute, and shouted wishes for a safe journey and quick return,
-came from the successive companies he passed. Prexaspes, riding some
-paces to the rear, noted the great demonstration and pondered deeply
-thereon.
-
-All day the funeral car and its splendid escort moved slowly southward.
-The Prince of Iran was silent, absorbed in meditation. Gobryas vainly
-endeavored to engage him in conversation. The troopers noted his
-downcast mien and whispered together concerning it. It was well known
-that Cambyses hated the Prince. Every soldier in the army had discussed
-it with his fellow since the Great King died. All had hoped that King
-Hystaspis would claim Cyrus’ throne, his by right of birth and age,
-if being descended from an older branch of the Achæmenian family
-counted; but they had been disappointed when the King had announced his
-support of Cambyses. What if the Prince could be persuaded to seize the
-throne? It was a new throne anyway, this throne of the King of Kings,
-the Emperor of many nations. If he would take it, they would give
-it to him! So reasoned the army. King Hystaspis would accede if the
-Prince should declare his acceptance. It would be better to go against
-Cambyses sword in hand and to contest for the prize of sovereignty
-with him, than to be seized and slain by the madman after submitting
-to his sway. All day on the march and much of that night around their
-camp-fires, the troopers discussed the matter. The result of their
-consultation appeared next morning. The Prince, after a restless night
-in which evil dreams disturbed his slumber when he did succeed in his
-efforts to sleep, rose and went forth just as the sun was rising. He
-was greatly surprised to see his ten thousand men drawn up in solid
-masses, forming a hollow square around his tent. He was nonplussed when
-every cap was hurled into the air, every sword struck buckler and every
-head bowed low in salute to him. His face went white with emotion and
-then became dark with wrath as he heard the thunderous shout:
-
-“Hail, King of Kings! All hail!”
-
-He raised his hand, beckoning for silence, and, addressing a group of
-officers, he said, speaking sternly and in a loud voice,
-
-“What means this?”
-
-One of the officers advanced a pace, and, bowing low, said:
-
-“Son of Achæmenes, Cyrus, the Great King, is dead! Your Father, the
-illustrious King of Iran, has refused to take his place. But you have
-not refused. Now we know that Cambyses hates you and will do you evil.
-He is no Aryan, moreover, and is said to be a madman. Heed this, our
-prayer! Let us recognize you as the King of Kings and our good right
-arms will make it so!”
-
-As he ceased speaking, a roar of assent went up from ten thousand
-throats. The soldiers extended their hands to him in entreaty. Again he
-beckoned for silence. When the clamor ceased, he answered:
-
-“What you ask is impossible to grant! As my father swore to Cyrus,
-so did I! I am bound by a sacred oath to the Great King, whose body
-lies there on its car, but whose spirit even now, perhaps, hovers near
-us; and I must support Cambyses and Bardya on their thrones forever.
-My word is given; it shall not return! This throne is the throne of
-Cyrus; he set it up and his children are entitled to it. It is true,
-the King of Iran by right of descent might have contested with Cyrus
-the throne of Persia; but he had no right to contest with him that
-which his mighty arm brought in subjection to him. As King of Iran, my
-father is your ruler. I, his son, am most happy to be your Prince. But
-Cambyses is overlord and such must remain! I have no fear. Cambyses,
-the Great King, will not be empowered to do me harm unless I rebel. You
-have rebelled. You know the punishment of treason is death; but I will
-pardon you now if you will swear before Ahura-Mazda to remain faithful
-to Cambyses, the Great King, so long as he respects the laws of Iran.
-Up with your hands and swear!”
-
-There was a pause. The troopers looked to their officers and upon each
-other. A murmur ran through the great host. Would the Prince yield?
-They knew his firmness and his love of truth and that he had never
-broken oath or promise. Looking upon his countenance, sad but set with
-determination, they decided to obey. But some wept aloud, and tears
-flowed down the cheeks of others. The captains raised their hands,
-saying: “We swear, O Prince of Iran! You alone may release this oath!”
-And the soldiers repeated solemnly but without enthusiasm: “We swear, O
-Prince, and you alone may release this oath!”
-
-Thus did the Prince of Iran for the sake of an oath put aside the
-highest position earth could give. Dismissing the assembly with a wave
-of his hand, he turned in great agitation to enter his tent, that he
-might regain that calmness for which in all difficult situations he
-was ever noted. As he turned, his eyes met those of Prexaspes, who
-occupied a tent near his, and, who, standing in his tent-door, had been
-a witness of the whole incident. He noted on the face of the Mede great
-astonishment. He gravely acknowledged the profound bow with which the
-latter greeted him and passed into his tent. Later, on the march that
-day, the Prince called Prexaspes to his side, and said to him:
-
-“Lord Prexaspes, you were witness when the Imperial Guard sought my
-consent to rebel. You are going in before Cambyses, the King of Kings;
-and I place it upon your honor to deal justly with me in this matter.
-These men are like children, loving me as I love them, and thought they
-were doing me a service. If you see fit to speak to the King of it,
-assure him of my loyalty. Also say that I myself will stand or fall
-with these men. No harm must come to them. The King of Kings shall have
-loyal service of me and of these as long as they remain with me.”
-
-“What need to report?” rejoined Prexaspes, warmly. “Truly it was no
-light thing your oath required of you! I marvel that you refused,
-knowing as you do how the King of Kings hates you, hates your friends,
-hates his brother, who is dear to you, and even his sister, the
-lovely Athura! Rest assured that, should this come to his ears, I
-will truthfully describe your actions. How can I forget that day at
-the crossing of the Araxes, when my Babylonian archers and I were
-surrounded by howling Scythians and we were hard-pressed? Was it not
-the Prince of Iran who came with the Guard to our rescue? I may not be
-a follower of Zoroaster, Great Prince, but I am not ungrateful!”
-
-The Prince looked into the eyes of Prexaspes and saw that he was
-sincere. “I trust you,” he said. “Let us hope that Cambyses as King may
-forget his dislikes as a man.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-ATHURA
-
-
-Ancient Bactra, the mother city of the Aryan race, was situate in the
-midst of a beautiful valley surrounded on all sides by mountain ranges.
-It was a fertile valley. Through it rushed the limpid river, Adirsiah,
-coming down from the distant snow-capped mountains in the east and
-finding an outlet northward to the Oxus. Though it was summer, the
-hills were green and the valley was luxuriant with full-leafed trees
-and blooming gardens. It seemed a paradise indeed to the Prince of
-Iran and his wayworn guard, marching in from the arid northern plain.
-Bactra was a great city. Many square miles dotted with ruins at this
-day mutely tell of its extent. Here the mythical Kaiomur, possibly a
-son of Japhet, settled, and planted a race from which many nations
-have sprung. It was not a walled city. The men of Iran relied on their
-good right arms for defense. Indeed, they were not accustomed to await
-invasion; they invaded others. In the open, with galloping steed and
-spear at rest they swept the enemy from their path, or on foot, with
-bow and arrow they smote him or closed with him in close mortal combat
-with sword and battle-ax. Their valor made a wall more potent than
-stones.
-
-Like a hive did the ancient city nourish myriad lives and send forth
-swarms of sturdy men, who, under the leadership of able men, took with
-them wives, children, and goods and forcibly possessed new homes in
-distant climes. One stream passed westward to the lower Caspian and,
-branching there, flowed northward, westward, and southward. Hellas,
-Asia Minor, the Saxon woods, Scandinavia, and Western Europe received
-them, not perhaps in one year or one century, but in successive years,
-as successive waves with a rising tide ever encroach on the shore.
-Medea and Persia received them. Ancient records seem to indicate that
-they dominated the great valley of the Euphrates and Tigris and even
-planted families in Syria on the shores of the Great Sea; and it is
-sometimes argued that the ancestors of Abraham, father of the Hebrews,
-came from Iran bringing their knowledge of one God with them. It is at
-least true that the monarchs of the Medes and Persians ever favored the
-Hebrews and acknowledged their Jehovah as the same God they themselves
-worshiped under the name Ahura-Mazda, or the Life-Giving Spirit.
-Another swarm crossed the southern mountains and occupied India. But
-eastward and northeastward, in obedience to some primal instinct
-that seems to have driven them in all other directions, the Aryans
-never penetrated. The slant-eyed, yellow races, protected by the vast
-mountain ranges and desert plains of Tibet, multiplied in peace on
-the shores of the Pacific Ocean and threw out their swarms northward
-and eastward into the Americas and the islands of the south seas.
-Occasionally their hordes, under the general designation of Tourans,
-pressed upon their western neighbors by way of the plains of Siberia,
-and later, as Huns, Turks, and Tartars, succeeded in overpowering, by
-weight of vast numbers, the provinces so long protected by Aryan valor;
-but not until that valor had been forgotten in the luxuries of an
-enervating civilization.
-
-Bactra was at the intersection of main highways of commerce. Here the
-great caravan road from Rhages, to which flowed by different routes
-the trade of Persia and Medea, of Egypt, Babylonia, Syria, and Europe,
-intersected the roads from India and Tourania. Here the beautiful wares
-of Babylon and Nineveh, of Samos and Damascus, of Egypt and the Ionian
-cities and of Greece were exchanged for the fabrics of India and the
-products of the northern plains. Here caravans outfitted for trade in
-distant lands. The great market-place, an open square on the shore
-of the Adirsiah, near the center of the city, was ever lively with
-the movement of men of different colors and wearing as many different
-dresses; of camels ever complaining and groaning; of donkeys, braying;
-of beautiful horses, exhibiting their points; and of a thousand
-vehicles for transporting goods. Around three sides were dome-roofed
-stores, where the wealth of all nations was displayed;, where gold,
-silver, precious stones, beautiful earthenwares, ivory, rugs, weapons,
-fruits, grains, and wearing apparel were exhibited for exchange or for
-sale, and the noisy shouts of traders were heard the whole day. Groups
-of soldiers swaggered along, keeping the peace. Teachers and priests
-in long robes walked with solemn pace contemplative; magistrates and
-nobles rode through with lofty aspect; the countryman, then as ever,
-wandered about in open-eyed curiosity, loved and respected by all
-Aryans, but nevertheless simple-minded and apt to be cheated; and the
-humble laborer of the city, rough-spoken but shrewd, boldly jostled any
-foreigner who might cross his path.
-
-The royal palace occupied an eminence sloping down to the river,
-near the eastern limits of the city, its stately walls, and porticos
-dimly seen through the leafy trees of the park surrounding it.
-Other mansions of the rich and noble, each surrounded by garden or
-park, clustered near. The narrow, irregular streets were bordered by
-the houses and shops of the commercial class. On the outskirts, the
-humbler cottages of the poor were built. On all sides lay the gardens
-and fields in which were raised the vegetables consumed by the vast
-population.
-
-Couriers had brought to Prince Bardya at Bactra news of his father’s
-death. A period of mourning had been proclaimed. When the funeral car
-with its guard drew near the city, a decree was issued and proclaimed
-on all the street corners, commanding all to leave their tasks and to
-observe a day of special mourning. A great procession marched out of
-the city to meet the dead king. A thousand horsemen, four abreast, led
-the way. Prince Bardya, riding a great white horse, rode alone, with
-bowed head and sorrowful demeanor. Following him were two litters,
-carried on the shoulders of stout black slaves; these bore the royal
-daughters of Cyrus, Athura and Artistone. A thousand or more nobles,
-magistrates, travelers of note, and rich men rode next. Countless
-multitudes of all classes closed the procession or traveled along the
-way through the fields, eager to see and to hear.
-
-The Prince of Iran, leaving his camp equipage at a ford of the river a
-league below the city, advanced slowly with the funeral car and his ten
-thousand weary, wayworn guards, to meet the procession. Coming to an
-open field, wherein stood several great oaks, he caused the funeral car
-to stop beneath the branches of one of the trees and massed his guard
-in an open square around it, leaving a way open for the royal Prince
-and his sisters to approach the bier. Then, accompanied by Gobryas, he
-rode on to meet the procession. The advance guards of Prince Bardya
-opened to let him pass through, forming in lines on either side of the
-way.
-
-The Prince of Iran and Gobryas dismounted as they were about to meet
-the son of Cyrus; and the latter likewise dismounted, and, hastening to
-them, embraced them affectionately, while tears dimmed all eyes.
-
-“Hail, dear friends!” was his greeting. “It is pleasant to meet you
-even though sadness comes with you.” He kissed the Prince of Iran and
-embraced him. “My sisters are here. Let us go to them,” he then said.
-
-The litters drew near and were placed on the ground by their brawny
-carriers. The curtains of the foremost were parted and from it emerged
-a young woman, heavily veiled and dressed in rich but somber clothing.
-As her brother and his two friends approached, she drew aside the veil
-from her face, and, smiling through tears upon the Prince of Iran,
-extended to him her hand. He bent knee before her and reverently kissed
-the extended hand.
-
-“Greeting, Prince of Iran!” she said in a low, sweet voice, wherein
-gladness struggled with sadness. “Arise! Should a Prince of Iran kneel
-to any person?”
-
-“To one only in the whole world!” was his reply, arising and looking
-down into her glorious eyes. “If I were not here on so sad an errand,
-this would be my happiest day. I bring to you the last message of love
-and farewell from the King of Kings. His last thoughts and words were
-of you and of the little sister here.”
-
-He turned to greet Artistone, who now came forward from her litter, and
-gravely bent to kiss the little hand she gave him.
-
-“Come!” said Bardya, “let us go and greet the dead. When we return to
-the palace we shall renew our acquaintance and you shall tell us all
-that our beloved father said.”
-
-Without further conversation they walked between the lines of massed
-soldiery, who saluted as they passed, to the funeral car, around which
-stood a score of officers with drawn swords as a guard of honor. They
-ascended the great car, drew aside the heavy curtains, with which it
-was surrounded, and stood in the presence of the dead. The casket had
-been partially opened and some of the wrappings over the face of the
-remains had been removed, that they might look again upon the beloved
-features. Royalty for the moment was forgotten and the bereaved
-children wept; and, in an instant, a great wave of emotion swept over
-the vast multitude. Men of all stations, women of all classes and their
-children, lifted up their voices in loud lamentation. The hero, under
-whose mighty shadow they had so long rested and been safe, was no more!
-Cyrus, the well-beloved, was gone! Alas and alas! wailed the people.
-The glowing sun smiled upon the snowy peaks in the east, the green
-hills in the west, and the lovely valley with its rippling stream, and
-all nature seemed happy. Only this myriad of human beings voiced their
-woe. No greater tribute could have been given to the mighty dead.
-
-But weeping must have an end. The Prince and his sisters descended
-from the car and returned to the palace. The casket, escorted by
-the multitudes, was conveyed to a temple, which stood in the park
-surrounding the palace, and was there kept while arrangements were made
-for its further transportation to Persia.
-
-Prexaspes, having been given audience by Prince Bardya, was furnished
-with an escort and sent on his way to Cambyses at Hamadan. He was
-directed to inform the King of Kings that his brother and sisters would
-accompany the body of their father to Pasargadæ. The determination
-of Bardya to attend his father’s corpse to its tomb gave the Prince
-of Iran much concern. It would place Bardya within the power of King
-Cambyses, whose uncertain temper might lead him to fratricide. Knowing
-the disposition of Cambyses and his long-standing hatred towards
-Bardya, and fearing that a conflict would inevitably arise over the
-divided authority left them by the will of Cyrus, the Prince sought to
-persuade Bardya to remain in Bactra, whose people would protect him.
-But Bardya would not be persuaded. He was a bold youth and thought that
-he would be as safe among the Persians as among the Bactrians.
-
-The palace of Bactra was the property of its ancient line of kings.
-Here the Kings of Iran were crowned, and from it went forth all royal
-decrees. Here King Hystaspis in early youth had resided with his queen,
-and here Darius, their son, had been born. But when Cyrus of Persia
-became conqueror of Medea and assumed the title of King of Kings,
-he admitted that Persia was a part of Iran and placed it likewise
-under the rule of Hystaspis, but on condition that the latter should
-acknowledge him as overlord of all. King Hystaspis entertained for his
-great cousin the most lively admiration and affection. He cared not to
-dispute with him world authority. He was a mystic, a lover of learning
-and of his fellow-men. He would much rather have sat at the feet of
-Zoroaster and delved into the mystery of life and the greater mystery
-of death than rule as King. But he accepted the duties of kingship as
-a trust for his people and stoutly protected them from their enemies
-as well as in the enjoyment of their ancient rights. He had accepted
-the proposition of Cyrus and under him had ruled all Iran, including
-Persia. His authority even extended over Medea in the absence of Cyrus,
-although, the capital of Cyrus’ empire being at Hamadan, the Great
-King generally regulated the internal affairs of Medea himself.
-
-King Hystaspis had then built for himself a palace on the banks of the
-royal river Pulwar in Persia near where it flowed into the Araxes and
-about thirty miles below or west of Pasargadæ, around which arose a
-great city known to history as Persepolis, where in winter he might
-enjoy a less rigorous climate than at Bactra. There he and his queen
-loved to reside in the midst of a great park, surrounded by men and
-women of congenial spirit, embowered in the flowers and foliage of a
-semi-tropic vegetation with the great plain of Merv, a very paradise
-under irrigation, lying before them. His provinces were under the rule
-of governors. The load of executive duties fell upon his officers. Only
-in times of war did he leave his retreat, except that once each year he
-returned to Bactra for some weeks of administrative work.
-
-During the absence of King Hystaspis and his son with Cyrus on the
-expedition against the Tourans, Bardya and his sisters had been guests
-in the palace at Bactra. This was a rambling structure, one story in
-height, adorned with a portico whose tall stone pillars supported a
-heavy wooden roof and gave to its front the appearance of a temple.
-The walls of the palace were of roughly hewn stone, thick and massive.
-There were many wings, all gable-roofed and rudely ornate with
-buttresses and overhanging eaves. Narrow windows and doors gave light
-and air to the interior. It being summer, the windows were protected
-by heavy wooden bars only, the winter-time shutters having been
-removed. Gauze curtains on the inside were hung over them, more to
-exclude insects than for beauty. The doors were of heavy wood, bound
-with brazen bands cut in ornate figures. Inside, the many rooms were
-fitted luxuriously, with bright, soft rugs on the stone floors and with
-figured draperies on the walls, where, also, hung armor and weapons.
-Divans, couches, chairs, and tables richly upholstered and set with
-precious metals and ivory constituted the furniture. In the midst of
-the palace was an open court, where a fountain gushed up from a rocky
-islet in the middle of a pool and where flowering shrubs perfumed the
-air. The servants’ quarters were at the rear, and, not far away, was
-another building where a company of soldiers had quarters.
-
-The white stone walls of a small temple could be seen three hundred
-paces to the west of the palace, in the midst of great oaks and elms.
-There had Zoroaster taught and had exercised the offices of chief
-priest of Iran, and there beneath its altar lay buried his saintly
-bones. There a corps of priests kept the sacred fire ever burning
-and daily uttered prayers for the King and his people. There, before
-entering upon any long journey or going to war, the King of Iran
-offered his sacrifices and raised his hands to the Great Life-giving
-Spirit of Heaven. There, now, within its sacred portals, reposed for a
-time the body of the Great King.
-
-The ground sloped gently northward from the palace down to the shore
-of the Adirsiah and was graced with many large trees. A low stone wall
-surrounded the palace park, except where the river bounded its front.
-There were benches beneath the elms on the river shore, where one
-could sit and look upon the distant northern mountains or at the rapid
-stream, rushing in light green splendor through its narrow, rock-bound
-channel and with sighing murmur giving an undertone to the songs of
-birds. Here at even came Athura, after having listened to the chant
-of the priests, celebrating the close of the day as she knelt by her
-father’s bier. She had come hither to be alone with her sorrow.
-
-The air was warm and balmy. A cooler breeze was beginning to blow down
-from the mountains; it played with the dark hair above her brow. The
-scarflike veil, which commonly served as a head-dress, was thrown aside
-and rested on her shoulders, exposing the wavy mass of hair upon her
-head and the gem-studded band that encircled it like a crown. Her tall,
-well-developed body was robed in a long mantle of dark, soft fabric,
-somewhat like the Grecian robe, caught up in the folds at the left side
-so as to expose the tip of a sandaled foot, and secured by a girdle
-of golden links at the waist. The short sleeves of an under jacket
-covered her arms to the elbow. Bracelets of gold set with gems graced
-her wrists. No pen has ever described her beauty or the royal grace
-of her demeanor. Through the dim vista of the ages comes a picture of
-dark brown eyes, in the depths of which shone all the tenderness of
-womanhood with its all-embracing sympathy and boundless capacity for
-love, and all the fearlessness of a pure, proud spirit, accustomed to
-power and authority. Comes also a vision of a fair complexion, pure
-Caucasian, or rather Aryan; a lofty brow, inherited from her father; a
-profile, now known as Grecian, but not modern Grecian; an expressive
-mouth, where sweetness dwelt, but which could show firmness and even
-sternness when necessary; a smile that would raise a worshiper to
-heaven; a frown before which the boldest would falter.
-
-In those days and among that people, woman held high and honorable
-place. The servility of the Semitic races, aped by later Persian
-rulers, had not yet degraded her. As in Greece and Rome, where men
-of kindred blood dwelt, so among the Iranians, woman held a most
-honorable place. Man ruled the world; but his heart was ruled by a
-noble woman. Coming of such a race, where equality made her sex noble,
-this royal princess exhibited in her carriage a spirit before which men
-bowed, not because she was high-born and of royal lineage, but because
-she was a woman.
-
-Of her tradition has spoken much and history little. All agree that
-she was the most famous woman of her age. Some would have her the
-wife of three kings: of Cambyses, her brother, of the false Bardya,
-or Smerdis, and of Darius, son of Hystaspis. Others declare that her
-sister, Artistone, was the wife of the latter. Others, that Artistone
-was the ill-fated wife of Cambyses. This is certain, that she was the
-high-spirited daughter of Cyrus, that she was indeed the wife of the
-greatest of the Kings of Iran and the mother of a line of kings; and
-history indicates that she was the real ruler of the empire while her
-son wore the crown. But such history had not yet been written, when,
-on this summer evening, she stood on the shore of the river Adirsiah
-and sadly meditated on the pleasant days of her girlhood spent in the
-company of her father. Her mother had died when she was a child of
-ten years; and, thereafter, her father had made her his companion,
-delighting in her wisdom as much as in her affection. She had traveled
-with him as he moved through his great empire, had played in the
-ancestral park at Pasargadæ, had ruled his palace at Susa, had viewed
-with wonder the mighty walls and hanging gardens of Babylon, and had
-dwelt much in Hamadan, the chief capital of the empire. There rose in
-her memory the proud, beautiful face of her mother, the cruel, sneering
-countenance of Cambyses, the smiling, mischievous face of Bardya, the
-little sister Artistone, and the grave, kindly father, whose stately
-manner never departed even in the privacy of home-life. Into this
-picture of her childhood life there came another face and form, one
-that of late years had filled much of her life with the sweetness of
-love. She remembered her first meeting with the Prince of Iran, at
-Pasargadæ, and how afterwards as a tall youth of fourteen years he came
-to her father’s court to enter his service, and that he talked much of
-his mother, of his father, and of his studies. He had at once assumed
-a sort of protectorate over Bardya and herself, interposing often
-between them and the cruel elder brother, Cambyses, and even coming to
-blows with him in their behalf. With him she had studied, had learned
-the art of writing and reading, had sat at the feet of the great seer
-of Babylon, Belteshazzer, also known as Daniel, the Hebrew, and had
-learned to ride, to hunt, and to handle arms. She had not neglected
-the arts practiced by the women of her race. To cook, to sew, to spin,
-to weave wonderful tapestries,--all these she had learned. Many times,
-disguised, she and Bardya and the young Prince of Iran had traveled
-from place to place, enjoying adventures among the common people and
-sometimes incurring great risks. Then wars had come, and her brothers
-and the young Hystaspis had followed the Great King on his campaigns,
-that they too might learn the war-game.
-
-She sat down on a rustic seat beneath a great elm and with hands folded
-in her lap gazed dreamily at the swirling stream, into which the shades
-of evening were darkly falling. Bitter-sweet thoughts, the sense of
-personal loss, the uncertainty of the future, the near presence of him
-she loved,--a hundred passing impressions stirred her soul. What would
-Cambyses do, now that he was to be the King of Kings? She and Bardya
-had often discussed the subject. She knew that the proud spirit of the
-latter would suffer no oppression from the King. Would there be civil
-war? Would brother fight brother? She feared so, knowing the hatred
-Cambyses felt towards Bardya, a feeling that the latter reciprocated.
-
-A footfall startled her. Turning, she beheld the Prince of Iran coming
-towards her. She rose with a smile of welcome and extended her hands
-to him. How noble he seemed to her! He had put off his armor, and over
-his close-fitting tunic of soft, velvety cloth had thrown the elegant
-Medean cloak in common use among the noble-born. Sandals protected his
-feet, and the interlaced thongs with which they were held partially
-covered his ankles and legs to the knee, to which the skirt of his
-tunic descended. The open folds of the long cloak gave freedom to his
-limbs and displayed the broad purple sash which served as a belt and
-the golden chain from which his short sword swung. His head was bare,
-displaying a mass of dark hair, slightly curled, and combed back from
-his broad brow. He had washed away the stains of travel. His sun-tanned
-skin glowed with health. His eyes were alight with love.
-
-A bulbul broke forth into song in the branches of the tree above them.
-The breeze rustled gently amidst the leaves. The gurgle and rush of
-the stream rose softly. A thousand whispering voices seemed to waken
-all about, as if the spirits of the woods talked of these two standing
-there in close embrace. Love, without which no human soul desires to
-live, which raises men to God, which makes of earth a heaven, which
-in its all-abounding strength makes men and women strong, the chief
-attribute of God and the chief element in His children, which links
-congenial spirits together for eternity and drives out evil, here sat
-enthroned.
-
-After the first warm greetings were over, they sat down side by side on
-the rustic seat.
-
-“I may tell you now,” he said, “that your father gave consent to our
-marriage. How I wish you could have been present so that he could have
-placed your hand in mine! Now, if we observe the ancient customs of our
-race, your eldest brother must give his consent.”
-
-“But even then we must wait until the days of mourning for my father
-are finished!”
-
-“I know, but what if Cambyses does not consent?”
-
-She was silent for a moment. This possibility had occurred to both. The
-word of Cambyses the Great King would be law. He might if he willed
-give his sister to another.
-
-“That Cambyses is not fit to reign!” she exclaimed presently. “My
-father should have decreed Bardya his successor! Am I, the daughter of
-Cyrus, to have no part in this empire? To have no will of my own? Let
-the people of Iran answer! What say you?”
-
-The Prince was silent now. The oath sworn to the dead Cyrus recurred to
-his mind. It would indeed have been better had Cyrus willed that Bardya
-should be his successor, for then the Aryans would have cheerfully
-followed his will. As he replied not, she continued:
-
-“Who, in truth, is entitled to reign in Iran? If birth gives right, is
-not the gracious King, your father, this day entitled to succeed my
-father? For he is of an older branch of the Achæmenian family. Let him
-assert this right! The men of Iran will uphold him. As for me, I shall
-be satisfied to become queen of the world, when you succeed to your
-father’s place.”
-
-“Of all these matters have I thought much,” he replied slowly. “It is
-true my father is entitled to reign in Iran; but the empire of Cyrus
-reaches on every side beyond the utmost limits of Iran; and it was his
-by right of conquest. It is a new empire based on the provinces of
-Persia and Medea over which he was always entitled to reign. Perhaps
-our ancient customs and laws would give my father the best right to
-succeed. But he has refused to assert that right. He has sworn to
-Cyrus to support Cambyses and Bardya on their thrones forever. I,
-too, in obedience to my father’s will, when the Great King lay dying,
-made solemn oath that I would likewise support them on their thrones,
-according to the terms of his will. Our oaths cannot return. But such
-oaths do not take away our ancient right to rule as Kings of Iran.
-That we will ever maintain; but not to the overthrow of Cambyses or of
-Bardya. I am troubled to know how to act in the future. Cambyses surely
-will not permit Bardya to reign even over part of this empire; and
-all the provinces of the East have been given to Bardya with the sole
-condition that he acknowledge the overlordship of Cambyses. If the King
-of Kings should lead an army hither to overthrow his brother, we must
-fight him; if Bardya seeks to overthrow his brother, we must prevent
-him. Alas! the mind of Cyrus must have been affected so that he could
-not see clearly! I can see before us long years of civil war, wherein
-Aryan will fight Aryan. Of one thing I am convinced, Bardya should not
-accompany the body of his father to Pasargadæ. Here, in the faithful
-city of Bactra, with the army of King Hystaspis at hand, he may be
-secure. Would it not be better that you also remain here, while I go to
-stand before the King and demand his consent to our marriage?”
-
-“Shall I not honor my father by attending when he goes to his tomb? I
-have no fear of Cambyses. Surely he will attempt no harm to me or to
-my brother when on this sacred mission! Besides, will you not also be
-present?”
-
-“Yes, I shall be near. Let us hope that the King of Kings will be
-gracious. My life shall be between you and harm. It would be valueless
-to me without you!”
-
-“And mine would end without you! Have no fear that Cambyses may give
-me to another! I, the daughter of Cyrus, will submit to no such
-disposition! He dares not violate the ancient custom which gives a
-woman the right to reject one who may be proposed. Not yet do the
-slavish laws of the Assyrians have force in Iran. Cambyses may rage; he
-may slay me! Yet will he not have his way with me! Truly if he attempts
-to oppress Bardya and me, the people of Iran shall be appealed to; and
-I know they will rise!”
-
-He drew his encircling arm closer and sighed deeply. “Oaths, lives, and
-crown shall not stand between us!” he said.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-CAMBYSES
-
-
-Some days were given to rest before the Prince of Iran and his guard,
-escorting the royal dead and accompanied by the royal family, marched
-out of Bactra on the long journey, over verdant plain and hill, over
-rugged mountains and sandy wastes, to Pasargadæ. Their route lay
-westward to Rhages, with the Elburz chain of mountains on the right
-and the vast deserts of Iran on the left, thence southward by way of
-Hamadan. A caravan accompanied them, bearing provisions and luxuries
-for the journey. In spite of the sad errand, it was a pleasant
-experience for the Prince and his beloved.
-
-Meanwhile Prexaspes, riding at courier speed, rushed on in advance to
-carry tidings to Cambyses. As he rode, he formulated plans. He knew
-Cambyses well,--in fact, it had been reported to Cyrus that Prexaspes
-had abetted his wayward son in his excesses. As much to remove him from
-his son as to please the Medes, the King had taken the powerful noble
-with him on his expedition against the Touranians. Prexaspes had not
-dared demur. Much as he loved ease and luxury, he was personally brave
-and capable. He had performed his duties and had won the approbation of
-the just old King. Knowing the weaknesses of Cambyses, his vanity, his
-selfishness, his gross passions, and his superstitious nature, he now
-planned how he should gain advantage by them; and in his mind he saw
-himself raised to the second place in the empire, covered with riches,
-honors, and power.
-
-He soon arrived at Rhages, an ancient city situated near that famous
-pass through the Elburz mountain-chain known as the Caspian Gates,
-and not far from Mount Demavend, around which cluster many legends of
-ancient Iran. Here the stream of Aryans had halted many years before
-separating into the three branches, one of which passed northward
-through the Gates into the Caucasus and thence into Europe, another
-westward into the mountains of Azerbijan, and another southward to
-Medea and Persia. But Hamadan, the Ecbatana of the Greeks, situated
-farther south, had grown greater and had become the capital of Medea.
-Rhages had ceased to be the capital. It was, however, a great and
-important city, a base for the army guarding the Caspian provinces
-beyond the great mountain-chain and a market through which flowed
-commerce from the sea of the north, the caravans of the east and south
-and from the herdsmen of the mountains in the west. Mount Demavend,
-magnificent in its snow-capped grandeur, on whose peak, it was said,
-God sometimes rested to view His created world, is one of the great
-mountains of earth.
-
-Prexaspes halted here but a day. He sacrificed a horse at the temple,
-where the ancient Aryan rites were performed, and he drank soma and
-was sprinkled with holy water afterwards at a Magian shrine, where he
-left a gift of money. Having thus satisfied his conscience and invoked
-good-luck from all sources, he galloped southward towards Hamadan,
-where he expected to find King Cambyses.
-
-The queen city of the empire, celebrated in song and story, strong
-in the martial spirit of its people, called Hamadan by the Persians,
-Agmetha by the Hebrews, Ecbatana by the Greeks, sat upon a rolling
-plain, close to the foot of Mount Elwend, sometimes called Mount
-Orontes. In the center was an eminence on which was the citadel and
-around which were seven walls rising in gradations, each painted a
-different color from the others. On the top of the eminence was the
-far-famed royal palace, covering acres of ground. Its glittering metal
-roof reflected afar the rays of the sun. Its porch columns, its doors
-and walls, were plated with precious metal. Its deep, cool interior was
-luxuriously furnished with carved and curiously wrought tables, divans,
-settees, and chairs, and with costly tapestries from Srinigar and rugs
-and carpets from the looms of Medea. Its throne room was vast and
-magnificent. A stone-built treasury vault occupied one corner, where
-was stored untold wealth, gathered during the years of conquest, when
-Crœsus and other unlucky kings fell before the conqueror. A park lay at
-the rear, inclosed within the walls.
-
-To this city from east and south caravans, with their spirited horses,
-their complaining camels, and their slow-moving elephants, came,
-and from the west long trains of pack mules and slaves, to exchange
-commodities and to outfit for new expeditions. Here came armies,
-returning from chastisement of some rebel or from conquest of some
-nation, to recruit for further forays. Half a million people, dwelling
-in wooden, stone, or tent houses, here made their homes and proudly
-claimed to be rulers of the world by virtue of the palace on the hill
-and the power of its royal occupant.
-
-It was midsummer. Royalty and nobility, leaving the lowlands and the
-heat of the capital city, sought cool retreats in the mountains. Mount
-Elwend, whose peak is capped with eternal snow, thrusts downward vast
-spurs into the plains eastward and southward; and, between their
-wooded sides, babbling streams of cool water flow down from the snows.
-In the vales and canyons of the foothills were many tents and rustic
-cabins, where the rich and powerful dwelt and enjoyed the cool, sweet
-air. Pack-trains fetched provisions and supplies from the city. In
-luxury and dissipation, with sport and game, the elect of earth here
-passed the time pleasantly. Here Cambyses was residing, all unconscious
-that he was now King of Kings.
-
-Riding down from the north, with a score of soldiers at his back,
-Prexaspes saw the dome and towers of the great palace flash in the
-afternoon sun and knew that his mission was almost accomplished. His
-heart beat high. He would be the first to greet Cambyses by his new
-title, King of Kings, the Great King, and it would depend upon the mood
-of Cambyses whether he would be given honors as the bearer of good
-tidings, or be disgraced as the bearer of evil. The guard at his back,
-picked up at Rhages, did not know his errand or that Cyrus was dead.
-The dark, eagle-like countenance of Prexaspes was impassive and never
-betrayed his thoughts. Worn by weather and hardened by exposure, he now
-looked more the soldier than the courier. But he looked forward to many
-days of ease and pleasure, when he could discard his dusty uniform for
-clean linen, perfumed vestments, and the elegant Medean cloak.
-
-At a point about two miles north of the city, he met a train of donkeys
-led by slaves and under guard of half a dozen mounted troopers. They
-were moving slowly and they insolently neglected to give way to
-Prexaspes and his followers when the latter came galloping down towards
-them.
-
-“On the King’s business!” shouted Prexaspes, wrathfully, reining in
-his foaming steed. “Out of the way, swine! Offscouring of the earth and
-filthy jackals! must we ride over you?”
-
-“We also are on the King’s business!” retorted the leader of the
-troopers, a dour, whiskered Mede, bringing his short spear into
-position. “By the whiskers of Merodach! keep a civil tongue and do not
-try riding over the train of Cambyses!”
-
-Prexaspes glowered at the speaker a moment. He recognized the sullen
-face.
-
-“Ha, Merobates, is it you?” he cried. “I might have known the captain
-of the King’s houseguard! Know you not Prexaspes?”
-
-Anger left the swarthy countenance of Merobates. He grinned as he
-answered:
-
-“Truly I remember the Lord Prexaspes! But I did not suppose you were
-within a thousand parasangs! Whence and whither?”
-
-“From the King to the King,” answered Prexaspes, enigmatically. “But
-where is he,--Cambyses? I bear a message to him and must not delay.”
-
-“Wise it is not to delay on his business, indeed!” rejoined Merobates.
-“The Prince is now at his summer camp some parasangs over there,”
-indicating the slopes of Elwend. “I am just returning from the city
-with the daily provisions for his use.”
-
-“Guide me to him, good Merobates, and great will be your reward!” said
-Prexaspes. “In the King’s name, I command! Leave your men to bring the
-train and lead on.”
-
-Merobates hesitated, considering whether it were wiser to stay with
-his men and thus assure the performance of his daily duty or to obey
-the order of the noble Prexaspes. But the compelling gaze of the
-nobleman was upon him, and, having issued several gruff orders to his
-subordinates, he led the way along a beaten trail into the hills. As
-they went, Prexaspes sought information.
-
-“How long has the Prince been at his summer house?”
-
-“Seven days only. He has just married a new wife, the daughter of
-Nebuchadezer, Prince of Nineveh, and he has taken her there, as he
-says, to be at peace, leaving his other wives at the palace.”
-
-“Has he many people with him?”
-
-“Oh, yes! Thirty notables of Nineveh came as an escort with the new
-wife. Thirty Medean nobles are with them for company. Besides, King
-Crœsus is there and also the son of Hillel of Damascus. There be the
-Babylonian hostages and Gaumata, the chief Magian, and a hundred others
-from far and near. A thousand cavalry guard the camp. Great games have
-there been! The Prince has proven himself to be a mighty archer and
-spear-thrower. He outshoots them all. Well it is for them! For the
-liquor--you know?”
-
-Merobates waved his hand suggestively towards his mouth as though
-quaffing from a goblet. Prexaspes nodded assent.
-
-“How is the Prince’s temper?” he asked.
-
-“Excellent! Never better! His new wife pleases him and his servants
-have learned how to avoid crossing him. But what is this news, which
-you have galloped from afar to bring?”
-
-“It is for the Prince’s ears first; but know, O Merobates, that great
-fortune either of good or evil hangs over your head and mine to-day.
-How does the Prince regard himself now?”
-
-Merobates laughed.
-
-“He has adopted the customs of the lowlander dogs who salaam to the
-earth before royalty. Cambyses has forgotten that he is mortal and
-swears that he will do even greater deeds than the Great King, his
-father. If you would please him, prostrate yourself and bow very low
-to the earth. Were he God himself, he could not be pleased more with
-adulation and homage! Praise his deeds--he swells with pride. Fail to
-praise--you may as well leap from the tower in the city market! Please
-him--a gold chain and a chief place at feasts is your reward! Displease
-him,--a bowstring at your throat, or hanging by your heels to a beam,
-or some other evil! Me has he ever commanded to treat him as ever I
-have,--with respect and obedience, but not with lying adulation. I tell
-him his faults. He laughs.”
-
-“I remember, he used to say that Merobates was his conscience and was
-the only man who dared to cross him or to speak plainly to him.”
-
-“It has always been so. He is violent. He fears not to smite in wrath;
-but he is subject to persuasion and art. He has no patience with those
-whom he dislikes and he dislikes all who neglect to praise him. Even
-the great Belteshazzer, appointed Governor of this province by Cyrus,
-has not escaped his anger. The Prince has revoked his authority.”
-
-Presently they entered a canyon, in which a clear brook tumbled over
-rocks. Following this they soon entered a small valley. Great trees
-bordered the margin of the stream and were scattered over the valley,
-forming a natural park. In the midst was the Prince’s palace, a low
-structure built of hewn timbers. A score of lesser houses and many
-tents stood at the sides of an open field several acres in extent,
-which lay in front of the palace. On this field the sports and contests
-of which Cambyses was fond were held.
-
-Prexaspes now perceived a group of men gathered beneath the spreading
-branches of a great live-oak near the palace. One, who was seated on a
-thronelike chair higher than the others, was engaged in conversation
-with another who stood uncovered before him and whose dress indicated
-that he was a priest. Others standing near appeared to be giving close
-attention. He who was seated was a large, heavy-limbed man, well-padded
-with fat and short-necked and gross. His big, round head was covered
-with a mass of curly black hair and was encircled by a gem-studded
-coronet. His face was dark, heavy, and flaccid, but his black eyes
-looked forth shrewdly from beneath overhanging brows. Bushy eyebrows
-met above his beaklike nose. A heavy black beard cut to a length of
-about six inches covered the lower part of his face. He was a powerful
-man physically and was said to be agile and quick in spite of his fat.
-
-Such was Cambyses, elder son of Cyrus. There were marks of dissipation
-on his face. From early youth he had indulged his passions, until now,
-at the age of thirty years, he was a slave to them.
-
-The sound of approaching hoofs called the Prince’s attention to
-Prexaspes and his followers. He paused in his discourse and exclaimed
-angrily: “Who comes? It must be very important service to cause men to
-ride thus into my presence!”
-
-Prexaspes halted at twenty paces’ distance, gave the reins of his steed
-to Merobates, sprang to the earth and drew near, uncovering his head as
-he advanced. Cambyses then recognized him and uttered an exclamation of
-surprise and pleasure. Prexaspes, throwing himself on his face at the
-Prince’s feet, cried: “All hail, King of Kings! May the Great King of
-all the World live forever!”
-
-For a moment, Cambyses was silent. He knew the meaning of those words.
-His face paled and he sank back upon his seat. But recovering he said,
-in a voice quivering with excitement: “Rise up, Prexaspes! What mean
-you? Why are you here? What of my father?”
-
-“I will speak only if you bid me, mighty King!”
-
-“Speak on!”
-
-“King Cyrus, the Great King, the immortal hero, greater than Jemshid,
-greater than Kaiomur, is no more alive! But there lives a greater, even
-Cambyses, King of Kings, King of the Whole Earth; and, to him bring I
-this message at the command of the noble Hystaspis, King of Iran, thy
-subject. May I find forgiveness as a bearer of this evil news of the
-death of thy father, and favor as a bearer of the good news of thy
-accession to the throne!”
-
-Cambyses was again silent, unable fully to realize his elevation to
-supreme authority. His eyes turned upon his courtiers, who forthwith
-fell on their faces before him, and cried out: “All hail, King of
-Kings! Live forever!”
-
-He drew a deep inspiration. Graciously extending his hand he motioned
-to Prexaspes to rise and draw near; and, taking from his own neck a
-heavy gold chain, he placed it around the messenger’s neck, saying:
-
-“I give you my favor, noble Prexaspes! A long and weary journey have
-you come to bear me this news; and you shall be rewarded. That has come
-to pass which had to come. Henceforth Cambyses, the Achæmenian, son of
-Cyrus, heaven-born, reigns and shall reign! I thank you, Prexaspes! You
-shall have room in my palace here and shall feast this night. On the
-morrow we will return to our capital and proclaim my accession to the
-throne. Sit down here on my right hand and tell me of the death of my
-father. There shall be proclaimed throughout the empire forty days of
-mourning for my father and, after that, forty days of rejoicing for me.”
-
-“I am indeed weary and travel-stained,” rejoined Prexaspes, looking
-down upon his dusty clothes. “I have ridden day and night, that I
-might hasten to you. I pray you command that I may retire and dress as
-becomes one who stands in the presence of the King.”
-
-“Mind not the clothes! It pleases me to note such eagerness in my
-service. Ho, there, cup-bearer!” cried the King, turning to a youth who
-stood waiting near the palace door. “Bring cups and wine!”
-
-Instantly the cup-bearer clapped his hands. Two servants came running
-from the palace, one bearing a jar of wine, the other a tray of
-golden goblets. The goblets were quickly filled with ruby wine and
-the cup-bearer presented them to the King, after duly tasting them.
-Cambyses took one and handed it to Prexaspes.
-
-“Drink!” he said. “You must be thirsty. But, perhaps, my father has
-trained you to soberness?”
-
-“While King Cyrus lived I obeyed him. Now that Cambyses is King of
-Kings, I obey him,” answered Prexaspes, taking the cup.
-
-“Well said!” exclaimed Cambyses, taking a huge goblet. “Come, let us
-first pour a libation to the earth and its gods.”
-
-He poured a little of the wine out upon the earth and drank the
-remainder. Prexaspes followed suit. The King laughed as he looked
-around upon his courtiers and saw that their countenances were
-expressive of curiosity and mild astonishment. Pouring libations to the
-gods of earth was sin with the orthodox Aryans and a new practice to
-the majority of those present. But they expected that Cambyses would
-disregard custom and law, even more now as King than he did while only
-a prince.
-
-“Now sit here by me and briefly tell how my father died and all that
-happened thereafter,” said the King to Prexaspes. “Afterwards you shall
-rest.”
-
-Prexaspes sat down at the King’s right hand on a low bench. The
-courtiers and attendants, obeying a motion of the King’s hand, retired
-beyond hearing.
-
-“I thank you, O King, for this favor!” answered Prexaspes. “My last
-message was written just before your father encamped with his army
-on the left bank of the Jaxartes and two days before the last great
-battle. It had been in the King’s mind to cross the river and pursue
-the enemy farther when he learned from his scouts and some prisoners
-that the Touranians were gathering at a point ten parasangs above us
-with the intention of giving battle. Then the King set his army in
-battle-array, in a very strong position, with the left wing resting on
-the river and the right far out in shifting sand-dunes. In front was a
-deep, narrow water-course beyond which lay an open plain over which the
-enemy must come. He commanded the Prince of Iran to lead the Imperial
-Guard to a position behind the sand-dunes, ready to come out upon the
-enemy’s flank and rear when the battle should be joined.”
-
-The King interrupted, exclaiming: “A young man is Prince Darius to hold
-so important a command! By my beard! Infants shall not command under
-me!”
-
-“Your will is law, O King,” rejoined Prexaspes bowing. “But I must
-say that Prince Darius is a most loyal subject of Cambyses and a very
-brave and able general. King Cyrus took position at the left of our
-army and the weight of the enemy’s charge fell upon that part. It was a
-fearful struggle. My light-armed troopers went out to draw the enemy to
-charge and, as commanded, fell back before the thousands on thousands
-of shrieking, howling foemen. They followed us into the great ditch
-in our front and pressed across. They bore back the Persian and Medean
-heavy-armed infantry. They broke through and would have ruined the
-army, had not King Cyrus at the head of five thousand men of the
-Imperial Guard thrown himself into the breach and held them back by
-most mighty exertions! Then came the Prince of Iran and the remainder
-of the Guard down from the right upon the rear of the enemy, crushing
-and rolling them back into the Jaxartes. His charge saved the day. It
-was magnificent. The light horses of the Touranians went down like
-leaves before a gust of wind. But just as the victory declared for us,
-the King received a poisoned dart in his throat and was borne from the
-field by the noble Otanes. In spite of all that the surgeons could do,
-he died that night.”
-
-“What message did he leave?”
-
-“King Hystaspis was in command of the army. He called a council of
-officers and designated me as a messenger to bring to you the last
-decree of the Great King. Here it is.”
-
-Prexaspes drew a packet from a pouch at his belt and presented it to
-the King. Cambyses eagerly unbound it and began to read. A dark frown
-slowly gathered on his face. He suddenly cast the paper upon the earth
-and set his foot upon it, while his gleaming eyes showed bitter wrath.
-
-“What!” he exclaimed. “Does he think to divide his empire and confirm
-that hair-brained, beardless Bardya as ruler of Iran and Persia?
-I say, it shall not be! I am King of Kings now, and I shall reign
-alone! I will cut that young sprout off if he dare claim a shadow of
-sovereignty! My father always hated me and loved Bardya. He always
-did shield that boy from my wrath. Now he gives him the best part of
-the kingdom! What if he does acknowledge me as overlord? Is he not
-ambitious? He will ingratiate himself with the people and then will
-attempt to overthrow me! King Hystaspis and his son,--they doubtless
-will aid him!”
-
-He rose and paced back and forth, swinging his arms and smiting his
-hands together. Prexaspes also rose and, though standing in a humble
-attitude, covertly watched the King.
-
-“What say you?” demanded Cambyses, halting before Prexaspes.
-
-Prexaspes, after some hesitation, answered: “Doubtless it was not just
-in the Great King to make such provisions; but he was old and very fond
-of Prince Bardya. Why allow the decree to be published? There is no
-need until you are firmly established. Afterwards there will be time to
-deal with the matter.”
-
-The King silently stroked his whiskers a moment considering the advice.
-It seemed shrewd and good. His wrath cooled somewhat. A cunning look
-came upon his flushed countenance.
-
-“That is good advice, Prexaspes!” he assented. “You shall be my chief
-counselor. This decree shall be burned. None know its contents but you
-and I. I count on your silence and will greatly reward you. If you
-deceive me, no death shall be too severe for you!”
-
-“Have no doubt of me, Great King! I am your servant and will do as you
-bid. There is no decree. I have forgotten it. Let it not be seen of
-men. But Bardya has a copy of it and the Persian nobles witnessed it.”
-
-He recovered the paper from the earth and restored it to Cambyses. The
-latter laughed as he tore it in small pieces. Calling a servant to
-bring a brazier of coals, he placed the fragments upon the embers and
-watched them burn.
-
-“Hark you, Prexaspes!” he then said. “This Bardya must not be allowed
-to divide this kingdom. See to it! Great will be your reward. The
-second place in the kingdom shall be yours. Do you understand?”
-
-Prexaspes considered a moment. He well understood the meaning Cambyses
-sought to convey.
-
-“I understand,” he then said. “Perhaps misfortune will overtake the
-young man. Who knows?”
-
-The King laughed harshly. “An accident perhaps! Rather than that the
-empire be divided, one of us should die. The world is not large enough
-to hold two kings when Cambyses is one of them! What do you advise?”
-
-Prexaspes thoughtfully contemplated the earth. The King impatiently
-waited, glowering at him with the restless, cruel eyes of a tiger.
-
-“Speak!” commanded the King at length. “Shall we send a force and take
-him?”
-
-“If it please you, O King, that I should offer advice, no. Bardya is
-strong in the love of the Aryan race. He now dwells in the midst of
-hosts of stout men who are his friends and who would overthrow your
-throne if they could for his sake. Persian and Medean soldiers cannot
-be compelled to make war upon Bactrians when led by a son of Cyrus.
-Babylon, Assyria, Damascus, Sardis, and the Ionian cities will not
-uphold your hands; they but wait for an opportunity to rebel. You must
-court the favor of the Aryan race. Above all I advise that you show
-favor to the King of Iran and to his able son. They are the idols of
-the veteran army of Cyrus.”
-
-“But Darius is Bardya’s friend!”
-
-“True, but he is also your loyal supporter.”
-
-“How know you? Is it not said openly among the nobles of Persia that
-Hystaspis by right of birth should have ruled instead of Cyrus? Darius
-is ambitious. I know that youth! I have hated him since my father
-showed more favor to him and to Bardya than to me! He knows this. How
-then say you he will be my supporter?”
-
-“Do you not remember his love of truth and his hatred of lies and
-deception from his boyhood up?”
-
-“I remember! No doubt it was a disease in him!”
-
-“Just so! Nevertheless it is said throughout Persia and Iran and by
-every man of the great army, that, when once the word of the Prince
-of Iran is given, it will stand forever. No one ever requires of him
-a witness or a written tablet. Now at the request of Cyrus and with
-consent of his father, he placed his hands in those of the Great King
-and swore to support you and Bardya on the throne of this empire.
-Therefore you need not fear him; but, rather, you may depend upon him
-for aid if you need it.”
-
-The cloud on the King’s face lifted somewhat. He had watched with
-jealous eye the growing power of the young Hystaspis and had feared him
-even more than Bardya.
-
-“Nevertheless, wait till his ambition meets opportunity,” he suggested.
-
-“No, it is as I say. I have proof. On the march to Bactra, the Prince
-with the Imperial Guard was in charge of the transport of the King’s
-body. The Guard, on the morning of the second day’s march, saluted
-Darius as King of Kings; and all had taken oath to support him if he
-would consent. But he rebuked them, told them of his oath to support
-you, and then and there made them also swear with uplifted hands to
-support you. I myself witnessed it.”
-
-“Is it so? Treason must be flourishing indeed!” exclaimed Cambyses,
-bitterly. “This Guard shall no longer be the Imperial Guard! It shall
-be decimated!”
-
-Rage again possessed the King’s soul. He knew himself to be unpopular
-save with a few boon companions. His jealous heart was filled with
-hatred towards the popular Prince. Prexaspes ventured to remonstrate.
-
-“Let not the Great King be offended with his servant! I am acquainted
-with the army and all its soldiers. The Aryans are a proud race and the
-nobles will not bow the knee even to their kings, as you know. Do not
-anger them. Without them your subject nations will revolt and you will
-have no one to support your empire. Rather, dissemble your feelings.
-You are very wise, O King, if you but stop to think. First, be well
-established on your throne. After the body of your heroic father shall
-have been placed in its tomb, send the Prince and his Guard to conquer
-new provinces. Be advised by me in this. Should evil befall his son,
-old Hystaspis would lead the veterans of Cyrus five hundred thousand
-strong against you. Who could stand before them?”
-
-Cambyses ceased pacing back and forth and sat down, saying: “Your words
-are wise, Prexaspes. I will be advised. Proceed!”
-
-Prexaspes smiled slightly behind his hand. He had properly gauged the
-King’s impulses. He continued: “I advise that you issue your formal
-decree as King of Kings to-morrow and send copies thereof to be
-proclaimed in every province of the empire; that you issue a decree
-confirming the Prince of Iran in command of the Guard and in his
-mission to transport the body of the Great King to Pasargadæ; that you
-send a messenger to Bardya and to your sisters greeting them kindly;
-that you, also, as soon as they shall have arrived at Hamadan, show
-them all honor, go with them to do honor to Cyrus at Pasargadæ, and
-dissemble your real feelings. Thus will you begin wisely and thus will
-you please the Aryan people. Afterwards we may take counsel; and,
-should Bardya meet with an accident or disappear, who can blame the
-Great King? Be assured, O King, that I advise well! I know that upon
-you only may I depend for advancement and power. Bardya does not, nor
-do any of the great Persian nobles, love Prexaspes. Their semi-barbaric
-manners suited not my taste, and my refined manners were not approved
-by them!”
-
-“I will heed your advice,” said the King. “My favor shall be with you.
-First, I will make you Satrap of Medea. I will let that old Hebrew,
-Belteshazzer, rest from his labors in his tower. Afterwards, if you
-serve me well, I shall increase your power. See to it, Prexaspes, that
-my will be not thwarted! There shall be one King, who shall be King of
-Kings, and he must be Cambyses!”
-
-“It shall be as you wish. But let us proceed with all care.” Thus
-Prexaspes entered upon a road to great gain in wealth and power, but
-also to ultimate woe.
-
-The King presently dismissed Prexaspes, and the latter was conducted
-to pleasant rooms in the palace, where he refreshed himself with
-a bath, arrayed himself in clean linen and rich garments and had
-himself barbered and perfumed by the King’s own barbers. Cambyses was
-lavish with his favorites, and just now Prexaspes was chief of them.
-The latter sat at the King’s right hand at dinner that evening. All
-festivities were abandoned in honor of the dead King, but the many
-courtiers who ate at his tables found opportunity to assure the new
-King of their joy over his accession to the throne. He drank deeply
-both of adulation and wine until he became half-drunk and maudlin,
-whereupon Merobates took him almost forcibly to his bedchamber.
-
-Next day, the King and all his retinue returned to Hamadan. A royal
-decree was immediately issued, reciting the death of the Great
-Cyrus and the accession of Cambyses to the throne of the world, and
-commanding all officers, soldiers, and peoples to acknowledge him King
-of Kings. The royal treasury was opened. From it the golden crown
-studded with precious gems, which Cyrus had worn on state occasions,
-and the royal scepter were brought forth. Clad in purple, and having
-the high, pointed crown on his head, his royal feet encased in yellow
-shoes, and his hair and whiskers curled, powdered, and perfumed,
-Cambyses held his first court in the great audience room of the palace.
-He sat on a golden throne placed high up on a dais, with fan-bearers
-waving ostrich plumes over him, with Prexaspes standing at his right
-hand and Merobates at his left, bearing the King’s sword and shield. He
-placed the crown on his head with his own hands, while a loud-voiced
-herald recited his titles. Then the thousand nobles and officers who
-were in attendance fell on their faces to the floor before him and
-hailed him King of Kings, the Great King! Cambyses, swelling with
-pride, deemed himself divine, and as a god he looked down upon his
-subjects with haughty demeanor.
-
-The world thus acquired a new ruler.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-PERSEPOLIS
-
-
-The modern world knows little of the beauty and grandeur of ancient
-Anshan, the home of Cyrus, or of the province of Fars and its cities.
-Mountains shut off from them the hot winds of the Persian Gulf and
-of the northern deserts. The high valleys lying between the mountain
-ranges that extend across it like huge dikes are of surpassing
-loveliness. Romantic woodlands, dells, lakes, canyons, murmuring
-brooks, rushing rivers, far vistas, plains, mountains, and hills
-delight the soul. In the valleys, flowers perfume the air all the year,
-and vegetation, where irrigation is practiced, is luxuriant. On the
-high hills and mountain tops winter holds sway during three or more
-months and the seasons are well-marked as in the temperate zones. It is
-the land of Omar, of Firdusi, and of many lesser poets; the land of an
-ancient white race, whose rugged virtues made them lords of much of the
-earth, but whose descendants have degenerated by admixture with lower
-grades of humanity and have suffered much to maintain even their own
-independence.
-
-The celebrated plain of Mervdasht is between two parallel ranges of
-mountains, one of which lies to the west between it and the low hot
-lands of the gulf-coast and the other to the east between it and
-the vale of Murghab, or ancient Anshan. A river comes down from the
-northern mountains through the midst of this plain and empties into a
-lake. It is a perennial stream, but fordable save in the winter when
-the rains fall. It has been variously named, anciently the Araxes,
-later the Kur or river of Cyrus, and again the Bendamir. Another river
-of less volume but more celebrated, the Pulwar, comes down to join
-it through the mountains from northeast table-lands. This passes by
-the vale of Murghab, where a little stream of that name, coming from
-the east, flows into it. In this vale was ancient Anshan, the capital
-of the Achæmenian line of kings, a city also known as Pasargadæ. The
-tortuous bed of the Pulwar connects the vale of Murghab with the valley
-of Mervdasht, having cut for itself a deep gorge through the mountains.
-A royal road, passing through this gorge or canyon, connected the
-ancient capital with a more modern city, Persepolis.
-
-Persepolis, or the city of the Persians, ancient Parsa, lay close to
-the mouth of the mighty canyon of the Pulwar, where it opened into
-the vale of Mervdasht. The city lay principally on the northern banks
-of the river. On the southern bank was a great park; and in this on
-a plateau extending from the base of low mountains that border the
-eastern side of the plain, were the palaces of the Kings of Iran.
-King Hystaspis and his great son, Darius, and his grandson, Xerxes,
-each erected magnificent palaces of dark-gray marble on this natural
-platform. The great size and magnificent architecture of these
-buildings were among the wonders of the ancient world. Their majestic
-ruins yet testify to the power, the love of art, and the learning of
-those masters of men.
-
-King Hystaspis, content to rule Iran as a nominal vassal of Cyrus and
-under the shadow of his mighty arm, laid out for himself in the valley
-of Merv a new city and there placed his loved friends and retainers.
-He brought artisans from Egypt, Canaan, Syria, Phœnicia, and distant
-Greece, and built for himself a great palace. It is said that he or his
-son formulated a new alphabet for his language and caused the books of
-Zoroaster to be translated therein.
-
-Orchards of apple, peach, and apricot, vineyards where grape and berry
-grew, fields of vegetables and grain, covered the fertile valley and
-its surrounding hills. On the day when the Imperial Guard, escorting
-the body of the Great Cyrus, halted on the summit of the western ridge
-bounding the valley and looked down upon the peaceful scene, autumn
-was touching all with the signs of harvest and the coming winter-rest.
-On that day, while the funeral car halted, Prince Bardya, his sisters,
-and the Prince of Iran rode forward to a bluff jutting out from the
-ridge; and from this position they looked down into a paradise,--so it
-seemed to them, weary with dusty roads and desert lands. There, where
-the Pulwar entered the plain from the narrow gorge in the western
-mountains, Cyrus had drawn up his Persian patriots to fight a last
-battle for liberty from the Medean yoke, having been driven to bay by
-the vast army of stern old Astyages, his grandfather. That decisive
-battle not only gave liberty to his own province but gave Astyages to
-him as a prisoner and the crown of Medea for his own head. From that
-victory Cyrus had gone forth to conquer the world. But now, conquered
-by the last enemy, Death, he was returning there to his final rest.
-The heart of the Prince of Iran was stirred by strong emotions, as he
-looked across the beautiful vale. He could see afar the great portico
-of his father’s palace where, he knew, his mother stood watching for
-the coming of her son. Uncovering his head, he extended his hands
-towards heaven, saying:
-
-“To thee, O Ahura-Mazda, Ruler of Heaven, Giver of Life, Lover of
-Truth, and Protector, we give thanks! For thou hast brought us home!”
-
-“Amen and amen!” exclaimed Bardya, uncovering his head.
-
-The Prince of Iran then addressed his companions: “I welcome you to the
-home of King Hystaspis. This valley and yonder city are his property,
-ceded to him as a home for the Achæmenian family, when he consented to
-remove hither from Bactra. I bid you rest at our palace yonder this
-night. The road from Parsa to Anshan is rough and ought to be traveled
-only by day. My mother is at the door to welcome you.”
-
-“We gladly accept!” assented Bardya, heartily. “Do I not love that
-mother almost as much as you? Do you remember the happy days when
-we hunted on yonder hills and swam in the Pulwar and the Araxes? Do
-you remember the day we were almost drowned? We will go to that deep
-water-hole again to-morrow and swim there as boys again. Our troopers
-should rest a day while we send a message to Cambyses at Anshan to
-inform him of our coming.”
-
-Athura added: “It will be delightful to accept the hospitality of your
-mother. I shall return after going to Anshan and shall stay long with
-her and rest. My sister is much in need of rest. The long journey has
-made her ill.”
-
-“After we shall have accomplished our mission,” said the Prince of
-Iran, “we shall enjoy many pleasant days there. The hunting is good. We
-shall enjoy the royal sport!”
-
-“Unless Ahriman interfere!” added Bardya, waving his hand towards
-Anshan, where his brother now awaited their coming. “I propose to stay
-a month at least. I suppose he awaits us impatiently at Anshan.”
-
-Athura said reprovingly to her brother: “Speak not of the King of Kings
-thus! He has sent us courteous messages, even if he would not await us
-at Hamadan or march with us here. Perhaps it was best that he should
-go on ahead to prepare the tomb and to arrange for the ceremonies.
-Be advised, brother! Remember to show him the deference due to his
-station. His anger was ever terrible! Now he has no one to restrain
-him.”
-
-Bardya laughed and tossed his head, as he answered: “Fear not for me! I
-shall treat him with all due respect. Am I not on the ground my father
-gave me in his will? The Persian lords will not permit him to oppress
-us. When I see that King of Kings, I will demand of him that he publish
-the full terms of my father’s will. If he refuse to observe that--Well,
-it may be that he will cease to reign!”
-
-The Prince of Iran said nothing, but his countenance was somber. He
-feared that the impetuous Bardya would precipitate trouble. He foresaw
-civil war.
-
-Descending into the valley, they approached Persepolis. A vast throng
-of people came out to meet them and stood on either side of the road
-weeping and wailing aloud as the funeral car passed. A company of
-guards led by an aged veteran met them at the entrance of the city.
-
-Prince Darius greeted the leader warmly: “Ho, Orobates, our beloved
-High Chamberlain! How fares my royal mother?”
-
-“All hail, Prince of Iran!” cried the stately old man, kissing the
-Prince’s cheeks as the latter bent down to greet him. “God’s blessing
-of long life and happiness be upon you! How good it is to behold you
-once more! Your mother, our most gracious Queen, is well and awaits
-you at the palace. She begs that you will prevail upon the royal Bardya
-and his sisters to honor her house with their presence. All things are
-prepared. The best of the herds, the finest game from the mountains,
-the daintiest fruits and flowers,--all are ready!”
-
-“They have consented to honor us, Orobates. Has my mother good health
-and is she happy?”
-
-“Excellent health, gracious Prince; but she sighs much for you and the
-King.”
-
-“Did Cambyses, the Great King, honor our house with his presence?”
-
-“He refused our bidding on the plea that he was in haste to reach
-Anshan on state business. But he sent a gracious greeting to your
-mother.”
-
-The Prince led the caravan into the city, nodding and waving greeting
-to many whom he had known when a child. Crossing the Araxes over a
-magnificent stone bridge, the cortège marched into Persepolis and
-encamped in a great open field on the shore of the Pulwar. The funeral
-car was driven into the sacred enclosing wall of a temple and there
-rested till a messenger went to Cambyses and returned.
-
-Leaving the cares of the encampment to subordinates, the Prince of
-Iran, accompanied by Gobryas and some of his chief officers, conducted
-Bardya and his sisters across the Pulwar over a beautiful stone
-bridge of one great arch and through the park to his father’s palace.
-The limpid stream, the great oaks, elms, walnuts, and plane trees,
-whose foliage was tinged with gold and red, the flowering shrubs, the
-fountains, and the greensward, smiled a joyful welcome to the weary
-travelers. Broad steps, leading up to the great plateau or bench on
-which the palace stood, gleamed white through the tree-limbs. Slender
-gray columns adorned the portico. On the stairs stood a group of
-women, and among them a stately dame, who waved her hand in welcome.
-Prince Darius galloped on ahead to the foot of the steps and, leaving
-his horse in charge of an attendant, ran up into the embrace of his
-mother.
-
-Age had not greatly affected the beauty of the Queen of Iran nor dimmed
-her blue eyes. Her gray hair was gathered in a net at the back of her
-head and was encircled by a golden band set with sparkling gems. Her
-dress was an ample purple robe reaching to her feet and encircled at
-the waist with a silken sash. Its loose sleeves revealed arms still
-shapely and adorned with bracelets of gold. The gracious majesty of her
-countenance, the sweetness of her smile, and the soft accents of her
-voice were celebrated in Iran.
-
-That was an age when wife and mother were not slaves or prisoners.
-Recognized as the equal of men, their virtues and loveliness made homes
-where men were grown. Not yet had Cambyses, aping the manners and
-customs of the dwellers in Mesopotamia, Syria, and Arabia, degraded
-women to the seclusion of harems; nor had custom forbidden women to
-appear before friends unveiled, though veils were commonly worn in
-public places. Polygamy was almost unknown in Iran, though its practice
-had crept into Medea. The wife was queen of the home and ruled in the
-heart of her husband.
-
-The Prince knelt at his mother’s feet, and her arms encircled his
-neck while her lips kissed his brow. “Welcome home, beloved son!” she
-exclaimed. “Long days have intervened since you waved farewell to me
-from yonder bridge; but no day has passed that I did not think of you!”
-
-She raised him up and stood proudly at his side, leaning on his arm,
-while she welcomed Prince Bardya and his sisters. To Bardya she said
-as he bent his knee before her: “The blessing of Ahura-Mazda be upon
-you, O Prince of the World! Arise! It is not meet that you kneel to me!
-Welcome to the palace of my lord, the King of Iran!”
-
-“Gracious Queen,” replied Bardya as he arose, “I kneel to you as to
-my mother! Next to her, who lives only in my memory, do I love and
-reverence the mother of my friend, the Prince of Iran. Have we not, in
-years past, stood together at your knee and received your instruction?
-Now that we are indeed orphans we come to you for consolation.”
-
-Tears filled the great lady’s eyes. She embraced Athura and Artistone
-tenderly; and, leaving the men to the care of her son, she took the
-girls with her to her own apartments and personally saw that they were
-made comfortable. While they are removing the dust of the road and
-enrobing themselves for dinner, we may wander in spirit through this
-typical palace of the Achæmenian kings and observe its grandeur.
-
-From the portico which extended the full breadth of the palace front,
-an entrancing view of valley and mountain, of river and park, could
-be had. Sixteen slender, fluted, marble pillars supported the massive
-wooden roof of the portico. Their capitals were winged bulls; their
-bases were bell-shaped and carved to imitate lotus buds. A high, narrow
-door gave entrance from the front through the thick stone walls into
-a hall, on either side of which were rooms where the palace-guards
-had their abode. The hall led into a reception room fully fifty feet
-square, whose walls were pierced by a dozen narrow windows and whose
-ceiling of heavy carved timbers was upheld by slender wooden pillars
-covered with silver plates. The stone walls were hidden by beaten
-silver plates and the windows and doors were hung with tapestries of
-fine crimson and purple fabrics. Wooden shutters were fitted to the
-windows, but were now open to admit air and light. Later, when winter
-should come with its rains and frost, the windows would be closed by
-semi-transparent oiled silk. Red and purple rugs lay on the tiled
-floor, partially covering the various patterns worked out in colored
-tiles. A throne, shining with gold plate, occupied a raised platform at
-the end of the room opposite the entrance. Cushioned chairs, divans,
-and couches, tables of polished wood, mirrors of polished silver and
-bronze, lamps of many patterns fastened to the pillars and walls, and a
-cabinet of dark inlaid wood comprised the furniture. The cabinet held
-a collection of books, rolls, and tablets, the library and the special
-treasure of the King of Iran.
-
-Doors at the right of the throne led into the apartments of the men;
-at the left, into the apartments of the women; and, immediately at
-the rear, into a small open court, beyond which were the servants’
-quarters. Banquets of state were held in the throne room, but
-ordinarily the tables were laid in the small open court. The various
-apartments were furnished with couches, and with blankets and rugs of
-skillful weaving and of that fineness and texture for which the woven
-products of Iran have ever been famous. All the conveniences of an
-advanced civilization, which power and wealth could provide or gather
-from the many nations over which the Persians held sway, were here.
-Baths and toilets fed by water piped from the hills, and drained into
-the Pulwar below, ornamental cabinets, containing scents and cosmetics
-for adorning the person, wardrobes full of costly dresses made of silk
-and fine linen, mirrors, combs, and brushes--even the modern homes of
-many so-called civilized people could boast no better.
-
-A narrow stair led up from the inner court to the flat roof, where the
-occupants of the palace, reclining on soft divans, under canopies or
-sunshades, could pass the warmer hours of the day, breathe the cool
-mountain air, and enjoy the lovely scenes. Looking down from it, one
-could see the royal stables five hundred paces to the south in the
-park, where scores of graceful horses were kept; and farther on was the
-inclosure where cattle and sheep, driven in from the mountain pastures,
-were ready to furnish the royal table with meat or milk. A canal led
-from the Pulwar above the palace through the park to the stables below
-and thence into luxuriant gardens where servants toiled to supply
-their master’s table with vegetables. Fowls, dogs, horses, and cattle
-enlivened the barnyard scene. Servants in gay tunics, loose, fringed
-trousers, and with sandaled feet went hither and thither on their
-duties. Guards in shining armor walked their beats through the park or
-lazily stood leaning on their spears at the palace steps.
-
-While the guests were removing the dust and stains of travel, servants
-busily prepared the banquet. Tables of walnut, plated with silver and
-bound together by golden bands fastened with copper nails, were set in
-the great audience hall. Platters of beautiful porcelain or of beaten
-silver, piled high with fruits and bread, were placed on them, and
-plates of silver and cups of gold were also brought forth. Low seats
-whereon the guests could either sit or recline were set in order. A
-major-domo in gorgeous livery saw that all things were made ready. Then
-the guests were called. The men were seated at one table; the women,
-at another. Prince Darius sat at the head of the former; his mother
-at the head of the latter. Servants brought on, in regular courses,
-fish, steaming loads of venison and fowl, and bountiful supplies of
-vegetables and pastry. Water, milk, and wine of Helbon were the drinks,
-the latter being used sparingly. With appetites sharpened by a long
-day’s journey in the bracing air of the mountains, the guests did full
-justice to the viands. While they ate, the soft music of harps, played
-with considerable skill by musicians in the court, floated in through
-the open doors.
-
-The banquet hour having passed, the officers and nobles returned to the
-camp, while Prince Bardya and his sisters accompanied Prince Darius and
-his mother to a room adjacent to the dining-hall, used by the King of
-Iran when at home as an office. A large fireplace in one corner of the
-room was filled with a cheerful blaze. Gathered about the fire, guests
-and hosts felt much at home and spent a pleasant hour in conversation.
-
-“Now that Cambyses passed through your city with scant courtesy,”
-Bardya said, somewhat warmed by the wine he had imbibed and by his
-genial surroundings, so that he felt called upon to express his
-indignation towards his brother, “what think you of such a king?” He
-addressed Queen Hystaspis.
-
-“I marvel not at his action,” she replied quietly. “He was never kindly
-disposed towards us. But it is not for us to find fault. I should have
-met him in person and given the invitation to stop with us. I would
-have so done, had I not heard that he believes, with the Medes, that
-women have no place in the affairs of men. He passed through our city
-in a closed litter, not even deigning to see our messengers. He made
-reply through his chamberlain that the King of Kings was indisposed and
-pressed for time and would not rest till he should arrive at his palace
-in Anshan.”
-
-“He has ever been ill-natured!” continued Bardya, bitterly. “He
-believes himself heaven-born! He will end by declaring himself a god
-and appointing set times to worship him! What think you the nobles of
-Persia will say of his manners? It is said he has determined to decree
-a law of polygamy, and, like the Arabs, fill a harem with many wives.
-He is a follower of the Magi; but I doubt if he believes in the gods.
-I know he will never abide by our father’s will. As I have ridden from
-Bactra hither, I have thought much; and I have concluded that the
-kingdom will be his who can strike first!”
-
-The Prince had never before spoken his inmost thoughts. The Prince of
-Iran and his mother, though much disturbed, remained silent. Athura
-said reprovingly: “Brother, is it right to have such thoughts before
-our father’s body is entombed? Wisdom demands silence on your part
-until you see the King! As King he may act justly. If you stir up
-trouble, civil war may be the result. Let us be wise and discreet until
-we return to Bactra, from which you ought never to have departed! Then,
-if he act unjustly, the people of Iran will stand justly with you.”
-
-“What say you, my brother?” demanded Bardya, turning to the Prince.
-
-The latter answered at once and without hesitation: “The words of your
-sister are wise. Cambyses is King of Kings by right of birth and by
-the will of Cyrus. I am bound by an oath to support him in that right.
-It is not wise to plan against the will of Cyrus, nor is it even wise
-to discuss the matter. While we are safe here, an unwise word uttered
-at another place, and overheard, may cause great trouble. As for me, I
-shall ask of Cambyses, the King, two favors,--first that I may receive
-the reward that Cyrus, the Great King, promised; second, that I may
-accompany you to Bactra after my father returns here.”
-
-Athura smiled and blushed, as the Prince mentioned his promised reward
-and turned his ardent gaze upon her. Bardya arose and paced back and
-forth.
-
-“Alas! that my father should bind you and the powerful King, your
-father, with an oath!” he cried. “My way would otherwise be clear!
-Yes! let us be wise and patient! You shall come with me to Bactra, and
-together we shall extend the empire even as far as the great river of
-India and beyond the roof of the world where the slant-eyed Tourans
-dwell! King Hystaspis shall rule Iran in peace, while you and I lead
-victorious armies to the ends of the earth! Then we shall see who ought
-to be overlord of the world!”
-
-The Prince of Iran now sought to change the subject by suggesting that
-before leaving for Bactra they must hunt a lion in the jungles of Lake
-Baktigan. Plans for a hunting-trip to that wild region superseded more
-treasonable subjects. After a while, the guests admitted weariness
-and retired to rest. But the Prince of Iran threw a cloak about his
-shoulders and went out to walk in the park now flooded with moonlight.
-The watchmen respectfully saluted as he passed down the broad steps and
-went slowly towards the river. How pleasant it seemed after a year of
-war in desert lands to be at home! He could not retire to rest without
-standing awhile on the bridge over the Pulwar and looking down at the
-familiar hurrying waters.
-
-Before he reached the bridge, he was startled by the sound of pursuing
-footsteps. Turning, he beheld Athura approaching, followed by one of
-the guards.
-
-“Pardon, Lord Hystaspis!” she exclaimed, as he went back to meet her
-in wondering haste. “So glorious is the moonlight and so restless am
-I, that when I saw you come forth, I could not resist an impulse to
-follow! Let me walk with you.”
-
-“Most happy am I to have you with me, Athura, star of the evening! The
-light of your eyes surpasses the light of the stars! Your countenance,
-like the sun, brings warmth to my soul! Glad will that day be, when you
-shall become my wife; and we shall walk together thereafter forever!”
-
-He dismissed the guard. Then with his strong right arm around the
-princess and his ample cloak shielding both, they went on together. She
-laughed happily.
-
-“Indeed, my lord, you have the tongue of a poet!” she said. “What says
-the great Zoroaster of this land?
-
- “Ahura-Mazda looked upon the desert lands
- And with his mighty breath gave life to them;
- Where none could dwell before he poured out life,
- And Aryans lived and multiplied in peace,
- Until their numbers were as desert sands.
-
-Was not his thought inspired by such nights as this?”
-
-“It may have been,” he answered. “But does he not continue:
-
- “Then Angro-mainyus, death’s dark spirit made
- That mighty serpent, Winter, with its snow,
- To swallow up within its months of cold
- The teeming earth, the flowing water-streams,
- While storm-clouds cast upon the earth their pestilent shade.”
-
-“You are melancholy, Prince of Iran! Let us not think of Angro-mainyus.
-Are the days not passing swiftly? When the forty days of mourning shall
-have passed, shall we not be happy?”
-
-He drew her closely to him. “Most happy, beloved! But I am filled with
-forebodings of evil. Like some threatening Angro-mainyus, jealously
-watching the Spirit of Life at his creation and the children of men
-in their happiness, does the form of the new King of Kings loom up in
-the sky. I seem to feel even now the malignant hate with which he ever
-seemed to regard Bardya, and me because I was Bardya’s friend. When I
-think of the absolute power of life and death vested in him and his
-opportunity to wreak vengeance upon those he hates, I am troubled. What
-if he refuse to give you to me? What if he choose to bestow you upon
-another?”
-
-He felt the small hand now resting in his clench and harden. She looked
-up into his face as she answered slowly and solemnly:
-
-“As for me, though he inflict death, yet shall he not bend my will! I
-have chosen you alone of all the world. Your wife I shall be or I shall
-die. Listen, Prince of Iran! I am moved to say--some spirit prompts my
-soul to salute you, King of Kings and Lord of Lords. At your side shall
-I be Queen of the world! Is it not to be so?”
-
-He drew her closer to him and kissed her forehead. “Hush, life of
-mine!” he replied. “Start no such thoughts in my soul! Am I not
-oath-bound? If I were not so, should I plunge Iran into bloody civil
-war that I may wear a crown? Let Ahura-Mazda’s will be done! If
-Cambyses and Bardya cease to exist, in spite of my loyal support, then
-shall I deem myself most fortunate to sit on the throne of Cyrus at the
-side of his daughter. Ah, if only Cambyses had a soul like Athura, what
-a happy year would this be for the nations!”
-
-Twenty-five centuries have come and gone since they stood on the old
-stone bridge over the Pulwar and renewed their pledges of undying love
-and faith. Myriads since then have gazed into each other’s eyes and
-pledged the same faith, moved by the same love; but the story is ever
-fresh and the love is ever sacred, sweet, and entrancing. Only traces
-of the old stone bridge over the Pulwar remain. The tall, slender
-shafts of marble with which the neighboring palace was adorned are
-tumbled and broken; and over the ruins of the neighboring city the wild
-dog wanders and bays at the moon. Perhaps the spirits of those heroic
-two who stood on the old bridge, listening to the murmur of the waters
-below, while they murmured to each other, may return there again and
-again, to live once more in the ecstasy of love. Who knows?
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-“I AM CYRUS, THE KING, THE ACHÆMENIAN!”
-
-
-Where the Pulwar turns westward from its southerly course to break
-through the mountains on its way to the Araxes, the little mountain
-stream Mur joins it from the east. In a vale, at the junction of the
-rivers and extending far up along the Mur, was the city of Anshan,
-better known as Pasargadæ, “the Castle of the Persians.” In the midst
-of the city, Cyrus had erected a great palace of marble, surrounded by
-a magnificent colonnade, and, near this, a tomb. The base of the tomb
-was pyramidal and on its truncated top was a small marble building,
-much like a Grecian temple, which was to receive the royal coffin.
-On the lintel of the palace-gate and above the door of the tomb was
-engraved the legend, “I am Cyrus, the King, the Achæmenian!” No other
-record of his acts did he make. That was all, as if no other Cyrus ever
-had lived or could live, who would take from him the attention of men.
-
-Another great palace stood on an artificial platform of massive stones
-at the north side of the valley and a quarter-mile or so from the tomb.
-This building was ancient even at the time of which we write. It had
-been for centuries the dwelling of that branch of the Achæmenian family
-of which Cyrus was the greatest. Below and west of the palaces, at the
-junction of the streams, were the barracks of the Imperial Guards and
-their parade-ground. Above and on the south side of the valley lay
-the city with its narrow streets, its great market-place, its stores
-and dwellings. Many roads radiated from the city to all parts of the
-province, some following the beds of the streams and others crossing
-over ridges and spurs of the mountains, or excavated in the sides of
-the hills and by bridges passing over deep chasms.
-
-Cambyses, with one of his wives and his servants, upon their arrival
-at Anshan, took possession of the new palace of Cyrus and remained in
-seclusion. He gave little thought to the preparations for the funeral,
-leaving the management to Prexaspes, now his Lord High Chamberlain, and
-to the nobles and priests in charge of public services and worship.
-It was perhaps well for him that he did, since Prexaspes was gracious
-and tactful. He explained to all who were disposed to complain because
-Cambyses was inaccessible, that his royal master chose to remain in
-seclusion on account of his great grief. He flattered one and asked
-advice of another. He impressed the burly nobles of Persia so well that
-when the day for the funeral arrived, they were inclined to think well
-of Cambyses.
-
-The time approached when the body of Cyrus should be placed in its
-tomb. All roads leading to the capital city had been for a week
-enlivened by people coming from all parts of Iran and even from many
-foreign provinces, to witness the solemn ceremony and incidentally
-to gaze upon the new King. On horseback, in carts drawn by oxen or
-donkeys, on camels or in litters borne on the shoulders of slaves, the
-nobles and the wealthier came; while the lowly plodded along on foot
-carrying their food on their backs. The city became a vast camp, and
-the hills surrounding it were dotted with tents and booths.
-
-Great multitudes of people massed themselves along the road leading
-down to the Pulwar, on the morning of that day, to await the coming of
-the funeral cortège approaching from Persepolis. It was noon before the
-Prince of Iran with a company of the Imperial Guard and the funeral
-car appeared on the bridge which spanned the Pulwar, and, followed by
-a vast train, slowly defiled across to the parade-ground. The great
-car, drawn by eight white horses and followed by chariots in which
-rode Prince Bardya and his sisters, moved slowly to the center of the
-parade-ground and there halted. The remainder of the Imperial Guard
-then crossed and formed in open square around the car. The people
-massed themselves on every side, leaving only a narrow road open to the
-city, through which the King would come to greet his sire’s body.
-
-An officer was despatched to the palace to notify the King. A sentinel
-in the gaudy uniform of a palace-guard met and conducted the messenger
-into the outer hall of the palace, where he was received by Prexaspes.
-
-“I bear a message from the Prince of Iran to the King of Kings,” he
-said, bowing low before the Lord High Chamberlain.
-
-“I am Prexaspes, the Lord High Chamberlain,” responded Prexaspes. “Give
-me the message. I will bear it to him. He is at dinner.”
-
-“I am directed by the royal Prince of Iran to report that the Imperial
-Guard has arrived with the body of the Great King, Cyrus, King of Kings
-and Lord of Lords. We are ready to deliver our charge over to the
-King’s hands. We await his orders.”
-
-“It is well. Remain here. I will go in to the King.”
-
-Prexaspes disappeared through a door, the heavy curtains over which at
-a motion of his hand were drawn aside by a page. He proceeded slowly
-and solemnly to the door of the banquet-room, where a guard in armor
-stood aside while he knocked. A harsh voice commanded him to enter. He
-opened the door and went in, falling gracefully on one knee as he saw
-the King. The latter was reclining at a table, with only his Assyrian
-wife for company. The woman hastily drew a veil over her face as
-Prexaspes appeared.
-
-“What now?” demanded the King, frowning. “Am I not to eat in peace?
-Presume not too far, Lord Prexaspes! Speak!”
-
-Prexaspes rose and, clasping his hands before him in humble attitude,
-with his eyes directed to the floor lest they might look upon the
-Queen, answered, “Let not my gracious Lord be offended! A messenger has
-come from the Prince of Iran announcing his arrival with your lamented
-father’s body at the parade-ground by the Pulwar. I recall that you
-directed he should await you there, in order that you might ride forth
-and do honor to the great dead and thus gain favor with the people who
-loved him.”
-
-“Please the people! Bah! Pigs and dogs are they!” snorted the King.
-“Nevertheless your words contain wisdom. I will follow your advice
-until such time as there can be no choice of kings in this realm. Have
-my horse ready. Call out my new Imperial Guard. One can never say what
-that Bardya may attempt or what assassins lurk about. Send my armor to
-the dressing-room. Begone!”
-
-The King turned away and raised to his lips a huge cup, wherein
-sparkled the royal wine of Helbon. Prexaspes backed out of the room.
-He told the messenger to return to the Prince of Iran and command him
-to await the coming of the King. Arraying himself in brilliant armor,
-he mounted a horse and marshaled the guards, the nobles, the captive
-potentates who ate at the Great King’s table, and all the notables of
-the city, in due order.
-
-The King, clad in flexible golden mail and wearing a plain black cap
-on his head, after some delay came forth and mounted his horse. The
-illustrious company then moved solemnly down towards the parade-ground.
-A score of uniformed officers rode in front with spears held
-perpendicularly, the hafts resting on their stirrups. After them rode
-the King, followed by Prexaspes and a company of guards. The nobles and
-notables followed. The King’s expression was gloomy and abstracted.
-He looked over the heads of the people, and his glance was high and
-haughty.
-
-Moved by habit, the people bowed low as he went by and remained thus
-until he had quite passed. There was no sound. Had Cyrus been passing,
-roars of worshipful shouts would have greeted him from all sides.
-Cambyses knew this and in his heart raged because of the silence.
-His square, heavy body, his bull neck, and his round, bloated face
-suggested to the people no majesty. A murmur ran through the masses in
-which were mingled fear and derision.
-
-At one point the crowd pressed too heavily and forced back the guards
-drawn up at the sides of the way. Cambyses, whose horse shied somewhat
-at the commotion as the guards endeavored to drive the crowd back,
-shouted angrily: “Beat the dogs back! Use the points of your spears!”
-The guards, thus urged, smote lustily with the hafts of their spears,
-bringing cries of agony and imprecations from the hapless ones who
-received their blows. The crowd surged back and the King passed on
-without further comment.
-
-Meanwhile Bardya and his sisters and the Prince of Iran patiently
-waited the coming of the King. The Prince occupied himself in passing
-slowly along the massed ranks of the Guard, greeting his veteran
-comrades with a word of praise or inquiry and granting them leave to
-return home for a twenty days’ furlough. A guard of twenty officers
-stood around the funeral car and grooms stood at the heads of the
-white horses hitched to it. Two other grooms held by the bits the
-war-horse on which Cyrus had been mounted when stricken by the fatal
-dart. The noble animal pricked up his sharp ears and looked about with
-interested, intelligent eyes, not understanding that he was about to be
-sacrificed to Ahura-Mazda in honor of his master.
-
-Bardya and several Persians of high degree, among whom were three of
-the seven lords of Persia, Gobryas, Metaphernes, and Aspathines, were
-standing in a group near the car. Upon them the Prince of Iran cast
-many uneasy glances. He feared plots and treason. Some paces from them
-were two litters with drawn curtains, wherein rested the Princesses
-Athura and Artistone.
-
-A subdued murmur rose from the multitudes as they waited. The veteran
-troopers commented on all things and all men, some of their remarks
-being decidedly treasonable.
-
-“By rights,” growled one, whose whiskers covered the larger part of his
-face and chest, “our Prince here ought to be King of Kings! May Ahriman
-fly away with oaths! Now this Cambyses is no soldier. As for Bardya, he
-compares not with our Prince.”
-
-“Right!” admitted his neighbor. “Cyrus lives in the Prince of Iran. The
-King is a drunken savage. Prince Bardya is a gentle giant of no great
-wit. It is said the Princess Athura is most like her father. She and
-our Prince will marry. Cyrus promised it. God send the day when our
-Prince shall wear the double crown and she shall stand at his side as
-Queen!”
-
-“Treason, brother!” chided a third. “Hush! Let your jaws cease to wag
-of royalty.”
-
-Finally the King appeared. He drew near to the funeral car alone. His
-gloomy, black eyes rested coldly for a moment upon his brother, to
-whom he bent his head slightly. Bardya returned his salutation with a
-low, somewhat ironical bow. At that instant the Prince of Iran, who
-had drawn near, raised his hand as a signal, and instantly a crash of
-spear-hafts dashed against bucklers, a roar of voices from the Guard
-and fanfare of trumpets, sounded in royal salute. The old Imperial
-Guard thus recognized the new King of Kings. Cambyses, at first
-startled, flushed with pleasure and acknowledged the salute with bow
-and wave of hand. The great lords of Persia now advanced, one to hold
-his horse, another to hold his stirrup, and a third to receive the
-imperial scepter from his hand as he dismounted.
-
-Having safely dismounted, Cambyses turned to his brother and said,
-“Well, Prince, we meet under altered circumstances! If I recollect
-rightly, our last meeting was somewhat unpleasant, resulting in
-guard-house treatment for me on account of you. But on this day we
-forget old animosities and bury our sire’s body. Afterwards I shall
-have somewhat to say to you.”
-
-“I have forgotten the incident referred to,” answered Bardya, coldly.
-“We are here now to honor the dead. Afterwards I shall be pleased to
-converse with you about the welfare of our empire.”
-
-Cambyses said no more. Uncovering his head, he approached the funeral
-car and bowed his head towards it, remaining thus a moment as if in
-prayer. Silence fell upon the people as they watched the King. Then
-the sound of weeping began. A wave of grief and sympathy swept over the
-assembled multitude. The King was mourning. The people mourned also.
-
-Having thus greeted the spirit of his sire, Cambyses turned away and
-went to the litters where his sisters reclined. They came forth and
-bowed to him in greeting. He kissed their foreheads, saying: “It is a
-great pleasure to have you near me. You shall have the old palace for
-your residence,--you and Prince Bardya,--while you remain here. At a
-more fitting time we shall renew our acquaintance.”
-
-Then he remounted his horse and ordered the final march to begin.
-Prexaspes with the King’s body-guard led the way back to the city.
-The funeral car followed. The King rode behind it and, following him,
-were Prince Bardya, the Prince of Iran, the Princesses, and the great
-nobles. The lesser notables and the Imperial Guard marched next,
-followed by the people. Thus with royal pomp, amidst the mourning
-of his people, Cyrus, the Great King, the Achæmenian, completed his
-worldly march. A band of white-robed priests slaughtered the noble
-war-horse and presented his blood and burned portions of his flesh
-as a sacrifice to Ahura-Mazda, with many prayers. The solemn chants
-being ended, the golden casket in which the body of the great dead was
-encased was carried up the steps of the pyramid and deposited in the
-temple-like vault on its top. The brazen door of the tomb was closed,
-bolted, and sealed and a guard set over it. The people then dispersed.
-
-The King made a decree by which a special order of military rank was
-instituted, whose sole duty it was to watch the tomb, that no man
-should disturb the sacred body of the hero.
-
-So was laid to rest the body of the most knightly king and heroic
-figure of ancient Iran. The great Darius probably equaled him in
-generalship and excelled him in statesmanship; but the brilliant
-career, the gentle and knightly qualities, and the heroic spirit of
-Cyrus, are without parallel in ancient story. Not until the great
-Alexander flashed across the western sky did any meteor excel in
-brightness him whose simple epitaph was, “I am Cyrus, the King, the
-Achæmenian!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-A ROYAL COUNCIL AND A ROYAL HUNT
-
-
-It was the day after the funeral of Cyrus. Cambyses, the Great King,
-was in a black humor. The fatigue incident to the funeral services
-and the reaction from intoxication caused by too much drink, indulged
-in afterward, had darkened his vision and sharpened his acerbity.
-When he awoke and sat up on his silk-covered couch, he felt the need
-of immediate refreshment. He jerked a cord hanging conveniently at
-hand, and a bell jangled in an adjoining hall. Instantly two servants
-appeared, slipping in between the heavy folds of a curtain at the
-doorway, and prostrated themselves before him.
-
-“Rise up, dogs! Bring me soma!” he roared.
-
-Swiftly and noiselessly as fleeting shadows they arose and disappeared.
-In a moment the King’s cup-bearer appeared with a golden goblet in
-hand, followed by the servants bearing a vessel of milky, fiery liquid.
-The cup-bearer bowed low, the servants set down the jar and were about
-to prostrate themselves again, when Cambyses cried impatiently, “Omit
-salutations and pour!”
-
-The potent fluid sparkled as it flowed into the goblet from the vessel.
-Twice was the goblet filled and twice did he drain it. “Begone!” he
-then commanded. “Send the bath hither!”
-
-Cup-bearer and servants withdrew, walking backward. A moment later
-the servants came in again, bearing a large tub of water. With their
-assistance the King proceeded to bathe. Unfortunately for one, he
-dropped a towel and received a buffet from the King’s fist that caused
-him to reel.
-
-“Have care!” roared Cambyses. “To the guard-house you go to-day and
-thence to the kitchen as scullion!”
-
-The man prostrated himself and prayed for pardon. Royalty made no sign
-and he withdrew. Another came to take his place. After the bath, the
-King’s hair was combed, curled, and perfumed. The royal barber trimmed
-his whiskers deftly and carefully waxed them. Then he was arrayed in
-fine linen and purple. His breakfast was brought into the room, and he
-sat down to eat. He then sent a page to summon Prexaspes. The latter,
-elegantly dressed and well groomed as usual, soon appeared and, bending
-till his hands touched the floor, saluted.
-
-“May the King live forever!”
-
-In obedience to a wave of the King’s hand, the servants disappeared.
-
-“See that none stand near the door! Let the guard move away to the
-outer room!” commanded the King.
-
-Prexaspes saw that the orders were obeyed. Then, resuming his
-deferential attitude before his royal master, with bowed head, eyes to
-the floor, and hands crossed before him, he awaited the royal pleasure.
-The King, having eaten in silence some minutes, pushed away the
-remainder of the food.
-
-“Prexaspes,” he said truculently, “I know you! I know you are faithful
-to me because you hope to win power and not because you love me. So be
-it! Royal place you cannot have owing to the accident of birth, but
-royal power you may win if you will. Are you ready to carry out all my
-wishes or must I seek another?”
-
-He paused. Prexaspes raised his eyes and noted his master’s expression.
-
-“Royal master,” he said quietly, “you read men with the eye of God! It
-is true I love power and riches and I know that both may be given me by
-you and none other. I am your slave to command.”
-
-“Well said! I, who am descended from Jemshid and Kaiomurs, from
-Achæmenius and Cyrus, am able to make you great. Just as there may
-be one God in heaven, so I am the one God on earth. There is but one
-family fitted to rule the earth and that is mine. Is it not so?”
-
-“It is so.”
-
-“Since it is so, is not the will of the Great King of the Persians and
-Medes and of the whole world above the laws of this empire?”
-
-“The King’s word is law.”
-
-“If, then, the Great King command you to do an act, that act, even if
-it be the taking of life contrary to Persian law, becomes lawful. Is it
-not so?”
-
-For an instant Prexaspes clasped his fingers together nervously.
-
-“It might be lawful, O King,” he answered slowly. “But though your
-power is great, there are in this land of Persia great nobles who claim
-great rights and powers, and who would maintain that Persian law must
-not be broken even by the Great King. I know the great wisdom and the
-courage of the King; but if I may be permitted to speak, I would give
-the advice of one who has studied these matters deeply.”
-
-“I know!” exclaimed the King, impatiently. “I saw the dour faces of
-the nobles and the hostility of the people. My father unreasonably
-inflicted punishments upon me and my friends, and knowledge thereof has
-soured the minds of all toward me. That cursed Bardya, who supplanted
-me in my father’s love, yet lives! I would sooner trust Darius
-Hystaspis than those nobles; and he loves me not!”
-
-“It is true the Prince of Iran loves you not. But he is loyal. My only
-fear is that if Bardya should--should be slain by your order, the
-nobles would attack even you, and by their vast power among the Persian
-people they might overthrow you and place the King of Iran on the
-throne.”
-
-The King arose from the table and paced back and forth, grinding his
-teeth in wrath. He realized the truth of Prexaspes’ words.
-
-“There can be but one King on earth!” he exclaimed. “That King must be
-Cambyses. Bardya must die! As for Darius Hystaspis, I would order him
-to death, did I not believe his father would head a revolt in Iran such
-as I care not to meet. But I hate him! What then do you advise?”
-
-“As to Bardya, I advise that he be put away secretly, if he must die.
-Let it be reported that he has returned to Bactra or that the King has
-given him a secluded residence in Medea, where he chose to retire for
-meditation. A stout person might--”
-
-“No!” roared the King. “I have said he shall die! But let it be
-secretly done. Do it yourself and I will make you chief counselor of
-state forever, second only to myself!”
-
-Prexaspes drew in his breath sharply.
-
-“The King hath spoken!” he answered slowly. “I myself will slay the
-young man. Let the King’s word stand and not be withdrawn.”
-
-“It shall stand!” the King assured him, taking a seal ring from his
-finger. “Take this in token of the King’s word.”
-
-Prexaspes bowed low and took the glittering band.
-
-“Now as to this Prince of Iran and his seditious Guard, what of them?”
-demanded the King.
-
-Prexaspes hesitated a moment before he answered. “The Prince may be
-dealt with in two ways. Possibly the King may not have heard that
-he has dared to raise his eyes to Athura, the King’s most beautiful
-sister; and it is reported that she regards him with great favor. And
-your father promised her to him. Now it might be that if she be given
-him in marriage at once, it would bind him more firmly to support your
-rule, and--”
-
-“Never!” cried the King, smiting his hands together. “Let them marry?
-Why, that would indeed be showing him favor! That would be placing him
-on the throne! For I have no children; and if Bardya die, who remains?
-Athura would be queen, and he would be King. Never! I hate him as
-bitterly as I do Bardya. I hate Athura, the haughty favorite of my
-father, ever preaching good deeds and well-doing to me!”
-
-“Then I advise that he be given a command in a distant province. It
-is rumored that the Lydians are restless and that the tribes on the
-northern borders thereof are making forays. Send him and the old Guard
-thither. Mayhap a dart shall find him. At least he will be far from
-these Persians. His oath will keep him faithful. Let a decree be made
-praising him for faithful service and elevating him to the honor of a
-satrapy where war will keep him busy.”
-
-The King laughed, a cruel, mirthless laugh, as he assented. “The advice
-is good! So be it. Bardya shall disappear to meditate--beyond the
-stars! Darius and Athura shall love each other, verily, but separated
-by two hundred parasangs! See to it! Prepare proper decrees. And
-Prexaspes--it is in my mind to occupy these warlike peoples in a war
-of conquest, even as did my father. We will prove that we too know
-how to conquer! There is Egypt still independent and very rich and
-powerful. We must have tribute to live in state as becomes the ruler
-of the world. Amasis claims to be equal to Cambyses--he shall bite the
-dust! After him, the Hellenes shall feel my power beyond the sea. Go,
-Prexaspes! It shall be yours to estimate the necessary revenues and to
-prepare the means to feed an army of five hundred thousand men who will
-march with me to Egypt. But, first, see to it that no brother remains
-behind to rouse up rebellion!”
-
-“It shall be as you order. The King is very wise. War with Egypt will
-occupy the minds of the Persian nobles and will enable us to levy taxes
-on all the nations for the King’s treasury.”
-
-“Be not in too great haste with this war,” continued Cambyses. “There
-is much to do; and life is very enjoyable in fall at Susa, in winter at
-Babylon, and in spring at Hamadan.”
-
-Prexaspes bowed low and withdrew.
-
-Later that day, the King sat in state on the throne in the great
-central hall of the palace and received the nobles of Persia and
-Medea and the officers of his court. Prexaspes stood at his right
-hand. Embassies from distant realms, visitors from foreign lands, and
-deputations from divers cities came to wait upon the Great King before
-returning to their various places. All petitioners, in accordance
-with the new etiquette, prostrated themselves before the King and so
-remained until bidden to arise. But the nobles of Iran, though they
-bowed low before him with hands on their breasts, did not bend the knee
-or prostrate themselves. The King greeted them coldly, resolving within
-himself that he would some day humble them till they also should
-prostrate themselves at his feet and feel his foot on their necks.
-
-The Prince of Iran, tall, stately, richly but plainly appareled,
-came also. He was cordial in his greeting of the King, as became a
-blood-relative, but beneath the folds of his Medean cloak a light chain
-armor guarded his body from dagger-thrusts, even as his cordial manner
-concealed the distrust he felt towards Cambyses. To him Prexaspes made
-low obeisance. The nobles of Persia also bowed low before him with
-profound respect. The King became very gracious and smiled upon him as
-he approached. He arose from his throne and gave the Prince his royal
-hand.
-
-“Cousin Darius,” he said, “it pleases me very greatly to have you here!
-I have disturbing news from the satrapy of our old friend Crœsus.
-It is said that discontent and revolt arise there and that bands of
-Scythians trouble its northern borders. I have been considering deeply
-what reward would be sufficient for one who brought the body of the
-Great King, my father, to its tomb. I have determined to appoint you
-satrap of all our empire beyond the Euphrates. In order that you may
-be well supported, I have prepared a decree that you may take with you
-the old Imperial Guard of my father to become the nucleus of the army
-which shall, under your command, uphold our empire there. I contemplate
-no less a conquest than that of Egypt at some convenient time; and it
-shall be your duty to levy additional soldiers among the people of your
-provinces for that war. When I march by Damascus and Tyre, you shall
-join me there with a well-disciplined army and you shall have chief
-command under me.”
-
-The Prince listened in amazement. Except Babylon, the western provinces
-were the richest and most important of the conquered provinces in
-the empire. Knowing the King’s ancient hatred towards him, he was at
-a loss to understand why this great honor was given him. From the
-keen, beadlike stare of the King’s dark eyes he turned inquiringly to
-Prexaspes, who averted his face. He was silent a moment, seeking to
-penetrate the King’s design. It must be that, as King, Cambyses was not
-following the footsteps of Cambyses, the Prince.
-
-“The Great King’s commands will be obeyed,” he answered presently. “I
-thank you for the honor so little deserved. But I had somewhat in my
-heart to ask the King, should I be permitted to speak.”
-
-“Say on!” said the King, the expression of his face denoting
-apprehension.
-
-“When your sire, the ever victorious Cyrus, was about to die, he gave
-me his consent and promise that I should marry the Princess Athura if
-she were willing. This was a special mark of his favor. I now ask of
-you, Great King, that which he promised and which you, as the head
-of your father’s family, may grant--the hand of the King’s sister in
-marriage.”
-
-Cambyses was astonished at the boldness of the Prince. His face
-instantly flushed with wrath. He was about to exclaim violently,
-when he observed the gaze of Prexaspes turned upon him warningly and
-remembered that it was his part to dissemble. He resumed his seat on
-the throne. Constraining his anger, he said, speaking rapidly and in
-some confusion:
-
-“This is a matter to which thought must be given. The time is not
-right. The matters demanding attention in your satrapy are urgent.
-I wish you to make ready and depart within ten days. I must have a
-Prince of the Empire in that part of my dominions. Your subjects are a
-warlike people who need a firm hand. As to my sister, I will talk with
-her. It would not be meet that the marriage take place before you go or
-until the days of mourning for her father elapse. The urgency of the
-case will not admit at this time of any delay, lest those Lydians and
-Scythians rise in open rebellion. I see no obstacle in the way of such
-marriage; but later I will consider it. Some months’ active campaigning
-may be your lot when no thoughts could be given to marriage. Prepare to
-march without delay and to put down the King’s enemies with a strong
-hand. If the hand of my sister in marriage be a prize to be sought
-after by you, faithful service to my interests may be thus rewarded.
-Here is my decree appointing you to your office. Rest assured that if
-my sister wills to be your wife, she shall be given by me to no other
-man.”
-
-Prexaspes drew from his belt a roll of papyrus and presented it to
-the King, who handed it to the Prince. The latter took it, bowed low,
-and, turning on his heel, departed without further word. After he had
-disappeared the King turned to Prexaspes.
-
-“What think you?” he asked. “Does it please him? And what will he do?”
-
-“It pleases him not, but he will obey.”
-
-The Prince of Iran passed out of the King’s presence deeply troubled.
-Was the King seeking to honor him and beginning to reign in a truly
-kinglike manner? Or was he seeking to be rid of him and his favorite
-troops? Mounting a horse at the gate of the palace park, where his
-faithful groom, Orobates, awaited him, he rode directly to the old
-palace where Bardya and his sisters were residing. There he dismounted
-and was quickly ushered into the presence of Princess Athura. He found
-her sitting upon a divan in the inner court, playing on a harp and
-softly singing to its accompaniment. Several young women companions had
-left the room when the servants announced the coming of the Prince.
-
-“Greeting and welcome!” she said smilingly, as the young man bowed low
-before her. She put aside the harp and arose. “Be seated, illustrious
-Prince, at my right hand!” He kissed the hands extended to him, and
-both sat down on the divan.
-
-At once noting the serious expression of his countenance, the Princess
-asked, “What so serious as to cause frowns and wrinkles?”
-
-“I have stood before the King as I said I would and asked that he
-consent to our marriage,” he answered. “Instead of consenting, he does
-me the honor to appoint me governor of Lydia and command me to depart
-forthwith, saying there is urgent need and that I must take with me the
-Guard.”
-
-“What? Another war? And must you go?”
-
-“It is the King’s command! It is not an honor that he is giving me. It
-is his desire to place me among those who know me not! Foolish King! He
-will find none less likely to rebel than I. It is not in his mind to
-consent to our marriage. He made no promise. He said he would think of
-it and speak with you.”
-
-“But he shall consent!” exclaimed Athura, warmly. “If not, then will I
-go with you and marry you without his consent. He shall never control
-me or send me where I do not choose to go!”
-
-“My soul rejoices to hear you say this!” said the Prince, drawing
-her close to him with encircling arm. “But we must have patience. He
-is King. He is the head of your family. Should we marry without his
-consent, he might deem it such insult to his majesty as to lead him to
-immediate violence. I fear that I may some day be compelled to forget
-my sacred oath to his father. Let us exercise patience, light of mine
-eyes, hope of my soul!”
-
-Her regal head rested on his strong shoulder. She touched lightly with
-her fingers the dark locks of hair that graced his brow. Presently, as
-she remained silent, he continued:
-
-“He may consent that you come to me. What happiness would be mine! But
-you--it would mean a foreign land, and possibly dwelling in the midst
-of war.”
-
-“Am I not my father’s daughter? Am I afraid of war? It would be joy to
-go with you, to see new lands, new peoples, to be a queen where you
-would be virtually king, to ride a horse in battle! I will wait for you
-to come or to send for me. No other man, be he King or noble, shall I
-ever marry. If not you, none other!”
-
-“Nor shall I have any other queen than you, beloved of my soul! Let
-us not despair. I will speak to the Persian nobles if he does not
-presently consent. Their influence and my father’s may force his
-consent. If danger threaten you, fly to my mother. She will protect you
-even against Cambyses.”
-
-Further converse was interrupted by the sound of footsteps approaching
-from the outer hallway and the immediate appearance of Prince Bardya
-at the door. He had evidently just come from a ride, as his clothes
-and whip indicated. His handsome, flushed countenance indicated rapid
-riding through the wind. He smiled, as his sister and the Prince arose
-in embarrassed silence.
-
-“Pardon my intrusion, beloved sister and brother!” he begged. “I have
-had a wonderful gallop over the hills towards Lake Baktigan, and some
-rough climbing. Have you seen the other King this day?”
-
-The Prince of Iran briefly related his visit to the King and its
-result. Bardya nervously slapped the riding whip against his boots and
-a frown gathered on his brow as he listened.
-
-“His object is plain!” he exclaimed, as the Prince ceased speaking.
-“He sends you to a distant place that you may not be near me, a very
-shrewd trick! He will never allow you to marry Athura because he hates
-you both. But let us defy him! My sister shall go with me. Then you may
-come, Prince, and marry her! We shall defy him. We shall acknowledge
-him as overlord, according to my father’s will; but not a foot shall he
-set on our lands--neither he nor any servants of his!”
-
-The Prince of Iran was disturbed at Bardya’s words. It was evident that
-the latter intended to declare his independence as soon as possible and
-that war would ensue. What would be his own duty then? His oath would
-align him with Cambyses; his heart would drive him to Bardya.
-
-“Great Prince,” he answered, “I know you love me as a friend and so
-I make bold to speak a warning. Do not utter such thoughts aloud any
-more. Ears may hear and tongues may carry to the King’s ears. Then
-he would surely have you arrested and slain. I counsel prudence and
-extreme watchfulness. Return as soon as possible to Bactra. I long to
-go with you. But I must obey his decree or be placed in the position
-of rebelling. I go as ordered. After the war is finished (if I find it
-necessary to make war), I will demand Athura. If he refuse consent, I
-will leave his service and enter yours, but never as against him. But I
-do not think he will dare deny my suit. Am I not an Achæmenian, and is
-there any of higher birth?”
-
-“I will heed your advice,” replied Bardya. “You were ever wise and
-far-seeing. I will be silent and watchful. The guards you gave me ride
-with me always. One sleeps at my bedroom door, and the others guard
-the palace doors and grounds. But if you march hence in ten days, it
-behooves me to seek others.”
-
-“I will furnish them from the faithful retainers on my father’s estate.
-But I advise immediate return to Bactra, even if it must be by flight
-in the night. I am greatly troubled for your safety.”
-
-Bardya laughed. “You are needlessly alarmed,” he asserted. “But on the
-morrow I will announce to the King my purpose of returning forthwith.”
-
-At this moment there came a knock at the door and a servant appeared.
-“A messenger stands at the door,” he announced.
-
-“Admit him!” commanded Bardya.
-
-A man in the King’s livery entered, and bowing almost to the floor
-before royalty, presented a folded bit of papyrus to Bardya. The latter
-took it, unfolded it, and read. He then ordered the messenger to
-retire, and after he had disappeared he read aloud:
-
- “‘Cambyses, the King of Kings, King of the World, to his Brother,
- Bardya, and to his Sisters, Athura and Artistone, greeting:
-
- “‘Know that I propose to remain here two weeks longer and will then
- return to Hamadan. It is my will that you make ready to accompany me
- to that city in order that my court may be graced by your presence
- and that the people may know that we are of good-will towards you.
- Later my brother may depart thence to his provinces. Farewell.
-
- “‘CAMBYSES.’”
-
-
-“My brother is beginning to rule us very soon!” exclaimed Athura,
-indignantly.
-
-“He shall not order me!” exclaimed Bardya, fiercely.
-
-“He is King!” warned the Prince of Iran. “Hamadan is many parasangs
-nearer Bactra than this city. It is also nearer Lydia. I counsel
-obedience. It will be easier to escape from Hamadan than from
-Pasargadæ, if escape you must; and a week’s journey will then bring you
-into your own realm. Besides, it may be, the King is earnestly desirous
-of showing good-will.”
-
-“Good-will!” rejoined Bardya. “The King speaks of my ‘provinces,’ as if
-I were a mere satrap! It seems to me that I should be first consulted
-in such matters. It is in my mind to return to him a message that I
-choose to remain here for a time and then to return direct to Bactra.”
-
-Bardya strode back and forth across the room wrathfully. He threw the
-King’s message on the floor and trampled upon it. The Prince of Iran
-watched him in gloomy silence. Athura went to her brother and placing
-her hand on his shoulders made him halt and look down into her clear,
-steady eyes. More than once she had calmed the anger of her impetuous
-younger brother thus.
-
-“Brother, listen to me!” she said imploringly. “Listen to the Prince of
-Iran, if not to me! We are older than you, and you have never found us
-unfaithful to your interests. Cambyses is King of Kings, King of the
-World, by right of birth and by your father’s last decree. He speaks
-fairly to you. It is right that we visit him at his court in Hamadan
-and render him the honor due to him. You are here in his power. You
-should never have come hither at all. Wisdom dictates that you go
-to Hamadan, in all brotherly kindness. Then should he show an evil
-disposition, it will be much easier to escape to Bactra. At all events,
-brother, be not first to bring on war. Only in a just cause will the
-Aryans follow you.”
-
-Bardya was impressed. He kissed her forehead. “I will do as you
-advise,” he replied. “I am crippled by that oath our father exacted of
-the King of Iran and of our Prince here. Without their aid, it would be
-wild, foolish, and impossible to begin war. I feel that should I begin
-the war, even they would oppose me with the armies of Iran. I am no
-better than a caged tiger.”
-
-The Prince of Iran looked upon his young friend sorrowfully. “My father
-and I have sworn!” he said. “How can our words return to us? We are
-bound to support Cambyses as King of Kings. No less are we bound to aid
-you if oppressed by him. We will not fail you. Should he seek to detain
-you, we shall demand your release, even at the head of an army. What
-can you ask more? That we be oath-breakers?”
-
-“No, I ask it not! I will be guided by your advice.”
-
-Having thus decided, the three composed a message from Bardya to the
-King, notifying him that it would please Bardya to visit Hamadan on
-his way to Bactra and be his guest for some days. The Prince of Iran
-then took his departure and went to the camp of the Imperial Guard.
-After detailing a strong company to guard the palace wherein slept his
-beloved, he called a council of all his chief captains and read to them
-the King’s decree directing him and the Guard to march into Western
-Asia. The captains were delighted. The common soldiers, when they
-heard the news next day, broke forth in a pandemonium of jubilation.
-To march into the rich country of rich old Crœsus with their beloved
-Prince, to gain renown and wealth, though by hard knocks, under such a
-leader--what more could a stout warrior ask? So they all rejoiced and
-one and all agreed that King Cambyses was a wise King. But their Prince
-and Commander was silent and sorrowful.
-
-Cambyses announced, two days later, that it pleased him to accept the
-invitation of the Prince of Iran to hunt royal game on his estates in
-the jungles surrounding Lake Baktigan. This lake is a brackish body
-of water lying in the bottom of a long, narrow valley between low
-mountains, a day’s journey south of Persepolis. It is shallow in summer
-and fall, but in spring, after the winter rains, fed by the floods
-of the Araxes and several mountain torrents, it rises to respectable
-dimensions, and is then about sixty miles long by five wide. Reeds,
-grass, shrubs, and stunted trees cover its shores. On the hills near
-is some heavy timber. Little known to the modern traveler, yet, in the
-ancient days, it was a resort of royal hunters who dared to seek the
-lion and the tiger in their lairs. It was a part of the estates of
-the King of Iran. The Prince, as was the custom, had invited the King
-of Kings to make free use of all his father’s property. But he was
-surprised when Cambyses indicated that he would hunt. Prexaspes had
-advised his royal master to accept because it would please the Persian
-nobility. Cambyses also desired to show himself a mighty hunter, as had
-all his ancestry, and this influenced him to dissemble his true feeling
-towards the Prince and to accept his invitation. Prince Bardya and the
-great lords of Persia were invited to attend. It fell upon the Prince
-of Iran as host to provide transportation, victuals, equipage, and
-beaters; and right royally did he provide.
-
-It was an imposing expedition that marched down the swift Araxes to the
-jungles of Lake Baktigan. First, on a big horse, rode a magnificently
-attired master of the hunt, glittering in gold and silver and gorgeous
-in crimson uniform. Then followed several hundred skilled hunters,
-wardens of the estate whose duty it was to furnish the table of King
-Hystaspis with game and to guard his preserves against common robbers
-and poachers. They were arrayed in distinctive uniform and were
-mounted on wiry animals used to hill-climbing and hunting. With them
-was a pack of hounds. Then rode King Cambyses, on a beautiful white
-stallion, and looking right royal in his close-fitting tunic, his
-leather riding-breeches, red shoes, and round felt cap in which were
-stuck several black eagle feathers. A stout armor-bearer rode next
-with the King’s short sword, a buckler, a stout bow, and a quiver full
-of arrows. Another servant carried javelins and a heavy spear. At the
-King’s left and half a horse behind rode Prexaspes similarly arrayed.
-Behind them rode the Prince of Iran, Prince Bardya, and a hundred
-or more notables. Many pack-animals and servants followed with the
-impedimenta.
-
-They camped in a dense forest at the northern end of the lake, where
-the Araxes poured in its flood of fresh water. Next day the hunt began.
-The chief huntsman built a low platform in the branches of a live-oak
-which stood at the crossing of several jungle paths about a mile below
-the camp. The King and his armor-bearers took station on this, while
-the nobles and retainers formed in line at some distance to the rear
-in order to turn the game should it pass him. Cambyses was a great
-archer. It was his daily custom to practice shooting with the heavy
-Persian bow. He boasted that no man in Iran could excel him. None ever
-did excel in his presence, it being convenient to miss and stand lower
-in the scores than his Royal Highness. It is related that the King
-was accustomed to shoot apples from the heads or hands of boys, an
-example possibly followed by William Tell of later fame. The King later
-attempted this feat with the son of Prexaspes and slew the son.
-
-The huntsmen went to a point several miles down the lake, and, having
-formed a long line with one end resting on the shore and the other far
-out on the hills, marched with shouts, horn-blowing, and drum-beating
-northward and drove the savage denizens of the wilderness towards the
-King. The latter acquitted himself very well. Deer and antelope fell
-before his arrows. Jackals, snapping at the shafts which pierced their
-vitals, tumbled about and died. The King roared with savage laughter as
-the stricken animals leaped to their death. A wild boar was smitten,
-but, gnashing his teeth in rage and pain, he turned upon the beaters
-desperately and gashed one severely with his tusks. Animals which
-escaped the King ran the gantlet of weapons in the hands of the nobles.
-The slaughter was great. Two lions were aroused, but they broke through
-the line of beaters and escaped. That night all feasted on the King’s
-meat and praised his skill.
-
-On the next day Cambyses decided to hunt on foot, following the hunters
-with hounds through the jungle paths. His nobles followed to witness
-his feats of arms. Hunters and beaters formed a long semicircular line
-with the wings thrust forward, one along the margin of the lake, and
-the other along a ridge running parallel thereto. The King was at the
-middle of the line with the chief hunter. The Prince of Iran, Prince
-Bardya, and several of the nobles followed closely after him.
-
-Several smaller animals soon fell before the King’s archery, but
-he fretted because no lion or tiger appeared. He ordered the hounds
-unloosed. They sprang away into the jungle, and almost immediately
-terrific roars announced the presence of lions. A female and a young
-lion appeared, dashing towards the hills, the mother turning now and
-again to leap at the snarling pack baying at her heels. The King loosed
-an arrow at her, but it fell short. He was about to pursue, when a
-more thunderous roar close by warned him of the proximity of another
-royal beast. An instant later, a black-maned male lion appeared in an
-open space twenty paces distant, lashing his tail and emitting breathy
-coughs of rage. The animal paused but an instant, crouching low, then
-leaped towards the King with gigantic bounds. The King drew an arrow
-to its head and launched it. It smote the lion in the shoulder, but
-missed a vital point. Cries of terror arose from the attendants, and
-the armor-bearer of the King sought to interpose his buckler between
-the beast and his master. But master and man went down in a heap under
-the impact of the lion’s heavy body. Then the Persian nobles gallantly
-hastened to the rescue. The Prince of Iran dashed forward with a heavy
-spear and thrust the sharp blade into the red mouth of the lion as it
-sprang to meet him. It reared up on hind legs, battling with the heavy
-spear. Prince Bardya then shot an arrow into the beast’s side with such
-force that the barb passed through its body. Its heart was transfixed;
-the great beast gasped, fell over, and died.
-
-Cambyses was not severely injured, but was much chagrined. He had
-missed a fair shot, been ignobly thrown down, and saved by those he
-hated. He gave short thanks to his saviors and berated his armor-bearer
-for not interposing more effectually. He hunted no more after that
-on foot in the jungle, but he succeeded in slaying two lions from the
-safety of a platform erected in a tree.
-
-The hunt thus having proved a success, the King returned to Pasargadæ.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-THE DEEPER THINGS
-
-
-The Prince of Iran, about to depart on the King’s business, knelt
-before his mother to receive her final blessing. The stately dame
-allowed no tear to dim her eye and no tremor to weaken her voice during
-this ceremony.
-
-“Go, my son, with my love and faith in you,” she said. “But remember
-your royal birth. Should your sire die, you will be head of the royal
-family in Iran; and by reason of your descent from an elder brother,
-you will be entitled to overlord even Cambyses. Your father has been
-content to be second to Cyrus, but I shall yet behold you crowned King
-of Kings!”
-
-“Not while Bardya and his brother, the Great King, live, mother!”
-replied the Prince, arising from his knee. “But I shall remember your
-words.”
-
-She bowed low before him, as to a superior. “Son, I salute you, King
-that is to be!” she said, smiling.
-
-Troubled in spirit, he kissed her cheek and turned away.
-
-The mother watched her son until he disappeared among the trees of the
-park. Then, throwing a veil over her head and face, she went to the
-seclusion of her bedchamber, there to weep the bitter tears of grief
-she would not let the world see. The Prince hastened to the stone
-bridge where Bardya and Athura, who had preceded him, were waiting to
-utter their farewells.
-
-Bardya kissed his friend’s cheeks, embraced him tenderly, then mounted
-a horse and rode away to the city. Athura and the Prince lingered on
-the bridge awhile, loath to part. The perfume of flowers filled the
-air, as the sun kissed away the dewdrops from their petals. The voices
-of birds and the ripple of water formed an orchestra attuned to the
-songs of love.
-
-“When I am permitted to return to this paradise, I will build there,
-by the side of my father’s palace, another twice as large and adorned
-with greater splendor,” he said, as they were about to separate. “There
-shall you dwell as becomes the Queen of the Aryans and the ruler of my
-soul.”
-
-“May your mother’s prophecy come true, beloved!” she replied. “I shall
-count the days till your return, or until I go to you. Send for me
-quickly and I will come. That brother of mine, who calls himself King
-of Kings, shall not prevent me. Listen! Should I send to you, asking
-aid, will you come, even though in disobedience to his orders?”
-
-“Yes! Did not Cyrus at the same time he exacted my oath also promise
-you to me? But Cambyses will not dare refuse you or insult me by long
-refusing his consent to our marriage.”
-
-“His hatred toward us may overrule his reason.”
-
-“Then he shall listen to force! I will send a letter to him as soon as
-my government is placed in order, demanding that he send you to me. He
-will then have no excuse.”
-
-“Send quickly then, for I fear trouble!” Tears filled her dark eyes as
-she spoke.
-
-“Should he trouble you, go to my father!” he said reassuringly. “He
-will call in the seven great nobles of Persia to your aid. Even
-Cambyses will fear them.”
-
-What else was said need not be recorded. Love, in these great ones of
-earth, produced the same sighs, the same halting words, the repetition
-of promises, assurances, and pledges, the same beaming eyes and
-fluttering hearts, as it ever has in all who have loved, be they high
-or low, known or unknown, sung or unsung. They parted, he to join the
-waiting Imperial Guard, now to be known as the Prince of Iran’s Guard,
-and she to return to his mother.
-
-Having marched rapidly to Susa, the Prince and his army encamped in
-a plain near that city. The satrap of Susa was ordered to procure
-supplies and a caravan for his long westward march. The camp lay on
-the south bank of the swift Choaspes, in a park set apart for the
-King’s use. Here were many palms and plane trees. The Prince’s tent
-was erected beneath the spreading branches of trees on the margin of
-the river, where in soldierly simplicity he received the visit of the
-satrap.
-
-On the evening of the second day after his arrival at this camp, the
-Prince, as was his custom, went out for a walk. The dark peaks of the
-Zagros range in the east lay bathed in the last soft rays of the sun.
-Shadows were falling in the glades and upon the river. With bent head
-and hands clasped behind him, he took little note of his surroundings,
-until at the end of half an hour he was met by a man, who seemed also
-absorbed in meditation. This man was tall and graceful. His body was
-clad in a long cloak, a plain but fine Babylonish garment, and on
-his head he wore a round, black Persian cap. His feet were shod with
-sandals. A full, dark beard, streaked with gray, adorned his face. His
-eagle-like countenance was strong and placid. Large dark eyes glowed
-with intelligence from beneath his heavy brows.
-
-The Prince whose eyes were bent on the earth, was startled from his
-reverie by a deep, musical voice:
-
-“Hail, Prince of Iran!”
-
-Involuntarily he grasped the hilt of a dagger in his belt and gazed
-doubtfully a moment upon the speaker. Then with a glad cry, he hastened
-forward and bending low, exclaimed: “Hail, Belteshazzer, prophet of
-God! I did not expect to meet you here! I rejoice exceedingly! I pray
-your blessing!”
-
-“May the Lord of all the earth bless you, my son!” said Belteshazzer,
-solemnly, laying his hand upon the Prince’s bowed head. “It is a great
-pleasure to behold you again after so many months. Tell me how you come
-here. Is that your army yonder? I have been away several days in the
-mountains whither I go to study, and I am now returning to the city.”
-
-The Prince stood before the prophet reverently, as one stands before a
-loved teacher.
-
-“My guard is encamped yonder,” he answered, indicating his camp. “We
-march upon the Great King’s business to the lands beyond the Euphrates,
-where, it is said, I shall find the people in rebellion. The King has
-seen fit to honor me with the government of the western provinces.”
-
-Belteshazzer smiled. Knowing well the political affairs of the empire
-from his long experience as adviser to the late King and as governor
-of several provinces, also knowing Cambyses and his dislike for the
-Prince, he perceived the pretext which the King had used to send the
-Prince far away from Iran.
-
-“I had not heard of any serious disturbances in those provinces,” he
-said. “It is true that some wild, turbulent bands infest the outlying
-mountains on the northeast; but the provinces have been happy under
-the rule of Cyrus and have not suffered at the hands of Cambyses.
-Perhaps the Great King deems it wise to scatter the veterans of Cyrus
-to distant provinces!”
-
-“That may be,” assented the Prince. “But you, Teacher, why here? The
-governor of Medea should not be in Elam.”
-
-“I am no longer governor of Medea. The Great King has deprived me
-of that office. I am no longer an adviser to the King. I am going
-to Babylon to resume my duties in the college of wise men, to spend
-my time in the study of ancient records and to observe the changing
-heavens, until such time as the God of heaven and earth shall order
-otherwise.”
-
-“Come with me!” exclaimed the Prince, impulsively. “I shall profit by
-your knowledge and experience. You shall have the chief place in my
-satrapy.”
-
-Belteshazzer shook his head.
-
-“No, it would not be best. The Great King is very jealous. He is
-scattering the men who surrounded Cyrus and is building up a circle of
-his own. His command was laid on me to proceed to Babylon, there to
-reside with the college of priests. But fear not, Prince! We shall come
-again in due time.”
-
-“Is this a prophecy?” inquired the Prince, his countenance alight with
-eagerness. “Ah, Belteshazzer! how I have longed to obtain that power
-you have,--the power to look into the future, to listen to the voice of
-Shraosha and to tell that which will be! Come with me to my tent and
-take refreshments. You shall stay with me at least until I march on to
-my provinces. I will consult God through you. My heart is very heavy.
-Upon my soul is an oath that galls me; and I fear for my friends and
-for the Aryan people under this King. After you are refreshed, it may
-be you will consult the messengers of God and tell me the right course
-of action.”
-
-Belteshazzer looked upon the young man with sympathy. Gifted beyond
-all living men with the power to read souls in their nakedness, he saw
-here a strong, upright spirit of good intent, in whom truth held sway,
-whose mind was large enough to grapple with and solve the problems of
-earth, a leader among men; and he loved the youth. He did not answer
-immediately, but looked into the eyes of the Prince earnestly as if
-reading his thoughts. The Prince could not drop his gaze. Belteshazzer
-presently looked away to the west, where the last glow of the sunset
-still reddened the sky, and he sighed deeply. Then his eyes swept
-slowly around the horizon, resting an instant on the towers of the
-distant city and then upon the tents of the army. The river’s low
-murmur came up from the darkening vale mingled with whisper of leaves
-moved by the breeze.
-
-“I know, my son,” he said after a moment’s silence, “that you have
-given an oath which may not be broken. I read the thoughts that recur,
-tempting you to break it. I read your heart and the love in it for the
-sister of the King, and the brotherly love you hold towards the brother
-of the King. I know that in the King’s mind is a fierce hatred towards
-you and a foul intent to make away with his brother; and that he is
-even now plotting against him. I know that dark and bloody days are
-impending; but the God of Spirits has guards around you, and as long as
-you walk after the good intent in your heart, you will triumph over all
-dangers and you will come at length to a higher estate. More than this
-I do not know.”
-
-The Prince bowed his head reverently before the speaker. In the
-presence of this man he was humble,--this man about whom wondrous
-stories had been told: of his great wisdom; of his power over the
-spirits of men; of the prophecies he had uttered; of the handwriting
-on the wall at the close of Belshazzar’s feast, when the great Cyrus
-was entering the inner city of Babylon by the river-bed and seizing it
-while the people feasted; of his immunity from fire and from the wrath
-of wild beasts, which, it was said, were his friends, no matter how
-savage; and of his steadfastness in the worship of his God.
-
-“O Prince of God!” he exclaimed as the prophet ceased speaking, “I
-would give all that I have to hold communion with the unseen powers as
-you do! I have read the teachings of the great master, Zoroaster, and I
-have listened to the wise men who have studied all that is to be known;
-but, when I stand before you and listen to your words, my soul sinks,
-and I wonder if I worship the true God, or whether there are two gods,
-yours and mine, or more; or whether Ahura-Mazda is but an idea. I wish
-that I might sit again at your feet and learn the whole truth!”
-
-Belteshazzer looked upon the young man, with love and admiration
-expressed in his large, deep eyes. His voice when he again spoke,
-was full of sympathy and fatherly kindness. “Son, there is not much
-to learn, save this: that God, the Supreme Ruler of all, is one God;
-that He manifests His power by His Spirit and by His messengers; that
-He is known to all peoples, but under different names and different
-aspects, and that He is the Father of all. Men have forgotten Him and
-have attributed to Him qualities that He has never possessed. Some
-have made Him a monster, have carved Him in wood and stone, made idols
-to represent Him and fallen down before them, forgetting that God is
-a Spirit, who never looks upon idolatry with allowance--forgetting,
-because not seeing! But of old, when there was but one family of men
-on this earth, God was known to all men. His spirits and messengers
-walked and talked with men, until men by gross and sensual lives made
-it impossible. The Ancient of Days gave man a life of immortality;
-breathed His own life into the first man, and he became a living soul;
-made him free to live as he would, to choose good and evil. Men, from
-the first days, ages ago, lived happily, until selfishness drove
-them to quarrels, to murder, and to other sins. Then they separated,
-families moving hither and thither over the world, forgetting each
-other; some descending into ignorance and barbarism; others ascending
-to a higher state of knowledge; all looking upon nature and clothing
-nature’s God in their own vain imaginings. Some kept the knowledge of
-God more perfectly than others. The Spirit of God talks with every man,
-bringing up to his spirit suggestions of better life. From time to time
-great teachers are sent. So came Moses to us, the sons of Abraham and
-Heber. So came Zoroaster to the Aryans. And a day will come--I have
-seen it in a vision!--” here the Prophet’s voice thrilled with awe
-and his eyes were cast upward to the heavens,--“I saw in a vision one
-night, years ago, before the great Cyrus overthrew Babylon, One, like
-the Ancient of Days, sitting on the clouds of heaven; and there came
-before him One like unto a son of man; and to Him did the Ancient of
-Days give dominion and glory over all peoples of all the earth and all
-people should in all their divers languages serve Him. His dominion is
-an everlasting dominion and His kingdom shall never be destroyed. All
-the nations of the earth shall serve Him gladly!”
-
-He ceased a moment and stood enraptured, contemplating the heavens
-and recalling again the glories of his vision. The young man looked
-upon the seer’s countenance with awe. He endeavored to gather the full
-meaning of the spoken words. Whether he spoke, he knew not, but his
-mind did form the question, “When shall this be?”
-
-The question came to Belteshazzer and he answered: “I know not when,
-but He will come in the fullness of time. He will not reign as kings
-reign, but only in the souls of men. He will waken men to everlasting
-life, men who have endeavored to do well. He will waken others to shame
-of their evil lives and to everlasting contempt. Then all men shall
-have full knowledge of God. None shall fail to know their Redeemer. He
-will come when God wills.”
-
-Belteshazzer ceased and again sighed deeply, and for a time gazed at
-the sunset glow in silence, but his eyes saw not the glories of the
-sun. With his inward eyes he was looking again at that mighty vision of
-which he had spoken. The Prince broke the silence.
-
-“You said that a Spirit stands guard over me and that I shall triumph
-over dangers. How stands such spirit? What is he? Why may I not see
-him? If I could commune with the unseen presence, perhaps he would
-guide my steps that I make no error.”
-
-Belteshazzer shook his head and replied: “To some it is given to
-commune with spirits, but it is only to those whose lives are
-spiritual. To me it has been given to speak with Gabriel, the messenger
-of God, and with Michael, the soldier of God and leader of his hosts
-against the powers of evil. It may be that God will permit you to
-see. Come, let us sit down! I feel even now the nearness of spiritual
-influences.”
-
-They sat down side by side on a flat rock at the margin of the river
-bank. Below them the bank fell away with gentle slope to the stream.
-The valley was now full of shadows. Trees and shrubs were seen as dark
-spots on the dull gray of sun-scorched grass. Twilight was rapidly
-deepening into darkness. Belteshazzer took the Prince’s right hand into
-his left. Raising his right hand to the heavens, he prayed inaudibly,
-the movement of his lips alone indicating his action. The Prince sat
-motionless, with wide eyes and bated breath. Awe entered into his soul
-and a chill ran over his body, not from fear but as if a cold current
-of air from the mountains had touched him. Suddenly a light cloud
-of mist seemed to come up out of the valley and from it emerged the
-semblance of a stately warrior, whose countenance, seen as in a white
-light, bore a striking resemblance to the Prince’s father. His stature
-was above that of ordinary man. He was clad, it seemed, in brilliant
-chain-mail. A sword hung at his belt, a spear was in his hand, a
-bow at his back. He stood erect with one foot advanced and one hand
-outstretched as if in benediction over the Prince’s head. Luminous,
-translucent, quivering with light, yet very real, was the presence. The
-Prince involuntarily raised his hand and bowed his head in salutation.
-Belteshazzer sat still, calmly regarding the vision.
-
-“You may speak to him freely,” he said.
-
-“Who are you that comes so gloriously?” demanded the Prince.
-
-A strong voice seemed to answer: “I am Achæmenius, your ancestor,
-Prince of Iran. I am permitted by the Supreme Power to march at your
-side. In you I see the hope of the Aryans, the most worthy son of my
-family. Be of good cheer! A host encamps about you. Only seek ever
-after the truth and avoid the lie. Behold! error is creeping into
-the minds and hearts of the Aryan people. Idolatry and false magic,
-fostered by the evil ones, gain headway among them. It is for you ever
-to strive for truth and for the knowledge of God, the one supreme God,
-known to our race from the ancient times, known to this Belteshazzer
-and by him worshiped. It is your duty to restore our people to right
-worship!”
-
-“But what is to come? What course shall I pursue, O glorious Spirit?”
-
-“It is not given me to prophesy. Only the Supreme One may give the
-spirit of prophecy. But I know that you are chosen to be a leader and
-that many peoples shall bow down before you as lord. Keep ever your
-purpose to be true and truthful, to live uprightly and justly, and
-to banish from among our people idolatry and lying. More am I not
-permitted to say. Farewell!”
-
-As suddenly as the presence had appeared, it passed away, seeming to
-dissolve in thin air; and only the two men remained, sitting side by
-side on the rock, with the dark vale before them, the breeze whispering
-about them and the brilliant stars above. The young man was the first
-to speak. He rose and shook himself as one might who rises from a
-troubled dream.
-
-“Was it a vision, O Prince of God?” he demanded, “or was it a man? Was
-it a spirit, or did I dream?”
-
-Belteshazzer answered somewhat reproachfully: “My son, this was no
-dream! You have seen a veritable spirit, one who lived in the flesh
-and reigned in Iran centuries ago. Under him marched a great army from
-Bactra to Rhages and thence south into Fars, driving out the ancient
-peoples and there establishing his kingdom. I have seen this great
-Spirit before, when Cyrus was King.”
-
-The Prince exclaimed fervently: “Then it is no fable that men who die
-shall live again! That which I have heard and doubted, now I know!”
-
-“Truly you have spoken! Death is but a change, the taking off of a
-worn-out garment, this body of earth. It is the release of the soul,
-that glorious body within, from the trammels of mortality.”
-
-“To be so glorious, it were better to die!”
-
-“Nay, not till your work is done! The life now given you is but a
-training for the future and should be lived by you in such manner that
-men will rise up and call you blessed.”
-
-They turned towards the camp, and, walking slowly, continued to
-converse upon the mysteries of life. They passed the sentinels and soon
-came to the Prince’s pavilion, where the cooks anxiously awaited their
-master’s coming to his supper, long since ready. While they supped,
-they continued the discussion and, long after their meal, they sat
-together as teacher and pupil, the one pouring forth wisdom from his
-vast store of knowledge, the other receiving and storing it in his
-mind.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-A FAREWELL FEAST
-
-
-Cambyses, the King of Kings, King of the World, made a feast at his
-palace in Hamadan in honor of his brother Bardya, who, as the order
-announcing the feast declared, was about to return to his future
-capital and home in Bactra. All the rulers and notables of Persia
-and Medea were commanded to be present on a certain day to meet the
-departing Prince and to say farewell.
-
-Forty days and more had passed since the funeral of Cyrus. The King
-accompanied by his brother and sisters, had departed with all his
-retinue from Pasargadæ and returned to Hamadan. Cambyses had no love
-for the Persian capital, but he did love Hamadan. At the latter city
-resided his boon companions, and there the moral laws were less
-observed and the people cared little what their rulers did so long as
-they themselves were allowed some license.
-
-Bardya had twice demanded of the King audience without result, and
-finally had written to him a note stating that he would presently
-return to Bactra with or without his permission. It was then that the
-King had called Prexaspes to him.
-
-“Prexaspes,” he said, glowering upon him truculently, “I expressed a
-wish to you concerning that sprig, Bardya, when we talked at Pasargadæ.
-It seems that my wish is forgotten!”
-
-The King’s countenance was clouded. He held in his hand a tablet on
-which was written the last message from Bardya. He read this aloud
-to Prexaspes, then dashed it to the floor with such force that the
-delicate plate was shattered in bits.
-
-Prexaspes was not alarmed. He had seen such ebullitions of wrath
-before. “I have not forgotten the King’s words,” he replied smoothly.
-“His commands shall be obeyed. But the Prince is so closely watched
-by the men of his body-guard and he so invariably refuses to accept
-my invitations to visit places where the--the--accident could happen
-without the people knowing the true cause, that it has been impossible
-to accomplish it.”
-
-“Nothing should be impossible when the King commands!” bellowed
-Cambyses. “Look to it sharp! Here is he demanding leave to return to
-his kingdom. His kingdom, indeed! His presence here is a displeasure to
-me. Away with you and immediately accomplish this task, or I will give
-your body to the vultures!”
-
-Prexaspes bowed low in affected terror. “If the King will permit his
-servant to speak, I have thought of a plan,” he said.
-
-Cambyses glared at him a moment, his bloated countenance flushed with
-passion and his right hand clutching nervously at the dagger on his
-thigh. It was an inner room of the great palace and they were alone.
-Prexaspes watched the madman closely, ready to flee or to engage him
-in mortal combat should he attack. Beneath his own Medean robe lurked
-a long, keen dagger which he well knew how to use. But the King was
-not so angry as he pretended. Seeing that his servant was properly
-impressed, he said more calmly: “A plan? Well it is that you have a
-plan! Speak!”
-
-“Permit me to see that no one listens or lurks near,” suggested
-Prexaspes, backing towards the door. He drew the heavy curtains and
-looked into the hall. He looked out of the narrow windows into the
-garden. Satisfied that no one could hear, he went close to the King.
-
-“O King, your gracious leave being given,” he said, “I suggest that
-you give a great feast in honor of your brother and that you publicly
-consent that he may return to Bactra. Permit me to arrange for his
-departure. I will suggest to him that he is in danger and that he flee
-from this city at night. I will pretend to be his friend. He shall
-arrive at no other destination than death. There will ride out towards
-Rhages next day one who looks like him so much that they cannot be
-distinguished save by friends. In the desert beyond Rhages, this man
-will disappear, and it will be announced that your brother has been
-carried away by robbers. His friends must be kept here by your order.
-Let me have your signet ring, that I may have my orders obeyed.”
-
-“Who is the man that resembles Bardya so much?”
-
-“It is Gaumata, the man whose ears the great Cyrus caused to be cut off
-because of his insolence.”
-
-“Nay, not for any fault of his, Prexaspes, but because my father hated
-and despised him. Now I think of him, I do remember a great likeness
-between them. Proceed! Here is my signet. Only see to it that I be rid
-of this pestilent fellow!”
-
-The King turned away, dismissing his chamberlain with a gesture.
-Prexaspes at once left the room and proceeded to his quarters in the
-palace, where he shut himself in and occupied himself for some time
-in writing three documents--one, an order from the King commanding
-Prexaspes to slay Bardya, the King’s brother; one, a message to Bardya
-permitting him to return to Bactra on a certain day; and, the third, a
-decree directing a great feast to be held in honor of his departure.
-Having sealed these with the King’s signet, Prexaspes went to the west
-wing of the palace, where Bardya and his sisters had their residence
-and where the King never went. He requested the servants to inform the
-Prince that he bore a message from the King.
-
-Bardya was moodily pacing back and forth in the park adjacent to the
-palace when the servant found him. He was going over in his mind the
-details of a plan he had formed for escape. By the King’s orders he
-had not been allowed to go and come as freely in the city as he chose.
-He knew that spies were constantly watching his movements and that any
-attempt to escape on his part would lead to instant arrest. He directed
-the servant to bring Prexaspes to him, and presently that worthy
-appeared and bowed low before him.
-
-“Live forever, O Prince!” said Prexaspes. “If I am permitted to speak,
-I have a message from the King.”
-
-Bardya looked upon Prexaspes loftily and disdainfully. This carefully
-dressed, combed and curled courtier of the King pleased him not. This
-man was the embodiment of the Mede, the luxury-loving, mixed breed of
-Aryan and Semite, whom the Prince despised.
-
-“Speak!” he said shortly.
-
-“I have here an order of the Great King directing that you may return
-to your dominions one week from to-day, and a second order that a
-great feast be made in your honor and that you be sent forth properly
-escorted by one hundred men under my charge.”
-
-He paused. The Prince’s face lighted with joy and he struck his hands
-together as he exclaimed: “Truly this is good news, Prexaspes! How
-about my sisters and companions?”
-
-“It is not ordered that they accompany you.”
-
-The Prince’s face grew dark. “What?” he demanded harshly. “Does this
-King deny my sisters their right to go where they choose and does he
-insult me by withholding the company of my friends?”
-
-Prexaspes glanced about uneasily and placed a finger on his lips,
-shaking his head warningly. He drew nearer to the Prince, saying in a
-low voice: “Have a care, Prince Bardya! The King waits only for some
-excuse and for a convenient day, to slay you. I will reveal to you what
-I know. Swear to keep silent should you escape! Give me the royal word
-of an Achæmenian that you will not betray me and that when you come to
-your kingdom you will remember me as a King should. Then will I reveal
-what is planned to compass your death.”
-
-Bardya hesitated. He searched the dark countenance of Prexaspes,
-striving to penetrate the mask of earnestness there assumed.
-
-“You have my word. Speak!” he said after some hesitation.
-
-“I am indeed commanded to lead you with the escort of one hundred men
-toward Rhages, but it is also ordered that you be slain before you
-reach that city. I am not willing to stain my hands in the royal blood
-of Iran. Neither am I willing that my head pay the forfeit of failing
-to have the King’s orders obeyed. Therefore, believe me, I have planned
-in good faith for your escape. On the night before the day set for
-your departure, the feast will be held. You must attend the feast.
-At midnight there will be a great exhibition of magic by the priests
-of the Magi. The King will be drunk by that time and engrossed with
-watching the performances. You will then have opportunity to leave the
-assembly room unnoticed by him and to return to your apartments. I
-will see that the guards are removed. You will take what jewels you
-have and leave your apartments to meet me at the western gate of the
-park, where horses will await us. Wear a rough soldier’s cloak over
-your armor. It will be easy for us to pass the guards and leave the
-city, as I shall have the pass-words. I will accompany you beyond the
-city limits on the northern road. I will put money in your saddle-bags
-and you may travel as a merchant. As soon as you are beyond the city
-I will return. Next day, there will ride forth one who much resembles
-you and who will dress as you dress,--Gaumata, the Magian. He will ride
-beyond Rhages. He will there disappear, and those who allow him to
-escape will feel the wrath of the Great King. Meanwhile you may travel
-unnoticed to Bactra. Is it not a good plan?”
-
-Bardya listened with distrust. He did not answer immediately. He
-pondered, not the plan, but the man who proposed it. As if reading
-his thoughts, Prexaspes added: “Why need you distrust me? If I chose
-to slay you, could I not come with the King’s order, take you to the
-dungeons, and there have you slain? Why should I make this plan? Surely
-you do not fear that I am able, single-handed, to overcome you on the
-northern road,--you, than whom no stronger swordsman rides a Nicæan
-steed! You will be armed and have a coat of mail. You may take all
-precautions. I seek only to do you a service.”
-
-His words touched the Prince’s vanity. Of course he feared no single
-man, he the celebrated strong-arm Prince of the world! The desire for
-liberty was strong in him and the romance of a night escape appealed to
-him.
-
-“Prexaspes, I agree,” he said. “It matters little whether you speak
-truly or falsely. It will be better to try an escape than to remain
-here; and, should the King overtake me with his guards, I can no more
-than die. Should I escape by this plan, come to me at Bactra and I will
-reward you royally. Or better still, times and seasons may change and
-Kings may change; and if Ahura-Mazda be willing, I may be here again
-some day able to give great honors and rewards!”
-
-Prexaspes smiled beneath his curly beard. His snake-like eyes flashed.
-“Let it be settled, then,” he rejoined. “At the midnight hour, return
-to your apartments, not letting any of your friends know your purpose.
-Meet me at the western park gate alone, and we will ride forth alone.
-Leave word with your servants that you are tired and are not to be
-called until the noon hour on the morrow. Farewell for the present!”
-
-Prexaspes turned away and disappeared through the shrubbery. The Prince
-paced onward till he came to the western limits of the park and noted
-the gate of which Prexaspes had spoken. He also saw that a company of
-soldiers had their tents pitched among the trees beyond the gate and
-that certain of them as guards paced back and forth along the wall
-bounding the park. He turned on his heel and returned to the palace.
-The guards watched him as long as he was in sight and murmured to each
-other concerning him, their attitude being sympathetic. The Prince was
-a man of soldierly figure and gracious demeanor. These men would go far
-to execute the orders of the King of Kings, but they admired the Prince
-and would not willingly have harmed him.
-
-The Prince walked slowly, his mind revolving the plan suggested for
-his escape, his head bent and his eyes cast down. He did not see his
-sister, Athura, coming towards him until he heard her soft voice.
-
-“Brother, why so downcast? Why so thoughtful and preoccupied?”
-
-His countenance lighted with pleasure. There existed between these two
-a sincere affection. He leaned much upon this sister, whose mind, like
-that of her great father, was acute and whose judgment was sound.
-
-“How beautiful is my sister!” he said, quoting one of the
-poets--“Fairer than all the women of earth, more to be beloved than
-wealth! Her breath is as fragrant as the breath of the rose; her eyes
-are deeper than the dark vault of heavens at night; her heart is as
-pure as the white snow on Demavend!”
-
-“Wait till you behold some maiden who will find favor in your sight!
-Then your sister will be remembered only as your very good friend and
-your songs of praise will be another’s,” she said. “Did I not see that
-man, Prexaspes, with you a moment ago?”
-
-“Yes, Princess. I have something to tell you. Let us go yonder to that
-seat beneath the oak tree. It is apart from all others, so that no one
-may overhear.”
-
-They went to a rustic seat beneath the spreading branches of a great
-oak and sat down side by side, and he related all that Prexaspes had
-said.
-
-“What do you advise?” he asked.
-
-Athura listened closely, her countenance expressing distrust, surprise,
-and incredulity. She took from the wide belt, that gathered her
-beautiful robe loosely about her waist, a small roll of papyrus.
-
-“Here is a letter from my Prince which has somewhat to say of this
-danger you are in,” she said. “I advise that you distrust Prexaspes.”
-
-Bardya looked over her shoulder as she unfolded the paper. “‘_Fairest
-and best of all maidens, Princess of my soul_,’” he read aloud
-laughingly.
-
-Athura quickly turned the first portion of the letter under, saying,
-“You would joke if death were about to seize you! You shall not read
-the sweet things he has written. You know not the meaning of them, even
-if you did believe yourself in love with the daughter of Orobates.”
-
-Bardya in pretended anger placed his hand over her mouth. “Let not that
-be mentioned!” he exclaimed, with simulated sternness. “I was sixteen
-and she was very fair. Though she was the daughter of a groom, even yet
-I sigh for her.”
-
-Having found that part of the letter which she desired to read, Athura
-said: “Listen to what my Prince says. This was written thirty days
-ago and was sent to his mother’s house, where he supposed I would be
-and where I should have been but for a bear of a brother who is King.
-Listen!
-
-“‘I have been much troubled concerning the words of that great teacher,
-your father’s former counselor, Belteshazzer, the Hebrew. He is a
-prophet, acquainted with all wisdom, speaking face to face with the
-messengers of God. He showed me a vision on the day we halted near
-Susa. He had been in the wilderness near by and was returning to the
-city, when I met him on the bank of the Choaspes. He showed me a vision
-of Achæmenius, the common ancestor of our royal family, yours and mine.
-A glorious vision! Belteshazzer can read all minds and knows what is in
-the hearts of men; and he said that the King meditated harm to Prince
-Bardya. Therefore, I beseech you, my soul, that you advise Bardya to
-escape as soon as he may and return to Bactra, where he will be safe.
-
-“‘I am now at Damascus, the chief city of Syria, resting before
-we continue to Sardis. I hear nothing of wars in the realms I go
-to govern, save the depredations of certain wild tribes on the
-northeastern border. I look forward to lonely days without you. I
-may find opportunity to subdue the Ionian cities, which are far too
-independent and do not properly recognize the majesty of Iran. Till I
-hear from you I--’”
-
-Athura paused and replaced the letter in her belt, saying, “The rest is
-for me alone.”
-
-Bardya sat dreamily listening to the rustle of the breeze in the oak
-leaves and gazing at the dark ridges of Mount Elwend in the west. “I
-have never thought much of visions, prophecies, or wonder-working
-performers who deceive the eye by quick movements,” he said after
-a moment of silence. “Darius says there is a future life; that the
-soul, leaving this body as one leaves a worn-out cloak, passes into
-the unseen world and continues to live; that Ahura-Mazda is a God in
-very truth and that He sends messengers to earth. Darius is wise and
-learned. If there is a future life and if congenial spirits hover round
-us, then indeed must those spirits who surround the King be all devils!
-His savage mind is blinded by love of power and moved to murder by
-jealousy and fear of me, his brother. I remember Belteshazzer, when
-he was a great and trusted counselor of Cyrus, our father. I feared
-him, too; and no man who ever looked into his reproving eye could do
-otherwise than fear him. I wish I could know the mind of Prexaspes.
-He seemed sincere. I will go with him and trust to my own arm for
-protection. But, sweet sister, I fear to leave you here in the power of
-my brother. Can you not flee with me?”
-
-“Fear not for me, brother. Cambyses will not harm me. He has no excuse.
-I am not in line for the throne. The right to rule goes to the male
-descendants of the Achæmenian family. I must not leave Artistone. How
-can I go now? I should hinder you. Besides, I must wait here for my
-Prince.”
-
-Bardya did not argue with her further, and she did not oppose his plan
-of escape further.
-
-The feast day came. There gathered into the great assembly hall of
-the palace a thousand of the notables of earth to honor the departure
-of Prince Bardya to his realms. Prexaspes had spared no expense in
-adorning the palace and in preparing the feast and the entertainments
-that should accompany it. The many pillars shining with burnished
-gold plate, which supported the gilded beams of the palace roof,
-were festooned with garlands of flowers, interwoven with streamers
-and bunting of many colors. The heavy tapestries of the doors in the
-assembly room were drawn back with silver chains. Across one end of
-this room a table was set, from the ends of which extended two longer
-tables in such manner that the King, when sitting at the center of the
-first, could see all his guests before him. Those he delighted to honor
-would sit at his table; others of less consequence would occupy the
-others. Snowy linen covers were laid. Heavy dishes of gold and silver,
-jars of beautiful Samos pottery, and vases from Egypt and Greece were
-put in place on them. Apples, peaches, plums, grapes, pomegranates,
-figs, and other rare and luscious fruits were heaped on shining
-platters. Confections, sweet cakes, nuts, salads, and relishes were in
-profusion. Flowers filled the air with delicious odors. Magnificent
-couches, on which the feasters might sit or recline as they chose, were
-placed along the tables. At one side of the room facing the King’s
-place was a low platform with seats for musicians, who with divers
-musical instruments would furnish sounds more or less harmonious while
-the great ones feasted. In adjacent rooms, graceful dancers, supple
-tricksters, and athletes were waiting to go in before the King and
-perform. A thousand servants, cooks, tasters, waiters, and attendants
-made ready the feast.
-
-As the sun disappeared behind the western mountains, a fanfare of
-trumpets announced that the feast was ready, and thousands of candles
-were lighted in the great banquet-room. None of those invited had
-failed to come. The King’s invitation was regarded as a command. In the
-cloak-room adjacent to the banquet-room, each guest received a purple
-robe to be worn during the feast and to be carried away by him at its
-close.
-
-At the appointed moment Prexaspes, as ruler of the feast, appeared,
-gorgeously dressed and having in his hand a wand. As the guests entered
-he indicated the seats to be occupied by them, placing them according
-to their rank. At the King’s table sat Crœsus, late king of Lydia, a
-prisoner, but an honored guest. There sat also Nebuchadezzer, Prince of
-Nineveh, and a score of other princes whose dominions were no longer
-theirs to rule, but who, though prisoners of the King of Kings, sat at
-his table and showed to the world that they lived on his bounty. When
-all had been duly placed, they remained standing with faces turned
-towards the throne at one end of the room and awaited the coming of
-the King. At the left of the throne was a door covered by heavy purple
-curtains hanging from ceiling to floor.
-
-Having placed all the guests, Prexaspes touched a cord and the tinkle
-of a bell announced the coming of royalty. The curtains of the door
-near the throne were parted and disclosed the King advancing, followed
-by his brother, his wife, and his two sisters, the women being closely
-veiled. The King strode heavily forward, his swarthy countenance
-lowering and his black eyes sweeping over the guests. All the guests
-bowed low towards him. He sat down heavily at his table. The guests
-remained standing until Prince Bardya, his sisters, and the King’s
-wife had taken their places at the King’s table. Then, at a wave of
-Prexaspes’ wand, the guests sank upon their seats. Immediately, nimble
-servants with pitchers and goblets appeared from side doors and poured
-wine for each guest. The King’s cup-bearer stood with a great cup of
-Helbon wine at the side of his master. The King seized the cup and,
-after waving it slightly toward his guests, drank from it long and
-deeply. The guests also drank. The musicians took their places and
-began playing a weird melody, monotonous and long-drawn-out, with many
-repetitions and variations. A murmur of conversation arose.
-
-Servants brought on trays of smoking meat, of delicious vegetables
-and pastries, and for each guest the food to which he was accustomed,
-prepared to suit his taste. The King ate and drank in silence, not even
-addressing a word to his wife, who sat at his right hand. Bardya and
-the royal sisters ate little. Their hearts were full of anxiety over
-the proposed escape of the Prince. But the King drank much wine. He
-also called for soma and drank of that liquor deeply. And as he drank,
-he watched Prexaspes, who ever moved nervously about the room directing
-the feast. Would the elegant Mede fail? The King began to devise a
-sufficient punishment to inflict on him should he fail. Dancers were
-brought in after the feast had well begun and gave an exhibition of
-sinuous movement, like the curving of a snake’s folds, or the graceful
-undulations of the sea waves. After the dancers there were performances
-by jugglers, mountebanks, and tricksters, and athletes displayed their
-strength and agility in wrestling-bouts. At the close of the feast,
-Prexaspes stood in the midst and called for silence. Then he said,
-“O King, by your gracious permission, I will now bring in the Magians
-who hold communion with the spirits of the departed, who have control
-of the powers of the gods, and who will divine and prophesy for you,
-besides doing many other wonderful things.”
-
-The faces of all were turned upon the King; and only on the
-countenances of the Persian nobles and the faces of Bardya and his
-sisters was disapproval written.
-
-“Let them come in with their tricks,” said the King, sneeringly. “They
-may delude us, but they will not convince us. Let them come!”
-
-“Let the lights be partially extinguished!” commanded Prexaspes.
-
-Immediately servants extinguished the candles, except a few at the
-King’s table, and semi-darkness enveloped them all. Then a band of six
-Magians entered. Servants brought in a heavy square table and set it
-in the open space between the dining tables. Others brought in some
-small tablets and balls, which were placed on the table. The magicians
-prostrated themselves before the King in salutation and afterwards
-gathered around the square table in silence and joined hands. They were
-clad in black robes, which covered their bodies in loose folds from
-their necks down. Their hands were visible below the wide sleeves of
-the robes, and their pallid faces shone dead white in the semi-gloom
-below the dark turbans wound loosely around their heads.
-
-As soon as the lights were extinguished, the King turned his back
-upon Bardya as if weary of his presence. Then a hand touched Bardya
-on the shoulder, and, turning, he saw Prexaspes who beckoned with a
-nod and disappeared into the gloom of a side chamber. Bardya waited
-a moment until the attention of all was concentrated upon the group
-of magicians; then, after pressing Athura’s hand lightly, he rose
-and quietly followed Prexaspes. The King seemed not to notice his
-movements, but was really watching.
-
-Five minutes later, the Prince, wrapped in a soldier’s cloak, stole
-out through the park, met Prexaspes there alone, mounted a horse held
-by him in readiness, passed through the park, and rode away with him
-through the city towards the northern road. When clear of the city
-environs, they spurred away at a gallop side by side towards the city
-of Rhages lying at the foot of distant Mount Demavend.
-
-Meanwhile, in the King’s presence, many wonderful things were
-happening. After several minutes of silence on the part of the Magians,
-the heavy table around which they stood rose to the ceiling without
-apparent supporting hands and there remained several minutes. Balls of
-light floated about the room near the ceiling. A tree sprang up out of
-the floor and visibly grew till its top touched the suspended table.
-Then the table slowly circled about the room, returned, and settled
-down to the floor. The tree disappeared as it settled. Upon the table,
-immediately, a mass of writhing snakes appeared, hissing and shooting
-forth angry red tongues, so that the guests were about to rise and flee
-in terror. They disappeared. The voice of the chief magician said in
-sepulchral tones:
-
-“None of these mighty wonders will bring harm to any of you, unless you
-make a noise and attempt to flee. Remain quietly in your places and
-behold the wonders of the gods! Know that the spirits of the mountains
-and of the valleys and of the plains are here, the rulers of earth,
-whom we serve. Know that there is no other religion worthy of practice
-than ours. Let the Great King behold and act accordingly!”
-
-The voice ceased and a hush fell over the assembly. The King moved
-uneasily in his seat, and answered in loud, sarcastic tones:
-“Tricksters have existed in all nations and in all ages! Your
-spirits are lying spirits conjured up in your own minds to frighten
-superstitious men. Bah! There are gods and gods! Show me a spirit!”
-
-“It is well!” answered the magician. “We obey the King of Kings. Only
-say nothing and move not!”
-
-A deep hush fell upon the assembly. The group of magicians drew
-together again and formed a circle about the table, placing their
-joined hands upon it and bowing their heads. Only the chief stood as
-if in a trance, looking upward. Then, above the heads of the group a
-pallid, misty light suddenly appeared, growing in density and assuming
-shape, until it became the shape of a man, wavering, translucent,
-with a sneering, evil countenance and sinister eyes, such as are ever
-ascribed to evil spirits. The King drew in his breath sharply and bent
-forward startled and alarmed. A voice seemed to come from the spirit:
-
-“What would you ask, O King of the Earth?”
-
-For a moment the King could not reply. He was agitated beyond measure.
-He summoned all his bravado, and with a great effort stammered, “Who
-and what are you?”
-
-A derisive smile curled the features of the apparition, as the voice
-replied: “I am your soul’s companion, the spirit that goes with you
-wherever you go! I am your evil genius! I am--you!”
-
-Rage filled the heart of the King.
-
-“This trick shall not benefit you, O Magians!” he shouted. “Prove to me
-that this is no delusion or death shall be your portion!”
-
-“Demand of me any proof, O King!” responded the voice.
-
-“Make your own proof!” retorted the King.
-
-Again the derisive smile curled the devilish features of the
-apparition, while a shivering silence possessed the wondering guests,
-who looked from it to the King and from the King to it, astonished at
-the resemblance between them.
-
-“At midnight, O King, last night,” said the apparition in a sepulchral
-tone, “I walked with you on the portico at the door of your bedroom and
-your thoughts were of your father and of your brother. Did you hear the
-whispering in the plane-tree? The thought then in your mind has been
-accomplished; and there comes hither the spirit of him that troubled
-you!”
-
-The apparition seemed to turn about and look in fear to the north;
-then, suddenly, it faded away. A groan arose from the chief Magian.
-He stirred uneasily and turned his pallid face towards the north. His
-hands were clenched and he stared into space with terror-stricken gaze.
-Deathlike hush pervaded the great hall. Then slowly and waveringly
-there appeared in the place where the former apparition had stood a
-ghastly face; and it was the image of Bardya, the King’s brother. With
-fierce eyes it glared down upon the King; and it seemed that blood
-poured down over the forehead in a trickling stream from a deep cleft
-in the crown of its head.
-
-A shriek of terrified anguish arose from the Princesses. A chorus
-of exclamations broke from the guests. The apparition suddenly
-disappeared. The King sat as if stunned for a moment, looking fixedly
-at the point where the apparition had been, while his face was
-contorted with fear and horror. The Magians silently dissolved their
-circle and quickly disappeared. The lights flared up as servants ran
-hither and thither relighting the candles. The King arose unsteadily.
-The guests arose and stood in their places while he wearily moved,
-or rather tottered, to the door by which he had entered, and
-disappeared. The sisters, supporting each other and weeping, left
-the room. The guests then broke into noisy comment and wonder and
-proceeded to fortify their shaken nerves with wine. Orthodox Persians
-muttered curses on all Magians. The unorthodox shook their heads and
-superstitiously resolved to make sacrifices on the morrow to the
-spirits of the hills and to the gods of the Magians. Arguments arose
-for and against Magism; but the advocates of that cult had the better
-of it, since as all had seen, it was capable of ocular demonstration.
-But the orthodox said it was the religion of devils; as for them,
-they would continue to worship the Good Spirit! Besides, the latter
-said, it was evident a fraud had been perpetrated, because Bardya, the
-King’s brother, had been at the feast well and alive. How could this
-apparition have been his ghost? In this argument they had the best of
-it. But they marveled at the King’s agitation.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-THE GREAT KING INTRODUCES A STRANGE CUSTOM
-
-
-The Great King was much shaken by the strange apparitions which the
-Magi had conjured up; but he assured himself that the whole performance
-had been trickery and he fiercely planned vengeance upon the
-performers. He had always boasted of his disbelief in gods and spirits,
-though puzzled sometimes at the magic of the fire-worshipers. This
-time, however, his gross nature had received a severe shock and while
-he awaited the return of Prexaspes that he might learn how his brother
-had been dealt with, he drank deep potations of soma and half-wished
-that his brother were indeed alive so that the horrid vision might be
-proven false. He paced back and forth impatiently in his apartments,
-while his servants stood without, breathlessly watching for every
-command lest in his present mood delay on their part would entail upon
-them grave consequences.
-
-A horseman galloped through the silent city from the north shortly
-before daylight and, with a hasty word to a sleepy guard, passed
-through the walls into the park and thence to the stables at the
-rear of the palace. Leaving his horse in the care of servants, he
-entered the palace. It was Prexaspes. After a few minutes in his own
-apartments, he emerged clad in his elegant court dress and went to the
-King’s apartments, where he knew the King waited. A servant announced
-his presence and he was at once admitted to the King’s presence. He
-entered, closed the door behind him, and stood before the King with
-bowed head.
-
-“Well?” demanded the King, hoarsely.
-
-“The King’s orders have been obeyed.”
-
-“How?”
-
-“A sword-stroke from behind as we rode northward. The body has been
-safely disposed. Let the King be at peace. Bardya is no more!”
-
-“Swear to me by all that you deem holy! Did the sword cut penetrate the
-brow?”
-
-“It did. I swear by all the gods of the hills and valleys, by Ahriman
-and by the spirits of my fathers!”
-
-The King shuddered. Mingled relief and fear shone in his countenance.
-
-“I have had strange proof of the truth of your words, Prexaspes,” he
-said. “Surely you are in league with devils! I knew you belonged to
-the Magian sect, but I did not know their power. How did they know the
-manner of Bardya’s death? How could they show it?”
-
-Prexaspes smiled. He had learned what had transpired before the King.
-
-“Without their aid it would have been impossible to have accomplished
-the destruction of the Prince,” he answered. “It would be well if the
-Great King should show favor to the Magi. They can help him much. With
-the assistance of the diviners and those who have familiar spirits, who
-can speak with the spirits of the dead and with the gods of the hills,
-the King will be able to detect those who might plot against his life.
-Nothing can be done but what they may find it out if they desire. They
-help and protect their friends.”
-
-“But they worship the Lie, which from all ages has been proscribed by
-the laws of Iran,” said the King, doubtfully. “I know they have power
-to perform wonders; but I deem them tricks. What care I? If their
-tricks aid me, they shall be rewarded.”
-
-“It is right for the Great King thus to speak for the ears of the
-people!” returned Prexaspes, insinuatingly. “But if the Great King does
-practice all the good precepts of Ahura-Mazda, what avails it or how
-does it benefit him? I dare to speak plainly, so that you may receive
-the aid of the powerful Magi whose followers are more numerous than all
-others in Medea, Assyria, and Babylonia. The deed done at your command
-this night has been accomplished by their aid. The men of orthodox
-faith, the worshipers of Ahura-Mazda, hate you. Only by allying
-yourself with the Magi can you hope to retain your throne. With their
-aid you may defy your enemies if they should learn of Bardya’s end.
-Ally yourself with the Magi and their gods and they will gratify all
-your wishes. Know, O King, that these men have wonderful powers, even
-greater than the priests of Egypt or of Babylon who know some of their
-arts.”
-
-Cambyses was shaken. In him there was some good. Unconsciously his
-physical passions had been overcoming the good; but, occasionally,
-there broke through the density of his grosser nature an inward voice
-urging him to a better life. But he had no doubt of his absolute right
-to do as he might will, and he had come to believe that ordinary rules
-of right and wrong did not apply to him. Prexaspes, seeing the King’s
-hesitation, continued:
-
-“Let not my words arouse resentment, O King! I seek but to do you good.
-My own welfare depends upon your will. I can call to your aid the Magi
-and the unseen powers. In their circle I stand next to Patatheites,
-the High Priest. Have I not obeyed your will and removed from your
-path the greatest danger to your rule? Trust me still further and you
-shall continue to have true service. Give to the Magi the chief right
-to exercise religious power throughout the world, and their vast power
-will keep you safely. Make now an alliance with them and it shall be
-well with you.”
-
-The King paced back and forth across the room, debating the matter.
-Hating all religions, because he wished to disbelieve them, his
-long-standing prejudices were not easily moved.
-
-“If I do not make this compact, then what?” he asked presently.
-
-“If you are abandoned by them, how shall you receive any aid?” rejoined
-Prexaspes. “Certainly you can expect nothing of the followers of
-Zoroaster! They have the power and the will to do you hurt. But,
-through me, the Magi offer you their powerful aid. Believe me, O King,
-it will be your only wise course to accept their support.”
-
-Cambyses nervously stroked his beard. He was not a coward. No one
-had ever accused him of a lack of courage. He despised the orthodox
-faith because of its moral laws, and he hated its followers. But he
-recognized the strength of the argument advanced by Prexaspes. The
-Magian sect was a powerful one. Medea, Assyria, Babylon, Syria, and
-Phrygia were full of them. They claimed to be in league and communion
-with the gods of the earth, and indeed practiced the occult arts,
-known more or less to all peoples, and in modern days followed by some
-so-called spiritualists. All of them were not evil. Many of them were
-reputed to be the prophets and seers and warned the people against
-the evil men who made use of their arts for their own advancement.
-Stringent laws had been made and enforced throughout Iran against that
-branch which attacked the doctrines of Zoroaster. But this cult had
-flourished especially in the mountains of Medea. Fire-worshipers fed
-their sacred flames on every hilltop. The evil and depraved gathered
-to them and harassed those who opposed them. They were known to the
-orthodox as worshipers of the “Lie,” to distinguish them from those
-who worshiped the “Truth,” as embodied in Ahura-Mazda. Cambyses had
-sometimes consulted the Magians and required oracles of them. His
-father had severely reprimanded him for such practices and had caused
-the ears of Gaumata, one of the leaders of the Magi at Hamadan, to be
-cut off as a warning to him and to his sect that Cambyses should not be
-influenced by them.
-
-Cambyses reviewed these matters as he paced nervously back and forth,
-while Prexaspes awaited his decision with bowed head and downcast eyes.
-He decided to comply.
-
-“So be it! Only let everything be done in a politic way!” he exclaimed
-harshly. “I will make a league with the Magi. They shall have freedom
-to worship as long as I rule. They must nevertheless obey me. I will be
-King alone and will not permit interference. But the laws against them
-shall be annulled and I will favor them with offices.”
-
-“It is well!” said Prexaspes, bending low and touching the floor with
-his hands. “Now, if the Great King will permit, I will withdraw and
-will carry out our plan to deceive the populace into the belief that
-Bardya still lives in the flesh.”
-
-The King nodded and turned away. Prexaspes, with a smirk of triumph on
-his face, left the room. Passing out into the hall, he was about to go
-to his room, when a servant approached and, after a low salutation,
-said, “Noble Prexaspes, my royal mistress, the Princess Athura,
-commands that you come to her waiting-room. She would speak with you.”
-
-Prexaspes hesitated a moment. Then, drawing his breath sharply, as if
-bracing himself to a severe task, and assuming a cheerful demeanor,
-he followed the servant. Athura and her sister had not retired to
-their beds after the banquet. The departure of Bardya, followed by
-the fearful scene produced by the Magi, had rendered them sleepless.
-They had ordered their servants to watch for and report the return of
-Prexaspes to them. Prexaspes entered the room where they awaited him
-and bowed very low before them, touching the floor with his hands. Then
-he stood in respectful attitude with downcast eyes, awaiting their
-pleasure. The eyes of the maidens were red with weeping.
-
-“Speak, false traitor! Was it you that struck Bardya and slew him?”
-exclaimed Athura, approaching him with clenched hands and blazing eyes.
-
-Prexaspes raised his brows in well-simulated surprise.
-
-“You wrong me greatly, most noble Princess! What mean you? No one has
-slain Bardya,” he answered.
-
-“But I saw his spirit! He appeared at the close of the feast, and his
-head was cleft in twain as with a sword-stroke!”
-
-Prexaspes smiled reassuringly, and drawing nearer to the Princess he
-whispered: “Believe it not, O most royal! That was but a delusion to
-convince the Great King that his will had been done. How could a spirit
-appear with cleft head? Spirits have no bodies that may be seen. But
-Patatheites was able to influence all there so that they believed they
-saw the spirit of Bardya, while the great Prince was riding swift as
-the wind to Rhages. Dry your tears! Bardya is beyond the reach of the
-King now, and in due time you will hear that he has arrived in his
-dominions. You saw no spirit. It was but a picture from the mind of the
-Magian chief.”
-
-So sincere were his words and manner that Athura was reassured. She
-never had been superstitious or believed that the Magi were other than
-tricksters. The sternness left her countenance. She smiled graciously
-and extended her hand, which Prexaspes on bended knee respectfully
-kissed while his brilliant eyes glowed with admiration. Never, he
-thought at that moment, had he seen so beautiful a face or so perfect a
-form, never such a gracious and winning smile. For a moment his heart,
-used to the ways of the world, satiated with the pleasures of life,
-leaped within him; and he felt that to deserve that gracious smile he
-would have undone all that he had done and given up all that he had
-won. The music of her voice and the sweetness of her smile dwelt with
-him many a day thereafter, bringing to him the only regret and shame
-that he had ever known since childhood.
-
-“Noble Prexaspes,” she said, “I recall my harsh words! But that was a
-horrible thing the great magician showed us; and it was well thought of
-to deceive the King! Surely my brother and I will reward you in days to
-come when all danger shall have been removed. As you have this night
-served Bardya, I promise on the word of an Achæmenian, which has never
-been broken, you will have a fitting and suitable reward. Farewell!”
-
-Bowing many times, Prexaspes backed from the room and passed hastily to
-his own quarters. The sisters, relieved of their apprehension, retired
-to rest.
-
-Next day there was much excitement in the city of Hamadan. A great
-crowd gathered along the northern road to shout a farewell to Bardya,
-the beloved. Their greetings to him who impersonated Bardya, when he
-appeared riding in the midst of a group of nobles, bowing right and
-left, were hearty and prolonged. Prexaspes rode at his side, smiling
-cynically beneath his beard and glancing occasionally up at the great
-palace on the hill where the King stood at a window gazing down upon
-the demonstration. The false Bardya passed out of the city; and so
-perfect was his resemblance to the departed in feature and dress that
-none suspected the imposture. At Rhages, a new escort was provided;
-but at a point a day’s journey beyond Rhages it was attacked by a band
-of men, supposed to be robbers, and scattered. Bardya, whether true or
-false, there disappeared and the Great King sent a punitive expedition
-into the mountains to lay waste the robbers’ homes. Certain innocent
-mountaineers suffered the Great King’s vengeance, but the King’s
-brother could not be found.
-
-Thus did Cambyses make himself sure of his throne, and for many months
-thereafter he gave himself up to riotous living, seeking in strong
-drink forgetfulness of his crime. Meanwhile he prepared for war against
-Egypt. He levied heavy taxes and called for troops from every province.
-His pride grew. He deemed himself divine. The Magi encouraged him in
-this faith and brought messages from the gods of the hills to him as
-the god of earth.
-
-Cambyses had one great sorrow. He was childless. He took many women as
-wives. His seraglio was filled with the most beautiful of the earth.
-But no child gladdened his heart. As the months passed, his mind became
-darker and more imbued with hatred of good and the love of evil. The
-Magi served him well. As his spies they listened among the common
-people and invaded the palaces of the great. He knew that the people
-feared him and did not love him. His vanity was easily wounded. Some
-who spoke offensively of him to putative friends suddenly disappeared
-and were never heard of more. Throughout the vast regions governed by
-him, his spies watched for plots and conspiracies. Incipient rebellions
-were ferociously repressed and those who plotted were tortured to death
-as examples to others.
-
-Reviewing these things in his mind one day, while walking on the
-balcony of the palace, the King looked down upon the park surrounding
-the palace and noticed a group of women sitting on benches beneath a
-tree, and saw that among them were his two sisters. Their gay chatter
-and laughter came up to his ears. He watched them a moment in scowling
-silence, and was about to resume his walk, when, as he turned, he was
-startled at seeing before him the tall form of Patatheites, chief
-priest of the Magians. The King uttered an oath, and placed his hand on
-the haft of his dagger.
-
-“How come you here?” he growled. “I like not this sudden appearing! I
-turn here or there and I behold you and know not how you come or go!
-Speak, slave!”
-
-The large, dark eyes of the Magian looked calmly into the fierce,
-sparkling orbs of the King; and before his direct gaze the latter
-quailed. Possessed of wonderful hypnotic power, Patatheites easily
-ruled those with whom he came in contact. He dared even to exercise his
-power upon the King.
-
-“Let not the King’s anger strike me!” he said soothingly. “I am his
-most obedient and willing slave. I have a message from the gods, who
-have seen fit to whisper it to me for you.”
-
-“What is it?” demanded the King, cringing somewhat and experiencing a
-chill along his spinal column.
-
-“Your expedition against Egypt will be successful, say the gods of the
-hills. Concerning that which you had in your mind as to an heir for
-your throne, I have a message also.”
-
-Cambyses looked upon the man with growing awe. To no one had he ever
-expressed the thoughts concerning his lack of an heir. How could this
-priest know that he had just been considering that subject?
-
-“How knew you my thoughts?” he demanded. “What is this message?”
-
-“How do the gods know?” returned the Magian. “This message is, that one
-of your race shall fill your throne after you, but it will be a son of
-your sister.”
-
-“What?” almost shouted the King. “Her son? and who shall be his father?”
-
-“That I know not. But I do know that it lies in your power to say who
-shall be husband to your sisters. Look about over the world and choose
-one equal to yourself.”
-
-Cambyses was silent a moment and his thought ran to one only who might
-claim to be of equal birth, the Prince of Iran. Jealous wrath arose and
-almost choked his utterance.
-
-“There is none,” he stuttered, “unless it might be that accursed
-Hystaspis!”
-
-The Magian nodded meaningly.
-
-“Even now,” said he, “she has in her bosom a letter from him which she
-is instructed to deliver to you, demanding that you give her leave to
-go to him and marry him. She will present this request. What then?”
-
-“She shall not go to him! Instead I will send him a bowstring in the
-hands of our trusty servants.”
-
-Patatheites shook his head.
-
-“No, it would mean your overthrow. The Persians and Bactrians are
-restless because you have seen fit to give freedom to the Magi; and
-they only await a leader to rise against you. They yet look for Bardya
-to return and raise the standard of rebellion. They think you have him
-imprisoned. If he could return they would that instant join him. If
-harm befall the Prince of Iran, remember that his old lion of a father
-reigns at Bactra, and that he has three hundred thousand of Cyrus’s
-veterans under his immediate command. The son is the apple of the old
-man’s eye, the center of his soul; and, in spite of his oath to Cyrus,
-which pledged him to your support, he would tear even you from your
-throne should you harm the Prince. You have nothing to fear from that
-young man. His oath binds him to you. He is such a stickler for faith
-and truth that he will not break it, even though you should refuse him
-the hand of your sister. But there is a plan whereby you may move in
-accordance with the advice of the gods, yet inflict on that Prince most
-grievous suffering if you will.”
-
-“What is this plan? I would go far to harass him. What mean you?”
-
-“The King has two sisters, both fair to look upon. There is none in
-all the world to equal them in birth save the King. Why not do as the
-ancient Egyptian kings used to do--marry these two sisters yourself?”
-
-Cambyses stared at his interlocutor with open mouth. Such an idea had
-never entered his brain. It was contrary to Aryan law that one should
-marry any one closer than a cousin in blood relationship. He swore a
-great oath of astonishment. He looked down at his sisters, the one in
-all the glory of well-developed womanhood, the other just emerging from
-childhood to womanhood, both beautiful and of royal carriage.
-
-“Which of these sisters shall mother a king?” he demanded of the
-Magian, presently.
-
-“It was not said. But why should the King choose? Is not the King of
-Kings above the laws of the Medes and Persians and may he not do as he
-will? Is not the King’s word and his decree law? If the King decree
-that he marry both his sisters, is it not law? Bah! The customs of the
-Aryans must give way to your divine will. I have spoken. Let the King
-act on my advice!”
-
-The King was silent. He contemplated his sisters. He turned again to
-the Magian, but the latter had disappeared. He looked about. He had
-not heard him go. This uncanny habit of Patatheites in appearing and
-disappearing at will made the King shiver. This new idea of taking his
-sisters in marriage, however, was a novel one and worthy of thought.
-He slowly descended by steps from the balcony to the earth and walked
-towards the group of women. As soon as the latter noticed his approach,
-there was a hasty movement among the women, some of whom departed. The
-sisters of the King arose as he approached, and stood in respectful
-attitude.
-
-“Hail, sisters!” he said, attempting to speak graciously. “I trust you
-are enjoying this pleasant weather. Winter approaches and we shall soon
-go down to Susa.”
-
-They bowed in reply. He looked them over critically. Yes, they were
-very beautiful. The younger he did not dislike so much as the elder.
-He had hated the elder with the same jealous hatred that he had felt
-towards his brother; but the younger had been a child and had not
-incurred his displeasure, nor had she ever said bitter words to him. He
-was surprised when Athura sank to her knee, saying, “I have a petition,
-O King!”
-
-He frowned down upon her, suspecting what she was about to ask.
-
-“Speak!” he said.
-
-“O brother, the Prince of Iran has begged me to remind you that our
-father, Cyrus, promised me to him in marriage. He requests that you now
-send me to him as his wife.”
-
-A smile of disdain curved the heavy lips of the King. This was the
-first time his proud sister had ever bent her knee or presented a
-petition to him. He gloated a moment over her in silence, seeking words
-that might assure her once for all of the hopelessness of her request.
-
-“Impossible!” he ejaculated. “I come to you with a message from the
-gods. His request cannot be granted now or ever. There is no one fit to
-mate with one of our family. Therefore it remains that we, you and I,
-you two and I--that we intermarry, so that the throne of our fathers
-may continue to be filled with the race of Cyrus!”
-
-Artistone gasped in astonishment. Athura rose to her feet, shocked and
-amazed. Her eyes searched the evil, leering face of her brother, to
-ascertain whether he were crazed or drunk.
-
-“Are you demented?” she gasped. “Marry your sisters? Never since Aryans
-lived has it been permitted! Death will be preferable! Are you in
-earnest? Or is it a horrible joke?”
-
-“Never have I been more in earnest, my beautiful sister!” answered
-Cambyses, mockingly. “Am I not King? Is not my decree above all law
-and custom? I tell you that presently I will issue my decree making
-it lawful for the King of the World to marry even his sister! I shall
-marry you, Athura! I will bend your proud spirit to my will. You,
-Artistone, shall be my wife. You shall be my chief wife, my queen. If
-either of you refuse, a bowstring will be your portion. My other wives
-shall be subject to you, except as I command. I have spoken. It shall
-be so!”
-
-He turned on his heel and stalked back towards the palace, while his
-sisters stood as if rooted to the earth staring at his receding form.
-He turned after going a dozen paces.
-
-“Write no more messages to that Darius,” he said to Athura. “I shall
-send a bowstring to him if you do so. The world is not large enough to
-contain him and me at the same time. I have spoken!”
-
-He continued to the palace, while his sisters, dumb with amazement and
-hot with anger, watched his receding form in silence.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-THE FORCE OF AN OATH
-
-
-The Prince of Iran paced slowly back and forth on the roof of his
-palace in the citadel of Sardis, in company with his friend Gobryas.
-From it, grand views of famous seas and lands could be had. At one
-side, the rugged crests of Mount Tmolus stretched away in verdant
-splendor; at the other, and far below, lay the beautiful plain of
-Hermus through which flowed the river Pactolus on its bed of golden
-sand. Just below, lay the great city of Sardis, capital of his
-province, rich and splendid in its Grecian beauty and Persian strength.
-Far away to the west lay the blue waters of the great sea, with its
-hundred isles where Grecian genius had made fairylands of nature’s
-own gracious handiwork. Overhead, the softly tinted azure was a well
-of golden sunshine. The air was smooth as water to the face and like
-nectar to the lungs. But the eyes of the Prince gazed not on these
-splendors. They were moody and introspective.
-
-“Brother of mine,” he was saying, “is not this a land of infinite
-pleasure? No wonder these Hellenes cling to it! No wonder they talk in
-poems and work out poems in stone. One could live here very happily,
-provided other conditions were assured.”
-
-Gobryas smiled.
-
-“By ‘other conditions,’” he suggested, “you mean that if a certain
-Princess who excels all others in the world in beauty were here, you
-would be content.”
-
-The Prince nodded a smiling assent.
-
-“Truly you are deep in your reasoning!” he replied. “Now, while these
-hills and valleys, this sea and this plain, may be beautiful, it is
-not such a paradise for me as would be the rugged hills of Persia or
-the hot sands of Iran, were I permitted to dwell there with that same
-Princess. I have often wondered whether, if I were a simple farmer or
-a sheep-herder and permitted to have her with me, I would not be far
-happier than as a ruler of this great province without her. Power is
-sweet to a man. The right to rule, to speak a word and give life or
-death, to sit as a judge righting wrongs and endeavoring to make the
-people prosperous and happy, accords with my disposition. But truly,
-Gobryas, I would give all these in exchange for a shepherd’s life with
-her, the incomparable queen, the sweetest spirit and most intelligent
-mind ever given to inhabit a perfect body. Ah, God grant that when my
-letter reached the King through her, his heart was inclined to justice
-and to redeem his father’s pledge to me! But I fear it was not. Else
-why this delay? No letter has come from her for weeks, nor has the King
-sent me word of his decision. I have been planning how I would march
-with ten thousand men to meet her, even at Damascus.”
-
-“May Ahura-Mazda favor you!” said Gobryas, heartily. “It may be the
-King will demand delay on account of his approaching war with Egypt. It
-may be that, instead of a gracious assent to marry, an order will come
-for you to lead your fifty thousand veterans to meet his army at Tyre.
-Is not your army well appointed in all its equipment, able to march
-even to Hamadan to meet this Princess--perhaps to rescue her? It may
-become necessary. The oath that you and your father took to Cyrus has
-bound you to serve an insane master, who may refuse your just petition.”
-
-“A letter from my father is overdue also,” said the Prince, ignoring
-the suggestion of his friend. “How I would like to see my royal father!
-Truly he knows the secret of youth. His years sit lightly upon his
-shoulders.”
-
-“That is because he has observed the ancient customs of his people--to
-live temperately, uprightly, and energetically.”
-
-“You have said only a part of it. Much is due to his calmness. He never
-allows passion or prejudice to upset his equanimity. He smiles at all
-terrors, hardships, or dangers. He accepts that which comes as a duty.
-His calm is infinite!”
-
-Their attention was now given to a horseman who was toiling slowly up
-the steep side of the mountain to the citadel. He was dust-covered, and
-his horse was wet with sweat.
-
-“A messenger!” exclaimed the Prince. “Now perhaps we shall hear the
-decrees of fate! Ah, Gobryas, you have never known what it is to have
-the love of such a woman, and be so in danger of losing her! God grant
-that you may some day know the sweetness of love!”
-
-Gobryas laughed. He twirled the ends of his long mustache and smoothed
-down the folds of his cloak. “While I have never been as deeply in
-love as you,” he responded, “yet I know somewhat of it. Has not your
-Princess a sister? Perhaps she has smiled on me.”
-
-“What! Artistone? She is a sweet child! Has she looked upon you with
-favor?”
-
-“I have thought so,” admitted Gobryas. “I may be mistaken. She
-condescended to talk with me sometimes when we were journeying from
-Bactra with the body of her father. Her smiles and her eyes have led me
-to believe that she regards me with approval. When I return from the
-Egyptian campaign, I shall demand leave of the King to speak to her of
-marriage, if you consent. My family is ancient. I am one of the seven
-nobles of Persia from whose daughters the kings have often chosen their
-brides.”
-
-“I will leave no influence untried in your favor,” said the Prince,
-warmly. “That will be a happy event, if we who have mingled our blood
-as brothers, should marry sisters! How slow that messenger is! His
-horse seems to have come far.”
-
-The messenger soon arrived at the citadel wall. Presently he
-appeared before the Prince, accompanied by a servant who carried
-his dispatch-bag. The Prince recognized him as one of his father’s
-messengers, a man who had followed the King of Iran on many campaigns.
-
-“Hail, royal Prince!” exclaimed the messenger, bending his knee. “I
-bring you greetings from your royal father and letters from him and
-from Cambyses, the King of Kings, who was kind enough to entrust me
-with a packet for you.”
-
-“I am glad to see you, son of Darya,” said the Prince. “Go and rest
-while I read the letters. My servants will see that you have food and
-drink. You shall have new clothing and a bag of gold. After you have
-been refreshed, come hither again, as I would question you.”
-
-The servant took the messenger away and gave him of the best. The
-Prince hastily broke the seals of the dispatch-bag and poured out its
-contents upon a table. He examined the several packets hastily and was
-disappointed at not finding any letter from Athura.
-
-“This is evil luck!” he exclaimed. “Surely she could have sent me a
-letter by the hand of this messenger! Here is an official dispatch
-bearing the King’s seal. Here is one from the noble Otanes. Ah, here is
-one from my father! We will read it first.”
-
-He broke the seal and unwrapped the vellum which covered the inner roll
-of papyrus. Unrolling this, he read aloud:
-
- “_Beloved Son_:
-
- “It gave me very great pleasure to receive your letter and to hear
- that you are well and at peace in your provinces. A letter from your
- mother has also arrived this day. She is well and speaks of her great
- loneliness in that both you and I are absent. I have determined to
- send for her that she may be with me here, since it now seems that
- I shall have to remain here several months. I have just received a
- letter from the King of Kings, by the hand of the Grand Chamberlain,
- Prexaspes, advising me that the Prince Bardya has departed for Bactra
- from Hamadan. But the Prince has not yet arrived. This letter also
- calls for a levy of one hundred thousand men for the proposed war in
- Egypt. What Prince Bardya will say to this request, I fear will not
- please the King. Reports have come which cause me much uneasiness. It
- is said the King of Kings is consulting the sorcerers and consorting
- with those who worship the Lie. His delay for months to permit Bardya
- to come hither has caused much uneasiness.
-
- “This realm is peaceful now, although the Sogdians are turbulent and
- the Getæ are ever plotting raids upon their neighbors. The fear of my
- veterans is upon them, however, and the mountain chiefs are making
- daily professions of fealty and devotion. But I think it is fear
- rather than love which causes them to be at peace and to turn traders
- instead of looters.
-
- “But I will write no more, except to say that the son of Darya will
- make due inquiries and observations of affairs at Hamadan so that he
- may report fully to you concerning them.”
-
-The Prince re-read that portion of the letter referring to Bardya.
-
-“I look for trouble as soon as Bardya arrives in Bactra,” said he. “It
-is well that my father has remained there. He will restrain the Prince.
-Now I will read the King’s letter.”
-
-He took up the largest packet, broke the seal, and untied the cord
-around it. The vellum wrappings having been removed, two clay tablets,
-written closely in the cuneiform script of official decrees, were
-revealed. He read aloud:
-
- “I, Cambyses the Achæmenian, son of Cyrus, King of Kings, King of all
- the Earth, Ruler of All Nations, the Great King, have decreed:
-
- “First: That it is lawful for the King of Kings to take to wife any
- woman whether it be his sister or another.
-
- “Second: That the Princesses Athura and Artistone shall be his wives.”
-
-The Prince stopped reading. He was speechless with amazement. He
-trembled and seemed about to fall; but Gobryas seized his arm and
-supported him.
-
-“Am I dreaming? Read it, brother, and say if what I read is there!” he
-exclaimed, handing the tablets to Gobryas.
-
-The latter seized the tablets and looked at them.
-
-“There is no mistake!” he said. “So runs the writing! But God forbid
-that such act of a maniac could be accomplished! Will he dare do this
-thing and the Persian nobles not tear him from the throne?”
-
-The Prince, with a mighty effort, recovered his strength and drew up
-his tall form to its full height, as he might if facing death. He
-looked as in a dream at the distant mountains, at the sparkling sea and
-the deep blue of the heavens filled with the soft golden light of the
-afternoon sun. His words, when he spoke, were low and tense:
-
-“This I know, that the Princess Athura will not become his wife! She
-may be at this moment dead or in prison! She would never submit to such
-infamy! This is a deadly insult to me, the son of the King of Iran,
-the son of kings better in the right to rule than he; and it shall not
-be borne! I will march to Hamadan! I will throw down that cursed beast
-from the throne! By the living God, I recall my oath to Cyrus! I am not
-bound because he has broken faith. He may have slain her. He shall die!
-Come, Gobryas! Not a moment is to be lost. Gather together my officers.
-Call into the ranks every man. We will march before the sun goes down!”
-
-He smote his palms together. His chest heaved with mighty emotions. The
-world seemed rocking to its dissolution and he about to fall with it.
-
-Gobryas placed one arm around his friend and compelled him to walk
-slowly back and forth. He feared for a moment that the Prince’s reason
-was tottering. Never had he seen him so moved. He sought for words to
-comfort him.
-
-“Beloved Prince,” he said, “listen to me! Athura is not one who will
-tamely submit to such wrong. She has not submitted. She has escaped or
-she has slain herself. But let us hear further from the messenger. Let
-us read these other letters. Then let us take counsel so that we may
-not fail. We who have not taken an oath to Cyrus will pull Cambyses
-down from his throne and slay him like a dog! Have good courage,
-brother! Let me depart this night for Persia. There I will gather the
-lords of Persia and with an army march up to your aid when you cross
-the Tigris. Athura and Artistone may have perished, but vengeance
-remains. Let us make Bardya King. Forbid it not! I will depart this
-night. Three months from now a hundred thousand Persians will be camped
-around the royal palace at Hamadan.”
-
-The Prince sat down on a bench beneath the awning and buried his face
-in his hands. He was silent for some moments, while Gobryas nervously
-paced back and forth. After a while, the Prince again arose, pallid
-but calm. He said, speaking argumentatively: “He is King. My loyalty
-is to the King, though my hatred is towards the man. Must we not put
-aside personal wrongs, Gobryas, and trust that God will avenge us? No
-Achæmenian has ever broken an oath, but has kept it in spirit as well
-as in letter. It is hard to serve such a King, but let us consider
-well before we start civil war. If what he has decreed has been
-accomplished, then am I absolved from my oath. But I must wait until I
-know what has occurred. We will send a dispatch to my father, seeking
-his counsel. Shall I plunge the world into war because of my personal
-wrong?”
-
-“I had not considered that,” answered Gobryas. “I am not oath-bound. I
-dreamed of Artistone; and lo, this cursed maniac has spoiled my dream!
-But I shall be guided by you.”
-
-The Prince went to the table on which the other letters lay, and took
-up the one sealed with the seal of Otanes. He read it aloud:
-
- “_To the royal Prince of Iran, son of Hystaspis, the King, greeting_:
-
- “I have intrusted this letter to your servant, knowing his fidelity,
- and have instructed him to deliver it to you alone and not to let it
- pass from his hands to any other while he lives. Know that the King
- has broken all the ancient laws and customs of Persia; and we, as one
- of the seven families of Persia, are calling to the other six for
- counsel. We have sent letters to your beloved father, begging him to
- consent to reign.
-
- “This Cambyses has proven that he is no longer sane. He is possessed
- of devils. His debaucheries have weakened his mind, while sharpening
- his appetite for doing evil. He has advanced the Magi to the choicest
- places in the realm. He has failed to remember that the seven noble
- families of Persia are entitled to the chief places under him, as in
- the time of Cyrus. He is a worshiper of the Lie and not of the Truth.
- He has forgotten the religion of the Aryans and has fallen into the
- hands of the fire-worshiping Magi, devil-worshipers of the hills. He
- has slain without cause many who have displeased him, even Persians
- of high rank. He has disregarded all laws and customs. The last and
- most infamous thing is this marriage with his two sisters which he
- purposes to accomplish. He has declared that he as King is above all
- laws and customs, that Aryan laws are not binding on him. Knowing by
- common report that you and the royal Princess Athura are promised to
- each other, all Persia is in a ferment of discontent over the gross
- insult shown you in thus taking your promised wife by force to his
- own vile harem.
-
- “Prince Bardya left Hamadan ten months ago for Bactra. But it is
- reported that robbers set upon and captured him just after he left
- Rhages. He has disappeared. I think the robbers were the men of
- Cambyses and that Bardya has been slain.
-
- “Send us, therefore, but one word, telling us that you march hither
- with your army; and we will meet you at Susa with two hundred
- thousand men, to throw down this beast from his throne. In you alone
- do the Persian people hope. Your father’s age and inclination may not
- permit him to accept the great burden of ruling this empire, in case
- Bardya cannot be found; and we shall call you to the throne. Send us
- orders.”
-
-The Prince was greatly moved. Gobryas watched him curiously. Would not
-this letter overcome his scruples? The Prince sat down heavily by the
-table and supported his head on his hands. After a moment of silence,
-he said:
-
-“Call the son of Darya.”
-
-Gobryas pulled a silken cord, and immediately a servant appeared.
-
-“Bring the messenger here,” he commanded.
-
-The son of Darya appeared quickly. He bowed low before the Prince,
-who pointed to a bench, indicating that he might sit. But he remained
-standing.
-
-“Son of Darya,” said the Prince, “you have come far and served
-faithfully. How is the old man, my father? Has he changed much? Is his
-body bending with age and toil?”
-
-The man’s dark eyes glowed with affection as he answered: “No, royal
-Master. Your father stoops not, nor does his face show care. It is not
-wrinkled save when he smiles on his sons, as he calls the soldiers.
-Bactra is happy, because the people dwell in safety and have justice
-dealt out to them. Your royal father remains youthful and is ready to
-march on smooth or rough roads at any moment. There is no man in all
-Iran like unto him.”
-
-“You saw and heard much as you came hither. You stopped at Hamadan and
-you gathered news there for me. Is it not so?”
-
-“I was commanded to see and hear and to report all to you.”
-
-“It is well. From what you saw and heard, know you anything concerning
-the marriage of the King to his sisters?”
-
-“It was all the talk in the rest-houses and in the streets of Hamadan
-when I came to that city. I was not permitted to see the royal
-Princesses, as the marriage feast had occurred but two weeks prior to
-my arrival. But I caught a glimpse of the royal lady, Artistone, at a
-window in the palace. I thought it was she. It was said that the King
-has ten other wives and keeps them in one part of his palace separate
-from all others, like the Assyrians. There had been much murmuring
-among the Persians and some rioting between them and the Magi. I saw
-the noble Otanes, who was very wroth and who has since left the city,
-going southward to his castle in Persia. He bade me say to you that you
-should make quick answer and that he hopes to hear that your army will
-march at once to Damascus.”
-
-“Did you hear whether the Princesses consented?”
-
-“They both refused to consent to the marriage; but the King decreed
-the marriage instead of observing the Persian custom of marrying. It
-was reported that he gave them their choice of marriage or death, and
-that Princess Athura chose death. It was also reported that one of
-the Princesses had escaped from the palace and had disappeared. I know
-that squads of cavalry were searching the country all around the city.
-It was said to be Athura who fled. I have also a verbal message from
-Prexaspes, who bade me say to you these words, ‘The bird has escaped
-the fowler’s net.’”
-
-“What else said he?” demanded the Prince, greatly agitated.
-
-“Nothing. But he gave me a purse of gold.”
-
-“Have you heard whether Athura was found?”
-
-“No. The palace servants are quaking with terror and dare not talk. It
-is said that the King slew three of them with his own hands on the day
-when the Princess fled. She had not been discovered, I think, when I
-left.”
-
-“What heard you of the Prince Bardya?”
-
-“Nothing, except that he had departed from the city some months before
-I arrived, going towards Rhages. At Rhages, it was said that the Prince
-had passed through and had then been set upon by robbers and taken into
-the mountains. It is a great mystery. Some say that he is dead, slain
-by the Magi, or that the Magi have him imprisoned in their mountain
-strongholds.”
-
-“What rumors of the war with Egypt did you hear?”
-
-“The King is gathering a great army from all parts of his empire. It is
-said he will gather it at Arbela in the spring and march thence by way
-of Damascus and Tyre.”
-
-“You heard nothing more of the Princesses?”
-
-“Nothing. I spoke with the guards of the palace. But they are
-black-faced villains from Azerbijan, under the control of the Magi; and
-they would tell me nothing.”
-
-“You may go now,” said the Prince. “You have done well. Go and rest. I
-will call you again. Make ready to return in three days.”
-
-The man departed.
-
-“What mean the words of Prexaspes, think you?” asked the Prince,
-turning to Gobryas. “Does he refer to Bardya or to Athura?”
-
-“I should say, to Athura. Prexaspes loved not Bardya, but he admired
-you. Undoubtedly he referred to Athura. Perhaps the packet containing
-the King’s decrees contained a letter from him.”
-
-Gobryas took the wrappers up from the floor where they had fallen and
-found a closely written sheet of vellum.
-
-“It is a letter from Prexaspes,” he said.
-
- “_To the Prince of Iran, greeting_:
-
- “Cambyses, King of Kings, the King of All the Earth, the Great
- King, commands that you gather fifty thousand soldiers and, leaving
- only force sufficient to garrison the chief cities under command of
- Metaphernes, that you march to Tyre, there to await the gathering
- of the other armies of the King. He has determined to punish the
- King of Egypt for injuries and insults heretofore sustained. You are
- ordered to hire all the Phœnician ships and as many of the Hellenes
- as you can. Let them also gather at Tyre. Also to engage all the
- Cretan slingers and Greek hoplites from Ionia and the islands. Pay
- them liberally from the King’s money. Bring with you the treasures of
- your provinces and gather provisions at Tyre to subsist five hundred
- thousand men for a year’s campaign in Egypt. Be ready to lead the
- King’s armies. For the King orders that you have chief command under
- him. In four months be at the place appointed.
-
- “(For the King) PREXASPES.”
-
-“The King does me honor indeed!” exclaimed the Prince, angrily. “One
-day he insults and wrongs me; the next he appoints me leader of his
-army. I will march to Tyre, indeed! If I march no further towards
-Hamadan, it will be because I find that Athura has indeed escaped.
-But, alas! Gobryas, I fear much that she escaped only by the aid of a
-dagger.”
-
-“Better the dagger than the fate of Artistone! Did the messenger not
-say he saw her at a palace window two weeks after the marriage? She is
-but a child, and could not escape! O, my Prince and brother! Give me
-leave this night to start for Persia! I do not ask you to raise your
-hand against the King! But I will stir up all Persia against him. May
-Ahriman seize him!”
-
-Gobryas paced back and forth, greatly agitated. But the Prince shook
-his head.
-
-“Let us not be hasty, dear brother!” he said. “In my own grief I had
-forgotten that you love Artistone. Whatever has been done cannot now
-be undone. Vengeance will wait and be more sure to those who make
-sufficient preparation. Let us hasten our departure. Perhaps Athura is
-flying hither, and we must prepare to receive and protect her. If it
-means war, let it come! I cannot throw Cambyses down from his throne;
-but my oath does not prohibit me from resisting his tyranny by force. I
-cannot agree with Otanes to make war on him. Nor can I permit you, my
-brother, to go into Persia to aid in a conspiracy against him. He has
-wronged you unwittingly and has put no insult upon you, as he has upon
-me. Nevertheless, if Athura has escaped and claims my protection, she
-shall have it even if war be the result.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-A CLASH OF WILLS
-
-
-Athura and Artistone, sisters of the Great King, were alone in their
-magnificent sitting-room in the palace, having dismissed all their
-attendants. They sat on a velvet-covered couch with heads close
-together, discussing the latest action of the King. Between them lay a
-tablet on which was engraved a copy of the King’s decree, declaring the
-new law, that the King of Kings might marry his sisters. Some days had
-elapsed since the King of Kings had told them of his intention, but as
-he had not again spoken on the subject, they had concluded that he was
-jesting. This decree indicated his set purpose.
-
-“Is the decree law?” asked Artistone.
-
-“No, it is not law! The King cannot set aside the customs of his people
-by decrees,” answered Athura. “I am sure that the Kings of Iran in all
-ages have been bound by law and custom. But in this new empire, it may
-be that the King’s decree is law, since there is none to gainsay it.
-This decree shall never bind me! Death will be welcome rather than
-submission to this brutal decree!”
-
-“What shall we do?”
-
-“I have my dagger! I shall slay Cambyses, or myself, should he seek to
-force us into marriage with him.”
-
-Artistone sighed. Her wan countenance indicated fear. She was only
-a child of fifteen years. But Athura lacked neither courage nor
-decision. The spirit of her father blazed within her.
-
-“Let us plan escape,” she said. “This night we will leave the palace.
-We will disguise ourselves in men’s clothing and we will fly to Persia
-for safety. The lords of Persia will protect us. We cannot escape to
-Bactra. There is but one road and that will be watched.”
-
-“How can I travel so?” her sister rejoined, tears flowing down her
-cheeks. “I am not strong like you. But I will follow you.”
-
-Further conversation was interrupted by the noise of heavy footsteps in
-the hall without. The heavy curtains at the door were pushed aside and
-the King himself appeared. He stopped just within the threshold and,
-folding his arms, struck a majestic attitude and looked down at his
-sisters.
-
-He writhed his brutal countenance into the semblance of a smile and
-said: “All hail, great Queens, wives of the King of Kings, the Great
-King! Are you not rejoicing that I have condescended to do you so great
-honor as to make you both the first ladies in all the world?”
-
-The sisters were speechless. They gazed up at the harsh features of
-their brother, as if upon a serpent.
-
-As they did not answer, he continued: “I never did like the formalities
-of a state marriage. My decree was the shortest and best way, since it
-did not require your assent. I come now to ask you to set a near date
-for the marriage feast. At the end of the week, you shall be crowned
-Queens of the Earth. What say you?”
-
-He ceased and waited for an answer, leering at them drunkenly.
-
-“Surely you mean not to make us actually wives, contrary to all the
-laws of the Medes and Persians?” said Athura.
-
-“But it is not contrary to their laws,” he retorted. “Have I not
-decreed a new law? Am I not supreme? Is there any other that can make a
-law? Ah, you are a proud woman, Athura, and your heart is set on that
-Prince of Iran whom I hate above all men and would slay, were it not
-greater satisfaction to make him serve me without his hoped-for reward
-of marrying you! I have thought well on this noble revenge! I hate you
-also; but I will bend you to my will, and you shall be my concubine if
-not my wife, whether you desire or not! As for Artistone, I hate her
-not. I prefer to make her my chief wife. She shall be Queen. I have
-spoken! Artistone, go to the Queen’s room and there abide. Athura,
-follow me now to the room set apart for my women!”
-
-Athura rose, her eyes blazing, and moved swiftly towards the King, with
-her right hand drawing from her bodice a short, keen dagger.
-
-“Truly, brute without sense or reason,” she hissed, “I come to you, but
-with death in my hand!”
-
-She leaped towards him and the dagger gleamed in her raised hand. With
-an exclamation of alarm the King sprang backward through the door.
-He stumbled and almost fell as he ran down the hall. As she did not
-pursue, he halted and shouted at her, while shaking his fist: “Death
-is it? So shall it be to you, after I bend your proud spirit!” Then he
-roared for his guards.
-
-Athura paused at the door. She heard the King’s threat and his wrathful
-call for his body-guard. She saw the hall filling with armed men. She
-turned back and fled across the room, crying to her sister: “Come!
-Follow me into the bedroom! They come to seize us!”
-
-But Artistone, as if dazed, sat still, and, weeping aloud, wrung her
-hands. Athura paused at the door of her bedroom and cried: “Come!
-Hurry!”
-
-A dozen men poured into the room and rushed towards her. Artistone
-did not move. Athura entered her room, threw shut the heavy door,
-and bolted it just as the men hurled themselves against it. The King
-shouted in a loud voice so that Athura might hear: “Let her stay there
-and starve awhile! She will come to her senses! Establish guards here
-and watch! Let her not escape on forfeit of your lives! She will kiss
-my hand presently. As for you, Artistone, come with me. You shall be
-my Queen!” He went to Artistone, took her by the hand, and led her,
-weeping bitterly, away. The sisters never saw each other again.
-
-Athura waited like a tigress at bay, dagger in hand, at her bedroom
-door, until satisfied that no attempt would be made to force an
-entrance. Then she examined the brazen lattice-work with which a
-window looking out upon the inner court was guarded and saw that it
-was securely fastened. She drew a heavy curtain over the window. Thus
-securely shut in she began to prepare for escape. She realized that
-she was powerless to aid her sister. It was equally clear to her that
-only in immediate escape could she avoid disgrace or death. It would
-be useless to ask mercy of the King. Her plan of escape was already
-formed. She was acquainted with every room and passage in the palace,
-and knew the secrets of it. Her only fear was that Cambyses also knew
-those secrets and would set guards to watch every avenue of escape.
-
-After assuring herself that no immediate attempt would be made to break
-into her retreat, she entered a large closet, which was connected
-with her room by a door and in which were stored her clothing and
-jewels. It was a long, narrow room. At one end was a window guarded
-by brazen lattice-work and by shutters of the same metal. The shutter
-was hinged to the sills and commonly stood open to admit air into the
-closet. The lattice-work was also hung on hinges but was secured by a
-massive lock on the inside. Athura took a key from a convenient hook,
-cautiously inserted it into the lock in the lattice, and found that it
-would readily turn. She looked out across the roof of a lower portion
-of the palace into the park at the western side and saw no guards.
-Satisfied that the way was yet clear, she quickly opened a chest at one
-corner of the closet and took from it a short ladder of rope, a suit
-of clothes of a sort commonly worn by young men, and a jeweled belt
-from which hung a short sword. It had been years since she had used
-these. She sighed as she remembered how she and her brother Bardya,
-without the knowledge of the Great King, her father, had sometimes
-disguised themselves and wandered forth at night to observe the common
-people, to take part in their sports and entertainments, and to mingle
-with those who came and went on the streets of the city. How long ago
-that seemed! As she knelt by the chest and laid out the clothes, she
-recalled how the Prince of Iran, having been admitted to the secrets of
-her escapades, had gravely rebuked her, but had nevertheless disguised
-himself and accompanied her and Bardya, as he said, to protect them.
-The danger of her situation allowed her to think but a moment of
-those happy days. From another chest, bound with silver bands, she
-took a long necklace of precious stones, and a belt of beautifully
-embossed leather to which were fastened purselike compartments full
-of gold coins. She undressed and fastened the money-belt around her
-waist. Then she put on the suit of men’s clothing and stowed away
-the jewels in its pockets. She then cut her hair to a length just
-sufficient to touch the collar of her tunic. Upon her head she set a
-round felt cap. Critically surveying her appearance in a mirror, she
-saw that she resembled a well-dressed youth of the nobler class of
-Medes, but one whose face was far too beautiful and feminine to pass
-for that of a man. Taking from a cabinet a box of unguents and powders,
-she skillfully deepened the color of her eyebrows and darkened her
-complexion, until she resembled a young Mede of mixed Semitic and Aryan
-blood.
-
-These preparations consumed much time. Darkness fell upon the earth.
-Then a heavy knocking sounded upon the door of the bedroom and a rough
-voice said: “May you live forever, O Great Princess! I have a message
-from my royal Master, the King of Kings!”
-
-She made no answer and, after a moment, the voice continued: “Once more
-does the King of Kings offer you peace and a place of honor as his
-wife. Otherwise his sentence is that you have neither food nor water
-until you submit to his royal will.”
-
-Then Athura answered, “Tell your Lord and Master that I will take until
-the morning to consider.”
-
-“I am your slave!” responded the voice.
-
-“Well, well!” exclaimed the King, when he received Athura’s message.
-“Our proud-spirited sister may submit, since she sends me back so mild
-an answer. It is well! The word of the King must prevail. A day or two
-of solitude will not harm her. We shall yet be a happy family!”
-
-He laughed loud and long and drank deeply of soma. Artistone, who sat
-with him at dinner, made no answer, but her eyes, red with weeping,
-gave evidence of her woe.
-
-As soon as darkness came fully over the palace, Athura went forth
-cautiously upon the roof of the portico, descended to the ground by
-means of her rope ladder, and stole away through the gloom among the
-trees and shrubbery in the park. Knowing every path, every bush and
-tree, it was not difficult for her to find a way and to avoid the
-points where the guards sauntered listlessly to and fro, keeping
-careless ward. The King had not remembered her avenue of escape, or the
-guards were careless. She climbed over the stone walls surrounding the
-park, with the aid of her rope ladder, and, making a détour to avoid
-the guards, walked rapidly and boldly into the city. She went straight
-to a horse-market and roused a sleepy servant, who, though at first
-disposed to grumble at so late a visitor, speedily turned obsequious
-when a coin was pressed into his hand. He forthwith brought out one of
-the dealers in horses.
-
-“A pretty time to come buying horses!” grumbled the latter, yawning and
-stretching his limbs. “Think you, my young sprig, that I work day and
-night?”
-
-“Peace, grumbler!” retorted Athura, speaking hoarsely. “If I come to
-buy a Nicæan steed by lamplight, what is that to you, seeing that
-I have the coin? I must go on a journey to-night many miles to the
-northward and need to hire a horse. But lest you deem me a robber,
-I will deposit the full price of the animal, to be returned when I
-return the horse. One condition only I exact--he must have speed and go
-comfortably without fright or stumble. Fool me in this and I will bring
-down the wrath of a mighty man upon you! Have you a good horse?”
-
-“Have I a good horse? I keep nothing else, young sir! Come to the
-stalls!”
-
-He led the way with alacrity. He pointed to a large animal, saying,
-“This one is good in bottom and long in legs. He will carry your
-insignificant weight all night. Here is a Nicæan steed; but he is a
-fierce animal and will not brook punishment of whip or spur. Speak
-gently to him and he will carry you a week without rest. But he surely
-is beyond your price!”
-
-“What is his price? I doubt that he has such mettle as you think.”
-
-“Fifty Lydian staters is his price. For riding him this night the price
-will be one Lydian stater, if you return him to me to-morrow without
-injury. Assuredly you may have a cheaper horse than this!”
-
-“Extortioner! Twenty staters is more than a good price for that animal.
-I will surely report you to the governor of the market. Think you I
-know nothing of horses?”
-
-The dealer spread out his hands and bowed as if in deep humility,
-saying: “I perceive your worship is well acquainted with horseflesh.
-Come, I will not haggle with you. Deposit your twenty staters in my
-hand and take him. But you will surely pay an additional stater for a
-fine saddle!”
-
-“Verily you are an extortioner! But I will not haggle. One half-stater
-and no more! Make haste, since my lady-love will not wait for my coming
-too long!”
-
-Athura took a handful of coins from a purse at her belt and counted it
-into the outstretched palm of the greedy dealer, whose eyes sparkled
-in triumph. The amount was a third more than the animal was worth.
-The horse was brought out, saddled and bridled, champing his bits and
-pawing the earth, impatient to be gone. Athura loved a good horse.
-She was an accomplished rider. She sprang lightly into the saddle and
-trotted away, shouting back at the dealer: “Farewell, son of Ahriman!
-Keep the gold should I not return. I may go on to Rhages before I come
-back.”
-
-The dealer waved his hand in reply and said to his servant: “Young
-sprig! Thought he knew the prices of animals! Bah! But then, he has a
-good horse, even if he paid a stiff price. Who can he be? May the dogs
-bite him if he try to return that animal! See that you be ready to
-testify that this was a sale and not a letting. We shall not repurchase
-the horse.”
-
-“Yea, verily, Master, it was a sale,” answered the servant. Then they
-retired to their couches well satisfied.
-
-Athura cantered rapidly along the principal street of the city going
-north. Night watchmen threw upon her the rays of their lanterns. She
-passed a squad of soldiers in front of a public house, where, under
-the influence of wine, they were singing and making merry. To their
-gibes, she waved her hand, but declined their invitation to alight and
-join them. She came to the outer boundaries of the city on the road to
-Rhages. There the guards sat carelessly playing dice in their shelter
-at the roadside. They heard the rapid hoof-beats of a horse approaching
-from the city, but before they could come forth to challenge, the
-horse with its rider flashed by at full speed. In a second, the twain
-disappeared in a cloud of dust and darkness. Grumbling that their
-ease should be thus broken, the guards returned to their game. Had
-they known who had passed and that on the morrow they would be flayed
-alive and quartered by an infuriated King, they would not have been so
-careless. This was not their first omission of duty, but it was the
-first in which the King was directly concerned; and it was their last.
-They met their fate at sundown on the morrow in the market-place after
-a short interrogation by the King himself, as an exhibition to all men
-of the King’s justice upon those who neglected duty.
-
-It must be said of Cambyses that although to his own passions and
-desires he gave loose rein and was brutal to those who interfered
-therewith, yet to his subjects he was just, and was strict in the
-enforcement of law. Because he regarded himself as the lawgiver, he
-regarded a breach of the law as an insult to himself. He caused one
-corrupt judge to be flayed alive in the market-place. Other evil-doers
-were maimed or strangled. Not only did the guards of the road whose
-orders compelled them to exact a pass of any one passing in or out of
-the city after nightfall suffer, but several palace-guards whose duty
-it was to watch the palace walls, were strangled with the bowstring.
-His fury even threatened Prexaspes, but that astute official was able
-to prove that he had gone on a mission to a neighboring city and could
-not be involved in Athura’s sudden disappearance. Spies soon learned
-of the flight of the steed and its rider on the northern road. They
-found the horse-dealer, whose description of the rider indicated that
-it was Athura in disguise who had hired the horse. Bands of troopers
-were sent out on every road and into the fields and mountains around
-the city. None knew except the captains in charge of the bands for whom
-the search was being made. It was reported generally that a robber had
-broken into the palace and carried away some of the King’s jewels.
-
-Athura rode northward for half an hour, then turning sharply to the
-right and following a road which was little better than a path,
-but which led to one of the King’s desert gardens, she came to a
-well-beaten caravan-route leading southward towards what is now the
-city of Isfahan. Taking this road, she followed it southward until
-she entered a road branching southwestward to Adrapan, the winter
-palace of Cyrus. By this circuitous way she hoped to deceive those who
-might pursue into the belief that she was fleeing to Bactra by way of
-Rhages. She did not dare take the road to Persia direct, but planned
-to ride by way of Susa, or, perhaps, if her intention should change
-upon reflection, she would flee to Damascus and thence to her Prince at
-Sardis. As she rode, her active brain elaborated her plans.
-
-The night was cool and clear. The brilliant stars scintillated in the
-autumn sky. A quarter-moon gave down a subdued light. A breeze swept
-down from Mount Elwend, whose rugged heights lay darkly against the
-western sky. The road to Adrapan followed the base of a promontory of
-the Zagros range, which here jutted out into the plain. Here and there
-near the highway were the cottages of gardeners, who by irrigating
-their crops with the precious waters of Elwend, caused the fertile soil
-to yield the vegetable supply for the capital city. The odor of flowers
-and fruits permeated the air. The strong, spirited horse, glorying
-in his strength and scarce feeling the weight of his rider, galloped
-onward with long, even strides. No one interrupted their progress. The
-cottagers, if partially aroused by the rapid beat of hoofs and the
-barking of dogs, sleepily muttered, “A King’s messenger!” turned over
-on their pallets, and again slumbered.
-
-Adrapan lay on the southern slopes of Mount Elwend. Here the snows,
-which annually fell over Hamadan, seldom came; and, if they did, the
-southern exposure to the sun caused them quickly to melt away. To the
-right of the highway which passed westward through the village was
-the palace, in a great park of noble trees. On the left were several
-houses occupied by those who made their livelihood trading with the
-thousands of nobles and retainers who honored the King as his guests
-or served him as retainers. Here caravans from Damascus and the west
-coming by way of Nineveh, or from the south, coming by way of Babylon
-and Susa, stopped to enjoy the salubrious climate and recuperate after
-enduring the hot districts along the Tigris and the difficult roads
-across the Zagros Mountains. At this time the palace and its park were
-in the care of keepers and Adrapan was deserted, save by inn-keepers
-and traders.
-
-Athura sighed as she came in sight of the village. She remembered the
-pleasant days when, a child, she had wandered in the park with her
-father, or played there with Bardya and the young Prince of Iran. How
-long ago those days seemed! Her noble, erect, keen-eyed, kind-hearted,
-and loving father; her joyous, laughter-loving, and boisterous brother;
-and the tall youth, whose calm demeanor, royal bearing, and worshipful
-eyes were ever in her mind--all appeared in her memory. Tears came into
-her eyes, and her lips trembled with emotion. She brought her panting
-steed to a stop within the deep shadows of the trees and halted a
-moment to consider her course. If she should pass through the village,
-she might be seen and accosted. If she should enter the park, she
-would incur danger from wild beasts which sometimes came down from the
-mountains. Bears, wolves, a leopard, a tiger, and even a lion had been
-seen in the park. She knew all the paths through the woodland and that,
-by going a roundabout way, she might avoid the palace and the village,
-but it would lead through wild, dark places. Though she had fear of
-wild beasts, she feared more to be overtaken by the pursuers that her
-brother might send after her. She decided to follow the dark paths of
-the forest and defy the dangers from wild beasts. Turning her horse,
-she plunged boldly into the woodland.
-
-The turf deadened the hoof-beats of the horse. No sound was heard save
-the cry of an owl, the song of a bulbul, and the chirp of insects.
-Gathering the bridle reins in one hand, she drew the short sword from
-its sheath at her belt with the other and carried it ready to meet any
-danger that might assail her. Once she raised the sword high towards
-heaven and prayed in a whisper, “Thou, Ahura-Mazda, Good Spirit and
-Protector, send Sraosha, victorious leader of the hosts of heaven, to
-guard me from Angro-mainyus and the Devas!”
-
-She went slowly and warily. A dim light from the declining moon and the
-stars enabled her to recognize the pathways. Her horse, tossing his
-noble head and pricking forward his slender ears, followed the paths
-with certain step, unafraid of the sounds of the night. If a bear or
-wolf, sniffing the breeze on the heights above, became aware of their
-presence, it did not descend to investigate, nor did any leopard,
-tiger, or lion molest her. For an hour she slowly followed the devious
-ways, but at length returned to the highway a parasang west of the
-village. That she had acted wisely appeared on the following day, when
-a squad of the King’s horsemen rode into Adrapan and made inquiry. The
-villagers and the palace watchmen swore that no one had passed through
-during the preceding night, although careful vigil had been maintained
-on account of a report that a band of robbers had been seen in the
-neighboring mountains.
-
-On the highway again, horse and rider, somewhat rested by the leisurely
-progress through the woodland, sped away westward at a gallop. The
-highway was smooth for several miles, until it plunged into the
-defiles of the Zagros Mountains, through which flowed the headwater
-streams of the river Choaspes. Then it became more difficult, with
-steep grades, crossing on stone bridges over deep gorges, the beds of
-roaring streams, and winding about steep bluffs and over sharp ridges.
-Morning found the fugitive many miles from Hamadan in the midst of
-mountains; and her weariness and that of her steed warned her that she
-must find a resting-place. Twice she fruitlessly turned from the road
-to follow paths leading up narrow canyons, hoping to find a suitable
-hiding-place. The third time she followed a narrow pass leading into a
-small valley and there found a sheepfold and a shepherd’s cabin. The
-shepherd and his flock were in the hills, where the warm rays of the
-sun and the waters of many springs kept the grass sweet and tender.
-
-Finding the hut empty and no one near, Athura descended stiffly from
-her horse and searched for food. She found a large jar of barley in
-the hut and gave her horse a generous feed from it. Then, having tied
-him to a tree, she searched the cabin for food that she might eat. The
-long ride had made her tired and faint. Hunger reminded her that she
-had eaten nothing since the previous noon. She opened cupboards and
-chests and presently found a box in which the shepherd had left a piece
-of roasted mutton and some round flat cakes of bread, made of coarse
-barley flour. The fare satisfied her hunger. Then she shut and barred
-the stout cabin-door and threw herself upon a bundle of sheep-skins
-which lay on the floor, and slept several hours. When the day was half
-gone, after another hasty meal she went on her way.
-
-The shepherd did not return till the shades of night were falling.
-His surprise and indignation were great when he found that some one
-had entered his cabin, eaten his bread and meat, and taken some of his
-grain; but he was delighted when he found lying in the bread-box a gold
-piece. He tried the coin with his teeth and excitedly turned it over
-and over in his palm. Then he hid it safely in the earth at one corner
-of his hut.
-
-“Truly,” he muttered, “some god must have rested here, or a spirit of
-the hills! But no, they would not eat my food. May luck go with this
-patron of mine forever!”
-
-It was after noon when Athura left the shepherd’s hut and rode out
-of the canyon to the highway. She turned her face westward and rode
-as rapidly as the steep grades and dangerous passes would permit,
-anxiously scanning every reach ahead lest she meet a caravan, an
-inquisitive traveler, or a band of robbers. Outlaws frequently attacked
-caravans in those days and places, as they do yet. Travel except with
-guards or in large companies was dangerous. Once as she rode past the
-mouth of a canyon she observed several men sitting around a camp-fire
-a hundred paces from the road. When they observed her, they shouted
-and ran to their horses, which were grazing near by them. She spoke to
-her horse and urged him to greater speed. He responded nobly. The hiss
-of an arrow passed over her head. Her horse, as if realizing the need
-of haste, fled with frightful speed. Once she looked back and saw the
-pursuers; but, as they were mounted on small mountain ponies, they were
-soon left far behind and gave over the pursuit.
-
-With an occasional halt at the crest of ridges over which the road
-passed, the fugitive pressed onward till night fell. After stopping a
-short time to allow the horse to graze and rest, she continued the
-flight during the night hours. The brawling river along whose course
-the way led filled the canyons with its murmur. The cry of night birds
-and the howl of wolves sounded dismally from the heights. Once her
-horse snorted and sprang away at a rapid pace from the shadow of a
-clump of bushes. At another time he shook his head and dashed madly at
-several dark, slinking forms in the road; these leaped aside from his
-charge, snarling and chattering. It required all her will to restrain
-the fear of unknown and unseen dangers of the darkness and hills which
-gripped at her heart. She allowed her intelligent horse to pick his own
-way, and he did not fail her.
-
-At midnight she emerged from the mountain gorges and entered the little
-plain of Bagistan, where she halted at the base of the celebrated rock
-of Behistun. She recognized this great rock, on which was engraved in
-huge letters the legend of Semiramis. As she looked up at its bold,
-jagged skyline, she wondered whether the time would ever come when
-she, like Semiramis, might stand there the queen of the world. Years
-afterwards she did stand there as queen of the world and watched the
-workmen of her husband erase the story of Semiramis and carve thereon
-a short history of his own exploits. She dismounted and, standing by
-the side of her horse, leaned wearily against him and meditated what
-road to take. For here was a parting of the ways. To her right, the
-road led to Nineveh, Damascus, and Sardis, where she might find her
-Prince; to the left lay the road to Susa and Persepolis. Should she
-go to the Prince of Iran and thus plunge him into war with Cambyses,
-or should she seek the protection of the lords of Persia? It was a
-grave question, hard to solve, and she almost wept because of her own
-indecision.
-
-“All hail and live forever, Princess Athura! Be not afraid!” A voice
-came to her out of the darkness near the great rock.
-
-Gasping with dismay, she sprang into the saddle and was about to flee.
-
-“Be not afraid!” said the voice again, and the tone was strangely
-familiar and reassuring.
-
-“Who speaks?” she demanded.
-
-“Your servant, Belteshazzer, the Hebrew, gracious lady!”
-
-The voice recalled the days when she sat at the feet of the great
-teacher and listened to his wisdom.
-
-“It must indeed be Belteshazzer!” she exclaimed, with a sigh of relief.
-“None else could know me! Now Ahura-Mazda be praised! How come you
-here?”
-
-A tall form emerged from the darker shadows and drew near. “I came up
-from Susa in obedience to the command of a spirit,” he said. “I knew
-not why I was urged to come until I reached the shadow of this great
-rock. Then I knew that I was sent to meet you here. In the spirit I saw
-you coming. Do you remember the lessons in the west tower of the palace
-at Hamadan, and how the Hebrew was not easy for you to learn?”
-
-She remembered well this wonderful man, whose wisdom was that of a god,
-whose eyes read the very thoughts of men, and whose heart was pure and
-kind. With a happy note in her voice she answered: “Truly, Master, I am
-that unapt scholar in Hebrew! What joy to meet you here! Truly God has
-guided you hither! Now I may call upon your great wisdom to advise me
-what to do. Approach nearer, I pray you!”
-
-Belteshazzer advanced to the side of the horse and, bending over
-the fair hand she extended to him, touched it with his forehead in
-reverence and affection.
-
-“I hold it great happiness to be of service to you,” he said. “In
-the village near by is my caravan. I have there a new tent with new
-furniture never used by any other. It is at your service. There await
-your service also two handmaidens of my own race, daughters of a prince
-of my family, discreet and worthy of trust. I have also many servants,
-all well-armed. My caravan is large. Come and dwell with us until the
-years of Cambyses shall be fulfilled. I know from what you have fled.
-You shall be a princess of my people until these troublous days are
-over. O Most Beloved of the Nations, you may abide in my care until
-the time when your Prince shall come to the throne! If you tire of
-the tent-life with the caravan, my palace in Shushan, or my house in
-Babylon, shall be yours.”
-
-“Is it best that I do not go to the Prince now?”
-
-“It is best that you do not. It would mean instant war between him and
-Cambyses. The times are not right for that. Neither should you go to
-the lords of Persia. For Cambyses has already sent armed men out on all
-the roads leading to Persepolis. Even now couriers are not far behind
-you going to Susa with orders to watch for and intercept you.”
-
-“I will be guided by you, O Prophet of God! Lead the way and I will
-follow.”
-
-He led the way towards the village of Bagistan in the valley below,
-and soon came to his caravan. He conducted her to a beautiful tent
-furnished with all the luxuries of tent-life. Two beautiful maidens
-were brought to her.
-
-“My children,” said Belteshazzer to them, “behold your mistress. She
-is one of the great ones of earth and is worthy of all service. She
-shall be known to you as the Princess Esther. It is enough for you to
-know that she is one most highly favored of our God. You must obey her
-slightest wish. Your training in the house of Belteshazzer has fitted
-you to serve the greatest of earth. Let your tongues never speak unto
-others what you may see or hear concerning her. To all questions say
-that she is a relative of Belteshazzer. For are we not all descended
-from one common Father?”
-
-They fell on their knees before Athura, the strange, beautiful one,
-whose face was that of a woman though her garb was that of a man. Each,
-taking one of Athura’s hands, placed it upon her head, saying in the
-soft accents of the Syrian tongue: “We shall heed your words, great
-Master. We are her servants.”
-
-Athura smiled upon the maidens and raising them up impulsively kissed
-them, saying in the same language, with which she was familiar: “Your
-service will be light. You shall be my sisters and companions rather
-than servants. The princesses of the house of Belteshazzer are worthy
-to be friends of the highest born.”
-
-Belteshazzer then retired. From chests full of rich garments, the
-maids quickly produced feminine apparel and at once proceeded to
-bathe, dress, and perfume their new mistress. Presently, under their
-ministrations, Athura in all her matchless beauty and royal demeanor
-stood before them like Deborah of old, a veritable Hebrew princess.
-
-Belteshazzer traveled into Arabia, and the Princess Esther went with
-him. No one imagined that the beautiful young woman, to whom all
-naturally gave deference, was the first Princess of the Empire.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-THE WAR AGAINST EGYPT
-
-
-The Great King continued to prepare for war with the Egyptians. There
-came to him a Greek named Phanes, who at one time had been high in the
-service of King Amasis of Egypt, but who, having conspired against
-him, was compelled to flee. By flattery and art he raised himself high
-in the estimation of Cambyses and inflamed his mind with tales of the
-wealth that would be found in the great temples of the Nile Valley.
-The King then hastened his preparations and sent him to raise levies
-amongst the Ionian Greeks. The Greeks who remained in the service of
-the Egyptian King so hated him because of his treachery that they had
-made a blood covenant to kill him. But he succeeded in recruiting a
-large body of his countrymen, who marched with him and the Prince of
-Iran towards Tyre.
-
-When spring opened, the vast array of men whom the King had gathered
-from Iran, Assyria, and Babylonia, marched by way of Damascus towards
-Tyre. Many nations contributed troops. Wild mountaineers of the
-Caucasus marched shoulder to shoulder with the polished, slighter-built
-Babylonians. The light-armed Getæ and Derbicæ rode with the heavy
-cavalry of the Medes and Persians. From Bactra and Sogdiana came a
-portion of the veteran army of King Hystaspis. From the Zagros and
-Elburz mountains poured out the fierce infantry of Aryan blood.
-Chariots, hundreds in number, rumbled over the rough desert roads.
-Bowmen, spearmen, slingers, and swordsmen, a half million or more in
-all, rolled like a tide across the wastes. The army under the Prince of
-Iran was composed for the most part of veterans of many wars, inured to
-army life and eager to follow their Prince to battle. Its nucleus was
-the old Imperial Guard of Cyrus, recruited to its full number of thirty
-thousand horsemen. The remainder were fighters from the warlike peoples
-of his satrapy--Lydians, Greeks, Scythians of the Black Sea regions,
-Paphlagonians, Hebrews, and Syrians.
-
-It was springtime when the Great King, leaving Patatheites, the
-Magian, as regent of the empire, departed from his capital of Hamadan,
-accompanied by his sister-wife, Artistone, and a portion of his harem.
-A thousand servants marched with him to administer to his comfort. He
-journeyed by easy stages to Damascus and thence to Tyre.
-
-The city of Tyre, though nominally independent, had been coerced into
-lending her fleets to the King of Kings. Though it occupied a strong
-position on an island and though its people carried on a great trade
-with Egypt, yet when the veteran army of the Prince of Iran encamped
-on the mainland opposite, and his demand came in the name of the Great
-King that it should furnish a fleet of vessels for his use, it hastened
-to comply.
-
-During the weeks that had passed since he had received a copy of the
-decree of the King concerning the marriage of Cambyses to his sisters,
-the Prince had visibly aged. He had become taciturn and stern. A smile
-seldom appeared upon his countenance. His officers, who had known him
-for years, sympathized with him but grumbled at his obstinacy in not
-declaring war against Cambyses. They were ready for revolt. Gobryas
-especially was discontented. He was bitter towards the King because of
-the wreck of his hopes of winning Artistone. He reported to the Prince
-the spirit of revolt that pervaded the army and urged him repeatedly to
-act; but the latter requested him to wait.
-
-When the Persian and Bactrian troops arrived, having outmarched the
-King, who lingered at Damascus, their leaders came to the Prince
-and offered their services, if he would but consent to seize the
-government. Letters arrived from Otanes, urging him to seize Cambyses.
-To all he said, “Wait!” Couriers came from his father counseling
-prudence and loyalty, at least until it should certainly appear that
-the King held Athura against her will. A mighty struggle went on within
-him. Oath-bound loyalty to the King could scarce restrain the wrath
-that fired his soul to action against the hated tyrant.
-
-When the couriers arrived from Damascus saying that the King was about
-to leave that city, the Prince called them aside and inquired of them
-if they knew whether the King was bringing his sisters with him. They
-reported that he had with him Artistone, whom he presented to all as
-his Queen; but as for Athura no one knew where she was, though it
-was currently reported that he had imprisoned her in his harem at
-Hamadan. His own couriers and spies returned from Hamadan without
-other information than rumors, some of which indicated that Athura was
-dead, others that she had escaped to Persia, and others that she was
-imprisoned in the King’s harem.
-
-While he was in this state of indecision, resolved one day to raise the
-standard of revolt and march against Cambyses, and the next to remain
-loyal, at least till he should know the truth concerning Athura’s
-fate, Prexaspes, attended by a company of Medean cavalry, rode into
-camp and requested an interview. The Prince received him without delay,
-and alone in his tent. The wily Mede, after due salutation, went
-straight to the subject of his mission.
-
-“Great and illustrious Prince,” he said, as he stood before the Prince
-of Iran, who looked upon him coldly and suspiciously, “I have come on
-in advance of the King with his permission. I have heard of the efforts
-of the powerful ones to persuade you to revolt and I know also that you
-believe you have just cause in the act of the King with relation to
-his sisters. I have made the Great King realize that he has committed
-the worst blunder of his life and that upon your acts will not only
-depend the result of this war but the continuance of his empire. I call
-to your remembrance that the subject nations are but waiting for the
-outbreak of civil war amongst the Aryans to throw off the Aryan rule.
-Should you revolt, every conquered nation would revolt; and if you
-should succeed, you would have the world to conquer over again. This
-you know as well as I. Is it not so?”
-
-He paused. The Prince of Iran inclined his head in assent.
-
-“Proceed with your message,” he said coldly.
-
-“This being so,” continued Prexaspes, “I deemed it best to come hither
-and tell you the facts with relation to the King’s brother and sister.
-I am reliably informed that Prince Bardya is dead. He died at the
-hands of mountain robbers. Of course I do not know this for certain.
-As to the Princess Athura, she escaped the same day that the King
-issued his decree, a copy of which I sent to you. He never consummated
-his marriage with her. I know that she escaped, because the King
-suspected that I had aided her. As to whether I did aid her or not, I
-say nothing, except that I rejoiced when I heard it--not openly, for I
-apparently made every exertion to find her. Now the King was advised to
-marry his sisters by a certain Magian prophet who predicted that a son
-of his sister should sit on the throne after him. The King is impulsive
-and acted without advising with me. But having married Artistone, he
-is satisfied that he has complied with the prophet’s prediction; and
-in order that you may know his good-will towards you he has made a
-second decree, declaring that Athura is free from wedlock with him and
-granting her leave to marry whom she will. This am I directed to place
-in your hand upon being satisfied that you are firm in adherence to
-your oath taken to Cyrus and will state that you will remain loyal to
-the King. The King also confirms you in the office of chief commander
-of this army under him. I assure you, Great Prince, that the King is
-sincere, though, I frankly state, it is because he knows that one word
-from you or any injury to you would be the signal for the rebellion of
-all Iran save perhaps Medea.”
-
-He paused. The Prince stood in silence a moment gazing at the floor,
-considering the King’s message.
-
-“Will the King give me his statement as King that he has not done
-injury to Athura?” he then demanded.
-
-“Not only that, but he has stated in this his decree that the marriage
-never has been consummated. Furthermore I know all that happened from
-a private examination of the servants who saw the King when he went to
-the Princesses to announce his will to them,--how he fled from Athura’s
-dagger; how he set watches at her bedroom door; how there stood open
-the lattice of a closet-window connected with the bedroom by which she
-escaped; and how, afterwards, the rope ladder by which she passed over
-the walls was found; and it is even known how she purchased a horse
-which later was found near Bagistan. She rode away on it disguised as a
-youth. There she disappeared.”
-
-The Prince started and smiled slightly when Prexaspes mentioned the
-hinged lattice in the closet-window. He had heard from Athura of this
-means of egress before. He asked eagerly, “No further trace of her has
-been found?”
-
-“No. But the King thinks she has fled to you or to Persia.”
-
-The Prince did not answer this suggestion but held his hand out for the
-decrees, saying: “Assure the King that I accept his decree and will
-loyally support him. But let him not again, I implore, place me in so
-grave a position, lest I forget my vow to the great Cyrus!” He took the
-decrees from the hand of Prexaspes, who bowed low and backed from the
-tent with a second low salaam.
-
-So it came about that Cambyses feared not to come on to Tyre and
-that the army, duly marshaled in massive lines, received the Great
-King with honor. The Prince of Iran, accompanied by Hydarnes of the
-foot soldiers, Vomisces of the cavalry, and a hundred other Persian
-officers, greeted the King at the limits of the camp and followed
-him as he rode slowly between the lines of soldiers to his pavilion.
-The soldiers knelt as he passed, shuddering or wondering as they saw
-the bloated red face and cold, glittering eyes of their ruler. When
-they saw the Prince of Iran riding near his right hand in the place
-of honor, they were pleased and broke forth in acclamations, which
-the Great King thought were given to him. But his countenance gave
-no indication of his emotions, and his greetings to his officers were
-slight and cold.
-
-No sooner had the King entered his pavilion and called for wine than
-Prexaspes, who had personal charge of the King’s household, entered,
-and, having bent his knee, requested leave to speak. The King said
-impatiently:
-
-“Well, speak! Undoubtedly you come to preach policy again! I liked not
-the dark looks of those cursed Persians! I have a mind to send some of
-those officers a bowstring!”
-
-“Having your gracious leave, O King, I will speak plainly,” said
-Prexaspes, boldly. “Does not my welfare depend solely upon your favor?
-Believe that I speak, therefore, for your best interests. There was
-grave trouble brewing amongst those Persians. The favor you have shown
-to the Magi and your marriage with your sister, against which, you
-know, I most strongly advised, and the grave insult thereby inflicted
-upon the Prince of Iran, have stirred in them the spirit of revolt.
-I have trembled, O King! My spies have kept me well informed. There
-stands between you and destruction at this moment the word of one man,
-and that one is the Prince of Iran! Order me stricken dead, if you
-will, O King, for speaking so boldly; but I tell you the truth! I swear
-by all the gods, I speak the truth!”
-
-The King’s face was dark with wrath, but he realized the force of his
-adviser’s words. He gulped down a great cup of wine, threw the cup upon
-the floor, and passed a trembling hand over his face.
-
-“You may speak truth, Prexaspes,” he admitted. “But how about the
-Medes and the other levies, are they not faithful? They outnumber the
-Persians and Bactrians. Besides, have I not stultified myself already
-by your advice and placated that same Prince of Iran?”
-
-“The Medes may be depended upon, but none others. It is true we have
-placated the Prince of Iran. But with your permission I will offer
-further advice.”
-
-“Say on!”
-
-“I advise that you send for the Prince of Iran and personally greet him
-with your royal hand and assure him of your favor as King. Thus will
-you fasten him to your cause and satisfy the Aryans, by whose power
-alone you may hope to prosecute this war successfully.”
-
-The King broke forth in a torrent of curses and imprecations. It was a
-bitter tonic that Prexaspes had prescribed. He hated the Prince of Iran
-with the hatred of jealousy and fear. He ended his explosion by saying:
-
-“But the day will come when I shall surely slay that man! Now, indeed,
-I see that I must dissemble. Press me not too far on this path,
-Prexaspes, lest I slay you! Go then and command him to come here. I
-will dissemble. I will be as wise as a serpent--for a time!”
-
-Prexaspes bowed low and backed from the royal presence. He sent a
-messenger to the Prince of Iran, who came at once.
-
-The Prince was pale but composed. He bowed low over the King’s extended
-hand, saying: “I am here at the King’s command. Let it please the King
-to command.”
-
-The King glowered sullenly upon the Prince, but endeavored to infuse
-into his tones a note of cordiality, as he said: “Prince Hystaspis, I
-have trusted you greatly, though, as you well know, no love has ever
-been between us. I hear that there has been much treasonable talk in
-this army.”
-
-“I know there is much dissatisfaction, O King!” answered the Prince.
-“But it cannot be said to be treasonable. The people of Iran like not
-the power and place given to the fire-worshipers of the hills. The
-Persians, who occupied the chief places under King Cyrus, are grieved
-that they have not found favor with his son.”
-
-“We will show these proud slaves who grumble, that the King of Kings
-brooks no interference!” exclaimed the King, his anger blazing forth
-for an instant. “Prexaspes has given you my decree concerning Athura.
-You may rest assured that she and you may marry safely. Where is she?
-Of all men, you should know.”
-
-The Prince was surprised at this question, and the manner of the King.
-Evidently Cambyses was endeavoring to restrain his passions and speak
-pleasantly to him.
-
-“I have not seen the royal lady since I bade her farewell at Persepolis
-and took with me her pledge to marry me,” he answered. “Neither have I
-had a letter from her since the day when it pleased you to make a new
-law that the King might marry his sisters. Nor have I heard what has
-become of her, save that I did hear rumors that she had escaped or had
-been slain by your orders.”
-
-“The report that Athura is dead is not true!” said Cambyses. “She fled
-from the palace the day my decree was made and keeps well hidden,
-though my slaves have searched the world for her. Find her and marry
-her, if you will! You have my consent. Let that subject be forgotten
-between us. Is this army ready to march?”
-
-“It is ready.”
-
-“Then let the march begin on the morrow. The insults we have received
-from Egypt’s King must be avenged and that country added to our empire.
-It is said to be very rich. I am weary with the day’s journey and will
-rest. Give such orders as you deem necessary. Cambyses, the King of
-Kings, remembers not the former days. My trust and favor I give to you;
-and my consent to your marriage with Athura shall not be withdrawn.”
-
-He turned away, and the Prince with a salute left the pavilion. It
-seemed to the latter that the sky had taken on a new glory and that
-the golden rays of the setting sun were indicative of joy. A load had
-been lifted from his heart. Athura had escaped a miserable fate and
-must be still alive. One so resourceful as she would know how to save
-herself. It mattered little that Cambyses hated him. His duty demanded
-faithful service to the King and his oath to the Great King would
-remain unbroken. He called together his friends among the officers and
-briefly informed them that all present cause for dissatisfaction had
-been removed and that he expected of them loyal service to the King.
-
-On the next day the great army slowly uncoiled its vast length and
-moved down the narrow coast-line of Canaan, bearing woe to ancient
-Egypt.
-
-Egypt was ill-prepared for war. From the time that Cyrus had reduced
-all Syria, including Canaan, to subjection, the Egyptian King, Amasis,
-had known that a conflict with the new world-power would come. He had
-heard of the preparations for war made by Cambyses and had endeavored
-to make ready. But Egypt had long since lost its ancient vigor. Its
-people had become rich and indolent. They loved not war. They depended
-mainly upon foreign auxiliaries hired by their money for their defense.
-Thirty thousand Greeks and many thousand adventurers from other lands
-formed the main strength of the Egyptian army. Levies drawn from an
-agricultural and trading people among the Egyptians themselves were
-neither practiced in war nor enthusiastic in the service and made
-poor soldiers. They were brave and many in number, but they knew
-little discipline. They could not stand before the fearful rush of the
-Persian cavalry or the tiger-like ferocity of the Aryan infantry. They
-outnumbered the army of Cambyses, but their very numbers were a source
-of weakness because of their lack of discipline.
-
-Just as the war was beginning, old King Amasis had died, leaving his
-throne to a youth named Psammenitus, who had not the skill himself nor
-good generals to lead his army. But he marched forth and took position
-in the desert near Pelusium, with the left of his line of battle
-resting on the Great Sea and its right protecting the water-wells
-and barring the main caravan road to Egypt, determined to strike one
-blow in defense of his kingdom. His Greeks were placed on the left,
-supported by Cretan slingers. The center was held by stout Ethiopian
-infantry, black men of ferocious courage, armed with javelins and
-swords, terrible in close contest. Behind them was a mass of Egyptians.
-On the right, where the plain was more level, there were two hundred
-chariots supported by a mass of irregular cavalry, principally Arabs,
-armed with scimiters and long, slender spears.
-
-The Prince of Iran led the Aryan host with his thirty thousand horsemen
-of the Guard, driving back the Arab cavalry which came out to harass
-his advance, until the position and extent of the Egyptian army were
-disclosed. From the crest of a sand-dune near the sea, he carefully
-surveyed the position occupied by Psammenitus. It was the afternoon
-of a cloudless day. At his right glistened the sea, its oily waves
-scarce rippling on the shores. At his left and rear, the mountains
-of Palestine were a dim cloud on the horizon. Before him was a vast
-plain, gray and brown with dust and sand, where the opposing army was
-making ready for battle. He noted the orderly Greeks, the dark array
-of Ethiopians, and the wheeling, clattering chariots, taking their
-appointed places. The Prince was accompanied by Gobryas and several of
-his chief captains, who stood near with the light of battle in their
-eyes and joy in their hearts. For the long, hot marches would end here
-in victory. They did not dream of defeat.
-
-The Prince soon formed his plan of battle. He directed the Guard
-to take a position in a long line, with its right resting at the
-sand-dune and its left thrown back in a wide curve so as to protect the
-approaching infantry from attacks of the Arabs.
-
-“Let all our forces be brought up to-night and placed in position. Let
-them sleep on their arms and be ready to attack at daylight. The wells
-of water are in possession of the enemy and we must have them to-morrow
-or die of thirst. Here must we conquer or die. If we lose the battle,
-every tribe in Syria and Armenia will revolt and attempt to cut us off
-from retreat to our homes,” said the Prince, turning to his officers
-after a long survey of the field.
-
-He then gave orders for placing the troops. As the sun went down, his
-dusty battalions were taking their appointed positions behind the long
-line of cavalry. He placed the Persian and Medean infantry opposite
-the Greeks, with its right resting on the sea. In the center were the
-allied races, principally footmen. On the left were the war-chariots,
-opposing the chariots of the enemy. Then the cavalry was withdrawn to
-the rear and massed behind the extreme left. Imitating the tactics of
-the Great Cyrus in his last battle, he intended to make a détour to the
-left with the cavalry, assail the extreme end of the enemy’s right, and
-roll it back to the sea. The pack-train, camp equipage, and the King’s
-pavilion were placed in the rear near the sea and enclosed within a
-palisade of stakes driven into the earth. But the King, as became a
-Persian warrior, bivouacked with the soldiers, having taken his station
-on the sand-dunes at the right, where he could see the field of battle.
-
-Night fell upon the opposing hosts, and midnight arrived before
-the final dispositions were made. Videttes and sentinels were duly
-stationed, and the tired soldiers lay down on their arms to snatch a
-few hours of rest. The Prince of Iran was about to lie down on the sand
-in the midst of his guard when a slave, clad in the livery of the King,
-came and prayed leave to speak with him. Bidden to speak, he said: “My
-gracious mistress, the Queen, requests you to come to her if it be
-possible. I am directed to guide you.”
-
-The Prince hesitated. He knew that Artistone, the younger of the King’s
-sisters, was referred to as the Queen. It was the privilege of the
-noble Persians and their wives to visit each other; but the King had
-introduced the customs of the seraglio, the separate harem, the veiled
-faces, and the seclusion of wives. The slave, noticing his hesitation,
-continued: “The King is not in his pavilion and the Queen will meet you
-in the tent of her slaves. She greatly desires you to come. She would
-speak of the Princess Athura.”
-
-The Prince no longer hesitated. He drew Gobryas to one side and
-informed him of his design. Then, throwing a rough cloak about his
-shoulders, as a disguise, he motioned the servant to proceed, and
-followed him. They entered the palisadoed camp and went to a tent near
-the King’s pavilion. The slave watched outside while the Prince went in
-and met the child-wife of the King.
-
-The interior of the tent was dimly lighted by a lamp burning perfumed
-oil. At one side was a low couch, and, reclining thereon, was
-Artistone. He bent his knee before her and kissed the slender white
-hand she held out to him.
-
-“Greeting, Prince and brother!” said she. “How I have longed to see
-some one I do not fear! This camp is full of spies, placed by the King
-to watch me and the other women he has brought with him. Only in this
-one slave who brought you hither and in two maidens who dress me, have
-I any confidence. How good it is to see your face!”
-
-“It gives me great delight, little sister, to come at your bidding. How
-may I serve you?” he returned.
-
-“I hear that a great battle is about to take place. Is it true?”
-
-“It is. But have no fear of the result. We shall scatter the enemy like
-sand before a desert wind.”
-
-“I have no fear. I would go out and watch the battle if I were
-permitted. Know you aught of Athura?”
-
-“Nothing, except that the King said she had escaped. Can you tell me of
-her?”
-
-Tears filled the Queen’s eyes and wet her cheeks. “Alas!” she said,
-“I fear she is dead. She locked herself in her room after attempting
-to stab the King with her dagger when he came and announced to us his
-decree of marriage. The palace-guards were set to watch at the door.
-I was taken away and never saw her more. Sometimes, when the King is
-savage and drunken or is displeased and desires to cause me grief, he
-says that he had her tortured to death. But at other times he says that
-she escaped. I hoped that she had communicated with you. Surely she
-must be dead or she would have done so!”
-
-“She attempted to slay him?”
-
-“Yes. Her fury was terrible. The King would have been killed had he not
-fled. He came to our sitting-room, the room in the palace where we so
-often played when we were children, and announced that he would make us
-his wives. After some words, Athura drew a dagger and sprang upon him.
-He leaped back out of the room and ran. He shouted to the guards. They
-came. She retreated to her bedroom and barred the door. Then the King
-dragged me away and--I am the most unhappy woman living! Ah! how often
-I think of those pleasant days of our childhood when our mother loved
-and played with us and our father smiled upon us so graciously! Do you
-not remember them? Will happiness never return to me again? Should I
-die by my own hand as I am tempted?”
-
-The Prince was deeply affected. His voice shook with emotion, as he
-answered: “Child, it may be the day of deliverance will come, perhaps
-to-morrow. Who knows? I know not what to advise. Death is but a step
-into a better existence. Did not Zoroaster, the divine, so teach?
-What said Belteshazzer, the Hebrew? He, the wisest of men, who talks
-with spirits, who reads all dreams and riddles, who prophesies of the
-future--he says that death is a blessed relief, in that we drop a body
-which suffers and is weak, while the spirit life is one of great glory
-and peace. I do not advise death. I do not think Athura is dead. It may
-be she has gone to Prince Bardya or to my father in Bactra. It is a
-long way to Bactra, and it has been difficult to send messengers. There
-are many reasons why she should not communicate.”
-
-Artistone shuddered and leaned nearer to him as she whispered in a
-frightened manner: “But she could not go to Bardya! I am sure that
-the King has murdered him. Oh, I saw him as one slain! On the night
-of the farewell feast, long after he had left the room, the Magi were
-performing wonders and producing specters and awful forms. At the last
-there came the pale face of Bardya, floating in the air above them,
-fierce, blood-stained, with a horrible wound in the forehead as if
-made by a sword! I have heard the King mutter in his sleep, as he lay
-half-drunken in the night, about the murder of Bardya. He talks in his
-sleep and sees fearful visions! He wakes trembling and shrieking with
-fear. Ah, my brother, I know that Bardya is dead!”
-
-The Prince believed her and smote his knee with his clenched fist,
-as he exclaimed: “The day will come when the devil-worshipers, with
-their black lies and conjuring, will be put down with a mighty hand!
-And thou,” he cried, raising his face and one hand to heaven, “O
-Ahura-Mazda, the only God, grant to me the opportunity to avenge the
-death of Bardya, to avenge the insults to your altars, upon that whole
-evil caste; and I will declare your glory upon all the hills!”
-
-“May your prayer be granted!” said the Queen, fervently. “How the world
-would be blessed if some day you should lead the hosts of truth against
-these evil and idolatrous men! The nations would rejoice if you were
-monarch of the world instead of this monster!”
-
-“Hush!” warned the Prince. “My oath will permit no such thoughts, and
-it is not wise that you should thus speak. But I must now leave you. Is
-there anything I can do for you?”
-
-“No, my brother. I desire you not to think evil of me. I am not gifted
-with the will of Athura. I have elected to suffer awhile in patience my
-strange and unnatural position as wife of the King. Sister and wife!
-Such I have heard is the evil custom of the Egyptians, who, it is said
-by Phanes, the Greek, even married their own mothers as well as their
-sisters, in order that their royal race might not mingle with a less
-royal! Have great care, my brother! The King would slay you if he
-dared. He is jealous of you.”
-
-The Prince arose and stood looking down in great pity at the childish,
-careworn face of Artistone.
-
-“I do not fear the King,” he said. “I am guarded by a powerful spirit
-who will not permit harm to come to me. I do not serve Cambyses, but,
-rather, the King of Kings and the Aryan race. I shall go into battle,
-rejoicing to fight for my people. I hope the day may soon come when I
-may aid in crushing those liars who are destroying true religion and
-leading Cambyses astray. But now I must go. Should need come, send for
-me.”
-
-He turned to leave; but she asked, while a faint color suffused her
-pale cheeks: “What of the noble Gobryas? Is he well and--happy?”
-
-“He is well, but he is not happy. Gobryas has been much pained by the
-action of the King in forcing you into this unnatural marriage. May I
-say to him that you remember him kindly?”
-
-“Yes. Tell him that it will please me more than all else, if he shall
-acquit himself well in the battle, and that he must not too greatly
-endanger his life. We know not what the future has in store. Farewell,
-brother! May Sraosha place his buckler before you on the morrow!”
-
-The Prince departed quietly. The child-queen buried her face in her
-arms and wept bitterly.
-
-At the first gray light of morn the Prince and several officers rode
-swiftly along the front of the army. As they passed, the soldiers
-sprang up and shouted, clashing their arms upon their shields and
-demanding to be led to battle. He paused here and there to utter words
-of direction and advice to the officers. To the center he said: “You
-must move slowly forward and hold all the ground you gain until you
-see the cavalry charging the right of the enemy. Then go forward with
-a rush.” To the general of the right wing he said: “Stand fast here on
-the sand-dunes and attack not those Greeks until you see the cavalry
-charging the Egyptian right. Then go forward and quit you like men. For
-those Greeks are brave warriors.”
-
-He paused before the King, who sat on a rude throne placed upon the
-summit of a hillock of sand from which he could view the battle. “Live
-forever, O King!” he said, saluting. “When it pleases you to order the
-battle joined, we are ready.”
-
-The King glowered at him sullenly. He was sore and ill-natured after
-his night on the ground. “See to it that you win this battle for me,
-or death shall be your portion!” he said. “Let no quarter be given to
-those dogs yonder, who by their impudence have brought on them my wrath
-and have caused me weariness in sleeping out here beneath the stars!”
-
-“I hear your words,” replied the Prince, coldly. “Rest assured that we
-shall win this battle or we shall welcome death.”
-
-“Enough!” exclaimed the King. “Join battle when you please! I have
-no appetite for talk. I have sent for wine and will drink while you
-slay yonder reptile-worshipers. I do not see their godlike calf at the
-front. Have a care of his horns!” The King laughed at his own wit.
-
-Again saluting, the Prince turned his horse and galloped off, followed
-by his staff. He saw that the enemy was also making ready for battle,
-and he forgot the King in the fierce joy of conflict. Placing himself
-at the head of his cavalry, he gave the signal for advance.
-
-Two hundred chariots sprang forward, and the long lines of infantry
-moved. From the other side opposing chariots dashed out and, in a
-moment, the crash of colliding wheels and the shouts and screams of
-combatants arose. The Persian cavalry rode at a brisk trot out to the
-left and by a wide circuit came in upon the right flank and rear of the
-Egyptians, scattering the Arabs who vainly sought to oppose. Along the
-whole front, two miles or more in extent, the battle was joined. The
-sky was filled with darts. The sun, springing up from the east, flashed
-upon sword and spear and upon struggling men who stabbed and slashed
-and reviled and cursed each other. The Aryan right as ordered stood
-still. But the Greeks of the opposing line came forward to the assault,
-like a moving wall prickly with spears, their fair, eager faces ablaze
-with the light of battle; and as they came on they shouted to Phanes
-daring him to come and meet them whom he had betrayed. Slingers and
-archers pelted them as they advanced; but, partially covered by their
-big, round shields, they did not halt. The Persian and Medean infantry
-was not terrified, but prayed the captains for leave to charge. The
-presence of the King, in whose sight they must do or die, nerved the
-Aryan soldier for the contest. When the Greeks arrived at the base
-of the sand-dunes, the King, disregarding the orders of the Prince of
-Iran, directed his infantry to charge, and the men sprang forward and
-down upon the Greeks with spears at rest. Then was shown the splendid
-discipline of these mercenaries of Psammenitus. They met the living
-wall of men rolling down upon them with firm, up-thrusting spears.
-The shock was terrific. The lines swayed back and forth. The longer
-spears of the Greeks gave them the advantage. Unable to reach their
-enemies, the Persians impotently struggled against the iron hedge and
-were thrust back. Cambyses observed the contest with alarm. He sent in
-his own body-guard to aid the hard-pressed infantry. But the Greeks
-moved steadily onward. Their phalanx could not be pierced. They seemed
-invincible. They surmounted the hills. But here the uneven ground broke
-their formation somewhat and enabled the Persians to press in and come
-to close quarters.
-
-Cambyses was no coward. He stayed with his guard, but he began to cast
-about for aid. He saw the long, swaying lines of men to his left, where
-the allies fought with the fierce Ethiopians. He observed the mixed and
-tangled wreckage of struggling horses and men where the chariots had
-met. Looking beyond, he saw the dense mass of Persian cavalry, led by
-the Prince of Iran in person, on a magnificent white horse, wheeling
-about upon the rear and right flank of the Egyptians, driving back a
-cloud of Arabs. He watched the cavalry come thundering down upon the
-rear of the enemy, bringing terror and confusion. Psammenitus, who was
-mounted on a fleet dromedary, also saw the coming destruction and,
-terrified, fled from the field at full speed. The Ethiopians, trodden
-down and overthrown by the heavy Persian horse, lost courage and
-quickly became a mob. The savage allies of the Persian line hewed them
-down without mercy. In a very short space of time none but the Greeks
-were left to present any resistance. Their captains, seeing that the
-battle was lost, ceased the forward movement and sought to form their
-ranks in a square. Surrender was not considered, for the hated Phanes
-was with the enemy. But because of the inequalities of the ground, they
-were not able to form before the Prince’s cavalry rode in upon them,
-broke through their wavering lines, smote them with maces, hewed them
-with swords, and stabbed them with javelins, until few were left. They
-stood their ground to the last and, in death, nobly redeemed their
-oaths to Psammenitus. So, in vast slaughter, the army of the Egyptian
-King disappeared, and with it fell Egypt.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-THE MADNESS OF CAMBYSES
-
-
-The King of Egypt fled on his swift dromedary, while the men who had
-marched with him to battle gave up their lives in his behalf and a
-red riot of slaughter stained the desert sands. The Persian cavalry,
-now unhindered by any organized resistance, carried death to the
-despairing, panting fugitives who fled from the contest. The Egyptian
-army was annihilated. Barely did the King himself enter his city of
-Memphis and close its gates ere the Prince of Iran, at the head of a
-picked body of men on horses almost spent with rapid going, appeared
-and demanded his surrender. The vast array of invaders soon spread
-over the fertile valley of Egypt and shut the king so closely within
-his city-walls that no succor could enter and only hope could flee.
-Psammenitus, unable to face a hero’s death, bowed to the power of the
-King of Kings, surrendered into his hands his crown, and acknowledged
-him as lord. He took his place with other captive kings at the table of
-his master and ate in bitterness of spirit the bread of peace.
-
-Victory having come to him easily, Cambyses became puffed up and
-arrogated to himself divine attributes. Secretly his heart was eaten
-with envy of the Prince of Iran, the idol of the army, to whom all men
-attributed the great victory. As a result, the king openly slighted the
-Prince, relieved him of the general command, placed other officers
-near his own person and through them issued his orders. Leaving barely
-enough troops to garrison lower Egypt, Cambyses himself led a great
-army southward into Ethiopia; but, as he had failed to take into
-account the vast deserts through which he had to pass to reach that
-region, his army soon came to want and starvation, and half of the
-soldiers composing it died of disease and privation. Had not the Prince
-of Iran asserted his prerogatives, assumed command of the garrisons of
-Egypt, and gathered a great caravan which he sent to the King’s relief,
-the remainder of the ill-fated army would have perished. Undeterred by
-this experience, the King sent a second expedition against the people
-of the oasis of Ammon and the priests of its great temple; but the
-whole army perished in a mighty sand-storm. He contemplated a third
-expedition for the reduction of Carthage and the northern littoral of
-Africa; but it failed because the Phœnicians refused to give the aid of
-their fleets against their kindred.
-
-All of these events consumed much time. Meanwhile in Egypt the King of
-Kings ruled with an iron hand. He looked with suspicion upon everybody.
-Knowing that he was loved by none, he filled his court with spies that
-he might detect any who would dare even to whisper against him. He
-blotted out in the blood of Psammenitus and his relatives an incipient
-revolt of the Egyptians, who, encouraged by the vast misfortunes that
-had befallen the army of their conqueror, dared to dream of liberty.
-He derided the Egyptian gods, closed their temples and made granaries
-of them, and slew the sacred bull, Apis, with his own sword. His
-jealousy led him to murder many of his own officers. Some of the most
-valiant men of the army upon slight pretext were arrested and executed
-summarily; others were found dead from the stabs of hired assassins.
-
-The Prince of Iran now habitually wore a coat of mail beneath his
-tunic, and to it he owed safety twice from the weapons of assassins.
-Once in the night, as he walked alone in the garden of the palace
-occupied by him as headquarters, a man leaped upon him and drove a
-javelin into his back, almost hurling him to the earth, but, owing to
-the mail, only bruising him. The assassin escaped. An arrow, shot from
-the shadow of a deserted temple as he rode by, slightly wounded his
-left arm and rebounded from the mail on his body. Again the assassin
-escaped. Thereafter Gobryas and other officers insisted that the Prince
-keep a powerful body-guard around him; and the King, having been
-informed of the attempts on his life, could not reasonably object.
-
-One day shortly after King Cambyses had departed on his expedition
-against Ethiopia, the Prince walked alone in the garden surrounding
-his dwelling in Memphis, examining with much interest the flowers and
-shrubs growing there. He had no duties to perform. Others administered
-the civil offices. Five thousand only of his own troopers were in the
-city under his command; and except to watch them drill and see that
-they were fed, he had nothing to do. His thoughts were of Athura and
-of the many messengers he had dispatched to the east in search of her.
-Presently as he drew near to the street-gate, he noticed a beggar
-sitting by the gate apparently resting and asleep. He glanced at the
-man, whose countenance was that of a Hebrew, and was about to turn
-away, when the beggar opened his eyes and at once prostrated himself
-with his face in the dust.
-
-“Live forever, O friend of God!” said the beggar. “Do I indeed behold
-the mighty Prince of Iran?” He spoke in the Medean dialect.
-
-The Prince answered: “You have said who I am. What do you wish?”
-
-“I bear a message.”
-
-“Arise and deliver it.”
-
-The man arose and, taking from his tunic a small packet, delivered it
-to the Prince, at the same time ejaculating with a deep sigh of relief:
-“Praise be to the God of Abraham! I have kept my word to the Prophet!”
-
-The Prince tore off the wrappings and unfolded a sheet of papyrus, on
-which was written in a hand he well knew:
-
- “_To my beloved, the Prince of my Soul, greeting_:
-
- “The bearer of this letter is to be trusted even as his master, the
- one who met you on the banks of the Choaspes and showed you the
- spirit of your ancestor, is to be trusted. He will tell you many
- things of me. He cannot tell how much I long to be with you or how my
- heart is sick with anxiety for your safety. How long are the days!
- How lonely the nights! But lest the one whose shadow darkens the
- world should pursue me or injure you, I have long kept silence. Now
- I must hear from you. I have promised the messenger great rewards
- and I know that you will make good my promises. Send him back to me
- quickly, for my soul is exceedingly weary and sick with waiting for
- word from you. Farewell, beloved!”
-
-The missive was unsigned, but the Prince knew from whom it came. His
-heart leaped with such joy that he became dizzy and he staggered like a
-drunken man. Recovering his usual calm demeanor with a mighty effort,
-he said: “Though in the guise of a beggar you come, son of Abraham,
-yet do you appear to me as an angel of light, bringing joy to my soul
-such as I have not felt for many sad days! Know you the writer of this?
-Have you seen her lately? How is she? Speak, man! Great shall be your
-reward!”
-
-The man’s face shone with joy. The gladness he had brought to this
-great one of earth was infectious. He arose and stood in humble
-attitude.
-
-“Great Lord,” he said. “I have not seen this star of the morning for
-three months, having come hither by a long journey; but, when mine
-eyes looked upon her as I started to come hither, they were blinded
-by the light of her eyes and I shaded them before the majesty of her
-countenance. Like a rose of Sharon is she! Like a cedar on Lebanon
-stands she, strong and beautiful! The music of her voice is as the song
-of many waters and loveliness enshrouds her as the darkness enshrouds
-the moon! Behold, are not all men her slaves? They upon whom she deigns
-to smile would cast themselves to the lions if she commanded, or would
-fall upon their own swords if she wished. She is well, but she is not
-happy; for she speaks much of my lord, the Prince of Iran, and sighs
-because she sees him not.”
-
-“Where is she?”
-
-“She is with the prophet of God, the great Daniel, known to you as
-Belteshazzer, in an oasis of the desert of Arabia. The sons of the
-desert are kindred to the prophet and they dwell happily and safely
-together. None except I and her two maids know who the royal maiden is.
-Most happy am I to enjoy the trust of the great master!”
-
-“Then she escaped, indeed! O thou glorious life-giving Spirit,
-Ahura-Mazda, I thank thee!”
-
-The Prince raised his eyes to the blue vault of heaven and removed
-the helmet from his head. The Hebrew watched him sympathetically;
-then, as the Prince turned to him again, he said, “Yes, Great Lord,
-she escaped from the palace at night and rode on a horse to the rock
-known as Behistun on the road to Susa. There my master, moved by the
-spirit, met her and took her with him into the desert ten days’ journey
-west of Babylon, where in all honor and safety they have kept her. I
-am requested to bear to her again a message from you, if it please you
-to give me one. Her message was unsigned and bore no words by which
-its meaning would be known, had I fallen into the hands of the King.
-But I can discourse to you of her. The prophet sends to you greeting,
-with words of good cheer. He bids me say that the times and seasons are
-changing rapidly and that great events will happen presently, in which
-you will have large part.”
-
-“Come, then, into my house, servant of Belteshazzer!” said the Prince.
-“You shall have great rewards. You shall be fed and clothed and be
-given riches beyond your dreams. We will spend the remainder of this
-day in converse of her and of her great protector.”
-
-The Prince led the way into his dwelling, and there his servants
-hurried to bathe and dress the messenger and to set before him victual
-and drink. And while he ate, his royal host sat near, plying him with
-questions. It was a great day in the life of Eleazer, the scribe,
-servant and confidential friend of Belteshazzer, the prophet of God. In
-the years to follow, when his host had become the mighty King of Kings,
-he never tired of relating this interview to his sons and to his son’s
-sons, and how the gracious Prince had talked familiarly with him as
-with a friend.
-
-Three days later, escorted by a strong body of Persian cavalry, he
-returned by way of Damascus to Babylon, loaded with riches. At Babylon
-he left his escort, resumed his disguise, and went into the desert,
-bearing with him a message from the Prince of Iran to Athura. This
-related the giving of the King’s consent to their marriage and advised
-her that it would be safe for her to go to Persepolis and there dwell
-in seclusion with his mother, under the guardianship of King Hystaspis,
-who had returned there, until the close of the present campaign. Then
-he would come and marry her, and thereafter defy Cambyses.
-
-Weary of the tent-life of the desert, she prevailed upon Belteshazzer
-to go with her to Persepolis. Here he and the philosophical King of
-Iran spent many happy days in study and learned dispute, while she,
-protected from danger by a strong guard of the King’s own men, resided
-in comfort and safety, waiting with patience the coming of her chosen
-one.
-
-Meanwhile the King of Kings, having suffered the severe reverses
-of fortune before mentioned, had abandoned himself to drunkenness
-and debauchery. His evil temper, aggravated by his reverses, was
-ungoverned. On the slightest provocation, he slew servants with his
-own hands or caused them to be cruelly tortured. If his spies or
-favorites mentioned unfavorably an officer or soldier, death, often
-accompanied by tortures, such as flaying alive, impaling on stakes,
-or dismemberment, was inflicted upon the unfortunate accused. He even
-dared seize and execute several noble Persians, thus carrying into
-effect his jealous resolve to reduce their haughty spirits. Finally a
-day came, when a dreadful murder forced to action a conspiracy among
-prominent Persians to dethrone him.
-
-Cambyses and his sister-wife were at dinner, when the King, after
-alluding to her sad countenance, derisively said to her: “You are like
-these other proud, upstart Persians, moping about with disapproving
-countenance! They shall all learn to bow the knee and to fall on their
-faces in the dust before me, or they shall die! Who am I that I should
-bear with them? I swear by Ahriman, that I will arrest every Persian
-officer; and on the morrow twelve shall die, on the day after twelve
-more shall die, and on each succeeding day a like number, until they
-are finished!”
-
-He banged his great fist down upon the table before him. His sister was
-greatly moved. Her state of health was such that she was extremely weak
-and nervous. Her face was white and her eyes were full of horror. The
-half-drunken King, noticing her look of repulsion, was infuriated, and,
-calling her a vile name, shouted: “What? Do you also defy me? Speak,
-craven, ere I tear out your tongue!”
-
-The spirit in the child-woman suddenly blazed up and, arising from the
-couch where she had been reclining, she stood before the brute with
-clenched hands and flashing eyes.
-
-“Murderer!” she cried. “You have abandoned all good! You are all evil!
-You foully murdered Bardya! You have driven Athura to her death! You
-have dishonored me! Would you murder all the Aryan race? Are you a
-Persian? Or are you a devil?”
-
-For a moment Cambyses was too dazed to speak. Never had any one
-addressed him thus. Lashed to insane fury by her words, he sprang
-up with stuttering curses, knocked the frail woman down, and jumped
-upon her prostrate body with his feet, stamping and crushing her into
-insensibility. The servants screamed, and some of them endeavored to
-prevent him; but he drew a dagger and stabbed one to death, wounded
-another, and drove all out of his presence. Then, recovering his
-senses somewhat and stricken with remorse, he knelt at the side of his
-sister and wept aloud. He then called for his surgeons and bade them
-save her or die. They tried faithfully to restore her to consciousness,
-but without avail. She died within the hour.
-
-This horrible crime soon became known among the Persians. There were
-then encamped near Memphis about fifty thousand men, the remnant of
-the Aryans who had followed the King into Egypt. Conferences were at
-once held among the Persian officers and it was decided that Cambyses,
-being insane, should be deposed. The Prince of Iran had no part in
-these deliberations. With Gobryas and a body-guard, he had gone to
-visit the nearest pyramids and had been absent several days. Spies duly
-reported to the King the discontent of the army. On the next day after
-the murder of his sister, the King caused the arrest of fifty of the
-chief officers of the army, many of them sons of the highest nobility
-of Iran. True to his oath, taken before his sister, he slew twelve of
-them and caused their heads to be hung on the gates of the city with an
-inscription warning all traitors of a like fate. At once there was a
-vast uproar. The Aryan troops arose in a mass and marched into Memphis
-to seize the King. A bloody battle took place in the gardens of the
-King’s palace, in which the King’s body-guard was cut in pieces and its
-remnants driven into the palace, where behind heavy gates and doors
-they pantingly awaited death. Prexaspes commanded the body-guard and
-made a brave defense. But the veteran Persians and Bactrians were not
-to be repulsed. They were about to batter down the palace gates, when
-the Prince of Iran arrived. Immediately the infuriated men raised a
-roar of welcome and thrust upon him at once the chief command, begging
-him to lead them and to allow them to set him up as King.
-
-The King was not deficient in physical courage. Sobered at last
-by the awful results of his fury in the murder of his sister, and
-caring little what the end of this revolt might be, desperate and
-savage, ready to fight to the end, he paced back and forth behind
-the battlements surrounding the roof of the great palace wherein he
-was besieged, and glowered sullenly down upon the raging mob below.
-Prexaspes came to him, ostensibly for orders but really to advise that
-overtures of peace be made. To him the King said rabidly: “What! Will
-you turn against me also? Why not go down and join those? Perhaps they
-will honor you! Saw you not that Prince of Iran out yonder? I thought
-I saw him ride up. Even now, if I mistake not, he stands yonder in the
-midst of his officers planning how best to take me. Bring up a dozen of
-the best archers. Him at least shall they slay!”
-
-Prexaspes shook his head impatiently, and, while keeping his eye on the
-King lest the latter might attack him, he said harshly: “Have I not
-said that the Prince of Iran is oath-bound to you? He alone can save
-you this day! Would you slay the only man who can call off those wolves
-yonder? It is madness to slay him. We shall be torn limb for limb if he
-save us not!”
-
-The King did not answer immediately. He watched the movements of the
-mob with tiger-like eyes. He saw Prince Hystaspis pass slowly through
-the mob and observed that the officers were also passing back and forth
-shouting orders. He saw the men falling in with orderly precision
-and, in a few minutes, that the mob had become an army. Company after
-company formed in the open garden and the adjacent streets, until on
-all sides of the palace a solid cordon of men stood at rest with
-officers duly advanced before them. Prexaspes waited impatiently for
-orders, but the King only ordered wine to be brought.
-
-The Prince of Iran had said to the officers who were directing the
-mob: “Captains of Iran, I am grieved to the heart! Never before have
-the Aryans turned on their King in this manner and assaulted his high
-Majesty! But the provocation has been great! Nevertheless, if the
-Aryans rule the world, they must obey their kings! By your act you
-have forfeited your lives and under the law are as dead men! I will
-go to the King and seek his pardon for you and for those he now holds
-in prison. Speak to the men and say that I, the Prince of Iran, their
-commander, order them to desist until I go to the King and return!”
-
-Up spoke a grizzled veteran, who had campaigned with Cyrus: “O most
-beloved Prince, go not to the King! Does he not hate you? Has he not
-without cause murdered his brother and his two sisters? Why do the
-heads of our comrades hang on yonder walls? By the great God, we have
-sworn that he shall release the others or die! He is a madman, and it
-is no treason to dethrone him. Go not to him! He will slay you also!”
-
-The Prince looked upon the rugged face of the speaker with love, but he
-said reprovingly: “I know your heart, Arbax; but you forget that he is
-the son of Cyrus, the Great King. What of me? Have I not suffered at
-his hands? Yet do I counsel obedience. Will you not be guided by me?”
-
-“Always and forever!” answered Arbax. “But is it not just to demand
-that he release our officers as well as pardon the men?”
-
-“It is just. If he refuse, then indeed is he mad and you do well to
-take him from the throne. I will go to him demanding this. Will you
-abide the result?”
-
-A common assent was given by all. Only Gobryas, whose soul was bitter
-because of the death of Artistone, exclaimed: “Prince and brother, let
-me carry this demand to the King, and you remain here! If he refuse our
-request, or slay me, it will matter little. There may be no need of
-further rioting! Let me go in your stead.”
-
-But the Prince shook his head. To send Gobryas meant to send death to
-the King, as the latter, he knew, was in a mood to slay the monster who
-had crushed the life out of the woman he loved.
-
-“Have patience, my brother,” said the Prince. “The state is above all
-else. Shall we slay our King and plunge the whole world into anarchy?
-Every subject nation would revolt. We are in the midst of our enemies
-and far from home with a weakened army. Terror of the King of Kings
-lies heavy upon the subject-peoples. It must not be removed now. No,
-the time is not ripe! Iran must be prepared to set up another King
-before throwing down this one. The King will see the justice of our
-demands.”
-
-Another captain spoke up, voicing the decision of all: “We will obey
-you, as our commander. But our brothers must be released and pardon
-extended to all. If you return not in one half-hour with their pardon,
-we storm the palace and slay every man therein. We swear it!”
-
-“We swear it!” echoed all.
-
-“Do as you say!” answered the Prince. “But I will return. Fear not for
-me! One higher than I goes with me. Remain here and let the men not
-move from their places.”
-
-He departed at once to the palace-gate, and, to the guards peering
-forth from loopholes at its sides he commanded: “Open! I go to the
-King, bearing peace!”
-
-The door was swung back to admit him. The guards had expected only
-death at the hands of the savage men who stood around the palace in
-silent, menacing attitude, and peace they greatly desired. The Prince
-was conducted to the roof, where he found Prexaspes and the King. The
-latter had seated himself at a small table and was drinking wine. He
-turned to the Prince, who was startled at the sight of his haggard
-face, his bloodshot eyes, and trembling hands--trembling, not in fear,
-but from nervousness and debauchery. The King’s voice was full of
-bitterness and hate, as he said: “Prince of Iran, I bid you welcome!
-Your eyes are doubtless glad to behold your King at the mercy of yonder
-rabble! What come you for? My crown?”
-
-The Prince saluted the King gravely and looked down upon him with
-ill-concealed disgust and pity. He said in cold, measured tones: “King
-of the World, the day has come when even I am unable to restrain the
-soldiers of Iran. Those men and their fathers made your father King of
-Kings, King of the World, the Great King. They have added Egypt to your
-empire. How have you rewarded them? Think you that without these Aryans
-and their officers whom you have imprisoned, you could sit here in
-safety one day? Not so! These Egyptians, these Syrians and Babylonians,
-serve you not because they love you, but because they fear our
-soldiers. Are you mad? Why have you given yourself over to murder and
-debauchery? Why have you forsaken your God and allied yourself with the
-vile Magi? I speak plainly but loyally. I am oath-bound to support you,
-but I swear that unless you now be advised by me, I will do nothing to
-save you from these men, who thirst to avenge the blood of Bardya, of
-Artistone, and of these others you have slain without just cause!”
-
-The King’s face grew purple with rage. He sprang to his feet and
-half-drew his sword. But his eyes, looking into the eyes of the Prince,
-saw in them a fierce, savage light and a compelling gaze that drove him
-back to his seat. He dared not lift his hand against this man. A chill
-of abject fear ran through his body; and he saw, as if by revelation,
-a hideous chasm opening before him. Into that chasm of present and
-eternal destruction he had been about to leap. He drew back and
-shudderingly covered his face with his hands. His nerves were unstrung
-by debauchery and by his fearful crimes. He had come to a place where,
-in the face of death, he realized how evil his life had been. It was
-true, as he now acknowledged to himself, that the position he held was
-due to the men he had slighted, insulted, imprisoned, or murdered.
-He was silent a moment, and as he sank back upon his chair he weakly
-passed a hand across his eyes and said: “What do you advise? Your words
-are true! I have been mad, but now I am restored to reason and I see
-clearly.”
-
-The Prince was surprised. He had not expected such sudden change. He
-thought rapidly, not only for the present safety of the King, but for
-the good of the Aryan race. A friendly, cordial note sounded in his
-voice, as he answered: “Be advised by me, O King! Put away from you
-the Magi. Put aside these Medean favorites. Surround yourself with
-men of your own race and fill the high offices of the empire with its
-nobility. Renounce the witchcraft of the fire-worshipers and proclaim
-to the world the rule of Ahura-Mazda. Pardon the men in rebellion
-and release all prisoners. Bestow compensation upon the widows and
-relatives of those you have slain. Then will the people of Iran
-support you and yours on the throne forever. Then will your reign
-become truly great and glorious!”
-
-The King remained silent a long time after the Prince ceased speaking.
-A good impulse stirred within his heart. Life had been without
-happiness to him since that fatal night when he had ordered Bardya
-slain. Hate, envy, and malice towards the best men of his own race
-had filled his heart. Remorse over his brother’s fate had been with
-him, but it was as nothing to the remorse and grief gnawing his soul
-over the death of Artistone, the gentle sister and wife whom he really
-loved. Could he ever atone? He would try.
-
-“Let it be done as you say,” he commanded, rising unsteadily and
-shaking himself as if he would shake off a horrible dream. “Prexaspes,
-you shall write decrees to fulfill all that our beloved Prince advises.
-So be it! I turn back into the old ways of my fathers. I will dismiss
-the Magi. I will fill all chief offices with Persians. I will dismiss
-my new body-guard of Medes, and you, Prince, shall furnish the new
-Imperial Guard and command it. Write a decree, Prexaspes, making this
-Prince the chief man in my empire after the King. Evermore will I be
-guided by his advice. The Magi must go down and back to their haunts in
-the hills. The temples of Ahura-Mazda shall open; and I will offer a
-thousand sacrifices to atone for my sins. Order the prisoners released.
-Write an address to be read to the army, telling of my new resolve. I
-will go down to the soldiers and tell them this myself!”
-
-“Not so, O King!” said the Prince. “Let me deal with these men. Let
-your decrees be prepared and signed at once. I will go down, release
-the imprisoned officers and return to the army with them. This, O King,
-may be a great day for good to the Aryan race!”
-
-“Let every order given by the Prince of Iran be obeyed,” said the King
-to Prexaspes.
-
-The latter bowed low, and, followed by the Prince, departed immediately
-to release the imprisoned officers, and in a few moments these went
-forth to join the rejoicing troops. The palace gates were thrown
-open, its defenders marched out and departed to a distant garrison,
-and a new guard of Persians was placed in charge. The Prince of Iran,
-having secured the decrees and published them, assumed charge of the
-King’s affairs. Thirty days of mourning for Artistone were observed.
-Compensation for the death of those slain by the King’s orders and
-banishment of the Magi from affairs of state followed.
-
-King Cambyses determined to return to Medea in order to complete the
-work of restoring to power the Persian faction. Aryandes, a noble
-Persian, was appointed satrap of Egypt and the bulk of the army was
-left with him. The King, with a guard of ten thousand Persians and an
-army of fifty thousand mixed troops, escorting a vast train loaded with
-the wealth of Egypt, marched by easy stages out of the latter country,
-through Canaan, along the shore of the Great Sea, to a point near Mount
-Carmel, where he turned towards Damascus. The curses of Egypt went with
-him. Her priests, under the milder rule of the sane Aryandes, then
-returned to her deserted temples. But so broken were the Egyptians and
-so strong was the Persian hold that no rebellion occurred. The Egyptian
-people, having learned that while the Persian King might be harsh yet
-his rule in the main was just, did no more than dream of revolution;
-and for a century Egypt slept peacefully beneath the paw of the Persian
-lion.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-THE END OF OATH-KEEPING
-
-
-After resting some days by the sea near Mount Carmel, the King’s army
-moved eastward towards Damascus, passing north of Lake Chinneroth and
-south of Mount Hermon, through the ancient land of Bashan, and so came
-to the small city of Hamath near the head-waters of the Jordan.
-
-Since leaving Egypt the King had kept himself secluded, either riding
-in a closed litter carried on the shoulders of stout slaves, or staying
-within his tent. He was gloomy and morose. He brooded much alone, and
-when in his darkest moods was a savage and unreasonable maniac. The
-Persian cavalry, of which his body-guard was composed, regarded him
-with ill-suppressed hatred. The remainder of the army was disaffected
-and mutinous. A factional spirit had sprung up among the soldiers. The
-different nationalities and religions clashed. Especially did the Aryan
-monotheists despise the worshipers of many gods and the devil-worship
-of the Magi. Only the strong hand of the Prince of Iran, for whom all
-had respect, could repress disorder and enforce discipline.
-
-The King halted a day at Hamath and allowed the army to rest before
-entering the desert road for Damascus. The Prince of Iran mounted his
-favorite horse and, accompanied by Gobryas and a score of men, rode out
-towards Mount Hermon. As they were about to ascend the lower hills,
-they met a runner or message-bearer, coming down from the mountain,
-who, when he saw the Prince, stopped running and bowed himself to the
-earth. The Prince halted. He saw that the man was a Hebrew.
-
-“Do not mine eyes behold the great lord, the mighty Prince of Iran?”
-asked the runner.
-
-“I am he,” answered the Prince.
-
-The man produced a roll from his close-fitting tunic and handed it to
-the Prince, who, greatly surprised, opened and read:
-
- “Greeting to the royal Prince, Darius of Iran, son of King Hystaspis!
- May God have you in favor! Hearing that you are with the great army
- near Hamath, and having much to say of those you love well, I pray
- that you will appoint a time and place where I may meet you. I do not
- think it best to come into the King’s camp, unless you may assure me
- of a safe escort. My trusty servant, Joseph, will bear safely to me
- any message you may send. If you would visit me, he will guide you to
- my tent.
-
- “Farewell,
- “BELTESHAZZER.”
-
-The Prince’s heart leaped with joy. Once only had he heard from the
-Princess Athura, and he knew not whether she had taken his advice and
-gone to Persepolis. Perhaps she had chosen to stay with Belteshazzer
-and was now with him. He handed the letter to Gobryas to read and said
-to the messenger: “I will go to your master. Lead the way!”
-
-The messenger again saluted and, turning his face to the mountain,
-led the way with a long swinging stride, going so swiftly that the
-horses of the Persians occasionally galloped to keep near him. The
-road wound upward around the spurs of the mountain. Having surmounted
-a high ridge, they came at length upon a small plateau several acres
-in extent, from which the rugged heights went up still farther and
-upon which were several cedar and fir trees. At one side a dashing
-torrent poured out from a gulch, spread out in a swirling pool, leaped
-over a rocky barrier, and disappeared into a canyon. Near the pool on
-a grassy plot was a pavilion of dark cloth and, clustered near it, a
-score of lesser tents. Several horses grazed on the green before the
-tents, and a group of men armed with bows and spears stood near the
-pavilion. As the Persians drew near, a man of stately and benign aspect
-emerged from it and spoke reassuringly to the men, who were uneasily
-regarding the newcomers as possible enemies. Then he remained standing
-at the tent-door and waved a hand in greeting to the Prince. It was
-Belteshazzer. The Prince spurred his steed forward and, dismounting,
-hastened to Belteshazzer, embraced him affectionately, and kissed both
-his cheeks.
-
-“Hail, Master,” he exclaimed. “How long it has been since I last saw
-you! Are you well?”
-
-“My health is excellent, my son,” answered the Hebrew, cordially. “Glad
-indeed am I to behold you! Bid your men dismount. My servants shall set
-food before them and attend to their horses.”
-
-He called a servant to him and gave the Prince’s retinue in his charge.
-Then he led the Prince into the pavilion and caused him to sit down and
-partake of refreshments. The Prince looked about him expectantly, but
-was disappointed in finding no indications that Athura was in the camp.
-Belteshazzer knew his thoughts and smilingly said: “She is not here,
-my son. When we received your letter bidding her go to your father,
-we considered your advice good and traveled thither by easy journeys.
-We were guests of your father many months. I left her there under his
-protection and in the love and care of your mother, when I journeyed
-hither. She was well. More beautiful than the morn, sweeter than the
-roses that bloom in Persian gardens, as pure as the snows of Demavend,
-she waits for you! Your father has established such a strong guard
-around his palace that it resembles a camp; and none go in or come out
-who are not known.”
-
-“My gratitude is unspeakable, O Prophet of God!” said the Prince,
-fervently. “If there shall ever be any favor I may render you, it shall
-be rendered. Have you ever loved a woman? And know you the pain of
-separation from her?”
-
-Belteshazzer sighed as he answered: “Yea, I have known the love of a
-wife. But she has gone before and awaits me on the shore of the river
-of life. Like a spring of water and a green tree in a desert, is the
-love of a good woman. I have much to tell you, my son; but I know you
-desire me to speak of her most.”
-
-He then related the manner of Athura’s escape from the palace of
-Cambyses at Hamadan, and the manner of her life since. Then he gave to
-the Prince a large packet, containing letters from the Princess, from
-King Hystaspis, and from the Queen-mother.
-
-“Now,” he continued, “having told you that which you wished most to
-know as a man, I must speak with you of matters of state in which you
-are concerned as a Prince and as the King to be. Even as you drew near,
-it was given me of the spirit to perceive that this day is full of
-mighty portent. Even now there enter men into the King’s camp bearing
-news that will shake the King’s soul. I have also received from trusty
-agents within the week great news that has traveled to others less
-swiftly. Evil men have seized the government of the world at Hamadan.
-Patatheites, the regent, has brought forth one whom he calls Bardya,
-the King’s brother, and has proclaimed him King of Kings. He has caused
-a decree to be published remitting all taxes for three years, declaring
-that Cambyses is a maniac and possessed of evil spirits, and ordering
-that he be apprehended and imprisoned. You are surprised. Well may you
-be. But fear not. It is not Bardya that reigns, but an impostor. He is
-that Gaumata whom the Great King maimed by cutting off his ears. Evil
-has been the life of Cambyses, but not so evil as are the lives of
-those men who have usurped power.”
-
-The Prince uttered an exclamation of wonder and incredulity.
-
-“But is Bardya dead? How knew you this? How can that Gaumata hope to
-impersonate him long?”
-
-Belteshazzer smiled and remained silent for a moment. His eyes were
-fixed as if looking within, and he assumed a listening attitude, as one
-might in revery. Presently he spoke softly and dreamily:
-
-“Yea, I see them even now sitting in a room of the great palace!
-Patatheites paces up and down, his pale, sharp countenance wreathed
-in a triumphant smile. Gaumata, the earless one, sits on the throne,
-uneasy and afraid. He wears a turban low down on his head after the
-fashion of the Arabs, but it is to conceal his lack of ears. He
-resembles Bardya, but he is Gaumata. He has shown himself to the
-people, who have acclaimed him. He awaits uneasily the return of
-messengers sent to all parts of the earth. In him the Magi triumph and
-Ahriman, that old serpent, the devil, rules. God is forgotten. As I
-said, even now there run into the King’s camp at Hamath the emissaries
-of the false Bardya. They are proclaiming the decree aloud to the
-wondering soldiers. They are distributing copies to all who can read. A
-mighty spirit of unrest broods over the army!”
-
-He paused and Prince Hystaspis sprang to his feet, exclaiming: “Then
-there is need that I return to the army at once! It loves not the King.
-But is Bardya truly dead, O Prophet of God? Out of all your divine
-wisdom assure me of this. Direct my course. Tell me of the future. Not
-while I live shall the usurper throw down the seed of Cyrus from his
-throne!”
-
-He paused. A tremor passed over the face of Belteshazzer, and with
-half-closed eyes he continued the low, even-toned words of the seer:
-
-“My son, Bardya is dead! He was slain by Prexaspes in pursuance of the
-King’s command. A sword-stroke from behind, as they rode northward out
-of Hamadan, was given by the Mede, with such power that it cleft the
-Prince’s head to the eyes. Have no doubt of this. I have seen it in
-visions and heard it of the spirit. What of the future? I see Cambyses
-dead! I see raised on high one with the countenance of Darius, son
-of Hystaspis, like an eagle; and he looks at the sun and spreads his
-wings over the whole world. More I cannot see. God does not decree all
-things; but He brings to pass that which He does decree. He controls
-not the wills of men, nor forces them to do good or evil. But in accord
-with His mighty purpose, He ordains that you, O son of Hystaspis,
-shall rule the world; and it shall come to pass! Fear not! Go forward!
-Cast down the liars of earth and those that delude the people to their
-hurt, idolaters and worshipers of earthly things! Restore again the
-altars of God. With great power shall you rule and give peace and
-justice to the peoples of the earth.”
-
-“But it is not required that I raise my hand against Cambyses?”
-
-“No. It is not required. The King is his own avenger.”
-
-“Come with me, beloved Master. I need your advice and guidance.”
-
-“I will come to you at Hamadan in due time, my son. Now I go down to
-Jerusalem to encourage my people. When you come to your high estate,
-remember my people, who languish in foreign lands. The Great Cyrus
-decreed their return, but died before it could be accomplished. Let
-them return and rebuild the temple of God and live happily beneath the
-shadow of the King of Kings.”
-
-“I swear to you, O Belteshazzer, it shall be done! Your God is my God.
-Is is not so? Your people shall be even as the Aryans, favored of me,
-when I sit on the throne.”
-
-“Yea, it is so. God is a spirit. Ahura-Mazda, the good spirit, is the
-same as Elohim. Have we not so decided, your father and I, in discourse
-by the Pulwar? Truly your father is a man of knowledge!”
-
-“He sat at the feet of Zoroaster in his youth. Has age touched him and
-my mother harshly?”
-
-“No. Their eyes are undimmed. Their hearts are young. Age but puts
-wisdom into them.”
-
-Many other questions, of his home, of his parents, and of Athura, asked
-the Prince. Servants having spread a lunch beneath an awning before
-the pavilion, he and Gobryas sat down with Belteshazzer and refreshed
-themselves. It was an inspiring scene. To the west and north were the
-rugged spurs and ridges of Mount Hermon. Below and to the east was the
-great plain spreading out towards Damascus and Edom. The sparkling
-cascade with its soft rush of waters, the song of birds, the brilliant
-sunlight over all, were elements of an impression on the mind of the
-Prince that he never forgot. From this point he set out to seize the
-throne of the world. Convinced that the great prophet spoke truly, he
-now set his gaze on the greatest place of power in all the earth and
-went steadily towards it. But he did not linger here. With the blessing
-of Belteshazzer ringing in his ears, he hastened back to the army.
-
-As he rode into camp, he saw evidence of excitement and turmoil.
-His ten thousand Persians composing the body-guard were standing in
-battle-array, in a hollow square around the King’s pavilion, with
-officers pacing back and forth at the several fronts in gloomy silence.
-A vast concourse of men was gathered near around a speaker, who,
-mounted on a chariot, was haranguing them. A roar of voices arose as
-the speaker paused and pointed towards the Prince and his party.
-
-“Long live Bardya! Down with Cambyses! Hail to King Bardya! Slay the
-murderer of his sister! Death to the tyrant!” were some of the shouts
-that came to the Prince’s ears. He paused but an instant to listen.
-Then, riding up to one of the officers of the guard, he demanded, “What
-means this?”
-
-“Praise God you have come!” answered the officer, joyfully. “Now we
-shall know what to do. Messengers have come from Damascus bearing
-copies of a decree from Bardya, the King’s brother, announcing that
-he has assumed the throne of the King of Kings and has been crowned
-at Hamadan. He decrees that Cambyses be seized and brought to him so
-that he may be punished for the murder of the King’s sister; and he
-also promises peace and remission of taxes. Here is a copy. We of the
-guard knew not your pleasure, whether we should defend King Cambyses
-or deliver him as a prisoner to your hand. So we have surrounded the
-King’s pavilion and are ready to do your will.”
-
-The officer presented a roll of papyrus to the Prince, who quickly read
-it. Then the Prince directed all the officers to come before him and
-said:
-
-“Men, as to this report that Bardya has set himself up for King, I know
-that Bardya is dead and he who is set up on high is an impostor. The
-liars of the hills have done this thing, having heard of the King’s
-decree that they shall be cast down from their places. Order the
-soldiers to remain steadfast and resist those men who have stirred up
-mutiny. Say to them that I, their Prince, have spoken, and my word they
-must obey. No impious hand shall be laid upon Cambyses, the King!”
-
-The officers were amazed. But they doubted not the words of their
-commander, and went along the lines, repeating to the excited soldiery
-his words. He, dismounting, went alone into the King’s pavilion. A
-trembling slave announced him to the King and admitted him to the
-presence. He found Cambyses pacing back and forth in great agitation.
-
-“Ha!” exclaimed the King, “you have returned! I thought you too had
-turned from me. How is it that rebellion has broken loose in this camp?
-Are you not commander? You shall answer for it with your head! But
-perhaps you come to tell me that I am a prisoner! And you will put me
-in chains and take me to Bardya!”
-
-The Prince saluted gravely and stood with uncovered head. “I come to
-assure you that the Guard and I intend to defend you against any
-attack,” he said. “Is it your order that we arrest the mutineers and
-punish them?”
-
-The King paused in amazement. He was incredulous and shaken. He could
-not believe that this man, who had suffered such wrongs at his hands,
-would not seize him and carry him to Bardya. He believed that Prexaspes
-had been faithless in executing his order to slay Bardya and that the
-latter had seized an opportune time to appear and claim the throne. His
-army in mutiny, what chance had he to regain his lost throne? He passed
-a trembling hand uncertainly over his haggard face.
-
-“I am mightily shaken,” he said nervously. “The words of a sorcerer
-ring in my ears. He said that I should die at Hamadan. I thought you
-had come to seize me and carry me thither to death. I thought Bardya
-dead! Prexaspes so reported. Where is this Prexaspes? Let him be
-brought hither!”
-
-He jerked a cord connecting with a bell in the servants’ quarters. A
-servant instantly appeared.
-
-“Send Prexaspes hither!” commanded the King.
-
-They waited in gloomy silence until Prexaspes came. There was a mocking
-light in the Mede’s dark eyes and a perceptible sneer on his face as
-he met the King’s savage gaze. He bowed low to both the King and the
-Prince.
-
-“Hark you!” exclaimed Cambyses. “Hear those cries! They acclaim Bardya
-King! Did you not swear to me that my brother was dead?”
-
-“I did swear, O King!” answered Prexaspes, coolly. “Here was my
-authority to slay him.”
-
-He drew a paper from his tunic and deliberately handed it unrolled to
-the Prince, who glanced at it. It was the order of King Cambyses to
-slay Bardya. The King’s face grew livid with wrath.
-
-“Thus commanded,” continued Prexaspes, “I rode with Bardya along the
-Rhages road after leaving the hall where the King gave a feast in
-his honor. I returned and reported that I had slain Bardya with a
-sword-stroke from behind. But he died not, it seems. Why should I have
-the blood of kings on my hands?”
-
-The Prince studied the Mede’s face with growing rage. The latter’s
-bold gaze fell before the accusing fury of the Prince’s eyes. The King
-seemed speechless. The Prince smote his hands together, and burst
-forth: “By the living God, you both deserve the death of murderers! Why
-should I interfere with the wrath of God? You lie, Prexaspes! I know
-the truth!”
-
-He cast the order at the King’s feet and without ceremony turned and
-left the tent. The King turned upon Prexaspes with maniacal fury.
-
-“Villain! Dog!” he screamed. “Why show that order? You know that my
-only hope depends on the Prince! Now you have turned him from me! You
-shall be skinned alive! Your heart shall be cut out and given to swine!
-You shall hang on a stake!”
-
-Prexaspes laughed and snapped his fingers in the King’s face.
-
-“I fear you not, foul beast!” he shouted. “Your day has come, as comes
-the day of every villain, whether crowned or not! Am I to die? I know
-it. I read death in the eyes of the Prince. I also read your death
-there, son of Ahriman! Listen! You slew my son, in cruel sport, one
-day. The arrow that cleft his brain killed my loyalty to you. I know a
-lingering death awaits you at Hamadan or I would myself slay you now!”
-
-For a moment the King was so astonished as to be speechless. Then,
-roaring inarticulate curses, he sought for his sword. But it was not
-at his side. He rushed about the tent searching for it. Prexaspes,
-laughing derisively, disappeared through the rear door. The King
-presently found a long dagger in a pile of armor and with it rushed out
-after Prexaspes. But though he searched through the servants’ quarters,
-he did not find him. He returned to his pavilion and after pacing back
-and forth a moment went out in front of his quarters, uncertain what
-course to pursue.
-
-A vast mob of soldiers, waving arms and shouting maledictions upon
-Cambyses, was moving down upon the Persian square. The Prince of Iran
-was mounting his horse, while several orderlies were galloping along
-the tense lines of the Guard delivering orders to the captains. A squad
-of cavalry under Gobryas was marching towards the King’s tent.
-
-“They come to arrest me!” muttered the King. “But I shall not be taken
-alive! Prexaspes lied. My brother lives and the world turns to him. He
-will surely slay me, knowing that I ordered him slain. If I die, I will
-die as a King!”
-
-A sudden high resolve entered his soul. He went back into the tent,
-placed the crown and tiara, which he wore on state occasions, on his
-head, threw over his shoulders a long purple cloak, composed his
-countenance to a calm dignity, and, with the long, keen dagger in his
-hand, again went forth. Gobryas and his troopers, who were under orders
-to place the King in their midst and to cut their way out and escape
-with him should the Guard be unable to repulse the expected attack,
-opened up to let the King pass through. The Prince was riding towards
-the mob intent on a parley before the necessity of bloodshed should
-come. The King passed through the ranks of the Guard and halted at ten
-paces in front. The leaders of the mob, seeing him, suddenly halted at
-a hundred paces’ distance and fell silent, astonished at the appearance
-of the terrible Cambyses. The Prince, turning to investigate the cause
-of the mob’s action, saw Cambyses look a moment at the low, western
-sun and around at the sky and distant mountains, and at last turn his
-burning eyes upon the hostile faces of his subjects. Then, with a swift
-motion, the King elevated the gleaming dagger and plunged it into his
-own chest. A cry of horror involuntarily rose from the throng. The King
-swayed, his knees bent, and he fell prone upon the earth. The Prince,
-realizing what the King had done, turned upon the mob and shouted:
-“Back to your tents, scoundrels! You have slain your King! Back, I say,
-before I let loose the Guards upon you!”
-
-An immediate backward movement of the mob took place, and it melted
-away in awed silence. The Prince rode quickly back to the King, and,
-assisted by his officers, carried the injured man into the tent.
-Surgeons were called, the dagger removed, and the wound bandaged. The
-blade had failed to reach the heart, but had passed through a lung and
-inflicted a fatal wound. The shock had rendered the King insensible.
-Blood poured from his mouth, but he did not die immediately.
-
-Night had fallen before the King regained consciousness. He opened his
-eyes and looked at the flaring lamps, as if wondering whether they were
-torches in the underworld, and at the soft-footed attendants as if
-wondering whether they were lost souls. His eyes presently rested upon
-the Prince of Iran, who stood at the foot of his couch with folded arms
-looking sadly down upon him. Recognition arrested his wandering mind.
-He strove to rise, muttering feebly, “Then I am not dead!”
-
-An attendant sought to restrain him. Blood gushed from his mouth, and
-he fell back with a bubbling groan. After resting a moment and clearing
-his throat, he said with difficulty: “Let all retire save the Prince. I
-am about to die. Let me die in peace.”
-
-At a nod from the Prince, the attendants left the room. The Prince drew
-near to the head of the couch. The King looked up at him and spoke in
-weak, halting words:
-
-“Strange it is, Prince of Iran, that you alone stand by me in death!
-A thousand times I have planned your death, but my hand has ever been
-held. I have done you wrong. But in you alone have I trusted. How is it
-that I have hated yet trusted you?”
-
-The Prince shook his head. “I know not,” he said.
-
-“But it is fate!” continued the King. “What of the future? Where now
-are the wise men? Where those prophets of the hills who predicted good
-fortune, who said that my seed should sit on the throne, who said I
-would conquer all my enemies and die at Hamadan? Would God that I had
-heeded the words of the prophet Belteshazzer, when he sought to teach
-me how to live rightly! Where is that Belteshazzer? I wish that he were
-here!”
-
-He paused. There was a rustle of the curtain at the tent-door. It drew
-aside and the tall, majestic presence of Belteshazzer came into the
-tent. The musical, quiet voice of the prophet said, “I am here, O King
-Cambyses!”
-
-Cambyses stared in amazement.
-
-“What wonder is this?” he exclaimed. “Am I dreaming? Is this a vision?
-Are you that prophet, Belteshazzer?”
-
-“I am Belteshazzer, the Hebrew,” answered the prophet. “Your life is
-almost ended, Cambyses. What do you demand of me?”
-
-“I demand to know what awaits me in the future. About to die, I would
-atone for many grievous sins. What of the future? What of God? What of
-forgetfulness through eternity to come?”
-
-Belteshazzer’s countenance exhibited both pity and sternness, as he
-answered, “Your time is short to atone for the grievous sins of your
-life, O King. The blood of many cries against you from the ground.
-Through long years to come, wherever your soul may wander, the evil you
-have done will be with you and bitterness will be your portion. But
-God, the great and only God, is a loving Father; and, perhaps, if you
-humble yourself and repent, you may at length win His forgiveness and
-favor. There will be no forgetfulness without forgiveness. Greatly have
-you sinned. Deeply must you repent.”
-
-“Yes, I have sinned greatly,” murmured the King. “In frantic wrath I
-slew my sister-wife! In willful oppression I drove my sister Athura to
-her death--”
-
-“She is not dead,” interrupted Belteshazzer. “She lives!”
-
-“Praise be to Ahura-Mazda!” said the King. “Now I know what that Magian
-meant, when he said that a son of my sister shall sit on the throne of
-the King of Kings. For she shall marry the Prince of Iran. I feel upon
-me the spirit of prophecy! Prince of Iran, you shall be King of Kings!
-In the presence of Belteshazzer, I declare you my successor. Marry
-Athura. I give her to you. She is your wife. Thus do I atone for one
-sin. But that other prophet lied when he said I should die at Hamadan.
-For I die here in the Syrian desert.”
-
-“Did he say Hamadan of Medea?” inquired Belteshazzer. “If not, he spake
-truly. For this village where you are encamped is named Hamath, which
-is Syrian for Hamadan.”
-
-The King gasped. “Then he spake truly!” he said. “He was not of the
-Magi. He was a hermit, alone in the mountains. He reproved me one
-day--and he was slain. Truly have I sinned! I have slain the prophets
-with the sword!”
-
-He was silent a moment. Blood choked him and he coughed. The Prince
-gently aided him. The King’s strength was rapidly failing. His voice
-was gone and he whispered hoarsely, “O that I might see those I have
-wronged and of them seek pardon!”
-
-He fell silent and his eyes were partially closed. Presently he
-shuddered and opened his eyes wide. He half rose, stared in amazement
-and terror towards the foot of his couch, and raised his hand as if
-to ward off a blow. The Prince, following the direction of the King’s
-gaze, saw (or did he dream?) at the foot of the King’s couch a company
-of apparitions, one of which seemed to have the pallid, serious,
-reproving countenance of Cyrus, the Great King, another the sorrowful
-face of Artistone, another the fierce countenance of Bardya, while a
-score of others, unknown to him, seemed to come and go. Their faces
-were turned towards Cambyses; but, as the Prince gazed spellbound,
-the face of Cyrus turned towards him, his lips seemed to move, and
-he seemed to say: “You have kept your oath. You are free. Ascend the
-throne of the King of Kings!”
-
-A gurgling shriek from the King aroused the Prince. The apparitions
-disappeared. Cambyses was dead.
-
-Belteshazzer said, as the surgeons and attendants, alarmed by the
-King’s outcry, rushed into the room: “The King is dead. Let the body be
-embalmed for transportation to Pasargadæ, that he may sleep with his
-fathers.”
-
-“Let this order be obeyed,” added the Prince, addressing the
-attendants. Then he said to Belteshazzer: “Come, prophet of God, to my
-tent. I need your counsel and aid.”
-
-They left the pavilion and walked slowly to the Prince’s headquarters.
-To Gobryas whom they met still on guard the Prince said: “The King
-is dead. Let the men be fed and tell them to rest. Let the news be
-proclaimed throughout the camp. Send a company of men to arrest
-Prexaspes and bring him before me.”
-
-He passed on with Belteshazzer. Gobryas hastened to execute his orders.
-He sent a squad to arrest Prexaspes, but found that the latter had
-escaped. The wily Mede had hastened from the camp during the confusion
-incident to the King’s death, and was journeying northward as fast as
-his horse could carry him.
-
-Meanwhile the Prince and Belteshazzer sat at meat in the Prince’s tent
-and talked of many things. When the prophet arose to depart, he said:
-“Have great care, my son! Those men who brought the news of this false
-Bardya’s usurpation are likewise commissioned by the Magi to slay you.
-They do not dare openly harm you, but they will secretly assassinate
-you if opportunity offer. But fear not! Within the year you will reign
-as King of Kings!”
-
-“Give me your blessing, O Prophet of God!” besought the Prince. “When I
-reign, you shall come to me and be my chief counselor. You shall be at
-the head of the college of wise men. Ease and plenty shall be yours and
-peace shall come to your people!”
-
-“May the blessing of God, the Almighty, the Eternal, the Ancient of
-Days, rest upon you!” said Belteshazzer, solemnly, laying his hands
-upon the Prince’s bowed head. “Remember when you come to the throne
-that Cyrus promised that my people should return to Jerusalem and
-recover their homes and property.”
-
-“I remember, and it shall be done. Let me send guards with you beyond
-the camp.”
-
-“It is needless. I shall go as I came, without the need of guards.
-Farewell!”
-
-With a smile he disappeared, and the Prince was left alone, to stand
-awhile in deep thought and then to pace back and forth many minutes.
-Presently he called his orderlies and directed them to call the
-chief captains into council. They soon arrived, and he greeted each
-affectionately. When a score of them had assembled, he said:
-
-“I have called you together to hear the orders made necessary by the
-death of Cambyses, King of Kings. It has become necessary for me to
-depart at once to Hamadan. I take with me the Imperial Guard. I leave
-Alyates in command of the army. He shall see to it that the King’s
-body is properly embalmed. It must be buried at Pasargadæ with the
-other Kings. Let the army march leisurely to Damascus and there halt
-until the orders of the new King shall have been received. Let it be
-known that this army stands ready to enforce obedience to the house of
-Achæmenius.”
-
-Alyates, a tall, soldierly Mede, saluted and said, “Your orders shall
-be obeyed, my Lord Prince.”
-
-After other suggestions concerning the movements of the army, the
-Prince dismissed the council and sat down to write letters to his
-father and to the Princess Athura. He related what he had heard from
-Belteshazzer concerning the false Bardya, gave an account of the death
-of the King, and stated his own purpose, to march at once to Hamadan
-and seize the impostor. He prayed that his father would declare himself
-King of Kings and lead an army of Persians to Hamadan at once. These
-letters he entrusted to Gobryas, who, with a dozen trusty men, at once
-set out for Persia, riding at courier speed.
-
-At daybreak, the Prince and his ten thousand men, in light marching
-order, moved quietly out of the camp and proceeded to Damascus. Thence,
-by forced marches, they moved across the desert towards Babylon, taking
-for guides trusty Arab sheiks to whom Belteshazzer had commended him.
-Nor could the uneasy Gaumata and the scheming Patatheites, at Hamadan,
-discern his movements and so lay plans to intercept him. When they
-heard that he had started for Hamadan at the head of ten thousand
-Persians, they made haste to gather together an army with which to
-resist him, and a portion of the army was moved out towards the fords
-of the upper Tigris. But the Prince and his guards came not that way.
-It was his plan to seize Babylon and Susa and form a junction with the
-Persian army which he knew would march up from Persepolis.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-THE EARLESS KING
-
-
-King Hystaspis, ruler of Iran under the shadow of the King of Kings,
-walked leisurely through the park surrounding his palace at Persepolis
-and meditated upon the doctrines of Zoroaster. Student and mystic,
-loving rather the peace and quiet of his home than the martial camp or
-the ruler’s throne, he found his greatest enjoyment in his beautiful
-park where he might be alone. Quiet walks, dreamy hours by running
-streams beneath shady trees, communion with the learned and wise, and
-meditation on the mysteries of life and of nature occupied his leisure
-moments. Delightful indeed were the October days. Brown and golden were
-the leaves where deciduous trees made ready to cast their burdens. The
-evergreen of pine and fir interspersed the more brilliant colors. The
-sky was hazy and the sunbeams, softened by shimmering mists, had lost
-their great heat and vivid glare.
-
-The King was at ease. No armor burdened him. A round felt cap with a
-purple band sat lightly on his massive head. His long gray hair fell
-in masses to the collar of his Medean cloak. His white beard touched
-the belt at his waist. The purple cloak, reaching from shoulder to
-knee, partially covered in its graceful folds the dark tunic of his
-under-dress. His feet were shod in boots of soft leather. In his hand
-was a heavy cane, with which as he walked he flicked pebbles from his
-path. A large shepherd dog walked at his side. Master and dog had
-enjoyed the park alone for a long time. But there came an interruption.
-The dog suddenly bounded away through the trees towards the palace,
-whose massive portico was partially visible through the foliage. The
-King stopped to observe the cause of his follower’s movements and saw
-a woman coming rapidly towards him, at sight of whom his countenance
-shone with pleasure. It was the Princess Athura. She held in her hand a
-roll of papyrus. Following her at respectful distance was a man in the
-uniform of a King’s messenger, whose dusty habit and halting steps told
-of a long ride and weariness.
-
-“My brother has written me!” cried the Princess, as she drew near.
-“See! I have here a letter from him, sealed with his own private
-signet!”
-
-“Which brother mean you?” inquired the King, with surprise.
-
-“Bardya!”
-
-“Is it so? What says he?”
-
-The old man’s brow was clouded as he spoke. Not yet had he declared for
-the new King Bardya, though he did not suspect as yet the imposture
-by which the Magi hoped to retain power. He had called the nobles of
-Persia to a council on this matter, and the meeting would be held
-shortly. He had loved Bardya almost as a son and knew that the people
-hated Cambyses. But Bardya had not begun his reign by calling back the
-Persian nobles to the chief offices, nor had he banished the Magi--much
-to the chagrin and sorrow of the King of Iran. He listened attentively
-as Athura read:
-
- “_My beloved sister, Athura, Light of the World and Queen of the
- Aryans_:
-
- “Now that I have come forth from my place of safety in the royal
- mountain, Demavend, and taken upon me the crown of King of Kings,
- my heart goes out to you. Do you not remember how we used to talk of
- ruling this great empire of Cyrus together? My brother, Cambyses,
- would have killed me and you, could he have done so. The good priests
- of Mithra saved me and hid me away until the time was ripe to come
- forth. Of this I will tell you more when I see you.
-
- “I have heard that you are with the royal Hystaspis at his palace in
- Persepolis. May peace be with him! I have sent him greetings by a
- suitable embassy, confirming him in all his titles and requesting him
- to acknowledge my rule. For Cambyses is dead. The army near Damascus
- has revolted from him and slain him. I know how the royal Hystaspis
- loves you. Persuade him, therefore, to assist me in my great task and
- he shall be the second man in the empire.
-
- “As for yourself, come to me. I need you here at Hamadan to advise
- me. You were ever the wiser and you shall be joint ruler with me in
- fact if not in name. I am sending an escort to meet you at Susa. To
- that point, royal Hystapsis will give you suitable escort.
-
- “Come to me. It is a command.
-
- “BARDYA, King of Kings.”
-
-She paused and looked inquiringly into the King’s eyes. The latter took
-from her hand the scroll and read it himself in silence. Then he said:
-“If it be true that Cambyses is dead, my course is clear. Yet am I not
-satisfied. It seems almost inconceivable that Bardya has come back from
-the dead. Yet it must be so.”
-
-He beckoned to the messenger, who had discreetly halted a score of
-paces distant, and asked, “Are you in the regular messenger service?”
-
-The man bowed low till his hands touched the earth, and then, standing
-in humble attitude, answered, “Yes, Master.”
-
-“How many years?”
-
-“Ten years, Master.”
-
-“Then you have often seen Cyrus, the Great King? Also Cambyses and
-Bardya?”
-
-“Truly have I seen them, my lord, many times. I know them well.”
-
-“Have you seen King Bardya since he returned to Hamadan?”
-
-“Twice, but only at the public audiences. He rides not forth as
-formerly, because, it is said, he fears assassins.”
-
-“How looks he?”
-
-“The lights were dim when I saw him, but I recognized him. He has lost
-flesh, as if he had been ill. He used to take part in the martial
-sports, but does not do so now.”
-
-“What say the people of him?”
-
-“They praise him for the most part. He has remitted the taxes, pardoned
-all political offenders, and proclaimed a year of peace and jubilee.
-Only the old priests grumble, who are displeased because he favors the
-Magi.”
-
-“You may return to the palace, where you will be entertained.”
-
-Saluting again, the messenger gladly hastened away to the ample
-refreshments he knew awaited him at the palace. The King returned
-the scroll to Athura and sighed. After a moment’s thought, he said:
-“Daughter, I like not the situation. If Cambyses be dead, as here
-reported, then Bardya is rightfully King. But he has abandoned the
-ancient religion of his fathers very suddenly for the accursed
-superstition of those Scythian interlopers, the Magi. But his decree
-concerning the Magi shall not run in Iran! I have heard that some of
-the temples of our religion in Medea have been closed and that the
-altars of the fire-worshipers on the hilltops have multiplied. So
-changed is he in all this that I am astounded. He commands you to come
-to him. It is for you to decide. It may be that you can turn him back
-from his evil way. But I fear to let you go.”
-
-“I am greatly troubled,” said Athura. “Bardya never was inclined to
-give much thought to religion. He loves sports, the army, and the hunt.
-His heart is easily touched. In gratitude to those who saved his life,
-he has granted them great privileges. All the more should I, on whom
-he ever leaned for advice, be near him, to lead him back if possible
-to the old paths. I have nothing to fear from him. It is my duty to
-go. But I desire your advice. You have been a father to me, and the
-gracious Queen, a mother!”
-
-The King smiled. “If my son returns from Egypt,” he said, “I shall
-deem myself happy to acknowledge you my daughter in fact. If Cambyses
-is dead, there need be no more concealment or fear. I will send trusty
-messengers to Hamadan, Babylon, and Susa and even to Egypt to learn the
-truth. My son would certainly have sent messengers to me with news of
-the King’s death if he were dead.”
-
-“May Ahura-Mazda hasten the day of his return! How long it has been
-since I last saw him!”
-
-“If you go to Hamadan, what will be the result? Will Bardya act as did
-Cambyses?”
-
-“No, a thousand times! Bardya will consent to my marriage with your son
-at once.”
-
-“It may be. And yet, knowing how my son loves the truth and our ancient
-faith, I fear that Bardya’s new faith will cause a rupture of their
-friendship. Darius is an enemy of liars. Unlike me, this son of mine
-loves war rather than peace and has little patience with those who
-differ from him in opinion. Perhaps his love for you will cause him to
-overlook the errors of your brother. As to this letter, if you go, my
-blessing shall go with you; and, should you call to me for aid from
-the ends of the earth, I will march to you at the head of a hundred
-thousand Persians. If you stay here, all Iran will be a bulwark around
-you and my home shall be yours.”
-
-Tears filled the eyes of Athura. Kneeling, she placed the right hand of
-the King on her head, saying: “I will take your blessing, my father,
-and go. Well do I know the love of our people. Sometimes in the
-bitterness of my condition I have thought of calling them to arms and
-throwing down from his throne the dread Cambyses. Had it not been for
-that oath you and your son swore to the Great King, I would have done
-so!”
-
-Hystaspis bent over and kissed her forehead.
-
-“May Ahura-Mazda, giver of all life, bless you!” he said solemnly. “May
-Sraosha, his powerful messenger, ever be at your right hand to convey
-to Him your slightest petition! May happiness in the love of a husband
-be yours and peace in your own home! Come, let us go to the palace and
-break the sad news of your going to the mother there.”
-
-They went to the palace side by side and were met on the portico by
-the stately lady who ruled the King’s heart even as he kept sway over
-millions of proud subjects.
-
-She sought to persuade Athura not to go to Hamadan, until more certain
-information of the conditions there could be had; but Athura was firm
-in her determination to obey the call of her brother. Therefore next
-day a company of cavalry escorting the Princess marched towards Susa.
-King Hystaspis rode with her a day’s journey.
-
-On the fifth day after the departure of the Princess, three of the
-great Persian nobles, Otanes, Hydarnes, and Vomisces, resplendent in
-military dress and in armor adorned with bright metal and precious
-stones, each attended by a score of stout guards, rode over the
-stone bridge across the Pulwar and demanded audience of the King. A
-chamberlain conducted them into the audience hall, where the benevolent
-King sat on his throne in state. They saluted him, and Otanes said: “O
-King, live forever! We, your counselors, come to advise with you on
-grave affairs of state.”
-
-“I am glad to behold you,” responded the King. “You are welcome. Speak
-on!”
-
-Otanes drew a letter from the folds of his cloak.
-
-“Here have I a letter from my daughter, Phædima,” he said. “She was the
-wife of the Great King, Cambyses, and she was taken as wife by that
-one who calls himself Bardya, who, having deposed Cambyses, assumed to
-marry all his wives. But listen! Was ever such fraud practiced upon a
-people? This came secretly by a messenger, a slave who owed his life to
-my daughter. Let me read.
-
- “‘_To Otanes, my beloved father_:
-
- “‘In much shame and agitation do I write this and will endeavor to
- dispatch it to you by Hyrax, my faithful slave.
-
- “‘This Bardya is an impostor. He is not Bardya the King’s brother.
- When Patatheites, the regent, announced that Bardya, son of Cyrus,
- had returned from Mount Demavend where he had been hiding, and had
- declared himself King of Kings, there was great rejoicing in Hamadan,
- and all the people and the army gladly declared for him. The new King
- made a decree divorcing us from Cambyses and making all of us his
- wives. What could we do? It was the King’s word.
-
- “‘But, when this man came to visit me, I saw that he could not be the
- true Bardya, though he resembles him much. He wore a turban after
- the manner of the Arabs but in such way that it covered his hair and
- ears. This day did I discover that he has no ears. While he slept,
- overcome by wine, his turban was disarranged. Then I remembered that
- I saw this man led away from the presence of Cyrus, who had sentenced
- him to have his ears cut off for some offense. His name was Gaumata
- and he was a wizard, a priest of the Magi. This is the man! I had
- no dagger or I would have slain him. We are prisoners in the palace
- and are not permitted to go even to the park walls. Haste, then, my
- father, to rescue your daughter from this foul creature! I have heard
- it proclaimed that Cambyses is dead, slain by his own hand in Syria.
- Of the truth of this I know not. My hands reach out to you!
-
- “‘Farewell!
- “‘PHÆDIMA.’”
-
-The King was amazed. He arose from his throne as the reading proceeded
-and nervously pulled at his beard. When it was done, he smote together
-his hands in great agitation.
-
-“Alas!” he cried. “How unfortunate that your message did not come five
-days ago! Then I would have kept the royal Athura here or marched with
-her to Hamadan at the head of an army. Only five days ago in obedience
-to a letter sent her by this false slave, calling himself Bardya, she
-departed, and even now she may be at Susa in his power! May curses rest
-on him! I perceive his scheme! With the last of the children of Cyrus
-in his power, he thinks to be safe. But not so! No time is to be lost!
-Let us take immediate action!”
-
-He pulled a cord near at hand, and a gong sounded in an adjacent room.
-Instantly a door at the right of the throne swung open, admitting an
-officer of the Guard. To him the King said: “Captain Arios, take five
-hundred men, the best of the army in Persepolis, with the strongest
-horses, and ride to Susa! Ride day and night! Seize horses and supplies
-as you go! Overtake Captain Mardux and bring back the Princess Athura,
-if you can. Ride even to Hamadan if you do not find her at Susa. Send
-messengers in advance to overtake and turn her back. Spare not horses
-or men! Delay not!”
-
-The captain, though filled with wonder at this sudden order, did not
-pause to ask reasons for it, but bowed low before his lord and left the
-room. A moment later the clatter of horses’ hoofs on the paved court
-indicated that he had departed.
-
-The King turned to his counselors and said: “It is my will that the
-reserves be called to arms and that all the regular troops be gathered
-at Persepolis. We shall march without delay upon the usurper. Secrecy
-and swiftness must be observed. Let us seize the wretch before he may
-gather an army to oppose us. What say you?”
-
-“That is my word!” answered Otanes.
-
-“And mine!” added Hydarnes.
-
-“And mine!” said Vomisces.
-
-“Then let it be done! Let every able-bodied man in your several
-districts be called. I will send orders to the Governor of Bactra to
-call out the reserves and to march to Rhages with the Bactrian troops.
-He will bring two hundred thousand men. We should march from Persepolis
-with no less. I wish that my son were here! We shall need him.”
-
-After further consultation as to details, the nobles departed. Scores
-of messengers, riding at breakneck speed, penetrated to distant hamlets
-and summoned every man of the military class to Persepolis. Stores of
-weapons and provisions were quickly gathered. The great plain near
-Persepolis quickly became populous with men and impedimenta. All Iran
-was stirred with the excitement of coming war; but none knew why they
-were called, save that it was on the King’s business.
-
-On the tenth day two hundred thousand men stood in line on the plain
-near the Araxes for review, and their gray-bearded King rode along
-their serried ranks and saw that they were ready and eager to march.
-They saw that the face of the monarch was serious and filled with
-anxiety, and they guessed that they were about to engage in a civil
-war. The King did not enlighten them. A messenger had come from Captain
-Arios at Susa, stating that he had found Captain Mardux and his men who
-had escorted Athura to Susa, but that the Princess had gone forward
-towards Hamadan the day before his arrival. The King was disappointed
-and anxious. Having ordered that the march begin next day, he returned
-to his palace.
-
-At sundown of that same day, Gobryas and half a dozen weary troopers
-arrived in the camp and after hasty greetings to the generals in
-command went direct to the King. The King was on his portico, reclining
-on a couch so placed that he could watch the glories of the setting
-sun, while near him sat the Queen engaged upon some needlework.
-Recognizing Gobryas in spite of his unshaven and dusty condition,
-Hystaspis rose with an exclamation of surprise and went down the steps
-to meet and embrace him.
-
-“It rejoices my soul to see you, noble Gobryas!” he said. “Whence come
-you? What of my son?”
-
-“Gracious King, I have come from Syria by way of Babylon and the lower
-roads,” answered Gobryas. “Your son was well when I, obedient to his
-commands, left him to come hither.”
-
-“Praise be to Ahura-Mazda! What of the King?”
-
-“Cambyses is dead. There is no king other than you, O King Hystaspis! I
-greet you King of Kings and Lord of Lords!”
-
-He bent his knee and kissed the King’s hand. But Hystaspis raised him
-up, saying: “Not yet, my son! The nobles of all Iran must be consulted.
-We had heard rumors of the death of Cambyses, but were not sure.”
-
-“Cambyses is dead. I saw him stab himself before all the army when
-messengers came into camp proclaiming Bardya King. Yea, truly he is
-dead and the world is better for it! As for this traitor at Hamadan, I
-have come direct from your son to announce that he is not Bardya but a
-false usurper. I perceive you have already learned his true character
-and are ready to march against him. I have letters from the Prince.
-Even now he is drawing near to Babylon with his ten thousand men of the
-Guard.”
-
-He produced a packet from his belt and gave it to the King.
-
-“Come,” said the King, leading him up on the portico where the Queen
-waited. “You shall be refreshed at my own table and shall stay in our
-palace this night. I have much to ask concerning our son and of the
-war in Egypt and of the death of the King.”
-
-Gobyras bent low before the Queen, kissed her hands extended to him in
-cordial welcome, and said: “Queen of the World, I give you love and
-greetings from the Prince. Daily has he spoken of you. I bear a letter
-for you. I have another for the Princess Athura. But, alas! Otanes has
-explained to me how she has gone into the power of that Gaumata!”
-
-The Queen took from Gobyras the packet he handed to her, and then,
-placing her hands on his shoulders, drew him down and kissed both
-his cheeks, saying: “My son’s blood-brother is my son! Welcome home!
-How weary you are! You shall rest in the Prince’s own apartment this
-night.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-THE SPIDER’S WEB
-
-
-Captain Mardux and his troopers felt themselves highly honored as
-escorts of the highest born and most beautiful woman in the world,
-when they departed from Persepolis with the Princess Athura. When she
-chose to ride a horse, the captain knelt that she might place one small
-foot on his knee and thence leap into the saddle. When she chose to
-ride in a litter, the captain had difficulty in choosing from the many
-volunteers those who should be carriers. He had to be severe in denying
-some the right to stand guard around her tent as she slept, since all
-could not do so. These hard-fisted, hard-riding sons of Persia deemed
-themselves guardians of a goddess; and all of them were her devotees.
-Her journey was a pleasant pastime.
-
-They arrived at Susa on the sixth day and were met by the governor of
-the city with all his chief officials. They conducted the Princess to
-the royal palace, where she rested a day. The city was gayly decorated
-in her honor. Then a company of Medean cavalry, under command of a
-noble Mede, relieved Captain Mardux and his men of their charge, and
-with them the Princess continued her journey towards Hamadan. From Susa
-to Behistun the road was better and the pace more rapid. On the tenth
-day they stood beneath the shadow of the great rock and were about to
-turn eastward across the mountains, when a courier met them, bearing
-a letter, informing Athura that King Bardya had gone to a castle in
-Nicæa on a hunting-trip and asking her to come to him there. Athura and
-her escort therefore took a road leading northerly into Western Medea.
-Thus it came about that Captains Arios and Mardux, pushing forward in
-desperate haste to rescue the Princess from the usurper, and supposing
-that she had gone direct to Hamadan, missed her by turning to the right
-at Behistun two hours after she and her train had disappeared in the
-northern hills. Thus it came about also that the Prince of Iran and his
-weary ten thousand, having avoided Babylon on the right and Susa on the
-left, lest they should meet with opposition and be delayed, when they
-reached the great highway between Persepolis and Susa and learned that
-the Princess had gone northward to Hamadan, delayed not to await the
-coming of the Persian army but also turned northward.
-
-Athura’s heart beat high with anticipated pleasure. A decree had been
-published in Susa announcing the death of Cambyses in Syria and the
-peaceful adherence of the King’s army to Bardya. Civil war would thus
-be averted. Her beloved brother would doubtless call the Prince of
-Iran to be his chief counselor, the second man in the empire. Nothing
-would hinder her marriage to him. The future seemed indeed bright with
-promise. The Medean escort was attentive and obedient to her slightest
-wish. At Nicæa a second message awaited Athura, informing her that the
-King was at the castle of Sictachotes, a score of miles farther north,
-and bidding her come there. Here a new escort took charge, composed
-of soldiers and priests whose appearance did not at all please the
-Princess. She did not hesitate to go forward, however, but she resolved
-that she would persuade her brother to discharge from his service men
-who resembled robbers rather than soldiers.
-
-It was late afternoon when they arrived in sight of the castle or
-stronghold of the false Bardya. The castle was an irregular pile of
-stone buildings on the summit of a hill, the crater of a long-extinct
-volcano. A small lake filled the mouth of the crater and on its rim the
-buildings had been constructed. At the foot of the cone and completely
-surrounding it was a high stone wall through which a huge brazen
-gate gave entrance and egress. The buildings were low and of rude
-architecture, except one tower which rose to a height of fifty feet and
-was about thirty feet square.
-
-The Princess wondered that her brother should bring her to such an
-uninviting place; but, remembering his passion for hunting, she had no
-misgivings. The great gate swung open to admit her and her escort, and
-then it closed with a clang. Having ascended the hill to a level space
-in front of the high tower, the escort dismounted and its leader came
-to assist Athura to alight. But she said haughtily to him: “Go, call
-the King. Why is he not here to meet me?”
-
-The officer bowed low and went into the castle, whence he presently
-returned with a richly dressed official who forthwith prostrated
-himself before royalty. “May you live forever, O gracious lady!” he
-said loudly. “The King is out hunting, not expecting you until the
-morrow. But all things are ready for you. Be pleased to alight and
-enter!”
-
-The Princess then dismounted and followed the official into the castle.
-The room they first entered was in the base of the high tower and
-occupied its whole space. It was richly furnished with tables, couches,
-and rugs. Draperies concealed the rough walls. Athura had brought with
-her three maids. Several others presently appeared from side-rooms and
-humbly awaited her pleasure. The official, who proved to be the King’s
-chamberlain, having called the servants, now said: “My Lord the King
-will return shortly. Meanwhile, if it please you, dinner will be served
-here. Let the maids be disposed of in the adjoining room. Should you
-desire to take the air, there is a pleasant walk around the lake. If
-anything be needed, pull the cord at the side here and a gong will call
-servants. Permit me to retire and order your dinner served.”
-
-The Princess assented and the chamberlain, with a low salaam, departed.
-Having bathed, and changed her riding habit to one more comfortable,
-she ate dinner alone. She was grieved and impatient. But she was to
-suffer further disappointment. For at sundown a messenger appeared who
-reported that a revolt had broken out in the army at Hamadan, thus
-compelling the King’s instant return to that city. He had departed at
-once, but promised to return quickly and escort her in person to the
-capital. He bade her rest meanwhile at the castle.
-
-Athura was furious. It seemed strange that her brother should treat her
-thus. He must be indeed changed from that former bold youth who would
-have let state matters go to ruin rather than fail to come to her at
-once when so near! She rang for the chamberlain, and when that worthy
-appeared she inquired, “Was the King here this morning?”
-
-“Yes, gracious lady,” he replied humbly.
-
-“How did he seem? Was he well?”
-
-“He seemed very well but somewhat nervous.”
-
-“I do not understand his strange behavior! Order immediate preparations
-for my departure in the morning to Hamadan! I shall go to him and
-ascertain the cause of this neglect.”
-
-The chamberlain raised his hands in protest. He shook his head and
-salaamed humbly.
-
-“I have an order from the King, gracious lady,” he said. “It is that I
-safely keep you here until he return.”
-
-“What! Am I a prisoner?”
-
-“Ah, no! Say not so! But this is a very unsafe country,--wolves, bears,
-robbers, and brigands! It is not safe for you without a strong escort
-to go beyond the castle-walls. The escort which brought you hither has
-departed for Nicæa again, and only the necessary garrison is here. Very
-sorrowful am I, most gracious lady, but I dare not disobey orders. The
-King, I assure you, will come soon.”
-
-“Listen!” exclaimed Athura, furiously. “I care nothing for the safety
-of this castle! I order you to prepare this garrison to march with me
-to Hamadan on the morrow. I will answer to the King for you and no harm
-shall come to you. Let the castle take care of itself!”
-
-But the chamberlain again shook his head and wrung his hands together
-in simulated agitation. “Impossible, utterly impossible! The King’s
-orders must be obeyed. You know not this King, gracious lady! He is a
-magician who can destroy one, soul and body. No, no!”
-
-“A magician! What mean you? My brother Bardya a magician? Since when
-gained he that power?”
-
-But the chamberlain, seeing that he had almost revealed his master’s
-real identity, shook his head and continued to wring his hands,
-protesting: “I meant only that the King’s eyes were upon all and over
-all! But I cannot disobey him, and--I will not!”
-
-He abruptly turned and left the room. Athura went to one of the narrow
-windows and looked tearfully out upon the yellow landscape of hill
-and mountain, on which the setting sun was casting its last mellow
-beams. Her eyes ran over the courtyard, the steep descent of hill,
-the high wall below with its brazen gate and its sentries, posted at
-intervals on the top. A great loneliness seized upon her, a cold dread
-of impending evil gripped her heart, and a terror of unknown forces
-that seemed to surround her. Turning from the window, she met the eyes
-of one of the maids compassionately watching her. The expression of her
-face caught Athura’s attention. Repressing her tears lest the servants
-should deem her weak, she addressed the maid:
-
-“What is your name?”
-
-“Lauretha, gracious mistress,” was the answer.
-
-“Who are you and whence come you?”
-
-“I am a daughter of the captain of the guard, and I came from Nicæa
-hither.”
-
-“Tell me, whose is this castle and how came my brother here? He has
-been acting most unbrotherly to me. Have you a brother whom you love
-most dearly? And would he call you to a place like this and then not
-meet you, or run away to the city without visiting you?”
-
-The girl’s eyes filled with tears. The beauty and engaging personality
-of Athura had already made a deep impression upon her. She had heard in
-the old days of this beautiful daughter of Cyrus as a very goddess of
-wisdom and beauty. Now that she beheld her, she was her devotee. She
-drew nearer and, kneeling, caught hold of the hem of Athura’s dress and
-kissed it.
-
-“Gracious Queen of the World, I am but a humble girl,” she said,
-sobbing: “My parentage is not even noble. But I place my soul and body
-at your service! Let me make confession to you and I will trust in your
-forgiveness for my enforced service here. If you will follow me to the
-chamber above, where you are to sleep and where we may be alone, I will
-tell you the secret of your situation.”
-
-“Arise and be assured of my good-will. I will follow you,” answered the
-Princess, touched by the girl’s devotion and wondering what she meant.
-
-The girl rose and, going to a curtained door at one side of the room,
-pulled aside the curtain and guided the Princess up a narrow stairway,
-in the thick stone wall, to a chamber above and of the same size and as
-richly furnished as that below. Here the Princess seated herself on a
-divan and the girl again knelt at her feet on the floor.
-
-“Tell me what you mean,” said Athura, kindly.
-
-“I know the man who calls himself Bardya. He owns this castle,” said
-the girl, speaking rapidly. “I also have seen your brothers, both the
-great Cambyses, the King, and the strong, happy Prince Bardya. That
-was years ago when I lived in Hamadan and my father was a soldier
-of the palace-guard under the noble Otanes. I also know the regent,
-Patatheites, whom Cambyses, the Great King, left to rule in Medea. O
-gracious lady, it breaks my heart to tell you! But I know that Bardya,
-your brother, is dead and this one who calls himself Bardya is none
-other than Gaumata, priest of the Magi, whose ears Cyrus, the Great
-King, cut off! I have seen Gaumata and Patatheites together. I know
-that Gaumata pretends to be Bardya. The chamberlain is one of his
-tribe. This great tower is a fire-worshiper’s shrine and on its top is
-an altar on which fire is kept burning. I know not why I tell you this,
-except that when I look upon your face I love and worship you. O that I
-might save you! I fear this prison is intended to be your tomb!”
-
-Athura sat very still during this revelation. Her head seemed to reel.
-The earth and all her golden castles seemed whirling and falling. Of
-course Bardya would have come to meet her! She knew the girl was
-telling the truth. Fool, to be so easily beguiled! Bardya really dead!
-The old sorrow resurged in her soul. Death or worse her fate! She sat
-still and silent a long time in wide-eyed despair while the maid at her
-feet with bowed head wept bitterly. Presently she sighed deeply and
-asked, “Why do you weep, little sister?”
-
-“Because of your cruel fate, gracious lady,” replied the maid. “You
-know not the magic power of these priests! Even now they may know that
-I have told this to you and even now they may be preparing the torture
-chamber for me. They are terrible men! They deal with the demons of the
-hills and mountains. They sacrifice to them, even offering up human
-lives sometimes. They are able to read one’s thoughts. They bring up
-the dead and make them talk. Only Ahura-Mazda can protect you, and I
-know not if He will!”
-
-“Be comforted, child,” said Athura, calmly. “Let us escape in some
-manner. Once before I fled from a prison when Cambyses would have slain
-me. Is there no way of escape?”
-
-“I know of none. These walls have secret doors. I have seen Gaumata
-appear in these rooms even without opening a door. But he is a
-magician. I do not know the secret doors. If we could escape from this
-castle, the great wall and its watch is there.”
-
-“You said that your father is captain of the guard. Might he not assist
-us?”
-
-“I know not. He fears the Magi. His father was a tenant of this Gaumata
-who, for his faithfulness, has promised him great fortune and a high
-command. But he is a brave man and a good father.”
-
-“Such a man must have a good heart. We shall talk with him presently.”
-
-“But these magicians,--is it not useless to strive against them?
-They look one in the eye and point their fingers and say, ‘You are a
-dog! Bark!’ And that one gets down on his hands and acts like a dog
-and barks. Or they will say to you that at a certain hour you must
-do something they order; and, at that hour, you must do it! They
-put spells on men, and such men thereafter have no power. Oh, it is
-dreadful, how at night they call up and talk with the dead. The evil
-spirits help them.”
-
-“I have seen their spell-working, child. But this I know, as the great
-teacher, Belteshazzer, said, they can do no harm to those who love
-truth and serve the true and only God. For He sends mighty spirits of
-good intent who encamp about the good and who drive away the evil ones.
-Fear not, child, I dread not this Gaumata and all his evil powers. He
-shall not harm us. When does your father have liberty so that he might
-come to us?”
-
-“At sundown he changes the guard. Thereafter he may come.”
-
-The girl went to a window and looked down into the court below. She
-then clapped her hands softly and motioned to some one below.
-
-“Ah, there he stands now!” she said. “He has looked up and will come
-here. I will meet him.”
-
-She ran down the narrow stair, and presently her voice and the heavier
-tones of a man’s voice were heard in conversation. Athura seated
-herself on a divan in such position that the rays of the setting sun,
-passing through the open window, rested upon her face and hair, giving
-to her regal beauty a halo like that of a goddess. A moment later the
-maid reappeared, followed by a powerfully built man whose helmet and
-breastplate were resplendent in gold and jewels. His face was strong
-and bold, the countenance of one accustomed to command, but now it was
-clouded and sullen.
-
-“This is my father, Gustasp, gracious mistress,” said the maid,
-presenting him.
-
-The man looked an instant into the eyes of the Princess. Then his hand
-quickly removed his helmet. Wonder, admiration, recognition, and awe
-expressed themselves in his countenance. He prostrated himself at her
-feet. He had known the kingly Cyrus and the high glance of his eye,
-before which the most rebellious of men had quailed; and here was the
-image of Cyrus, softened and beautified in the feminine, but, none the
-less, with his lofty, commanding spirit, gazing upon him from eyes
-whose glance he could not return.
-
-“Hail, gracious daughter of Cyrus!” he mumbled, striking the
-rug-covered floor with his forehead. “I await your commands!”
-
-“I have seen you before, Captain Gustasp, when my father lived and
-Bardya, my brother, and I played in the park at Hamadan. Is it not so?
-Arise and answer!”
-
-The soldier rose and stood in deferential attitude before his fair
-interlocutor.
-
-“I remember, most royal lady,” he stammered.
-
-“If I mistake not I rode on that broad back of yours, and you made for
-me a right-spirited horse.”
-
-The strong features of the soldier quivered as memory brought back
-those days, when he, as one of the guards on duty at the King’s palace,
-not only watched over the safety of the children of the King but played
-with them. Halcyon days! The tears started to his eyes.
-
-“I remember,” he answered.
-
-“And now I am your prisoner!”
-
-Again the man fell with his face to the floor. “Say not so, Queen of
-the World!” he exclaimed. “Rather am I your humble slave. If you will
-let me speak, I will explain.”
-
-“Say on!”
-
-He raised his head from the floor but continued to kneel, while he
-spoke rapidly: “After I returned from the funeral of the royal Cyrus,
-I was not in favor with the Great King, Cambyses. His dislike for me
-arose when he and your royal brother, Bardya, and you, played together
-as children and, by the express order of good King Cyrus, I watched
-that Cambyses did not use violence upon you and the younger brother.
-He swore, then, that when he came to man’s estate I should die. When,
-therefore, the guards were called to Hamadan and dismissed by him, I
-fled; and, luckily, I escaped before his order for my execution could
-be fulfilled. I came to these mountains and was concealed by the Magian
-priests who had been friends of my father. Then I heard, gracious
-lady, that both you and Prince Bardya had been foully murdered by
-King Cambyses; and I wept much. For I loved you and Bardya when you
-were children. For me the light of the world grew dim. Wonder not,
-therefore, that I willingly served Gaumata when he overthrew Cambyses.
-Had not Cambyses slain those I loved and also sought to slay me? I
-did not know you when you entered here yesterday. You were veiled. My
-information was that the King’s wife was coming hither; and I dreamed
-not that you were she. May Ahriman wither my soul if I speak not the
-truth!”
-
-His daughter sank upon the floor by her father’s side, exclaiming,
-“Truly he speaks truth, gracious mistress!”
-
-A wave of sympathy swept over the beautiful countenance of the
-Princess. Impulsively she arose, bent over, and touched the man’s
-forehead with her hand, saying: “I believe you, my good Gustasp. Ah,
-those were pleasant days, the days of my childhood. But they have gone
-to return no more. The bloody hand of death has taken my father and
-brothers. Only I, of all the royal house of Cyrus, remain; and I am a
-prisoner to this man, Gaumata. But what now? To whom, O Gustasp, do you
-owe allegiance?”
-
-The man did not hesitate. “There is only one sovereign on earth for me,
-the divine daughter of Cyrus!” he answered passionately. “Had I not
-believed you dead, I would never have entered the service of Gaumata.”
-
-“I am in your hands. What do you advise?”
-
-“You are safe in my hands, gracious Queen! I will guard you with my
-life. But I am slow of wit and not good at making plans. I can execute
-orders but not make them.”
-
-Athura smiled upon the kneeling giant.
-
-“You may arise and be seated there near the door,” she said. “Let us
-think of some plan. How many men have you in this castle?”
-
-Gustasp rose and sat on a stool near the door.
-
-“Four hundred and twenty,” he answered.
-
-“Are they trustworthy?”
-
-“Not against Gaumata. They are his personal followers. But they are
-a brave and reckless lot. Some of them have been brigands all their
-lives, until called hither by the new King’s order.”
-
-“It is apparent to you, Captain Gustasp, that I am no friend of this
-Gaumata. I have been brought here by lying letters purporting to be
-from my brother, Bardya, and I knew not the truth until your daughter
-revealed it to me. Doubtless I have been brought here to suffer death.
-For, as long as one of the house of Cyrus remain, so long will the
-usurper be insecure on his throne. I remember Gaumata. I saw him
-during the last year of Cyrus and I heard of his punishment. Now has
-come his revenge! But I shall escape. There is one who comes from the
-west as swiftly as horses may bring him. Do you remember the youth
-who played with us in those days? That grave youth who was a man even
-before he was old enough to enlist in the King’s guards--Darius, son of
-Hystaspis, King of Iran?”
-
-“I remember him. Has not his fame filled the whole earth? All young
-Aryans swear by him!”
-
-“True! Had not Cambyses cruelly interfered, I would this day be his
-wife. He took an oath to Cyrus, my father, to support Cambyses and
-Bardya on their thrones, as long as they should live. Death has
-released him from the oath. It may not be that I shall reign alone as
-Queen, since it is contrary to the customs of the Aryans. The King of
-Iran is now the head of the Achæmenian royal family and entitled to
-reign as King of the Aryans. When he shall pass the bridge to heaven,
-the Prince of Iran will be King. The world will then know a just and
-mighty master. And I shall reign with him. Then, Gustasp, I may be able
-to reward faithful service. Is it not possible for me to escape? I
-escaped from Cambyses alone, disguised as a youth. Have you not a horse
-that I might ride away upon this night?”
-
-Gustasp was troubled. He gazed thoughtfully out of the window a moment
-in silence. The red rim of the sun was disappearing behind a distant
-ridge.
-
-“This is a wild portion of Medea,” he said presently. “Brigands roam
-about. Traveling without a large escort is dangerous. It is now almost
-night. For a week there can be no danger to you here. I am in command
-of the Guard. It will not be so much a prison for you as a place of
-safety. To-morrow I will send to the hills for one who owes his life
-to me. I saved him from the wrath of Gaumata, who had ordered me to
-execute him. This man will I send with a message to your friends.
-He may bring help. The chamberlain of the castle is a priest of the
-Magi. He was in the room below as we came through. He is here as your
-guard, I suppose. But this night I shall sleep at the foot of this
-stairway and keep watch over you. You are weary and must have sleep. My
-daughter, if you will, shall watch with me. Perhaps to-morrow we may
-think of a better plan.”
-
-Athura rose and went to the window, where she stood some moments in
-silence, contemplating the forbidding aspect of the darkening hills
-and considering the words of the captain. She was, indeed, weary. She
-therefore signified her assent to the suggestion, and the captain
-retired. His daughter remained with the Princess. The captain that
-night slept on the floor of the room below, with his body across the
-doorway leading to the chamber above and his sword at his side.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-A GALLOPING TO AND FRO
-
-
-The dull, plodding peasants of Persia, Medea, Susiana, and Babylonia
-wondered why so many messengers rode at breakneck speed, on foaming,
-dusty horses, and so many squads of cavalry galloped, along the roads,
-during those last days of the false Smerdis, or Bardya, King of the
-World. They loved not these military men, with their over-bearing ways,
-their oaths and blows, their lawlessness and oppression. But they only
-sighed and remained silent, hoping but not believing that some day the
-Great King would lift them up and put the soldiers down. The shepherds
-on the hills drove their flocks high up into the mountain fastnesses
-and concealed them in gulches and ravines. For, it was whispered, an
-immense army of Persians was marching up from the south. No one knew
-why it was coming, but it was safer to keep the flocks out of sight,
-lest the hungry hordes should have fresh meat at their expense. Rumors
-of war flew about. Some said Babylonia was about to revolt; others that
-the Scythians were threatening an invasion.
-
-Meanwhile at the capital city, Hamadan, confusion reigned. Reports came
-from Persia indicating that the King of Iran was gathering a great
-army. Then came messengers from the army at Damascus relating the
-departure of the Prince and the Guard. Patatheites and Gaumata at once
-became uneasy and directed the governor of Nineveh to march out and
-intercept the Prince. Then came Prexaspes, who, knowing that he could
-expect no mercy from the King of Iran and his son, offered his services
-to the usurper, and was made commander of the army and satrap of Medea.
-He advised immediate preparation for war. Decrees were issued to all
-the governors of provinces commanding them to assemble their soldiers
-and bring them to Hamadan. Heralds were dispatched to the King of Iran
-demanding the reason for gathering an army at Persepolis. Prexaspes
-personally went into western Medea, where he had large estates, and
-directed that all Medean levies from that section should gather at
-Nicæa. Then Gaumata and Patatheites, learning that their ruse whereby
-Athura had been beguiled into the castle of the former, had succeeded,
-departed from the capital city to visit her and make some treaty with,
-or disposal of, her. They had barely departed when Captains Arios and
-Mardux at the head of their combined companies rode into the capital
-on horses almost dead with fatigue, and at the palace gates demanded
-the person of the Princess Athura. The commander of the palace-guard
-was insolent and insulting. He even threatened to arrest the blustering
-captains, who thereupon suddenly assaulted the palace with their bold
-troopers, before the guards could be warned, and gained possession of
-it. The guards fled into the city and called upon the citizens for aid.
-Captains Arios and Mardux searched the palace in vain for the Princess
-Athura, but found and released the usurper’s harem, in which was
-Phædima, the daughter of Otanes. What next to do the captains knew not.
-But the citizens of Hamadan, indignant that a company of freebooters
-should dare to take the King’s palace, soon gave them something to do
-and laid close siege to them in it. They were not to be dislodged,
-however, and held the citizens at bay, trusting that they would
-presently be rescued by the King of Iran.
-
-The Prince of Iran, having marched by a short route across northern
-Arabia, avoided Babylon on the right and Susa on the left and arrived
-upon the great highway between Persepolis and the latter city, where,
-as narrated, he received information that led him to march at once
-to Susa, intent upon aiding in the rescue of the Princess Athura. He
-seized Susa and deposed its governor, who was a Mede in the service
-of Gaumata. He paused here two days to rest and refit his command,
-meanwhile sending scouts northward to gain information concerning the
-movements of the usurper. Then a body of Persians, constituting the
-advance corps of the Persian army, having arrived, the Prince left
-a garrison in the city and with about twenty thousand men hurried
-northward on the road to Hamadan, intent upon capturing that city
-before Gaumata could prepare for resistance. On the first day out he
-was met by the messenger from Athura, which caused him to change his
-intention and march into western Medea upon Nicæa.
-
-Meanwhile the Princess Athura remained in the castle. The messenger had
-been duly dispatched by Captain Gustasp, who advised his fair captive
-to wait patiently several days for his return or until he himself could
-communicate with certain relatives who might consent to conceal her in
-the mountains should it become necessary to leave the castle. Then one
-day a company of cavalry rode into the castle-yard and its commander,
-Captain Galutha, displayed an order giving him chief command. The next
-day a large body of cavalry appeared on the plain below the castle and
-encamped, while several of their leaders came up to the castle. Two
-of these, before whom all others bowed to the earth, were Gaumata,
-the usurper, and his chief counselor, Patatheites. The Princess Athura
-observed these men with dread. She recognized them and knew that a
-crisis in her affairs had come. Later came Captain Gustasp in much
-agitation.
-
-“Gracious lady,” he said, “Gaumata has come! He desires audience with
-you. If he attempt any harm to you, I will slay him! So fear not. I am
-at your service. Shall I slay him at once?”
-
-“No. Let him enter,” she answered, seating herself on a divan at the
-side of the chamber opposite the window, where the light was good and
-where every expression of her countenance might be seen. She was calm
-and self-possessed.
-
-The captain’s daughter stood at her side, trembling and apprehensive.
-
-A moment later the door opened and the chamberlain appeared,
-announcing: “Our Lord, the King, the Great King, King of the World, and
-his illustrious Counselor!”
-
-Entered then Patatheites, with somewhat shuffling gait and embarrassed
-demeanor, a tall man whose rich habiliments and mitered head-dress
-indicated his priestly rank. He bowed very low and touched the floor
-with his hands, saying: “All hail, most beautiful Princess, Daughter of
-Cyrus, the Great King, Light of the World! Live forever!”
-
-Following him came Gaumata, a tall man, with uncertain, shifting eyes,
-a pallid face, somewhat resembling the dead Bardya, a puppet evidently
-in the hands of the real ruler, Patatheites. He was about to prostrate
-himself before royalty, as was his habit, when, remembering his high
-position, he checked himself and stood erect, folding his arms in much
-embarrassment and agitation. On his head was a vari-colored turban,
-around which was a golden coronet.
-
-“I give you greeting. What would you?” responded Athura, coldly.
-
-Patatheites coughed slightly and glanced at the King; then, assuming a
-very ingratiating tone and manner, he said:
-
-“The fates--I should say, the gods--have ordered that this man shall
-be King. It matters not whether he be truly Bardya or not,--the spirit
-of Bardya is in him. It has come to pass that King Cambyses by his own
-hand is dead. You alone, royal lady, remain of his family. By right of
-birth you should be Queen of the World. Unless you so rule, the kingdom
-will pass to the King of Iran. It has been announced to all the world
-that this Bardya has taken to himself all the wives of Cambyses. That
-is true, and you yourself are included. We come, therefore, to make a
-treaty. Consent to a marriage with this King, Bardya, and rule equally
-with him. Your presence with him will reconcile all Iran and the world
-will remain at peace. You cannot rule alone. He offers to share the
-throne with you. Let him speak for himself. I, his Chief Counselor,
-have spoken!”
-
-Gaumata, thus prompted, bowed low before her and said in high, squeaky
-tones: “Years ago my eyes beheld the most lovely vision of all the
-earth. It was Athura, star of the morning, lovelier than the moon,
-shining on a darkened world. My soul went out to her. I said that I
-would one day sit on the throne of the world with her and her slightest
-wish should be my law, her will my will, and that together we would
-rule the universe wisely. Let it be so!”
-
-Athura restrained her indignation with great difficulty. Should she
-temporize, or at once declare herself? She remained silent a moment.
-When she spoke, her steady voice betrayed not her deep agitation.
-
-“For this, then, I have been deceived and brought hither,” she said.
-“It is a very grave matter. I require time to consider it. I know there
-is but one other choice. That is--death! I must choose between you and
-death, unless something intervenes. Such presumption as yours in the
-days of Cyrus would have merited death. But truly has the situation
-changed through the wisdom of God. How many days may I have to consider
-this?”
-
-The men glanced at each other doubtfully. Then the Counselor spoke.
-
-“Grave events call for quick action. However, if to-morrow at this time
-will suit you to answer, let it be so.”
-
-“I shall require at least a week.”
-
-“No, no! You must decide by to-morrow.”
-
-“Must?”
-
-Her tone startled the men. In it were unutterable scorn and menace.
-Gaumata shrank back. As she looked now, so had he seen Cyrus and
-Cambyses, the terrible. But Patatheites was unafraid and, knowing the
-necessity of quick action, he was determined that her choice should be
-made at once.
-
-“Forgive the expression,” he said. “We are desperate men. So stirred
-up are the people that we must act quickly. You said truly that you
-must choose either to consent or to meet death. Rule the world or die!
-Do you hear? But you shall consent!” He gazed into her eyes with his
-flashing black eyes fixedly and extended his long, slender fingers
-towards her slowly. He trusted to his great hypnotic power to overcome
-the powerful will that showed in her eyes. “On the morrow at this hour
-you shall say yes!” he added after a pause.
-
-Athura smiled derisively. Her eyes showed no less will-power than his,
-and, extending her hand in a repellent gesture, she said: “I say that I
-will speak freely without being coerced by your devil’s power! Dog that
-you are! I shall live to see your carcass thrown to the vultures!”
-
-The battle of wills continued in silence for a tense moment. Then the
-eyes of Patatheites wavered and dropped. His hand fell at his side. His
-dusky face paled to a sickly yellow.
-
-“Princess, again I ask forgiveness,” he said humbly. “Well I know
-that the spirit of the great Cyrus, living again in you, cannot be
-commanded! Let us reason together. Being a woman, you can never reign
-alone on the throne of Iran, or of the world. All the males of your
-family are dead. The kingdom will pass to the King of Iran. If his son
-were living he would make you his wife, and thus, when his father dies,
-you might become his Queen but not a joint ruler with him. But the
-Prince of Iran is dead. He was slain in a battle near Susa yesterday.
-It remains only for you to accept our proposition and you will become
-joint ruler with this Bardya and reign over the whole world.”
-
-The Princess made no immediate answer, but gazed in silence on the face
-of the speaker, striving to read whether he lied or not in speaking of
-the Prince. The cold hand of fear clutched at her heart. Dread seized
-her throat and almost stifled her. But there seemed to whisper in her
-ear a voice like that of the loved Bardya of old, saying: “Believe him
-not, little sister. The Prince yet lives and will surely come to your
-aid.” She was startled and looked around involuntarily searching for
-the speaker; but no one, save her maid, was near. Arousing herself
-with a great effort, the Princess again controlled her agitation and
-said: “You are stating a falsehood, magician! But, even if the Prince
-were dead, it would not alter my determination. What? I, a daughter of
-Cyrus, mate with that slave? Begone from my sight!”
-
-The pallid face of Gaumata flushed in anger. Thrusting aside
-Patatheites, he laid one hand on a short sword at his side. “Woman!”
-he cried excitedly, “birth makes not a man, but achievement! I am a
-noble of Medea, of ancient lineage and royal stock. Centuries ago my
-forefathers ruled the Scythians, who were once lords of Medea. I have
-dared to seize the throne of the world from your tyrant brother, and I
-mean to hold it! I have offered you the right to share it. Choose! On
-the morrow you accept or die! The world is not large enough to permit
-you and me to live therein unless we join fortunes!”
-
-The Princess was surprised. She had deemed this man a mere puppet. He
-seemed to have some qualities of a strong man. She spoke less bitterly
-as she answered: “You speak somewhat kingly, Gaumata! But you are a
-living lie, ruling not by your own might! You rule only by reason of
-Bardya’s name. Do not deceive yourself into the belief that the Aryans
-would permit you to rule an hour, did they know the truth! No! Rather
-it would be better for you to release me and place in my hands the
-scepter and crown. I might so far pardon you as to permit you life and
-property. Think of this, my offer until to-morrow, and I will consider
-yours.”
-
-“Until to-morrow then, farewell!” said Patatheites, bowing low and
-backing quickly from the room. Gaumata followed without the formality
-of a bow. Athura sat a long time in silence after they had gone,
-wrapped in thought, while the daughter of Gustasp stood in silence with
-folded hands and bowed head at her side.
-
-The Princess turned to her maid at length and asked: “What think you,
-child? The magicians were not able to bend my will, though strong was
-the power of the priest’s evil eyes. I felt my brain reel and I became
-dizzy for a moment.”
-
-“I have never seen one able to resist him before,” answered the maid.
-“Truly Ahura-Mazda has sent to your aid some powerful angel!”
-
-The hours of that day passed very slowly for the Princess. She spent
-the greater part of her time in the upper chamber looking from the
-window upon the valley below. She had little hope that any aid would
-arrive. She was determined to escape from the castle at all hazards as
-soon as night should come, and she sent word to Gustasp that he must
-arrange for her escape.
-
-About noon two horsemen were seen riding at headlong speed from the
-direction of Nicæa. They came direct to the castle. They evidently
-bore exciting news. For the King and his Chief Counselor were observed
-in excited conference with them, and, shortly afterwards, the King
-mounted a horse and rode down into the valley, where his cavalry
-immediately marched away across the plain towards Nicæa, and several
-horsemen rode away in divers directions. Later the King returned to
-the castle accompanied by an officer, whose elegantly attired form and
-easy carriage, as he passed across the castle-yard, seemed familiar to
-Athura. She sent the maid to call Gustasp, whose duties now consisted
-in standing guard at the castle-door. The captain soon appeared.
-
-“What means this excitement?” she inquired. “Who is the officer that
-came up with the King?”
-
-Gustasp shrugged his giant shoulders. “The officer is Prexaspes,” he
-answered. “He was chief man of the empire under King Cambyses. He is
-in command of the Medean army which is assembling down there in the
-valley. I do not know just what news the messengers brought; but it is
-rumored that they reported a strong force of Persian cavalry moving up
-towards Nicæa over the hill-roads from Susa. If that be true, a battle
-may occur if the Medes dare to stand against them. There are but a few
-veterans here and they may not risk a battle. The Persian cavalry is
-terrible, especially if led by the Prince.”
-
-Athura started up with joy, exclaiming, “By the Prince, did you say?”
-
-“The Prince of Iran, yes,” he assented. “No one knows, but I will bet
-my shield that he leads the Persians!”
-
-“Ahura-Mazda grant that it be true! What of you if there be a battle,
-Gustasp? Ought I to wait till the morrow? Or should I escape this night
-and trust myself to the mountains?”
-
-“I have requested the honor of personally guarding you so that you may
-not escape,” he responded. “The King has granted my request. I do not
-know how to advise. The new men who came in with Captain Galutha are on
-guard. There is to be an enchantment, a sacrifice, and soma-drinking
-to-night. Ahura-Mazda grant that no spell be cast on us! Let me advise
-that you stay in this upper chamber with all your maids. I shall stand
-here at the foot of the stairs. We may need a barricade. That divan and
-the benches may do. When darkness comes, I will bring up javelins and
-spears. I do not know how to get out of the castle with you unseen.”
-
-“What do you fear?”
-
-“Madmen, drunken with soma! You and the maids are the only women in the
-castle. Even the King himself will be drunken and furious.”
-
-“Bring up the arms, Gustasp! You will find in me no weeping, fainting
-child. We will fight this battle together!”
-
-“Then on the morrow we may need to defend this place until the battle
-be decided down there in the valley.” And he added fervently, “It will
-be a joy to fight for you, O Queen of the Earth, and even to die for
-you!”
-
-Gustasp began immediate preparations for defense and secretly brought
-up a bundle of keen javelins, several heavy spears, and a huge bronze
-battle-ax, which they concealed behind curtains and furniture. He also
-brought a supply of bread and fruit.
-
-From her window Athura saw that preparations were being made in the
-courtyard for the sacrifice spoken of by Gustasp. First, a square altar
-of stones was erected. Around this, at a distance of twenty feet, a
-circle of flat stones was placed. A priest clothed in long robes then
-drew geometrical figures with a sword-point on the ground within the
-circle. Other priests brought out twenty tall jars of soma and placed
-them at intervals touching the circle. Still others brought wood and
-piled it in four heaps at the corners of a square inclosing the circle.
-Many soldiers of the garrison gathered around, uneasily and fearfully
-watching the preparations, but they were not allowed to come within
-twenty paces of the circle.
-
-The preparations were completed when the sun was yet half an hour high.
-Then the rumble and boom of drums and the shrill scream of trumpets
-announced the beginning of the services. A procession of priests,
-twenty in number, headed by Patatheites and followed by Gaumata, who
-led a beautiful white stallion, appeared from the northern portion of
-the castle-yard. Seven times they silently marched around on the outer
-side of the circle of stones. Then they halted and a priest took
-station at each of the jars of soma. Every one held a large, keen knife
-in one hand and a goblet in the other. The chief priest, Patatheites,
-took station at the right of the altar and raised his hand toward
-the setting sun in prayer. All the others imitated his action. Their
-invocation was silent and lasted a full minute. Then Patatheites placed
-a bundle of fagots on the altar and again raised his hands to the sun,
-and his lips moved in recital of an invocation. Instantly a spiral of
-smoke ascended from the fagots and a flame burst forth. The soldiers,
-stricken with awe, fell on their knees at sight of this miracle. The
-sun-god had answered, unless the dexterous priest, having a knowledge
-of phosphorus and sulphur, had ignited the wood as he placed it on the
-altar.
-
-Gaumata now led the white stallion into the charmed circle near to the
-high priest. The beautiful animal trembled and sniffed at the altar
-and the blazing wood, then raised his noble head and whinnied. As he
-did so, the chief priest, with a powerful slash of his sharp knife,
-cut the animal’s throat so deeply across as almost to sever the head.
-At the same moment, Gaumata drove his knife deep into the horse’s
-chest through his proud heart. With a convulsive backward movement,
-the noble beast sought to break away, but Gaumata clung to it and its
-knees gave away suddenly and it fell. The chief priest took a stone
-vessel and caught the blood spouting from the severed throat. When the
-vessel was filled, he presented it to Gaumata, who lifted it on high
-before the fire and towards the setting sun, then poured some of the
-blood on the altar and some on the earth while he muttered a prayer.
-The chief priest then took a bundle of rods, known as the baresma, and,
-dipping it in the blood, sprinkled the King and the twenty priests,
-chanting a hymn as he slowly performed his labor. Then four of the
-priests attacked the carcass of the horse with their knives and rapidly
-dismembered it. A portion of flesh from the chest was taken by the King
-and placed on the burning wood of the altar. The savor of it went up
-to heaven just as the rim of the sun disappeared behind the western
-hills, while the priests broke forth into a barbaric chant in praise
-of Mithra. The limbs and body of the animal were then cut in bits and
-distributed by the priests to the soldiers. The piles of wood were set
-on fire by coals from the altar, and the men roasted the horseflesh at
-these and ate of it. Thus far the ceremony had been conducted with some
-decorum.
-
-Then the bloody-handed priests dipped goblets into the jars and brought
-them forth filled to the brim with a white, acid liquor, the sacred
-juice of the soma plant. First, the chief priest drank a huge goblet
-of the liquor. The King followed suit. Then the priests drank, and
-as they drank they began a serpentine march, following the lines of
-the geometrical figures drawn in the circle, weaving in and out and
-crossing back and forth, chanting in time to their movements. The
-chief priest led the weird dance. The King followed at the rear. Ever
-and anon, as their movements brought them near the jars, the priests
-replenished their goblets. Gradually their chant became louder and
-wilder, and was addressed to the gods of the sun, of the moon, of the
-stars, of the earth, and of the seas, entreating them to be present and
-to give counsel and wisdom to the King.
-
-Darkness fell upon the earth, but the fires partially dispelled the
-gloom in the courtyard. The crowd of soldiers drew well back from the
-enchanted circle, dreading they knew not what, and fearing the unknown
-powers of earth and sky. Suddenly one of the priests ceased marching
-and, with a scream, rent the clothes from his body. Stark naked he
-began to dance furiously, leaping in the air, frothing at the mouth,
-and uttering wild words of prophecy. Another imitated him and still
-another, until a score of naked, leaping, shouting madmen, brandishing
-knives and soma-pots, encircled the chief priest, who, having drunk but
-little of the powerful liquor, had remained comparatively sober, and
-who now took his station with folded arms and bowed head before the
-altar, listening intently to the ravings of his helpers. The King took
-his place on the opposite side of the altar and sought to preserve a
-semblance of dignity, but he swayed to and fro under the influence of
-the liquor or of excitement while he also listened to the ravings of
-the prophets.
-
-The Princess and her maids were curious observers of the ceremonies,
-but their curiosity turned to horror as the last act of the drunken
-priests began. Nevertheless, they watched and listened.
-
-One of the priests, bellowing for silence, stood before the chief
-priest and shouted: “I am Melchior of the Hills! Say to this King, he
-lacks courage! Say to him that instead of entreating the proud woman in
-yonder castle, he should take her by force, lest there come an eagle
-out of the south and carry her away! Let him now act! Now! Now! Now!”
-
-Another shouted: “I am sent from Mithra to say, The day comes when the
-Kings of the earth shall meet in death struggle! To him of stout heart
-and quick mind will the victory be! Up and act!”
-
-Others took up the burden of prophecy and warning. The chief priest
-listened attentively; then, calling the King aside, he spoke rapidly
-and earnestly to him, pointing up to the window from which the
-Princess was looking down upon them. For a time the King hesitated,
-then walked uncertainly towards the castle, followed by the howling mob
-of priests, who stumbled, rolled, or hopped after him. A moment later
-they were hammering at the castle-door and the King was commanding
-Gustasp to open.
-
-Gustasp, however, had not been idle. He had locked and barred the stout
-doors and had reinforced them with furniture piled against them. Now,
-as the King’s voice was heard commanding him to open, he shouted back a
-refusal.
-
-“Open, I command it!” shouted the King.
-
-“I will never open it!” answered Gustasp. “No longer do I serve you,
-Gaumata, the false! I serve the gracious Princess of the house of
-Cyrus!”
-
-“You will be torn in pieces! Open, I say! I will have you roasted to
-death! I will afflict you with spells! Open! I command!”
-
-“Never! I warn you that I will slay any man who attempts to harm my
-sovereign lady!”
-
-The King and Patatheites took counsel and sought to beguile the giant
-guard.
-
-“Listen!” said the priest. “We mean no harm to the Princess. But she
-must marry the King now and must march with us at daybreak to Hamadan
-and proclaim their union. Open, and I swear she will not be harmed, and
-you shall be the first officer of the army!”
-
-But Gustasp growled a refusal. He was not to be deluded. Then began
-Patatheites to curse him and to call down the anger of all the gods
-upon him. He cursed him by the sun whose beams would strike him down;
-by the moon whose rays would drive him insane; by the rivers which
-would drown him; by the hills which would fall on him; and by the
-devils who would ever pursue him. So bitter and dreadful were his
-words that stout Gustasp paled and trembled. With uncertain steps he
-paced back and forth across the lower chamber floor, fearing that from
-the shadows of the chamber half-lighted by an oil lamp some specter
-might leap forth upon him. A soft step came down the stairs and Gustasp
-drew his sword. But it was the Princess. She came to the trembling
-giant and placed her hand on his arm.
-
-“Fear not, Gustasp!” she said reassuringly. “Good spirits are here
-around us! Those curses shall not harm you. Ahura-Mazda has sent me a
-messenger saying: ‘Fear not! We will help you!’ Be strong and brave,
-Gustasp. See, I tremble not.”
-
-The giant guard heaved up his broad shoulders, and a cheerful smile
-passed across his rugged features.
-
-“Have no fear that I will falter, most gracious lady,” he said. “Let
-them curse. If they come within reach of my spear, their curses will
-stop short!”
-
-At length the cursing ceased. The King and the chief priest withdrew a
-space to consult. Presently they ordered a company of soldiers with a
-beam for a battering-ram to break down the door. The stout planks and
-bars soon quivered beneath heavy blows. Gustasp, seeing that it would
-presently fall, retreated up the narrow stairway to the upper chamber
-and proceeded to barricade it with furniture. A heavy divan was pressed
-into the narrow stair, leaving barely space at one side through which
-a spear might be thrust. Tables and benches were piled upon this.
-Then Gustasp, spear in hand, stood ready. The door below presently
-gave way and a squad of soldiers rushed into the room below. Finding
-it empty, they immediately began to ascend the stair; but, the moment
-one appeared in the narrow passage, the long blade of Gustasp’s spear
-flashed down upon him and he tumbled back gasping, with a terrible
-wound in his chest. A second tried the ascent and had his face slashed
-open. This cooled the ardor of the assailants. They drew back to take
-counsel. No one dared further attempt the deadly stair.
-
-Then Athura heard a voice, cold, calm, and ironical, saying: “It seems
-to me far beneath the dignity of a King of the World to be leading a
-drunken mob in attack upon a woman! I say to you now that I for one do
-not approve!”
-
-“Have a care, Prexaspes!” replied the voice of Patatheites. “Such words
-to the King are not to be spoken lightly!”
-
-“Bah!” was the rejoinder in a loud voice that was heard by every man in
-the fortress. “Who are you to threaten me? Do you desire to break with
-me? If so, I will lead my Medes over to the Prince. I say to you, stop
-this rioting and give your thoughts to the enemy! If I be not greatly
-mistaken, we shall have the Persians upon us before noon to-morrow. I
-will venture all I have that the Prince is commander of that company
-approaching Nicæa! If so, his coming will be like a whirlwind. I am
-going down to the camp, and I demand that the King go with me. I demand
-that no further violence be attempted against the Princess Athura. I
-warn you that if we injure her and lose this battle, the Prince of Iran
-will flay and quarter every man in this fortress!”
-
-His words greatly impressed all hearers and, after further angry
-altercation, Prexaspes triumphed and the drunken priests were ordered
-to return to their cells while Gaumata sulkily mounted a horse and rode
-with him down to the camp.
-
-Athura praised Gustasp and presented to him a gold ring, which in
-after years the guard and his descendants treasured above all other
-possessions.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-THE OVERTHROW OF THE MAGI
-
-
-Athura slept little during the remainder of the night. She insisted on
-watching a part of the time, while Gustasp slept stretched out on the
-floor and the maids tried to rest. She watched while the stars paled
-and the gray light of the dawn grew into rosy sunrise and cloudless
-day. Her eyes eagerly scanned the horizon towards Nicæa. As soon as the
-light was sufficient, she saw moving bodies of horsemen concentrating
-in the plain near the base of the hill on which the castle stood. She
-had often seen large bodies of troops, and she estimated that not less
-than thirty thousand were there. Officers were busily riding hither and
-thither placing them in line with their faces towards Nicæa.
-
-When Gustasp awoke and observed the movements of the troopers, he gave
-it as his opinion that an attack was expected. Nor was he mistaken. For
-about mid-forenoon they observed two bodies of cavalry approaching from
-the direction of Nicæa, one in advance moving rapidly and the other
-more deliberately. The advance body was evidently a scouting party
-sent out by Prexaspes, and it soon joined his array. The pursuers came
-on in wide, extended order, their masses glittering with armor and
-spear-points. At their head rode two men, conspicuous on white steeds.
-
-“Look, Gustasp!” exclaimed Athura, while the pursuers were yet far
-away. “Is it not the Prince--the one at the right? Is that not Gobryas
-at his left?”
-
-Gustasp shaded his eyes and looked closely at the distant figures. He
-smiled and shook his head.
-
-“My eyes are counted good, gracious lady, but I cannot see any
-difference in those men,” he answered. “If I had eyes as young as
-yours, I might distinguish them. But I know those are the Persians of
-the Imperial Guard. The Prince must be with them. They are not half as
-numerous as the false King’s men, but they are veterans and the best
-soldiers in the world. It will be a short battle.”
-
-The Persians came on until they were within a thousand paces of their
-antagonists, when they halted. The two leaders rode forward to a slight
-eminence two hundred paces in advance, from which they attentively
-surveyed the field. It was well suited for battle between bodies of
-cavalry. While somewhat rolling and uneven, there were no ditches or
-swamps. The Medean line was more extended than the Persian and no less
-massive and deep. The Persian leaders soon returned to their lines and
-the watchers on the hills perceived a movement of the rear ranks to the
-left, where presently a body of troops was massed three times as great
-in depth as the general line.
-
-“The Prince has made a hammer of his left,” said Gustasp. “Now look at
-his right! It bends back so that the Medes may not overlap and attack
-the Persian rear!”
-
-It was even so. For when the Persians moved forward again there was a
-perceptible bending back of their right wing until it moved forward _en
-echelon_ to the remainder of the line.
-
-Then came two men from the Persians who rode rapidly up to the Medes
-and demanded a parley. Prexaspes and the King met them and received
-a message from the Prince of Iran demanding the surrender of the
-Princess Athura and of the false King, and promising pardon to all the
-other Medes save Prexaspes. These demands were refused. The heralds
-rode back to the Prince and reported, who then ordered his army to
-advance.
-
-The Persians came on at a smart trot until within five hundred yards.
-Then the front ranks leveled their spears, bent their bodies forward,
-and pressed their horses into a gallop. Prexaspes ordered his troops
-forward to meet the onset. The earth shook with the thunder of hoofs.
-A deep-toned roar went up from the Persians, their battle shout which
-had terrified many a nation. The Medes answered with a medley of yells.
-The lines came together with a terrific shock. Men were unhorsed.
-Horses reared, plunged, and went down. Screams of agony mingled with
-battle-shouts. The lines wavered and stood still, it seemed, for the
-space of five minutes. Then was seen the power of discipline. The
-Medes, while brave, were not inured to battle. After the first shock,
-they became confused. They were overthrown, ridden down, and pushed
-back. Struggling fruitlessly against the terrible spears of their
-enemies, they receded. The Persians raised shouts of victory and
-pressed their advantage. The Prince of Iran, leading the center, rode
-over Prexaspes, broke through the Medean lines, and made directly for
-the King. The latter turned his horse and fled towards his castle, with
-the Prince and Gobryas close at his heels. So close was the pursuit
-that Gaumata and his men had no time to close the brazen gates of
-the castle, which were opened to receive them, before the Prince and
-Gobryas with a company of Persians pressed through and attacked the
-garrison fiercely. Demoralized by the fall of Prexaspes and the flight
-of Gaumata, the Medean army scattered and fled from the field.
-
-The Prince and Gobryas, swords in hand, pressed through the confused
-rabble after Gaumata. They saw him leap from his horse and enter the
-castle. Dismounting they pursued him into the chamber below that where
-the Princess Athura had her retreat. Here the false King turned at bay,
-unable to escape. The Prince himself attacked Gaumata, though Gobryas
-begged the privilege of slaying him. The struggle was short. The Prince
-was an athlete and swordsman; his opponent was neither. Gaumata’s
-weapon was whirled from his hand at the first blow, and the Prince’s
-blade passed through his heart, cutting short his cry for mercy.
-
-Athura, trembling with excitement, had seen the battle and the flight
-and pursuit of Gaumata, and, from behind Gustasp’s broad shoulders on
-the stairs, had watched the short, sharp combat between the Prince and
-the usurper. The Prince, flushed with victory as he stood above the
-writhing form of Gaumata, heard her exclaim, “Ahura-Mazda be praised!”
-He turned and their eyes met. He sprang towards Gustasp with dripping
-sword, thinking the giant guard an enemy in charge of the royal
-captive. But Athura pressed forward in front of Gustasp, exclaiming,
-“He is a friend!”
-
-The Prince dropped his sword and extended his arms, with the light of
-great love in his eyes. Athura threw her arms about his mail-covered
-shoulders. Gustasp and Gobryas drove back the crowd of Persian troopers
-who were pressing in to aid their Prince.
-
-But a chief commander must make an end of greetings, no matter how
-entrancing. The Prince and Athura passed out into the courtyard, now
-filled with shouting Persians, some of whom were pursuing the luckless
-garrison and cutting them down. When the Persians saw the radiant
-Athura standing by the side of their Prince, their shouts rent the
-heavens. For every man who had taken part in the battle knew that their
-leader was seeking to rescue his promised wife, the daughter of the
-great Cyrus.
-
-Prexaspes was among the prisoners. His horse had been killed and had
-fallen upon him. The Persian cavalry had passed over him. But save
-for a broken arm, he was not seriously injured. He was brought before
-the Prince. His countenance showed signs of suffering, but the usual
-calm, cynical smile rested upon it and he exhibited no fear. The Prince
-looked upon him sternly.
-
-“At last, Prexaspes,” he said, “you have come to a day of judgment!
-What have you to say?”
-
-“Nothing, great Prince,” he answered. “Fate has turned against me. I am
-in your hands, a prisoner of war.”
-
-“But how could you, a noble of Medea, conspire with that carrion,
-Gaumata? And you even obeyed him as King!”
-
-“I did not conspire. I was faithful to Cambyses till he died--even
-though he did slay my son, as you know, in cruel jest. I did not
-conspire against him. What could I do after his death? By the command
-of Cambyses, I had slain Prince Bardya. For that crime I knew that I
-would be slain by you. So I came and offered my sword to the false
-King. He obeyed me, not I him!”
-
-The Prince contemplated his prisoner gloomily. No man ever more admired
-courage than he. Prexaspes smiled in the face of death. What punishment
-should be meted out to such a man?
-
-“For taking Bardya’s life, you have merited death,” said the Prince,
-finally. “But you are a brave man. You shall die as such. Tell me,
-Prexaspes, how did Bardya die?”
-
-“I expect to die,” answered Prexaspes, and the pain and despair of
-his soul snatched away the smile from his face, leaving his handsome
-features haggard and drawn. “Remorse has been with me, since by this
-hand the stout young Prince departed! I will tell you. Cambyses was
-jealous of Bardya. His advisers, the Magian priests, who by their
-wonder works had made much impression on the King’s mind, also hated
-Bardya because he clung to the ancient religion of Iran and was an
-enemy to their religion. They knew that with Bardya as King they would
-never gain power in the state. They hinted to the King that Bardya
-contemplated rebellion. They artfully brought stories of the young
-man’s popularity. They advised his death. It was then that the King
-laid his command upon me to slay his brother. The Magian priests sent
-a body of their armed followers to lie in wait on the road to Rhages
-that night when the feast in honor of the Prince’s departure was held;
-and I rode with Bardya that night until, as prearranged, they attacked
-us. Then, in the mêlée, I struck the Prince with my sword and he died.
-Was not the Great King’s word law? I executed his word, without malice
-towards the Prince. But I am weary of life! My wife is dead. Cambyses
-slew my son. I have run the full course of power and wealth. I am your
-prisoner, ready to die. But know this, great Prince, I have never
-advised Cambyses against your interests!”
-
-The Prince listened attentively and believed that Prexaspes spoke
-truthfully. He turned to Athura, who had listened to the recital, and
-asked, “What do you advise?”
-
-Athura shook her head sadly.
-
-“I cannot advise,” she said. “Last night when the drunken priests and
-the false King attempted to break into the castle and do me harm, this
-man interfered and compelled them to cease.”
-
-“For that, Prexaspes, I would pardon you, had I the power,” said the
-Prince, turning to the prisoner. “I could order you slain now, but I
-cannot slay you. Prexaspes, you have deserved my gratitude. I grant you
-life for the present. I am not the King. My father is King of Iran.
-There is no King of Kings; until the nobles of Bactra, Persia, and
-Medea shall select one of the Achæmenian line. You shall go to Hamadan
-to be judged.”
-
-“Rather would I be slain by you now,” responded Prexaspes, earnestly.
-“Let me die a soldier’s death, not the death of a dog condemned for
-murder!”
-
-The Prince was troubled. He hesitated. Sympathy for a brave man moved
-him.
-
-“I promise you this, Prexaspes,” he said after a moment of
-consideration. “If you will testify before the council of nobles and to
-the people, that this Gaumata was a false traitor and not Bardya and
-that Bardya was slain by your hand, I promise that you may choose the
-manner of your death. The King and the nobles will heed my promise.
-They will not deny me. If you make this confession and implicate the
-Magian priest, they will pursue you with bitter vengeance. It is said
-that their death penalties are tortures such as even fiends would not
-inflict. We could not save you from them. It is the ancient law that
-one who lifts his hand against one of the Achæmenian race must die. Is
-it not so? And this law, not even the King may set aside.”
-
-“It is so!” answered Prexaspes. “I will testify before the people
-and the council, in order that your reign as King of Kings may not
-be disturbed by other false Bardyas. I advise that you carry this
-Gaumata’s head to Hamadan and exhibit it in the market that all may
-see. I myself will ascend the criers’ tower and confess the death of
-Bardya to the people. So be it. I will choose my own death.”
-
-“Meanwhile,” said the Prince, “Gobryas shall be your keeper. He will
-treat you as a brave soldier should treat a brave soldier unlucky
-enough to be a captive. We shall rest here this night. On the morrow we
-march to Hamadan.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-KING OF KINGS
-
-
-That evening the Prince, accompanied by Athura, ascended the narrow
-stairs leading to the flat top of the castle-tower and, seated on the
-low parapet that surrounded it, watched the sun set in golden splendor.
-They found an altar of heavy stones, rudely squared, in the center of
-the roof. It bore marks of long usage. But the fire which had blazed on
-it for years was dead. Only ashes remained.
-
-The evening was pleasant. The sky was a deep, blue dome. The wide plain
-to the south, surrounded on all sides by hills, the high mountains to
-the north and east, with their sharp crags and peaks, with Elwend and
-her snow in the east and Demavend far to the northeast, a diamond point
-of eternal white, were of entrancing beauty. The Prince for a time
-forgot battles and marches. Athura forgot the long years of waiting and
-watching. They were lovers now, rank and royalty forgotten, man and
-maid, each glorified by the other’s love. The sun stood still in the
-heavens and the hills rolled up and concealed him. Darkness enveloped
-them, and they were oblivious of all else than themselves. The stars
-appeared, brilliant points in the depths of space. The moon rose and
-drove the shadows from the hilltops into the depths of canyon and
-gulch. A great owl winged his way slowly about the tower and, alighting
-on the altar, peered at them suspiciously. When they moved he flapped
-away into the shadows of the hills. Bats flitted hither and thither
-like restless spirits. A wolf howled in the distant mountains. The low
-hum of conversation came up from the soldiers gathered about camp-fires
-in the courtyard. In such surroundings, the royal lovers again took
-up and tied the broken threads of life and renewed their vows to each
-other.
-
-Morning brought with it activity. The castle was abandoned. The army
-marched to Hamadan. A special guard of gayly-caparisoned officers rode
-near the litter in which the Princess was borne, or followed the horse
-on which, at times, she chose to ride by the side of the Prince. There
-was no organized opposition to the march. Bands of soldiers, which were
-riding to the aid of the false King, returned to their homes, stunned
-by the sudden overthrow of their leader. Gaumata’s head was borne aloft
-on a pike-staff; and, in every hamlet and village, a crier called the
-people together and told them of the false King’s deception and death.
-
-So it came about that the cavalry under the Prince and the infantry
-under the King of Iran came together near Hamadan, entered the city
-without encountering resistance, and relieved Captains Arios and
-Mardux, not only of their danger but also of their soft living in the
-palace of the Great King. But in appreciation of their valiant service,
-they were promoted to higher grades in the Imperial Guard and later
-they became chief officers of the Guard.
-
-On the day that they entered Hamadan, Athura became the wife of the
-Prince of Iran. The marriage feast was held in the palace. After the
-feast, the great nobles of Iran were called into the throne room by
-King Hystaspis, who, sitting on the throne in state, addressed them
-thus:
-
-“Nobles of the Aryan race, I have called you hither to ask what is
-your will concerning the throne left by Cyrus and Cambyses. By right of
-birth, I, the head of the Achæmenian family, am entitled to reign in
-Iran. I am King of Iran. But while Iran rules the world, the victories
-of Cyrus established such rule and his authority was paramount to mine.
-I am old and desire to live the few years that may be mine in ease.
-I desire not to assume the burden that must be borne by the King of
-Kings. For I foresee that some of the conquered provinces will rebel
-and that wars will come. The line of Cyrus is dead, all save the
-Princess who this day has become the wife of my son. It is my command
-that all here speak freely.”
-
-Otanes stepped forth and looked about him a moment in silence. Then his
-eyes rested upon the Prince of Iran and his beautiful bride, who sat at
-the right hand of King Hystaspis. He bowed low before them.
-
-“There can be but one choice, O King,” he said gravely. “The royal
-power has ever been in the Achæmenian family. As long as there are men
-of that royal line, none others may dare to aspire to the throne. If
-you, Sire, refuse to reign, there stands the well-beloved Prince, your
-son, whose wisdom and valor are far beyond his years, whose name is on
-every soldier’s tongue, as the hero of his race! By him stands Athura,
-most beautiful, most royal in birth. Has not your family and the family
-of Cyrus united? Let Darius Hystaspis be King of Kings and Athura, the
-daughter of Cyrus, be his Queen! Thus will all the peoples be contented
-and the world be blest. What say you, nobles of Iran?”
-
-A roar of assent was the response.
-
-“Let the crown of Cyrus be brought hither!” commanded the King.
-
-A double crown, one part of which was silver and the other of gold,
-studded with gems, was brought forth. The King gravely rose from his
-throne and, addressing his son, said:
-
-“You have heard the choice of the nobles of Iran, my beloved son! In
-the presence of these men, I now renounce in your behalf the supreme
-rule of the world. Here and now I crown you King of Kings and Lord of
-Lords. Rule wisely and well. As King of Iran, I acknowledge you supreme
-Lord and will support your throne forever!”
-
-The Prince, much affected, knelt at his father’s feet and received upon
-his head the double crown, which the great Cyrus had made as a symbol
-of his everlasting dominion over the kings of the world. Then he rose
-and sat down upon the throne, with Athura at his right hand and his
-father at his left. The great lords of Persia came and did obeisance to
-him and bent their right knees before him. Thus Darius Hystaspis became
-the Great King, and proved to be the wisest and greatest of them all.
-For, to the military ability of the heroic Cyrus, he added the wisdom
-of a statesman, the greatest of his age; and, in addition, he was a
-lover of art and science.
-
-On the following day, at noon, in response to the call of public
-criers, a vast concourse of people gathered in and around the public
-square or market-place in Hamadan. Soldiers of the Persian army were
-massed at one side. The nobility, men of note and strangers, were
-massed on the other. In the midst, the public criers’ tower arose forty
-feet in air, and from it, the people understood, announcement would be
-made concerning the accession of Darius Hystaspis to the throne as King
-of Kings.
-
-The people were restive. A bitter factional feeling had arisen during
-the reign of the false Bardya. The followers of the Magi, being in
-favor, had lorded it over the more orthodox Medes and Persians, had
-even prohibited their worship, and had taken away from their priests
-the revenues on which they lived. When Gaumata fell and the Persian
-army entered the capital, the persecuted ones in turn had come forth
-and assumed a haughty spirit towards the Magians. In all parts of
-Medea, as well as in the capital city, was the same unrest. Men hated
-their neighbors on account of religion, the most deadly hatred that
-men may entertain, and were ready to slay each other. It needed only
-the excitement of a great gathering to set afire the smoldering embers
-of hate. The eyes of all turned often to the gruesome spectacle of
-an earless head on the top of a pole planted near the tower in such
-position that the populace could see it. A squad of soldiers guarded
-it from being overthrown by the pressure of the crowd. It was the
-distorted and blackened face of Gaumata.
-
-At noon there issued from the palace a company consisting of the Great
-King, his Queen, his father, and the nobles of Iran, and they rode
-between massed lines of soldiers to a position near the tower. They
-were received with loud acclaim and clashing of weapons. A trumpet
-pealed forth from the tower, and a deep silence fell upon the people.
-Then Prexaspes appeared, accompanied by Gobryas and two armed guards.
-
-Prexaspes was carefully dressed. His hair and whiskers were curled and
-perfumed. His rich Medean cloak was gracefully parted so as to display
-to advantage his jeweled vestments. He was at once recognized, and a
-subdued murmur of wonder passed through the crowd. He raised his hand
-in graceful gesture, and said in a loud voice:
-
-“Behold me, Prexaspes, most unhappy of men! I am about to die and let
-my death, suffered righteously, attest the truth of my words!”
-
-He paused a moment, to let his hearers grasp his meaning. Then he told
-the story of the plots by which the Magi had influenced Cambyses to
-order the death of Bardya and how he himself had slain the Prince with
-their aid; how they had then conspired against Cambyses and caused his
-overthrow and death; how they had set up Gaumata, the earless one, to
-be King, falsely representing him to be Bardya, and had placed the
-Magian on the throne of the world; and, finally, how the false King had
-been overthrown.
-
-For the first time the populace knew that the Magi had slain Bardya and
-that a pretender had through their plots usurped the royal power. Every
-man looked at his fellow and laid his hand on the dagger at his belt.
-Hatred, fanned by the speaker’s revelations, blazed up; and a growl of
-anger passed throughout the vast crowd. Prexaspes ceased at last and
-for a moment stood in silence. Then he added:
-
-“I have told you all! There, on yonder pole, is the head of false
-Gaumata! My hand is red with the blood of an Achæmenian Prince, and by
-the law I must die! By the grace of the mighty King of Kings, Darius,
-son of Hystaspis, who is this day your King, I die as I choose. I
-salute you, O King! May you live forever!”
-
-He bowed towards the King, who sat still on his horse, sorrowfully
-contemplating the speaker. Then Prexaspes calmly opened his cloak and
-drew a long, keen dagger from his belt. He poised the dagger in air
-an instant, then drove it to the hilt in his breast. For a moment he
-stood smiling down upon the King, then his knees gave away and he fell,
-headlong, from the tower to the foot of the pole on which the hideous
-head of Gaumata leered. A murmur of horror ran through the vast throng.
-It increased in volume as the people spoke to each other. It rose to a
-vast roar in a moment and its burden was: “The Magi! They slew Bardya!
-Down with the Magi! Slay the Magi!”
-
-There was a movement in the great throng. Here and there daggers and
-swords flashed. Screams of agony arose. The crowd swayed hither and
-thither. Then it scattered, and broke into groups under self-elected
-leaders who chased the frightened Magi and slew them wherever found.
-A riot of bloodshed and slaughter ran throughout the country such as
-Medea had not seen since that day, hundreds of years ago, when the
-Scythians had been massacred. Every man who had a Magian neighbor
-assaulted him. The house of every Magian priest was broken open and
-pillaged and its occupants slain or chased into the hills. It is said
-that a hundred thousand Magians died, before the King, with the aid of
-unwilling Persian soldiers, succeeded in stopping the slaughter. So
-deep-seated was the hatred of the orthodox Aryans towards the Magians
-that on the anniversary of this day hereafter it was the practice to
-slay every one of that sect that was found on the highway. The King
-made a decree that on such anniversary no Magian should leave his house
-and that if he did so and was killed, his slayer would not be punished.
-
-But the remainder of our story is history. The kingdom of the Medes
-and Persians, or rather, the Kingdom of Iran, the rule of the Aryans,
-reached its zenith of power and glory under Darius Hystaspis, called
-Darius the Great. Well did he deserve the title “Great.” For he made
-laws for all the world save Greece and Rome. His coinage became the
-world standard. The provinces of his empire were ruled by kings. His
-public roads and rapid messenger service enabled him personally to
-supervise the general welfare of all his provinces. He invited men
-of letters to his court. He engraved his history on tablets and on
-the great rocks at Behistun and Persepolis. He brought architects and
-builders from Egypt, Palestine, and Phœnicia, and made for himself
-and his Queen a palace at Persepolis, whose stately ruins are yet
-mute witnesses of his power and magnificence. He had to reconquer
-many of the nations of Asia, which, because he was a young man and
-because religious feuds had torn Iran into factions, thought to free
-themselves. He redeemed his promise to Belteshazzer, the great Daniel
-of the Hebrew scriptures, and caused Jerusalem to be rebuilt, and he
-restored the Jews to their country. He restored the ancient religion
-of the Aryans and banished the false religion of the Magi, the Lie,
-from his empire. He worshiped God, whether named Jehovah by the Jew or
-Ahura-Mazda by his own people. His religion was pure and lofty.
-
-But most of all did he love and honor his Queen, Athura, whose praises
-the world sang in those days, and whose fame has been preserved in
-various narratives, none of which agree except that all ascribe to her
-great wisdom and beauty. Together they ruled their empire many years,
-and their reign was the golden age of the Aryan race.
-
-
-
-
-TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:
-
-
- Italicized text is surrounded by underscores: _italics_.
-
- Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.
-
- Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.
-
- Archaic or variant spelling has been retained.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PRINCESS ATHURA ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/68174-0.zip b/old/68174-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index a72a1cd..0000000
--- a/old/68174-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/68174-h.zip b/old/68174-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 5b95622..0000000
--- a/old/68174-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/68174-h/68174-h.htm b/old/68174-h/68174-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index c007b09..0000000
--- a/old/68174-h/68174-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12551 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<head>
- <meta charset="UTF-8" />
- <title>
- The Princess Athura, by Samuel W. Odell—A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover" />
- <style> /* <![CDATA[ */
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-.tdr {text-align: right;}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- text-indent: 0;
-}
-
-p.drop-cap {
- text-indent: -0.35em;
-}
-p.drop-cap2 {
- text-indent: -0.75em;
-}
-p.drop-cap:first-letter, p.drop-cap2:first-letter
-{
- float: left;
- margin: 0em 0.15em 0em 0em;
- font-size: 250%;
- line-height:0.85em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-.x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap, .x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap2 {
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-.x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap:first-letter, .x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap2:first-letter
-{
- float: none;
- margin: 0;
- font-size: 100%;
-}
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .blockquot {
- margin-left: 7.5%;
- margin-right: 7.5%;
-}
-
-.indentright {padding-right: 5em;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.right {text-align: right;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.ph1 {text-align: center; font-size: large; font-weight: bold;}
-.ph2 {text-align: center; font-size: xx-large; font-weight: bold;}
-
-div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always; page-break-after: always;}
-div.titlepage p {text-align: center; font-weight: bold; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 2em;}
-
-.large {font-size: 125%;}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .hide {display: none; visibility: hidden;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {display: inline-block; text-align: left;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -2.5em; padding-left: 3em;}
-.poetry .first {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
-
-@media print { .poetry {display: block;} }
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry {display: block;}
-
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
- padding: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
- /* ]]> */ </style>
-</head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Princess Athura, by Samuel W. Odell</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Princess Athura</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:1em;'>A romance of Iran</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Samuel W. Odell</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Illustrator: Jay Hambidge</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: May 25, 2022 [eBook #68174]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: MFR, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PRINCESS ATHURA ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter hide"><img src="images/coversmall.jpg" width="450" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_frontis.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-</div>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_title.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-</div>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="titlepage">
-
-<h1>THE<br />
-PRINCESS ATHURA</h1>
-
-<p><span class="large"><i>A ROMANCE OF IRAN</i></span></p>
-
-<p>BY<br />
-<span class="large">SAMUEL W. ODELL</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_titlelogo.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<p>NEW YORK<br />
-<span class="large">THOMAS Y. CROWELL COMPANY</span><br />
-PUBLISHERS</p>
-</div>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center">Copyright, 1913, by<br />
-<span class="smcap">Thomas Y. Crowell Company</span><br />
-<br />
-<i>Published April, 1913</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<table>
-
-
-
-<tr><td class="tdr"><small>CHAPTER</small></td><td class="tdr" colspan="2"><small>PAGE</small></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">I</td><td> <span class="smcap">The Great King’s Last Battle</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_1"> 1</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">II</td><td> <span class="smcap">An Oath</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_15"> 15</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">III</td><td> <span class="smcap">Prexaspes</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_29"> 29</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">IV</td><td> <span class="smcap">Athura</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_42"> 42</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">V</td><td> <span class="smcap">Cambyses</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_58"> 58</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">VI</td><td> <span class="smcap">Persepolis</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_76"> 76</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">VII</td><td> “<span class="smcap">I am Cyrus, the King, the Achæmenian!</span>”</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_92"> 92</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">VIII</td><td> <span class="smcap">A Royal Council and a Royal Hunt</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_101"> 101</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">IX</td><td> <span class="smcap">The Deeper Things</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_121"> 121</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">X</td><td> <span class="smcap">A Farewell Feast</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_133"> 133</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XI</td><td> <span class="smcap">The Great King Introduces a Strange Custom</span> &#160; &#160; </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_151"> 151</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XII</td><td> <span class="smcap">The Force of an Oath</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_165"> 165</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XIII</td><td> <span class="smcap">A Clash of Wills</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_179"> 179</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XIV</td><td> <span class="smcap">The War Against Egypt</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_198"> 198</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XV</td><td> <span class="smcap">The Madness of Cambyses</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_219"> 219</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XVI</td><td> <span class="smcap">The End of Oath-Keeping</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_235"> 235</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XVII</td><td> <span class="smcap">The Earless King</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_254"> 254</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XVIII</td><td> <span class="smcap">The Spider’s Web</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_266"> 266</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XIX</td><td> <span class="smcap">A Galloping To and Fro</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_280"> 280</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XX</td><td> <span class="smcap">The Overthrow of the Magi</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_297"> 297</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">XXI</td><td> <span class="smcap">King of Kings</span></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_305"> 305</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_1">[1]</span>
-
-<p class="ph2">THE PRINCESS ATHURA<br />
-
-
-<small>A Romance of Iran</small></p>
-
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER I<br />
-
-
-<small>THE GREAT KING’S LAST BATTLE</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was morning on the plains of Asia. Long-legged
-herons stood in the shallows of the yellow Jaxartes,
-bathing their feet in its sluggish flood and warming
-their bodies in the first rays of the sun. They were
-silently and uneasily watching a host of armed men
-drawn out in long battle-lines across the lowlands bordering
-the southern margin of the stream.</p>
-
-<p>Where the armed host stood was a sandy plain, about
-two miles wide. Beyond this was a low range of sand-hills,
-which trended away to the southeast, enlarging
-the plain as they receded from the river. Cutting
-through hills and plain to join the river-bed was a dry
-water-course, where, in winters only, a torrent flowed.
-In it were some stunted trees and scattered thickets of
-shrubs. To the north of the river was a vast plain on
-which the dry, yellow grass had been withered by summer
-sun and wind. Far in the east appeared dimly
-through a blue haze the summits of high mountains.
-Westward the river had yet to flow half its length to
-the Oxian swamps. Here it was wide and shallow and
-its banks were low and marshy.</p>
-
-<p>The rays of the sun sparkled on the brazen breastplates
-and shining blades of battle-axes, on the spear-points<span class="pagenum" id="Page_2">[2]</span>
-and gilded helmets, of two hundred thousand men,
-who here awaited the approach of a far more numerous
-host coming down from the east along the river towards
-them. The light rested softly upon the stern, bearded
-faces of veterans of many wars and the softer cheeks of
-young men on this, their first campaign. They were men
-of Iran for the most part, though some were Assyrians,
-Babylonians, Arabs, Hebrews, or Greeks from the
-Ionian cities. They were followers of Cyrus, the King
-of Kings, the Great King, ever victorious Lord of the
-World.</p>
-
-<p>Those about to attack them were Touranian horsemen,
-known to ancient history as Scythians, Massagetæ, Sacæ,
-and to modern history as Tartars, Turks, or Kalmuks.
-The hearts of the soldiers of Cyrus were glad. For
-the long, dusty marches in pursuit of an ever retreating
-enemy would now end in a riot of blood and slaughter,
-and perhaps they might then set their faces homeward.
-No doubt of victory entered their minds. They were
-led by Cyrus, the invincible. It mattered not if the
-enemy outnumbered them three to one, as their scouts
-had reported. There would be more killing and a
-greater victory.</p>
-
-<p>Racial hatred, reaching back beyond history and tradition
-to the distant age when the first family of man
-threw off branches to different parts of the earth and
-the branches immediately claimed the pleasant places
-and fought each other for them, animated both parties
-to the coming conflict. The folklore of the early Aryans
-is largely composed of tales concerning heroes who had
-saved their people from the ravages of those fierce men
-of the North, the Touranians. Century after century the
-wandering hordes of the great northern plains hovered,
-like threatening clouds, along the boundaries of Iran,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">[3]</span>
-looking across the mountains from their own arid and
-wind-swept abodes to the rich and pleasant hills and valleys
-of the South. The children of those tribes, in the
-days of Tamerlane and Mohammed, broke over all barriers,
-crushed Eastern civilization, and put back the clock
-of progress a thousand years.</p>
-
-<p>Once even before the time of Cyrus, the wild Touranians
-had passed over the mountains and pushed
-through into Mesopotamia, bearing woe to the nations.
-Then, one day, their captains sat down to a banquet prepared
-by the conquered ones and instead of meats were
-fed with sword-blows and dagger-thrusts. Having thus
-been deprived of leaders, the Touranian conquerors had
-suffered disaster; and all had been either killed, enslaved,
-or driven back across the mountains. Stories of that
-invasion were thereafter told at every fireside of the
-Bactrians, Medes, Persians, and their kindred tribes; and
-the mothers in Iran frightened their children into obedience
-by threatening to hand them over to the dreaded
-monsters of Touran.</p>
-
-<p>Having conquered all civilized Asia, Cyrus had
-thought to rest in his palaces at Hamadan, or Susa,
-Babylon, or Pasargadæ; but there had come word from
-ancient Balk, or Bactra, the mother city of all Aryans,
-warning him that the Touranians were gathering for war
-in numbers so immense that help must be sent. The
-great war-king had at once responded. With half a
-million men he had marched into Bactra, to the aid of
-King Hystaspis, who, under him, ruled there, and, passing
-through the mountains on its northern border, he
-had driven back the leading troops of the enemy. The
-Touranians had retreated, seeking to draw him into the
-great plains, where they hoped that they might crush
-him with overwhelming numbers. He had followed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">[4]</span>
-carefully, building forts as he advanced, that his supply-line
-might be safe, and leaving strong detachments to
-guard them. With less than half his army, though its
-best part, he had arrived at the great river, Jaxartes,
-and had waited there for the enemy to assemble and
-attack him. Now they were coming and he was ready.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus had chosen the battle-ground. He had marched
-out of his camp, situated a mile or so down the river,
-and had taken position where the narrow plain enabled
-him to mass his forces, with the sand-hills to protect his
-right, the river his left, and the dry water-course his
-front. The enemy, coming down towards him, would
-be compressed into an ever narrowing field where their
-immense superiority in numbers would not give them
-undue advantage. Knowing that the Touranians were
-all mounted and were accustomed to charge in mass at
-headlong speed, he hoped to draw them into the great
-ditch at his front in such confusion that the impetus of
-their assault would be broken. For this purpose he
-threw out to the east of the ditch about one thousand
-paces a curtain of light cavalry, which had orders to draw
-an assault, retreat rapidly before it, and take refuge
-behind the infantry. The position of the infantry was
-a line about halfway down the western slope of the
-water-course, and it would not be perceived by the pursuers
-until they should arrive at the upper margin of
-the eastern slope. Keeping five thousand of his heavy
-cavalry, known as the Imperial Guard, in reserve on the
-high ground at his extreme left near the river, he had
-stationed the remainder, about fifteen thousand strong,
-behind the crests of the sand-hills at his extreme right;
-and it would be their duty as soon as the Touranians
-should join battle, to make a détour to the right, descend
-from the hills upon their rear, and there attack. Thus,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">[5]</span>
-by the grace of Ahura-Mazda, Cyrus hoped, the enemy
-would be placed between his veteran infantry and his
-invincible cavalry, and so be ground to pieces.</p>
-
-<p>Near the margin of the river in front of the army
-was a group of men whose dress and demeanor denoted
-them leaders. One of these, to whom the others gave
-worshipful attention, was mounted on a noble Nisæan
-stallion. He was watching the distant mass of enemies
-with searching attention. He seemed indeed a king and
-worthy to be a King of Kings. Historians and storytellers
-have surrounded him with heroic luster. His
-countenance was eagle-like. His forehead was high, his
-nose sharp and slightly bridged, and his chin firm. The
-piercing glance of his black eyes never failed to read
-men nor to impress them with the necessity of instant
-obedience to orders. His demeanor was humorous and
-kind toward friends but fierce and terrible to evil-doers or
-to an enemy. Despite his sixty years, forty of which had
-been spent in war, his body was erect and soldierly. A
-helmet, glittering with gold, was on his head, and from
-beneath it his straight gray hair fell to the collar of his
-cloak. A white, silky beard covered the lower portion
-of his face and lay upon the silver breast-scales of the
-flexible coat-of-mail which covered his body and hips.
-Brazen greaves, fastened to soft leathern breeches, protected
-his limbs. His only weapon was a short sword,
-pendent from a belt around his waist. The trappings of
-his horse were rich. Its chest and neck were also protected
-by link mail.</p>
-
-<p>In the group of officers surrounding the Great King,
-there were two of no less royal birth than he. One was
-Hystaspis, King of Iran, his cousin, one of the Achæmenides,
-the family that had ruled in Iran for ages.
-Cyrus had been King of Fars, or Persia, before he became<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">[6]</span>
-King of Kings. Hystaspis had ruled in Bactra,
-the ancient seat of the Aryan race. Astyages was king
-of Medea and grandfather of Cyrus, whose mother was
-a Medean princess. He claimed suzerainty over all
-Iran. Cyrus had conquered his grandfather in war and,
-having dethroned him, had stepped up into the exalted
-position of King of Kings. He had then placed Persia
-under control of Hystaspis, who loyally supported him
-and acknowledged him as the overlord of all Iran. Cyrus
-was a warrior. Hystaspis was a student, a lover of
-peace and a mystic, though he ruled his people well as a
-statesman and showed qualities of a great warrior when
-necessity demanded. In his youthful days he had known
-the famous Zoroaster, the seer of Iran, who had reduced
-to writing the ancient songs and the ritual of religious
-worship of his race and had preached new life into its
-creed. Hystaspis was milder, more benevolent, and less
-alight with energy than Cyrus.</p>
-
-<p>Prince Darius Hystaspis, son of the King of Iran,
-was the other royal person in the group. He had dismounted
-from his war-horse and, with folded arms, was
-standing at its head, also watching the enemy. Six feet
-in height and well-proportioned, youthful and gallant, he
-was an ideal soldier. A helmet of gold and silver leaves
-covered his black, short-cropped hair save at the temples.
-A coat of leaf-mail protected his chest and his
-limbs halfway to the knee and was confined at his waist
-by a broad leather belt studded with gems set in golden
-buttons. A bronze plate further protected his breast,
-and greaves of the same metal were fastened to his
-leather riding-breeches as a protection to his legs. High-laced
-leather shoes encased his feet. A short sword hung
-at his belt, and a short-handled battle-ax swung from the
-saddle on his horse. A soldier from boyhood and already<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[7]</span>
-a veteran, having served in Cyrus’ last campaign
-against Babylon, yet he was, like his father, a student,
-and had learned wisdom of the greatest seer of that age,
-Belteshazzer, the Hebrew. His shaven cheeks were fair
-and glowing with the health of right living. His eyes
-were blue and clear and were set deeply beneath dark
-eyebrows and a lofty forehead. He was the idol of all
-Aryans, and, next to Cyrus, the hero of the army. He
-was commander of the Imperial Guard, and to him had
-been entrusted the duty of leading the Guard in the flank
-movement by which Cyrus hoped to crush the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Otanes, a giant in size, the noblest of Iran’s seven
-great nobles, was another of the group. He was shield-bearer
-to Cyrus and commander of his chosen body-guard.
-There was also Hydarnes, another of the seven
-nobles, a short, heavy man whose long, upturned mustache
-and beetling eyebrows were his most prominent
-features. He was commander of the Persian infantry.
-Vomisces, one of the seven nobles and commander of the
-allied infantry, the Babylonian, Assyrian, and Hebrew
-levies, and Gobryas, another one of the seven, a young
-man, blood-brother and closest friend of Prince Darius,
-were in the group. There was also Prexaspes, a Medean
-noble, commander of the light-armed cavalry, a brave,
-ambitious man, richly dressed in jeweled armor and having
-his hair and whiskers curled and perfumed. He
-was a cynical, unscrupulous, and pleasure-loving man, but
-energetic, resourceful, and brave. Of him we shall hear
-much in this story. A number of orderlies waited near
-by to receive and transmit the Great King’s commands.</p>
-
-<p>The herons in the Jaxartes have become restless but
-have not yet flown. While they wait and while Cyrus
-is watching the enemy, we may study the private soldiers
-to whose blows he will owe his victory, if he wins. They<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[8]</span>
-were not of the same quality as those effeminate men
-who, in later years, were unable to withstand the Greeks
-under the great Alexander. This was true at least of
-the Aryans who constituted the bulk of the army.</p>
-
-<p>Passing along the front of the light-armed cavalry, we
-observe the dusky Arab, with his curved scimiter and long
-javelin, his bow and arrows. He is clothed in turban,
-short tunic, loose cloak, brazen breastplate, and leathern
-breeches. He is mounted on the beautiful, swift horse
-of the desert which he loves as his own brother. Here
-also we see famous bowmen from Edom and Canaan,
-slingers from the Mediterranean isles, and Syrians from
-Mesopotamia, severally arrayed in their national costumes.
-When we pass along the lines of infantry, we
-note a distinctive army dress. Each soldier wears on his
-head a high, round felt cap; on his body, a stout, leathern,
-tight-fitting jacket, or tunic, with skirt extending halfway
-to the knee, and on his legs linen trousers, confined at the
-ankles by the tops of the soft leathern shoes with which
-his feet are shod. A bronze breastplate covers his chest,
-and bars of the same metal are on his arms and shoulders.
-The front rank, as it stands in position, is protected by
-wicker shields, covered with heavy leather, braced with
-metal bands. These shields are about seven feet long and
-are placed upright with the pointed lower ends thrust
-into the earth. Behind them, as a wall, the spearmen are
-comparatively safe from the enemy’s javelins and arrows.
-If the fight comes to close quarters, the shields
-may be easily thrown down; then for his further protection,
-the soldier must rely on a small, round targe held
-in place by straps on his left forearm.</p>
-
-<p>Each heavy-armed infantryman in the six front ranks
-carries a heavy spear about seven feet long and a short
-sword somewhat like a long dagger. A short-handled<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[9]</span>
-battle-ax with sharp, shearing blade and pointed beak is
-hung by a strap over his shoulder. The soldiers in the
-rear ranks, instead of the heavy spear and battle-ax,
-carry bundles of light javelins, for casting at short range,
-and long bows with sheaths of arrows, for fighting at
-long range. Protected by the wicker wall and the
-hedge of spears in the fore, they will meet the assault
-with showers of darts cast over the front ranks or, advancing
-behind the charging spearmen, will gall the
-enemy thus before the shock of the hand-to-hand fight
-comes.</p>
-
-<p>At intervals along the lines stand the captains of hundreds
-and commanders of thousands, distinguished from
-private soldiers only by richer armor and plumes of horse-hair
-on their caps.</p>
-
-<p>We next note the soldiers of the Imperial Guard. They
-are all large men, none of them over forty years of age,
-every one of noble birth, and all belong to the military
-class of Iran. They know but one calling, that of arms.
-All had entered military service at the age of sixteen, had
-been enrolled in the Guards at the age of twenty, and will
-remain there until they shall reach their fortieth year, at
-which time they will either be made civil officers or promoted
-and placed in command of companies and divisions
-of the imperial armies. Their armor consists of brazen
-helmets for their heads, chain-mail for their bodies, and
-brazen greaves for their legs and arms. A round shield,
-held on the left forearm in battle, will give further protection.
-A long, sharp javelin, a sword, and a battle-ax
-are their weapons. Their horses are protected by chain-mail
-on neck, forehead, and breast.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus, having satisfied himself that the Touranians
-were really coming to battle, turned to his generals and
-said: “At last the Touranians have decided to fight!<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[10]</span>
-We must not only repel this attack but must utterly destroy
-them, so that hereafter the terror of our name shall
-command peace! Take no prisoners! This day we shall
-avenge the wrongs of Iran in the death of its ancient enemies!
-Should it happen that I be slain in this battle, my
-cousin, the King of Iran, will command. In case he also
-should fall, his son, our beloved Prince, will command.”</p>
-
-<p>His piercing black eyes rested a moment upon the
-Prince’s countenance. The latter flushed with pleasure at
-the honor done him, and bowed in acknowledgment. The
-King continued: “The King of Iran will remain at my
-side. I shall need his advice. There will be no change
-in the plans announced last evening. With the help of
-Ahura-Mazda, this day we will fill that torrent-bed with
-Touranian dead! You, Prince of Iran, have the most
-important duty. Ride down upon their rear as soon as
-you see their front ranks engaged with our infantry. Officers,
-go to your places! Let the skirmishers advance
-farther into the plain!”</p>
-
-<p>The group scattered, each officer riding to his place.
-Cyrus and the King of Iran retired across the torrent-bed
-to the eminence at the rear of the left wing of the
-army. The Prince of Iran mounted and hurried to his
-command. Trumpets sounded. The light cavalry of the
-skirmish line moved briskly out upon the plain. The Touranians
-came on, a vast throng with but little semblance
-of order. Their leaders rode in advance at intervals, and
-the front ranks only preserved an irregular alignment.
-The two opposing forces slowly drew near each other.
-The shaggy coats made of hairy skins, the tall, peaked
-caps, and the fierce, dark faces of the Touranians soon
-became plainly visible to their opponents. The former
-were surprised at the apparent weakness of the latter and
-began to utter shouts of derision and defiance. These<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[11]</span>
-shouts presently blended into a great roar as the soldiers
-demanded of their leaders the right to charge.</p>
-
-<p>But the Touranian leaders were wary. They thought
-that but a fraction of the Persian army was here, possibly
-an advance guard sent out to delay their progress.
-They were puzzled and hesitated. But when the enemy
-halted at long bowshot distance and sent a flight of arrows
-into their crowded battalions, they lost control of
-their men. Screams of agony arose, and a roar of angry
-shouts. Another flight of arrows and a third smote the
-Touranians. Their own bowmen sought to reply, but
-their bows were weak and their arrows fell short. Then
-came a vast forward movement of the mass. Leaders
-were swallowed up in the midst of galloping squadrons.
-The skirmishers of Iran retreated, but turned in their
-saddles and shot backwards with fatal effect. Eager to
-overtake the flying archers, the Touranians threw caution
-to the winds and urged their horses to full speed. The
-earth shook with the beat of a million hoofs, and the air
-was rent by the terrific volume of savage war-cries. No
-line of infantry ever formed could have withstood the
-impetus of that charge if unprotected by ditch or wall.</p>
-
-<p>The herons, affrighted, spread their broad wings,
-sprang out of the yellow waters of the Jaxartes, and
-hastily flapped away. The conflict had begun.</p>
-
-<p>After pausing at the margin of the torrent-bed to send
-one last flight of arrows into their pursuers, the skirmishers
-of Cyrus quickly descended into and crossed it,
-passed through the ranks of the infantry, which opened
-to permit their passage, and formed in line on the ridge
-beyond. The Touranian leaders were surprised when the
-fugitives disappeared from their view in the chasm as if
-the earth had swallowed them up, and, guessing the reason,
-frantically screamed orders for their men to halt.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[12]</span>
-But the noise was so great that the orders were unheard.
-The shaggy horses of the leading ranks came at full
-speed to the margin of the torrent-bed and, unable to halt,
-plunged headlong down into it. Many horses and riders
-went down and were ridden over, crushed and mangled.
-Some retained their footing and struggled across the bottom
-of the ditch and up the opposite slope to assault the
-Aryan infantry. But the momentum of their rush was
-lost. The gleaming hedge of spears, protruding from
-behind the wicker shields, was terrible to horse and rider.
-The Touranians struck at the spear-points with their
-curved scimiters and endeavored to force ways between
-them. Masses of horsemen poured into the great ditch
-and struggled forward. Pushed on from behind, those in
-front could not avoid contact with the darting spears,
-which, in the hands of sinewy and practiced veterans,
-gashed horse and rider and threw them down in dying,
-struggling heaps.</p>
-
-<p>The rear ranks of Cyrus’ army came into action. They
-hurled clouds of javelins and arrows over the heads of
-the men in front upon the confused mass of assailants.
-The slaughter was horrible. But the Touranians in the
-front could not retreat had they desired. Those in front
-were crowded on, over dead and dying, upon the darting
-spears and against the wicker shields, overthrowing the
-shields and pushing back the Aryan infantry by sheer
-weight. Especially at the extreme left, where Cyrus was
-watching the struggle, did this backward movement of
-his lines take place. Here the water-course was wider
-and shallower than elsewhere and the advance was not so
-difficult. Here and there the Touranians succeeded in
-getting between the Aryan spears and with fierce strokes
-opened ways into the midst of the infantry. The latter,
-dropping their spears, fought with battle-ax and sword.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[13]</span>
-The contest became a mad swirl of screaming, plunging
-horses, shouting men, gleaming swords, and slashing axes.
-Heads were crushed, limbs lopped off, bodies hurled
-to earth, horses brained and hamstrung. Ever the stout
-veterans of Cyrus faced their enemy, unterrified, sweating,
-grunting, and cursing, as they stabbed and hewed;
-but they were forced back step by step.</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus watched the struggle with anxiety. There
-seemed no end to the on-pressing masses of the enemy.
-More and yet more poured down into the vale of death
-and pushed across to the assault. Javelins and arrows
-were becoming exhausted. The infantrymen were fighting
-furiously, but were beginning to show weariness.
-Casting his eyes often to the distant hills, he presently
-noted with satisfaction that the Prince of Iran and his
-guards were passing down into the plain at the rear of
-the enemy’s left. He then ordered the light-armed cavalry
-to the assistance of the infantry at the center and
-right, and placing himself at the head of that division of
-the Imperial Guard held in reserve, he led it into the affray
-just as the infantry, pressed back by sheer weight
-of numbers, seemed about to be overwhelmed. The
-heavy horsemen of the Guard rode forward smartly and
-plunged into the battle. Prodigies of valor were performed.
-The infantrymen, seeing their King in their
-midst swinging his battle-ax with deadly effect, renewed
-their efforts. Huge Otanes with mighty strokes and protecting
-shield endeavored to ward off from Cyrus all
-blows aimed at him. King Hystaspis of Iran rode along
-the battle-lines towards the right. Everywhere the battle
-was close, fierce, and deadly.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the Prince of Iran with the Guard rode
-down into the plain, and with javelins at rest charged the
-Touranians in flank and rear. This soon relieved the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[14]</span>
-pressure in front. Confusion and terror seized the Touranians.
-Those who sought to resist went down before
-the shock of the huge Persian horses and the thrust of the
-long javelins.</p>
-
-<p>The contest became a slaughter. Thousands of the
-luckless Touranians rode into the river, seeking to ford
-it and thus escape; but quicksands and treacherous water-holes
-swallowed them up or mired them down, so that
-they became easy prey to the pursuing archers. The
-Aryan infantry assumed the offensive, crossed the torrent-bed,
-and drove the Touranians back upon the lances
-of the Guard, who in turn hurled them back upon the infantry.
-The larger part died. Some broke through and
-fled. The noon sun looked down upon heaps of slain
-and wounded, upon despairing squads flying over hill and
-plain, and upon a river whose waters were red with blood
-and choked with bodies. The Aryan victory was complete,
-overwhelming, and decisive.</p>
-
-<p>But the victors also suffered. Their loss was heavy in
-men, but worst of all they had lost their Great King.
-Cyrus at the head of the Guard had ridden into the press
-and restored the battle. When the assault on their rear
-caused the Touranians to give back, he had followed furiously.
-Then an arrow struck him in the neck just above
-the collar of his coat-of-mail, inflicting a deep wound.
-He reeled from the shock, plucked out the weapon with
-his own hands, and then fell fainting from his horse into
-the arms of Otanes, who carried him back out of the
-battle.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[15]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER II<br />
-
-
-<small>AN OATH</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE wounded King was tenderly borne to his pavilion
-in the camp, and his injury was dressed by
-the most skillful surgeons in the army. He was weakened
-by loss of blood, however, and suffered much pain.
-He became feverish. The surgeons had but little skill in
-those days; and the wound was deep and infected. He
-suffered the pain with heroic resignation and, after a
-while, fell into a restless sleep, in which he tossed about
-and muttered continually.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the King of Iran, having taken chief command,
-pushed the victory to completion and recalled the
-troops to their camp from the bloody plain only when the
-last enemy had disappeared or died.</p>
-
-<p>Prince Darius and the Imperial Guard pursued the
-fugitives as long as they held together in a body, but when
-they scattered, some crossing the Jaxartes and others taking
-refuge in the southern hills where it was difficult to
-follow them with heavy horse, he left further pursuit to
-the light-armed cavalry and returned to camp with his
-shouting, singing troopers. He did not learn of the
-King’s condition until within bowshot of camp, where an
-orderly from his father met him bearing the sad news.
-At once the shouts and songs of his troopers were turned
-to sighs and tears. They entered the camp in silence.
-They were dusty, blood-stained, and weary, and their joy
-of victory had given place to dejection. The Great King’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[16]</span>
-headquarters were in the midst of the camp. The Prince
-caused his battalions to form around the pavilion in a
-square, with their faces toward it. Then, leaving them
-still mounted, he went in to inquire concerning the King’s
-condition.</p>
-
-<p>It was almost sundown. The herons, which had fled
-away in the morning, were now returning with heavy
-wings to the marshes along the river. They did not
-alight, however, but hurriedly flapped away when they
-found the marshes filled with the dead bodies of men and
-horses.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince found the chief captains of the army assembled
-in the outer room of the pavilion. His father
-was wearily reclining on a couch, while the others stood
-near in whispering groups; but he rose as the Prince entered,
-and embraced him and kissed his cheeks, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p>“My son, to the Guard belongs much of the glory of
-our great victory. Never have I seen a movement so
-well made or a blow struck at more opportune time.
-But alas for the Great King! He is sorely wounded and
-has a fever. He is now sleeping, but he mutters and
-tosses in his sleep.”</p>
-
-<p>“May we go in and see him? The Guard waits anxiously
-to hear his condition,” inquired the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>The King of Iran called the chief surgeon out of the
-inner room where the wounded monarch lay and, after a
-whispered consultation with him, bade his son follow and
-went into the inner room with him. The stricken man
-lay on a silk-covered couch, apparently asleep, while an
-attendant waved a fan above his head. Aroused by their
-entrance, the Great King opened his eyes, half-raised himself
-upon his elbow, and stared wildly at them. The surgeon
-gently sought to repress his movements. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[17]</span>
-quickly recognized the King of Iran and the Prince and
-smiled as he sank back upon the couch.</p>
-
-<p>The surgeon bowed low before him and exclaimed:
-“Let not my lord move! It may open the wound and
-cause it to bleed afresh!”</p>
-
-<p>But Cyrus impatiently waved him aside, and said
-weakly: “Let be! If I am to die, I die; if I am to live,
-I will live! I have had a vision! Draw near, my good
-cousin and my beloved Prince! Is the victory complete?
-Did many escape?”</p>
-
-<p>The King of Iran answered: “It is your most glorious
-victory, O King of Kings! Hundreds of thousands
-of dead Touranians testify to the valor of your arms and
-the effectiveness of your battle-plans.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is well!” he sighed. “To you, my beloved Prince,
-is due the thanks of your King, of the army, of all Iran!
-Oh, my heart leaped when I saw the Guard with spears
-at rest ride down upon the enemy! It was then that I
-rushed into the battle. Now I lie here! So be it! I
-know that I am about to die. I have had a vision. Now
-I would see the sun set, lest I never see it again. Cause
-the curtains to be rolled up. This close air stifles me!”</p>
-
-<p>Servants quickly rolled up the heavy side-curtains of
-the pavilion. At a motion of the sufferer the Prince
-knelt by his side, placed an arm beneath his shoulders,
-and gently raised him. Instantly the Guards, standing at
-attention about the tent, uncovered their heads, bowed to
-their horses’ necks, and roared out a salute, while tears
-streamed down their grimy cheeks and many wept aloud.
-The men of Iran were emotional, weeping or laughing
-like children as the mood seized them. The Great King
-smiled upon them and feebly waved his hand in greeting.
-He whispered to the Prince:</p>
-
-<p>“How they love me! It is sweet to die surrounded by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[18]</span>
-those who love you. Ah, if I might now have my children
-here! I would give them a parting blessing and die
-in peace. My sweet daughters, Athura, the wise, and
-Artistone, my babe! Bardya, my strong Prince, and
-Cambyses,— But, lay me down! The sun is setting!
-So sets my life!”</p>
-
-<p>“Say not so, my lord!” exclaimed the Prince, his eyes
-swimming in tears. “It has been a glorious day!”</p>
-
-<p>“True, my son! And the wrongs of Iran have been
-avenged. A nation of warriors has been wiped out. No
-more will the Tourans threaten my people. We shall
-make this river the boundary of our empire. Fortresses
-and cities must be built along it so that never again may
-the yellow men of the plains carry desolation south of it.
-Advise my sons to this policy. Nay, tell them I have ordered
-it so!”</p>
-
-<p>The Great King closed his eyes. The tent-sides were
-then dropped. The troopers dismounted and went into
-camp, satisfied to have seen the King alive, and praying
-to Ahura-Mazda, Giver of Life, that he might recover.
-The King of Iran, with uncovered head, stood for a
-while looking down upon the sufferer, while his son still
-knelt at the side of the couch. Presently Cyrus opened
-his eyes and looked intently upon the sad countenance of
-the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>“Would that you were my own son, Darius Hystaspis!”
-he exclaimed. “I love you well and I know that
-you have deserved well of me. Ask of me what you will.
-It shall be decreed ere I die!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince bowed his head till his forehead touched
-the King’s hands, which nervously clasped his own strong
-right hand between their palms. Then he looked up into
-the grave eyes of his father inquiringly. The latter indicated
-by a nod that he should speak what was in his
-mind.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[19]</span>“O King of Kings,” he said, “you have been as a
-father to me! If I have found favor with you, let my
-reward be very great! I ask no less than that you will
-give me for my wife your daughter, Athura!”</p>
-
-<p>Cyrus was greatly pleased. He smiled approvingly as
-he answered: “Truly you ask much! But not too
-much; and you shall have her, if she so wills. I doubt
-not that she will gladly consent. She must marry whom
-she will. Her mother married me even against her
-father’s will and she was ever the light and joy of life to
-me. In her love I rejoiced all the days of her life. I
-have given her no successor. I go to meet her soon. I
-rejoice to call you son. Would that Athura were here
-to wed you now! I pledge her to you. Now I have a
-request to make of you, and your royal father. I constituted
-my son, Cambyses, regent in my absence, that he
-might learn to rule. My soul is exceedingly anxious
-concerning him. His passions are great; he is violent
-and he endures no opposition to his will. He will need
-advisers and supporters. My son, Bardya, is of better
-nature; he is brave but impulsive. Much have I thought
-of them. It will depend upon you two, King and Prince
-of Iran, whether the family of Cyrus shall continue to
-reign. This I have seen. I ask of you that you will
-pledge me your royal oaths that, as long as Cambyses or
-Bardya live, you will support them on my throne—Cambyses
-first, and Bardya second.”</p>
-
-<p>He ceased. The Prince again looked up to his father,
-who had listened attentively and who now spoke without
-hesitation: “My son, we are Kings of Iran only. Cyrus,
-our cousin, is King of Kings. By his own genius he
-has made this great empire. It is his. He conquered it.
-He extended his scepter over other peoples. We forfeit
-none of our hereditary rights by swearing as he requests.
-As for me, I am ready to swear!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[20]</span>“And I also!” added the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>The Great King extended his two hands and took the
-right hands of father and son between his palms, saying,
-“Is it an oath in the hearing of Ahura-Mazda and His
-recording angel?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is an oath!” they solemnly answered.</p>
-
-<p>“It is well,” said the King, releasing them. “May
-Shraosha, the swift messenger of God, take those oaths
-and register them in heaven! Now I will tell of my
-vision. I saw Mount Demavend, and, upon its snowy
-summit, I beheld a great eagle. He spread his wings
-and, behold! they reached across all the heavens and their
-shadow covered the earth. The countenance of the eagle,
-Prince Darius, when I closely observed it, was your countenance.
-Shall it come to pass that you will overshadow
-the world? Or will you spread your protecting wings in
-days to come over this empire and by your help shall my
-sons reign well? Ahura-Mazda knows! Let his will be
-done!”</p>
-
-<p>The King’s weak voice ceased. He closed his eyes.
-The Prince and his father remained silent. A rising wind
-touched the tent and made it quiver. In the adjacent
-room was a low murmur of conversation. After a moment’s
-silence the Great King again opened his eyes and
-continued:</p>
-
-<p>“Since this empire of mine is new and my will has
-been its law, there are no laws by which succession to my
-throne may be regulated. By right of birth, Cambyses
-should succeed to the supreme power. Yet I am not
-happy in him. He is inclined to evil ways and regards
-not the customs of our race. He runs after the folly of
-the Medes. He seeks the pleasures of Babylon. I have
-thought much on this. Perhaps it would be just that he
-should be given Medea, Susiana, Babylonia, and all the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[21]</span>
-western provinces to rule, since their customs he follows.
-Bardya is not so. He loves our ancient customs. To him
-I will give supreme rule over Iran and the provinces of
-Hind, of Hyrcania, and the Scyths and of all our eastern
-conquests; but he shall acknowledge Cambyses as overlord
-of the world, aiding him with an army in war, but
-undisturbed by him in peace. Thus will I do justly and
-satisfy all Iran, whose people love not Cambyses. I will
-make a testament and a decree ere I die. Call hither my
-scribe. I would relieve my mind of care by making such
-decree. Call in the nobles of Iran to hear my will!”</p>
-
-<p>The scribe came. The nobles of Iran entered the
-room. They saw the King’s will written down on Egyptian
-papyrus. Two copies were made. The King signed
-them and impressed thereon his seal. Then, greatly exhausted,
-he indicated that he would be alone; and all left
-his presence to seek refreshment after the day of toil, and
-to discuss the Great King’s last decree.</p>
-
-<p>It was the duty of the Prince, as commander of the Imperial
-Guard, to appoint the watches at the King’s pavilion.
-Otanes, the King’s shield-bearer and personal
-guard, slept in the outer room and stood at the door on
-state occasions. There were usually with Otanes several
-noble youths who acted as pages or orderlies to the Great
-King. But on this night the King of Iran and several others
-of the nobility kept silent watch in the outer room,
-anxiously consulting the surgeons as they went in and out
-upon their ministrations. The Prince, after setting a
-double guard around the pavilion, went alone down to the
-river and for an hour slowly paced back and forth on the
-low bank along the shore. He wished to be alone with his
-thoughts.</p>
-
-<p>A violent wind was blowing from the north. The lap
-and wash of waves, thrown up by its power, and the rustle<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[22]</span>
-of reeds and grass, were the only sounds coming to
-his ears. The subdued noise of the vast encampment
-drifted away behind him as he looked out across the
-stream. The moon had not yet appeared. The stars
-were dim and hazy behind dust-clouds raised by the great
-wind. Alone thus, though thousands of men were near,
-while the whispers of the moving air suggested the voices
-of those wailing spirits released from their mortal bodies
-in this day’s slaughter, the young man reviewed the past
-and contemplated uneasily the future.</p>
-
-<p>First in his thoughts, as indeed she had been for years,
-was Athura, eldest daughter of Cyrus, known to the
-Greek historians as Atossa, the most famous, most beautiful,
-and most queenlike woman of her age. He had
-loved her from the day when he, a youth of fourteen, and
-she, a child of ten years, had first met and played together
-in the great park surrounding his father’s palace at Persepolis,
-where she had come to visit with her mother, the
-queen. She had often been his companion in sports since
-the time he had entered the service of the Great King,
-as a page. Lately he had not seen her often, as his service
-in the Imperial Guard had called him away to the wars.
-But, when he had last met her in the ancient city, Bactra,
-to which place she had accompanied her father when he
-started on this expedition, they had made mutual avowals
-of love and pledges of faith, subject to her father’s
-consent. Now the expedition was ended. He had the
-consent of Cyrus to their marriage. Happiness seemed to
-be in store for him.</p>
-
-<p>But the future was not without clouds. Cyrus was
-dying. What then? The hate-filled countenance of
-Cambyses arose before his mind. The large, square body
-of that Prince, the bullet head, the black, dull eye, the fat
-face, usually expressive of scorn, he well remembered.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[23]</span>
-He seemed to hear again the brutal laugh, the bitter gibe
-or threat, the coarse words, and the raucous tones of the
-Prince, as he had heard them often when as boys they
-played together. Cambyses had hated him, apparently
-for no other reason than that he could not bully him as
-he was accustomed to bully other boys. More than once
-they had engaged in personal encounters; and the officers,
-who ever guarded the King’s children, had to interfere
-and separate them. Some of these combats had arisen
-when he had gone to rescue Athura or Bardya from their
-brother’s abuse. Cambyses also hated Bardya, whom Cyrus
-loved. More than once Cyrus himself had inflicted
-corporal punishment upon the elder Prince for abusing his
-playmates, and in later years he had often caused him
-to be confined in his room as a punishment. If Cyrus
-should die, the violent, degraded, drunken Cambyses
-would be King, with power absolute of life and death, and
-able to wreak vengeance upon the royal brother and sisters,
-as he had often sworn he would do, when he should
-come into power.</p>
-
-<p>Prince Darius did not fear Cambyses. But if Cambyses
-should disregard his father’s will and forbid the
-marriage of Darius and Athura, what would be the result?
-The Prince involuntarily laid his hand on the hilt
-of his sword. Cambyses could be overthrown, since the
-people and the army of Iran loved him not; and the
-younger Prince Bardya would then reign. Bardya was
-a friend of Darius and would approve the marriage. But
-to the Prince came the remembrance of his oath to Cyrus.
-He had sworn to uphold Cambyses. No matter
-what the Prince should do or what wrong he should inflict
-upon him or his friends, he must henceforth support
-him on his throne! As the possibilities involved in that
-oath occurred to his mind, the young man smote his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[24]</span>
-hands together and groaned. But he said to himself that
-perhaps Cambyses, the King, would be different from
-Cambyses, the man. In any event, the nobles of Iran and
-the King, his father, would compel Cambyses to give
-Athura to him. Cambyses would not dare refuse to regard
-his own father’s pledge.</p>
-
-<p>The moon appeared, a dim, pale disk behind a veil of
-flying dust. The wind increased in violence. Thin,
-broken clouds floated across the sky. The river, vaguely
-seen, was filled with choppy waves. The howl of a wolf
-came faintly from beyond the stream. A great sadness,
-a sense of impending danger, filled the soul of the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>A voice aroused him, saying, “Gracious Prince, the
-King has awakened and is calling for you!” It was one
-of the King’s pages who thus summoned him. Throwing
-off his depression, he followed the youth into the tent,
-pausing only at the door to direct the guards to take additional
-precautions to prevent the wind from throwing
-down the swaying shelter. The King turned a wan, pain-drawn
-countenance towards him as he entered and beckoned
-him to a low stool at the side of his couch.</p>
-
-<p>“My son,” he said, speaking slowly and with difficulty,
-“I am unable to sleep. This wound pains me greatly and
-the wind roars about the tent. I am very lonely. I seem
-to stand naked and alone before God! I am about to
-step out into the dark. I would have you near me. You
-have been with me so many years that you are to me as
-a son. Now that I have promised my daughter to you,
-I have a double claim upon you. Sit here, unless you are
-weary and must sleep. It has been a long, hard day, but
-a glorious one for Iran!”</p>
-
-<p>“Father, I am not weary,” replied the Prince. “My
-heart is heavy for you! I pray God you may recover!
-Is the wound so bad, then? Once before you were hurt
-in battle and recovered.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[25]</span>“This wound is fatal. It is poisoned. The weapon
-that pierced me was unclean. Even now I feel it throb
-and burn. I know the symptoms. I have watched many
-a dying officer, wounded by unclean darts. But I am at
-peace. I have been a man of war all my life; but I have
-ever had right with me. I have lived uprightly and
-wronged none. Justice has never been sold by me. Oppression
-has been rebuked. I have crushed the rulers of
-nations to free their people from tyranny and misrule.
-I do not fear to die. I am an Aryan. Ahura-Mazda is
-God and there is none other! My mind dwells much on
-the future, my son. Discourse to me of that. You sat
-at the feet of Belteshazzer, the wise, he that was chief
-of the college of wisdom in Babylon. He talked to me
-often of God and of his own people. I made a decree that
-his people should be returned to their home at Jerusalem
-and rebuild their temple to God. Call this to my son’s
-remembrance, when you go to him, and say to him that
-I lay it upon him to obey. What said Belteshazzer of
-that which lies beyond death?”</p>
-
-<p>“He taught that the spirit continues to live after the
-body dies.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, truly, so said he to me! But in that he agrees
-with our Zoroaster.”</p>
-
-<p>“He taught much as did the great Master. Indeed, he
-agrees that Ahura-Mazda, the Holy One, the Father of
-Truth, the Life-Giving Spirit, is but another name for
-the same God he worships as Jah, who is the Father
-of all spirits and the Giver of Life. He teaches that
-there is one God, a loving Father, the Eternal One; and
-that in the far-distant past there were but one man and
-one woman, from whom sprang all the races of men; and
-that all worshiped one God, the Father of all; but that
-many of their children have forgotten Him and have wandered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[26]</span>
-away, making Gods of their own imaginings. He
-is a mighty prophet and holds communion with messengers
-from God and with spirits.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have heard wonderful things of him, how that fire
-will not burn him nor wild beasts harm him. What says
-Zoroaster of the dying?”</p>
-
-<p>“He taught that Shraosha, the swift messenger,
-stands ready to receive the soul and to conduct it over the
-bridge that is straight and narrow into paradise, where
-the great angel, Bohman, will greet it and say, ‘How
-happy art thou who hast come hither from mortality to
-immortality!’ Then will the soul enter upon eternal
-blessedness.”</p>
-
-<p>“You said that Belteshazzer talks with unseen spirits
-and is a mighty prophet. Do not the Magi also call up
-the dead and prophesy?”</p>
-
-<p>“They say so, Sire. But Belteshazzer says that they
-are liars and that their art is black. He admits that they
-may talk with spirits, but accuses them of dealing with
-demons and evil spirits. They worship the spirits who
-inhabit the dark places of earth and work ill to men.”</p>
-
-<p>The Great King lay silent a moment with closed eyes.
-At length, heaving a deep sigh, he said:</p>
-
-<p>“It is all a mystery! But I shall soon know. I am
-troubled concerning Cambyses. I have heard that he has
-dealings with the Magi and has attended their worship.
-God forbid that he should fall into their hands! They
-are a vile sect, regarding neither oath nor promise. They
-prey upon the weak and superstitious. They would
-throw down our ancient laws. I have not been intolerant
-of others’ creeds or ever interfered with their religion.
-Each nation has continued to worship God in its
-own manner, giving obedience to me only in matters of
-government. Can it be said that one God is better than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[27]</span>
-the other? How was I to judge the unknown things of
-God? But I know that God rules, whether named
-Ahura-Mazda, Jah, Merodach, Jove, or Ra. Men know
-him not!”</p>
-
-<p>Again he fell silent, with closed eyes and pallid face
-turned to the dim light of the lamps which hung from the
-ridge-pole by chains, flaring in the currents of air and
-swinging to and fro as the tent rocked under the shocks
-of the mighty wind.</p>
-
-<p>Rousing himself again, he continued: “I feel that my
-spirit will soon depart. When it does, I lay upon you
-the task of conveying my body to Pasargadæ, where you
-shall deposit it in a suitable tomb. Take half of the
-Guard with you. Leave the remainder here with the
-King, your father, who must finish the work I have begun
-and establish fortresses along this river so that never
-again may the Touranians recover the land we have conquered,
-or further molest Iran. Let my body be entombed
-after the fashion of our fathers. Take a
-message to Bardya and say that I have blessed him.
-Restrain him with your advice, that he do not rebel and
-bring on war with his brother. Take my love and blessing
-to Athura and Artistone. Into your care I give
-Athura. May long years of happiness be yours! But
-I am very weary and I would sleep. Sit here by me.
-It is pleasant to know that you are near!”</p>
-
-<p>The King closed his eyes and sank into a stupor. The
-Prince bent his head upon his hands and silently wept.
-Presently becoming calmer, he sat still in meditation,
-listening to the irregular breathing of the sufferer.
-After a while he also slept, with his head resting on his
-arms, which were folded across his knees. The hours
-went by, while the great wind continued to bellow around
-and to whip the awnings of the pavilion and while the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[28]</span>
-life of the Great King slowly flickered out. Darius was
-awakened by the surgeons, who, alarmed at the long
-silence in the sick-room, had come in to look at the
-King.</p>
-
-<p>“Great Cyrus is dead!” he heard one of them say.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[29]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER III<br />
-
-
-<small>PREXASPES</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">CYRUS, the Great King, had been conquered by a
-greater King. The generals and nobles of his army
-gathered in solemn council on the day following his
-death. The King of Iran presided. On him, as upon
-an anchor in a storm, the others depended; and it was in
-the hearts of many to declare him successor to the mighty
-dead. There was no love in their hearts towards
-Cambyses, the heir. His open contempt for their ancient
-customs and religion and his erratic and brutal disposition
-had not attracted them. The army had given
-the throne and his distinctive eminence as King of Kings
-to Cyrus; it could give them to another, now that he was
-gone, in spite of his expressed will.</p>
-
-<p>At the right hand of the King stood the Prince, his
-son, his eyes heavy with sorrow. Otanes, Gobryas,
-Hydarnes, Vomisces, and a score of Persians of lesser
-note were there; and also Prexaspes, the Mede.</p>
-
-<p>As usual Prexaspes was carefully dressed; he was
-ornate in golden, jewel-set armor and half enveloped in
-a silken cloak, the famous Medean robe. His hair and
-beard were curled and perfumed. He moved with exaggerated
-grace and carried his fine head haughtily.
-His brothers-in-arms could ill conceal their contempt for
-his foppish manners. They were rough, ready men,
-straight of look and direct of speech. They loved not an
-Aryan who copied the manners of Babylon and Nineveh<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[30]</span>
-and, as they suspected, the vices of those ultra-civilized
-peoples. But they knew that Prexaspes was
-a brave and able commander of horse and on that account
-ignored his manners. He was a fair sample of
-the higher classes of Medes, who, residing on the borders
-of the more effeminate peoples of the great Mesopotamian
-valley, had been infected by their manners and
-customs.</p>
-
-<p>The Medes, in the former days, when they had conquered
-the lands now occupied by them, had been sturdy,
-simple people. Centuries of intercourse with the Assyrians
-and Babylonians had materially changed their
-qualities and had not only affected their dress and
-manner of living, but had injected into their ancient religion,
-which was a monotheistic creed, new ideas that
-were polytheistic, much to the indignation of their
-brethren of Persia and Bactra who still clung to the ancient
-faith. The Medes had permitted the fire-worshipers
-of the northern provinces to practice their occult arts
-and had to some extent adopted those practices. There
-had, as a consequence, grown up a priest class of Magi,
-or seers, wise men, prophets, who claimed to communicate
-with the gods of hill, mountain, and plain, and who
-did undeniably work wonders that could not be duplicated
-by the priests in the Aryan temples, and thereby
-not only discomfited the latter in the eyes of the people,
-but impressed the rulers of Medea in their favor.</p>
-
-<p>It was said that Prexaspes was a follower of the Magi,
-but on that subject he adroitly avoided conversation.
-Cyrus, whose policy had ever been to conciliate those he
-conquered, had recognized the military ability of Prexaspes
-and had forborne to examine closely into his creed
-or his manner of life. In return the latter had given him
-faithful service and had been extremely useful in dealing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[31]</span>
-with the Medean nobility and in recruiting for the
-army.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as all who had been bidden were assembled,
-the King of Iran addressed them briefly: “I have
-called you together to consider the great calamity that
-has befallen this army and the empire. Great Cyrus
-sleeps with his fathers. The decisive victory of yesterday
-resulted thus in greater loss to us than to the enemy.
-The command of this army has fallen upon me until a
-messenger can be sent to bring orders from Cambyses,
-who, by the will of his august father, succeeds to the
-throne of the King of Kings. It was the will of Cyrus
-that we hold all this country and make the Jaxartes the
-future boundary of Iran. It shall be done. We shall
-remain here until the enemy shall fully submit, and we
-shall build fortresses along this river. On this spot
-where great Cyrus departed this life, let us found a city
-named in honor of the Great King. It shall be a monument
-to his glorious victory and a bulwark of the empire.
-What say you?”</p>
-
-<p>He paused. Otanes, upon whom the King’s eyes
-rested, answered: “Let it be so! Let the King’s will
-be law!” Nods and exclamations of assent came from
-the company.</p>
-
-<p>The King continued: “The Great King ordered that
-his body be taken to Pasargadæ, there to rest in the
-tomb prepared by him and in which rests the body of his
-wife. He directed that my son take the Imperial Guard
-for an escort and convey his body, when embalmed, to
-its resting-place. This shall be done. As for me, I
-shall remain here until the frontier be made safe. My
-son shall select such of you as he desires to accompany
-him on his honorable mission. It will be necessary to
-send a special messenger to Cambyses with the Great<span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[32]</span>
-King’s last decree. He shall travel with the Guard and
-my son until he reach Bactra; but then he must go more
-swiftly, in order that Cambyses may make fitting preparation
-for the funeral of his father. Who will volunteer
-for this service?”</p>
-
-<p>Silence fell upon the company. There was no desire
-in any of them to greet Cambyses. They would rather
-have deposed him. But Prexaspes stood forth and said:
-“O King, if it please you, I will bear the message to
-Cambyses, the King of Kings.”</p>
-
-<p>The King regarded Prexaspes a moment thoughtfully.
-He liked not this man, but he could think of no reason to
-deny him. He said:</p>
-
-<p>“You shall go. But swear before us here that you
-will faithfully carry to Cambyses this decree and assure
-him of our support!”</p>
-
-<p>“I swear!” responded Prexaspes, solemnly, lifting
-both hands towards the sun and turning his face to it.
-A frown passed over the calm features of the King.
-He liked not this exhibition of Mithra worship. But he
-made no comment, only saying:</p>
-
-<p>“Say to the Great King, Cambyses, that I, Hystaspis,
-King of Iran, have sworn to support him and his brother
-on their thrones according to the will of Cyrus; and my
-word shall be kept! Advise him also that the ancient
-laws and customs in Iran must not be disregarded. His
-great father gave heed to them; and on them the Aryan
-peoples lay great weight. In their observance will he
-gain strength; and the men of Iran will in return dash
-to pieces his enemies. Do I not speak truth?”</p>
-
-<p>The speaker’s eyes glanced inquiringly over the company.
-The black, sparkling eyes of Prexaspes likewise
-swept over it and noted the expression on every countenance.
-Nods of approval and unanimous spoken assent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[33]</span>
-indicated the sentiment of all. Prexaspes, bowing low
-before the King, answered:</p>
-
-<p>“I will exactly report your words, O King! I shall
-take great pleasure in assuring the Great King that all
-here are his loyal supporters.”</p>
-
-<p>The King was about to dismiss the council, when a
-messenger rode up from the east in great haste. He was
-from the pickets stationed near the battlefield. The
-King waited till he had dismounted and drawn near.</p>
-
-<p>“A message, gracious King, from Captain Mardux
-of the scouts!” cried the messenger, bowing low till his
-hands touched the earth.</p>
-
-<p>“Speak!” commanded the King.</p>
-
-<p>“The captain is approaching with a company of Touran
-princes, who come to the Great King to tender submission.
-He has halted at the outer limits of the camp
-to await your orders. Shall he slay them or bring them
-hither?”</p>
-
-<p>“Bring them hither!”</p>
-
-<p>The messenger again bowed low, backed from the
-circle, and sprang on his horse. As soon as he was
-gone, the King said:</p>
-
-<p>“It will be best not to inform these men of the death
-of Cyrus. No lie need be spoken. But I am the King.
-Cyrus is not dead but sleepeth. Send hither an interpreter.”</p>
-
-<p>Gobryas, to whom the last command was spoken, departed
-to summon an interpreter. Meanwhile the King
-caused a purple-covered chair to be brought out and
-placed on a platform made of camp-chests covered with
-a costly rug. In this he seated himself, and with his son
-at his right hand, Otanes at his left, and the other nobles
-near, all dressed in glittering mail and fully armed, he
-was ready to receive and impress the coming delegation.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[34]</span>
-A glittering crown of gold studded with gems, high and
-pointed, like the miter of a priest, was placed on his
-head. In his hand was a scepter, a silver rod tipped with
-a golden pomegranate. Right royal was his aspect; and
-the stern countenances of his captains added to the impressiveness
-of the scene.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Mardux, a stout, bluff soldier, who had won
-his promotion from the ranks by prowess and shrewdness,
-presently rode up with a company of cavalry,
-escorting five men of swarthy countenance, long-haired,
-almond-eyed, mounted on powerful ponies, sitting on
-goatskins instead of saddles, and clothed in silken garments
-and pointed fur caps. The captain caused them
-to dismount and led them before the King, where, in
-obedience to an expressive gesture of the captain’s hands,
-they threw themselves flat upon the earth in salutation.
-Here they lay face-downward while the captain reported
-as follows:</p>
-
-<p>“These dogs, O King, came to us with hands in air,
-showing themselves unarmed and asked to be taken to
-the Great King. I know some words of their language
-and so understood that they come as messengers from
-the Tourans.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is well, Mardux. Bid them rise to their knees.”</p>
-
-<p>Captain Mardux roused the prostrate men with his toe
-and made them assume a kneeling posture. From this
-position, they glanced with ferret eyes at the King and
-his supporters. They were evidently greatly impressed,
-but their sullen countenances exhibited no fear. Gobryas
-now appeared with an interpreter, a man of Bactra
-who had conducted trading expeditions over the great
-plains in more peaceable days. Thereupon the following
-colloquy occurred between the King and one of
-them:</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[35]</span>“Who are you and whence come you?”</p>
-
-<p>“We are messengers of the Queen of the Massagetæ.
-We come from her encampment, a day’s journey eastward.”</p>
-
-<p>“What seek you?”</p>
-
-<p>“We come to greet the Great King, Cyrus, whose
-power even the gods cannot withstand. Behold! our
-King is dead on yonder field, and the King’s son is dead.
-Our people are broken. The bodies of our slain choke
-the great river. Only old men and children are left.
-Who can withstand Cyrus? Like the lightning and the
-whirlwind he sweeps up from the south! He smites
-and men are not! We come to tender unto him a handful
-of earth, a broken twig, and a cup of water, and to
-ask his pardon, that we may henceforth be his men and
-live under the shadow of his arms.”</p>
-
-<p>“Cyrus, the Great King, sleeps and we cannot
-awaken him. Behold me, the King of Iran, Hystaspis!
-I will receive your tokens of submission.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is well! We know of you, O King of Iran, surnamed
-the Just. Have we not heard of your strong arm
-and most just and merciful heart? If it be permitted,
-we will arise and present to you our tokens of submission,
-asking mercy for our remnant of people.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is permitted!”</p>
-
-<p>The men arose. One produced a small casket of
-carved wood inlaid with ivory, and opening it so that it
-revealed the brown earth of the desert therein, he
-solemnly placed it in the outstretched hand of the King.
-Another produced a twig of wood plucked from a
-stunted oak, and another a small jar of water, which
-were solemnly received and passed on to Otanes by the
-King, who then said:</p>
-
-<p>“Hear now the King’s sentence! You are pardoned.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[36]</span>
-Enough blood has been shed to atone for past injury.
-You are brave men whom the Great King will delight to
-own as his children. Your lands and all your property
-are forfeit to him, but these he will let you use so long
-as you serve him in good faith. But in order that you
-may enjoy his protection, it will be necessary for you to
-render to him each summer season ten thousand good
-horses, as many cattle, and a like number of sheep.
-That he may have evidence of your good faith and in
-order that your people may be instructed in his laws,
-you must send to our city of Bactra each year one hundred
-of your most noble youths, to enter the King’s
-service, whose lives shall be forfeit should you rebel.
-Furthermore, you shall maintain for the King’s service
-ten thousand horsemen, fully equipped, who shall march
-whither he wills. You shall guard these lands against
-all foes. In return for these light services, the power
-of the Great King shall be over you, your foes shall be
-his foes, and his mighty arm will give you peace. You
-shall go out and come in according to your customs, but
-you shall molest no man who acknowledges the Great
-King as his master. I have spoken!”</p>
-
-<p>The ambassadors bowed themselves to the earth, and
-their spokesman replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Let all these conditions be written on tablets, O
-Gracious King! Most merciful and gracious is your
-heart! Our people will most gladly submit and will
-faithfully observe these conditions. And now we beg
-that as an earnest of our good intent, we may bring to
-you our first offering of ten thousand horses, ten thousand
-sheep, and as many cattle, for the use of our Lord
-and his army. So may the Great King see that we deal
-not with crooked tongues or lying lips.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is so ordered!” assented the King, graciously.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[37]</span>
-“While we have a sufficiency of victuals, fresh meat will
-be welcome to the army. The treaty shall be written on
-tablets. Go now with Captain Mardux and partake of
-refreshments ere you return to your people. Say to
-them that we shall build here a great city to be named
-the City of Cyrus, and it shall be a place for trade where
-they may exchange the product of their herds for the
-fruits of the south countries. Let them send laborers
-to assist, and the King’s bounty shall be sufficient for
-them. But of this we will give you further information
-at a future day.”</p>
-
-<p>The ambassadors withdrew, greatly pleased that the
-sentence of the King was not more burdensome. A
-week later, the required horses, cattle, and sheep were
-brought to the camp, and the one hundred youths as
-hostages were surrendered. Within a year, the walls of
-a city were begun and a colony of loyal Aryans located
-within them as the nucleus of an emporium which flourished
-there a thousand years, rejoicing in the name of
-the Great King who there died for his race.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile expert embalmers, who had learned their
-art in Egypt, prepared the body of Cyrus for its long
-journey to the city of his fathers. When well prepared,
-it was enclosed in a heavy casket, placed on a
-four-wheeled chariot drawn by ten royal white stallions,
-and, encompassed by the Imperial Guard, was
-conveyed to its tomb. The great army, drawn up in
-two long parallel lines, gave sad farewell to its hero-king
-as the funeral car passed along between, escorted
-by the Guard; and tears streamed down every Aryan
-cheek. To Prince Hystaspis, who led the van, with
-Gobryas at his side, a roar of acclamation, a royal
-salute, and shouted wishes for a safe journey and quick
-return, came from the successive companies he passed.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[38]</span>
-Prexaspes, riding some paces to the rear, noted the
-great demonstration and pondered deeply thereon.</p>
-
-<p>All day the funeral car and its splendid escort moved
-slowly southward. The Prince of Iran was silent, absorbed
-in meditation. Gobryas vainly endeavored to
-engage him in conversation. The troopers noted his
-downcast mien and whispered together concerning it. It
-was well known that Cambyses hated the Prince. Every
-soldier in the army had discussed it with his fellow
-since the Great King died. All had hoped that King
-Hystaspis would claim Cyrus’ throne, his by right of
-birth and age, if being descended from an older branch
-of the Achæmenian family counted; but they had been
-disappointed when the King had announced his support
-of Cambyses. What if the Prince could be persuaded
-to seize the throne? It was a new throne anyway, this
-throne of the King of Kings, the Emperor of many nations.
-If he would take it, they would give it to him!
-So reasoned the army. King Hystaspis would accede if
-the Prince should declare his acceptance. It would be
-better to go against Cambyses sword in hand and to contest
-for the prize of sovereignty with him, than to be
-seized and slain by the madman after submitting to his
-sway. All day on the march and much of that night
-around their camp-fires, the troopers discussed the
-matter. The result of their consultation appeared next
-morning. The Prince, after a restless night in which
-evil dreams disturbed his slumber when he did succeed
-in his efforts to sleep, rose and went forth just as the sun
-was rising. He was greatly surprised to see his ten
-thousand men drawn up in solid masses, forming a hollow
-square around his tent. He was nonplussed when
-every cap was hurled into the air, every sword struck
-buckler and every head bowed low in salute to him.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[39]</span>
-His face went white with emotion and then became dark
-with wrath as he heard the thunderous shout:</p>
-
-<p>“Hail, King of Kings! All hail!”</p>
-
-<p>He raised his hand, beckoning for silence, and, addressing
-a group of officers, he said, speaking sternly
-and in a loud voice,</p>
-
-<p>“What means this?”</p>
-
-<p>One of the officers advanced a pace, and, bowing low,
-said:</p>
-
-<p>“Son of Achæmenes, Cyrus, the Great King, is dead!
-Your Father, the illustrious King of Iran, has refused
-to take his place. But you have not refused. Now we
-know that Cambyses hates you and will do you evil.
-He is no Aryan, moreover, and is said to be a madman.
-Heed this, our prayer! Let us recognize you as the
-King of Kings and our good right arms will make it
-so!”</p>
-
-<p>As he ceased speaking, a roar of assent went up from
-ten thousand throats. The soldiers extended their hands
-to him in entreaty. Again he beckoned for silence.
-When the clamor ceased, he answered:</p>
-
-<p>“What you ask is impossible to grant! As my father
-swore to Cyrus, so did I! I am bound by a sacred oath
-to the Great King, whose body lies there on its car, but
-whose spirit even now, perhaps, hovers near us; and I
-must support Cambyses and Bardya on their thrones forever.
-My word is given; it shall not return! This
-throne is the throne of Cyrus; he set it up and his children
-are entitled to it. It is true, the King of Iran by
-right of descent might have contested with Cyrus the
-throne of Persia; but he had no right to contest with
-him that which his mighty arm brought in subjection to
-him. As King of Iran, my father is your ruler. I, his
-son, am most happy to be your Prince. But Cambyses<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[40]</span>
-is overlord and such must remain! I have no fear.
-Cambyses, the Great King, will not be empowered to do
-me harm unless I rebel. You have rebelled. You
-know the punishment of treason is death; but I will
-pardon you now if you will swear before Ahura-Mazda
-to remain faithful to Cambyses, the Great King, so long
-as he respects the laws of Iran. Up with your hands
-and swear!”</p>
-
-<p>There was a pause. The troopers looked to their
-officers and upon each other. A murmur ran through
-the great host. Would the Prince yield? They knew
-his firmness and his love of truth and that he had never
-broken oath or promise. Looking upon his countenance,
-sad but set with determination, they decided to obey.
-But some wept aloud, and tears flowed down the cheeks
-of others. The captains raised their hands, saying:
-“We swear, O Prince of Iran! You alone may release
-this oath!” And the soldiers repeated solemnly but
-without enthusiasm: “We swear, O Prince, and you
-alone may release this oath!”</p>
-
-<p>Thus did the Prince of Iran for the sake of an oath
-put aside the highest position earth could give. Dismissing
-the assembly with a wave of his hand, he turned
-in great agitation to enter his tent, that he might regain
-that calmness for which in all difficult situations he was
-ever noted. As he turned, his eyes met those of Prexaspes,
-who occupied a tent near his, and, who, standing
-in his tent-door, had been a witness of the whole incident.
-He noted on the face of the Mede great astonishment.
-He gravely acknowledged the profound bow
-with which the latter greeted him and passed into his
-tent. Later, on the march that day, the Prince called
-Prexaspes to his side, and said to him:</p>
-
-<p>“Lord Prexaspes, you were witness when the Imperial<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[41]</span>
-Guard sought my consent to rebel. You are
-going in before Cambyses, the King of Kings; and I
-place it upon your honor to deal justly with me in this
-matter. These men are like children, loving me as I
-love them, and thought they were doing me a service.
-If you see fit to speak to the King of it, assure him of my
-loyalty. Also say that I myself will stand or fall with
-these men. No harm must come to them. The King of
-Kings shall have loyal service of me and of these as long
-as they remain with me.”</p>
-
-<p>“What need to report?” rejoined Prexaspes,
-warmly. “Truly it was no light thing your oath required
-of you! I marvel that you refused, knowing as
-you do how the King of Kings hates you, hates your
-friends, hates his brother, who is dear to you, and even
-his sister, the lovely Athura! Rest assured that, should
-this come to his ears, I will truthfully describe your
-actions. How can I forget that day at the crossing of
-the Araxes, when my Babylonian archers and I were
-surrounded by howling Scythians and we were hard-pressed?
-Was it not the Prince of Iran who came with
-the Guard to our rescue? I may not be a follower of
-Zoroaster, Great Prince, but I am not ungrateful!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince looked into the eyes of Prexaspes and saw
-that he was sincere. “I trust you,” he said. “Let us
-hope that Cambyses as King may forget his dislikes as a
-man.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[42]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER IV<br />
-
-
-<small>ATHURA</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">ANCIENT Bactra, the mother city of the Aryan
-race, was situate in the midst of a beautiful valley
-surrounded on all sides by mountain ranges. It was a
-fertile valley. Through it rushed the limpid river,
-Adirsiah, coming down from the distant snow-capped
-mountains in the east and finding an outlet northward
-to the Oxus. Though it was summer, the hills were
-green and the valley was luxuriant with full-leafed trees
-and blooming gardens. It seemed a paradise indeed to
-the Prince of Iran and his wayworn guard, marching in
-from the arid northern plain. Bactra was a great city.
-Many square miles dotted with ruins at this day mutely
-tell of its extent. Here the mythical Kaiomur, possibly
-a son of Japhet, settled, and planted a race from which
-many nations have sprung. It was not a walled city.
-The men of Iran relied on their good right arms for defense.
-Indeed, they were not accustomed to await invasion;
-they invaded others. In the open, with galloping
-steed and spear at rest they swept the enemy from
-their path, or on foot, with bow and arrow they smote
-him or closed with him in close mortal combat with
-sword and battle-ax. Their valor made a wall more
-potent than stones.</p>
-
-<p>Like a hive did the ancient city nourish myriad lives
-and send forth swarms of sturdy men, who, under the
-leadership of able men, took with them wives, children,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[43]</span>
-and goods and forcibly possessed new homes in distant
-climes. One stream passed westward to the lower
-Caspian and, branching there, flowed northward, westward,
-and southward. Hellas, Asia Minor, the Saxon
-woods, Scandinavia, and Western Europe received them,
-not perhaps in one year or one century, but in successive
-years, as successive waves with a rising tide ever encroach
-on the shore. Medea and Persia received them.
-Ancient records seem to indicate that they dominated
-the great valley of the Euphrates and Tigris and even
-planted families in Syria on the shores of the Great
-Sea; and it is sometimes argued that the ancestors of
-Abraham, father of the Hebrews, came from Iran bringing
-their knowledge of one God with them. It is at
-least true that the monarchs of the Medes and Persians
-ever favored the Hebrews and acknowledged their
-Jehovah as the same God they themselves worshiped
-under the name Ahura-Mazda, or the Life-Giving
-Spirit. Another swarm crossed the southern mountains
-and occupied India. But eastward and northeastward,
-in obedience to some primal instinct that seems to
-have driven them in all other directions, the Aryans
-never penetrated. The slant-eyed, yellow races, protected
-by the vast mountain ranges and desert plains of
-Tibet, multiplied in peace on the shores of the Pacific
-Ocean and threw out their swarms northward and eastward
-into the Americas and the islands of the south
-seas. Occasionally their hordes, under the general
-designation of Tourans, pressed upon their western
-neighbors by way of the plains of Siberia, and later, as
-Huns, Turks, and Tartars, succeeded in overpowering,
-by weight of vast numbers, the provinces so long protected
-by Aryan valor; but not until that valor had been
-forgotten in the luxuries of an enervating civilization.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[44]</span>Bactra was at the intersection of main highways of
-commerce. Here the great caravan road from Rhages,
-to which flowed by different routes the trade of Persia
-and Medea, of Egypt, Babylonia, Syria, and Europe,
-intersected the roads from India and Tourania. Here
-the beautiful wares of Babylon and Nineveh, of Samos
-and Damascus, of Egypt and the Ionian cities and of
-Greece were exchanged for the fabrics of India and the
-products of the northern plains. Here caravans outfitted
-for trade in distant lands. The great market-place,
-an open square on the shore of the Adirsiah, near
-the center of the city, was ever lively with the movement
-of men of different colors and wearing as many
-different dresses; of camels ever complaining and groaning;
-of donkeys, braying; of beautiful horses, exhibiting
-their points; and of a thousand vehicles for transporting
-goods. Around three sides were dome-roofed
-stores, where the wealth of all nations was displayed;,
-where gold, silver, precious stones, beautiful earthenwares,
-ivory, rugs, weapons, fruits, grains, and wearing
-apparel were exhibited for exchange or for sale, and the
-noisy shouts of traders were heard the whole day.
-Groups of soldiers swaggered along, keeping the peace.
-Teachers and priests in long robes walked with solemn
-pace contemplative; magistrates and nobles rode through
-with lofty aspect; the countryman, then as ever, wandered
-about in open-eyed curiosity, loved and respected
-by all Aryans, but nevertheless simple-minded and apt
-to be cheated; and the humble laborer of the city, rough-spoken
-but shrewd, boldly jostled any foreigner who
-might cross his path.</p>
-
-<p>The royal palace occupied an eminence sloping down
-to the river, near the eastern limits of the city, its stately
-walls, and porticos dimly seen through the leafy trees of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[45]</span>
-the park surrounding it. Other mansions of the rich
-and noble, each surrounded by garden or park, clustered
-near. The narrow, irregular streets were bordered by
-the houses and shops of the commercial class. On the
-outskirts, the humbler cottages of the poor were built.
-On all sides lay the gardens and fields in which were
-raised the vegetables consumed by the vast population.</p>
-
-<p>Couriers had brought to Prince Bardya at Bactra
-news of his father’s death. A period of mourning had
-been proclaimed. When the funeral car with its guard
-drew near the city, a decree was issued and proclaimed
-on all the street corners, commanding all to leave their
-tasks and to observe a day of special mourning. A
-great procession marched out of the city to meet the
-dead king. A thousand horsemen, four abreast, led the
-way. Prince Bardya, riding a great white horse, rode
-alone, with bowed head and sorrowful demeanor. Following
-him were two litters, carried on the shoulders of
-stout black slaves; these bore the royal daughters of
-Cyrus, Athura and Artistone. A thousand or more
-nobles, magistrates, travelers of note, and rich men rode
-next. Countless multitudes of all classes closed the procession
-or traveled along the way through the fields,
-eager to see and to hear.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran, leaving his camp equipage at a
-ford of the river a league below the city, advanced
-slowly with the funeral car and his ten thousand weary,
-wayworn guards, to meet the procession. Coming to an
-open field, wherein stood several great oaks, he caused
-the funeral car to stop beneath the branches of one of the
-trees and massed his guard in an open square around it,
-leaving a way open for the royal Prince and his sisters
-to approach the bier. Then, accompanied by Gobryas,
-he rode on to meet the procession. The advance<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[46]</span>
-guards of Prince Bardya opened to let him pass through,
-forming in lines on either side of the way.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran and Gobryas dismounted as they
-were about to meet the son of Cyrus; and the latter likewise
-dismounted, and, hastening to them, embraced them
-affectionately, while tears dimmed all eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Hail, dear friends!” was his greeting. “It is pleasant
-to meet you even though sadness comes with you.”
-He kissed the Prince of Iran and embraced him. “My
-sisters are here. Let us go to them,” he then said.</p>
-
-<p>The litters drew near and were placed on the ground
-by their brawny carriers. The curtains of the foremost
-were parted and from it emerged a young woman,
-heavily veiled and dressed in rich but somber clothing.
-As her brother and his two friends approached, she drew
-aside the veil from her face, and, smiling through tears
-upon the Prince of Iran, extended to him her hand. He
-bent knee before her and reverently kissed the extended
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Greeting, Prince of Iran!” she said in a low, sweet
-voice, wherein gladness struggled with sadness. “Arise!
-Should a Prince of Iran kneel to any person?”</p>
-
-<p>“To one only in the whole world!” was his reply,
-arising and looking down into her glorious eyes. “If
-I were not here on so sad an errand, this would be my
-happiest day. I bring to you the last message of love
-and farewell from the King of Kings. His last thoughts
-and words were of you and of the little sister here.”</p>
-
-<p>He turned to greet Artistone, who now came forward
-from her litter, and gravely bent to kiss the little hand
-she gave him.</p>
-
-<p>“Come!” said Bardya, “let us go and greet the dead.
-When we return to the palace we shall renew our
-acquaintance and you shall tell us all that our beloved
-father said.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[47]</span>Without further conversation they walked between
-the lines of massed soldiery, who saluted as they passed,
-to the funeral car, around which stood a score of officers
-with drawn swords as a guard of honor. They ascended
-the great car, drew aside the heavy curtains, with which
-it was surrounded, and stood in the presence of the dead.
-The casket had been partially opened and some of the
-wrappings over the face of the remains had been removed,
-that they might look again upon the beloved features.
-Royalty for the moment was forgotten and the
-bereaved children wept; and, in an instant, a great wave
-of emotion swept over the vast multitude. Men of all
-stations, women of all classes and their children, lifted
-up their voices in loud lamentation. The hero, under
-whose mighty shadow they had so long rested and been
-safe, was no more! Cyrus, the well-beloved, was gone!
-Alas and alas! wailed the people. The glowing sun
-smiled upon the snowy peaks in the east, the green hills
-in the west, and the lovely valley with its rippling stream,
-and all nature seemed happy. Only this myriad of
-human beings voiced their woe. No greater tribute
-could have been given to the mighty dead.</p>
-
-<p>But weeping must have an end. The Prince and his
-sisters descended from the car and returned to the palace.
-The casket, escorted by the multitudes, was conveyed to
-a temple, which stood in the park surrounding the palace,
-and was there kept while arrangements were made for
-its further transportation to Persia.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes, having been given audience by Prince
-Bardya, was furnished with an escort and sent on his
-way to Cambyses at Hamadan. He was directed to inform
-the King of Kings that his brother and sisters
-would accompany the body of their father to Pasargadæ.
-The determination of Bardya to attend his father’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[48]</span>
-corpse to its tomb gave the Prince of Iran much concern.
-It would place Bardya within the power of King
-Cambyses, whose uncertain temper might lead him to
-fratricide. Knowing the disposition of Cambyses and
-his long-standing hatred towards Bardya, and fearing
-that a conflict would inevitably arise over the divided
-authority left them by the will of Cyrus, the Prince
-sought to persuade Bardya to remain in Bactra, whose
-people would protect him. But Bardya would not be
-persuaded. He was a bold youth and thought that he
-would be as safe among the Persians as among the
-Bactrians.</p>
-
-<p>The palace of Bactra was the property of its ancient
-line of kings. Here the Kings of Iran were crowned,
-and from it went forth all royal decrees. Here King
-Hystaspis in early youth had resided with his queen, and
-here Darius, their son, had been born. But when Cyrus
-of Persia became conqueror of Medea and assumed the
-title of King of Kings, he admitted that Persia was a
-part of Iran and placed it likewise under the rule of
-Hystaspis, but on condition that the latter should acknowledge
-him as overlord of all. King Hystaspis
-entertained for his great cousin the most lively admiration
-and affection. He cared not to dispute with him
-world authority. He was a mystic, a lover of learning
-and of his fellow-men. He would much rather have sat
-at the feet of Zoroaster and delved into the mystery of
-life and the greater mystery of death than rule as King.
-But he accepted the duties of kingship as a trust for his
-people and stoutly protected them from their enemies as
-well as in the enjoyment of their ancient rights. He had
-accepted the proposition of Cyrus and under him had
-ruled all Iran, including Persia. His authority even extended
-over Medea in the absence of Cyrus, although,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[49]</span>
-the capital of Cyrus’ empire being at Hamadan, the
-Great King generally regulated the internal affairs of
-Medea himself.</p>
-
-<p>King Hystaspis had then built for himself a palace on
-the banks of the royal river Pulwar in Persia near where
-it flowed into the Araxes and about thirty miles below or
-west of Pasargadæ, around which arose a great city
-known to history as Persepolis, where in winter he might
-enjoy a less rigorous climate than at Bactra. There he
-and his queen loved to reside in the midst of a great park,
-surrounded by men and women of congenial spirit, embowered
-in the flowers and foliage of a semi-tropic vegetation
-with the great plain of Merv, a very paradise under
-irrigation, lying before them. His provinces were
-under the rule of governors. The load of executive duties
-fell upon his officers. Only in times of war did he
-leave his retreat, except that once each year he returned
-to Bactra for some weeks of administrative work.</p>
-
-<p>During the absence of King Hystaspis and his son with
-Cyrus on the expedition against the Tourans, Bardya and
-his sisters had been guests in the palace at Bactra. This
-was a rambling structure, one story in height, adorned
-with a portico whose tall stone pillars supported a heavy
-wooden roof and gave to its front the appearance of a
-temple. The walls of the palace were of roughly hewn
-stone, thick and massive. There were many wings, all
-gable-roofed and rudely ornate with buttresses and overhanging
-eaves. Narrow windows and doors gave light
-and air to the interior. It being summer, the windows
-were protected by heavy wooden bars only, the winter-time
-shutters having been removed. Gauze curtains on
-the inside were hung over them, more to exclude insects
-than for beauty. The doors were of heavy wood, bound
-with brazen bands cut in ornate figures. Inside, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[50]</span>
-many rooms were fitted luxuriously, with bright, soft
-rugs on the stone floors and with figured draperies on the
-walls, where, also, hung armor and weapons. Divans,
-couches, chairs, and tables richly upholstered and set
-with precious metals and ivory constituted the furniture.
-In the midst of the palace was an open court, where a
-fountain gushed up from a rocky islet in the middle of a
-pool and where flowering shrubs perfumed the air. The
-servants’ quarters were at the rear, and, not far away,
-was another building where a company of soldiers had
-quarters.</p>
-
-<p>The white stone walls of a small temple could be seen
-three hundred paces to the west of the palace, in the
-midst of great oaks and elms. There had Zoroaster
-taught and had exercised the offices of chief priest of
-Iran, and there beneath its altar lay buried his saintly
-bones. There a corps of priests kept the sacred fire ever
-burning and daily uttered prayers for the King and his
-people. There, before entering upon any long journey
-or going to war, the King of Iran offered his sacrifices and
-raised his hands to the Great Life-giving Spirit of
-Heaven. There, now, within its sacred portals, reposed
-for a time the body of the Great King.</p>
-
-<p>The ground sloped gently northward from the palace
-down to the shore of the Adirsiah and was graced with
-many large trees. A low stone wall surrounded the palace
-park, except where the river bounded its front.
-There were benches beneath the elms on the river shore,
-where one could sit and look upon the distant northern
-mountains or at the rapid stream, rushing in light green
-splendor through its narrow, rock-bound channel and
-with sighing murmur giving an undertone to the songs
-of birds. Here at even came Athura, after having
-listened to the chant of the priests, celebrating the close<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[51]</span>
-of the day as she knelt by her father’s bier. She had
-come hither to be alone with her sorrow.</p>
-
-<p>The air was warm and balmy. A cooler breeze was
-beginning to blow down from the mountains; it played
-with the dark hair above her brow. The scarflike veil,
-which commonly served as a head-dress, was thrown
-aside and rested on her shoulders, exposing the wavy
-mass of hair upon her head and the gem-studded band
-that encircled it like a crown. Her tall, well-developed
-body was robed in a long mantle of dark, soft fabric,
-somewhat like the Grecian robe, caught up in the folds
-at the left side so as to expose the tip of a sandaled foot,
-and secured by a girdle of golden links at the waist. The
-short sleeves of an under jacket covered her arms to the
-elbow. Bracelets of gold set with gems graced her
-wrists. No pen has ever described her beauty or the
-royal grace of her demeanor. Through the dim vista of
-the ages comes a picture of dark brown eyes, in the depths
-of which shone all the tenderness of womanhood with
-its all-embracing sympathy and boundless capacity for
-love, and all the fearlessness of a pure, proud spirit, accustomed
-to power and authority. Comes also a vision
-of a fair complexion, pure Caucasian, or rather Aryan;
-a lofty brow, inherited from her father; a profile, now
-known as Grecian, but not modern Grecian; an expressive
-mouth, where sweetness dwelt, but which could show
-firmness and even sternness when necessary; a smile
-that would raise a worshiper to heaven; a frown before
-which the boldest would falter.</p>
-
-<p>In those days and among that people, woman held high
-and honorable place. The servility of the Semitic races,
-aped by later Persian rulers, had not yet degraded her.
-As in Greece and Rome, where men of kindred blood
-dwelt, so among the Iranians, woman held a most honorable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[52]</span>
-place. Man ruled the world; but his heart was
-ruled by a noble woman. Coming of such a race, where
-equality made her sex noble, this royal princess exhibited
-in her carriage a spirit before which men bowed, not because
-she was high-born and of royal lineage, but because
-she was a woman.</p>
-
-<p>Of her tradition has spoken much and history little.
-All agree that she was the most famous woman of her
-age. Some would have her the wife of three kings: of
-Cambyses, her brother, of the false Bardya, or Smerdis,
-and of Darius, son of Hystaspis. Others declare that
-her sister, Artistone, was the wife of the latter. Others,
-that Artistone was the ill-fated wife of Cambyses. This
-is certain, that she was the high-spirited daughter of
-Cyrus, that she was indeed the wife of the greatest of
-the Kings of Iran and the mother of a line of kings;
-and history indicates that she was the real ruler of the
-empire while her son wore the crown. But such history
-had not yet been written, when, on this summer
-evening, she stood on the shore of the river Adirsiah and
-sadly meditated on the pleasant days of her girlhood
-spent in the company of her father. Her mother had
-died when she was a child of ten years; and, thereafter,
-her father had made her his companion, delighting in her
-wisdom as much as in her affection. She had traveled
-with him as he moved through his great empire, had
-played in the ancestral park at Pasargadæ, had ruled his
-palace at Susa, had viewed with wonder the mighty walls
-and hanging gardens of Babylon, and had dwelt much in
-Hamadan, the chief capital of the empire. There rose
-in her memory the proud, beautiful face of her mother,
-the cruel, sneering countenance of Cambyses, the smiling,
-mischievous face of Bardya, the little sister Artistone,
-and the grave, kindly father, whose stately manner never<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[53]</span>
-departed even in the privacy of home-life. Into this
-picture of her childhood life there came another face and
-form, one that of late years had filled much of her life
-with the sweetness of love. She remembered her first
-meeting with the Prince of Iran, at Pasargadæ, and how
-afterwards as a tall youth of fourteen years he came to
-her father’s court to enter his service, and that he talked
-much of his mother, of his father, and of his studies.
-He had at once assumed a sort of protectorate over Bardya
-and herself, interposing often between them and the
-cruel elder brother, Cambyses, and even coming to blows
-with him in their behalf. With him she had studied, had
-learned the art of writing and reading, had sat at the
-feet of the great seer of Babylon, Belteshazzer, also
-known as Daniel, the Hebrew, and had learned to ride,
-to hunt, and to handle arms. She had not neglected the
-arts practiced by the women of her race. To cook, to
-sew, to spin, to weave wonderful tapestries,—all these she
-had learned. Many times, disguised, she and Bardya and
-the young Prince of Iran had traveled from place to
-place, enjoying adventures among the common people
-and sometimes incurring great risks. Then wars had
-come, and her brothers and the young Hystaspis had followed
-the Great King on his campaigns, that they too
-might learn the war-game.</p>
-
-<p>She sat down on a rustic seat beneath a great elm and
-with hands folded in her lap gazed dreamily at the swirling
-stream, into which the shades of evening were darkly
-falling. Bitter-sweet thoughts, the sense of personal loss,
-the uncertainty of the future, the near presence of him
-she loved,—a hundred passing impressions stirred her
-soul. What would Cambyses do, now that he was to be
-the King of Kings? She and Bardya had often discussed
-the subject. She knew that the proud spirit of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[54]</span>
-the latter would suffer no oppression from the King.
-Would there be civil war? Would brother fight brother?
-She feared so, knowing the hatred Cambyses felt towards
-Bardya, a feeling that the latter reciprocated.</p>
-
-<p>A footfall startled her. Turning, she beheld the
-Prince of Iran coming towards her. She rose with a
-smile of welcome and extended her hands to him. How
-noble he seemed to her! He had put off his armor, and
-over his close-fitting tunic of soft, velvety cloth had
-thrown the elegant Medean cloak in common use among
-the noble-born. Sandals protected his feet, and the interlaced
-thongs with which they were held partially covered
-his ankles and legs to the knee, to which the skirt of his
-tunic descended. The open folds of the long cloak gave
-freedom to his limbs and displayed the broad purple sash
-which served as a belt and the golden chain from which
-his short sword swung. His head was bare, displaying a
-mass of dark hair, slightly curled, and combed back from
-his broad brow. He had washed away the stains of
-travel. His sun-tanned skin glowed with health. His
-eyes were alight with love.</p>
-
-<p>A bulbul broke forth into song in the branches of the
-tree above them. The breeze rustled gently amidst the
-leaves. The gurgle and rush of the stream rose softly.
-A thousand whispering voices seemed to waken all
-about, as if the spirits of the woods talked of these two
-standing there in close embrace. Love, without which no
-human soul desires to live, which raises men to God,
-which makes of earth a heaven, which in its all-abounding
-strength makes men and women strong, the chief attribute
-of God and the chief element in His children,
-which links congenial spirits together for eternity and
-drives out evil, here sat enthroned.</p>
-
-<p>After the first warm greetings were over, they sat down
-side by side on the rustic seat.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[55]</span>“I may tell you now,” he said, “that your father gave
-consent to our marriage. How I wish you could have
-been present so that he could have placed your hand in
-mine! Now, if we observe the ancient customs of our
-race, your eldest brother must give his consent.”</p>
-
-<p>“But even then we must wait until the days of mourning
-for my father are finished!”</p>
-
-<p>“I know, but what if Cambyses does not consent?”</p>
-
-<p>She was silent for a moment. This possibility had occurred
-to both. The word of Cambyses the Great King
-would be law. He might if he willed give his sister to
-another.</p>
-
-<p>“That Cambyses is not fit to reign!” she exclaimed
-presently. “My father should have decreed Bardya his
-successor! Am I, the daughter of Cyrus, to have no
-part in this empire? To have no will of my own? Let
-the people of Iran answer! What say you?”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince was silent now. The oath sworn to the
-dead Cyrus recurred to his mind. It would indeed have
-been better had Cyrus willed that Bardya should be his
-successor, for then the Aryans would have cheerfully
-followed his will. As he replied not, she continued:</p>
-
-<p>“Who, in truth, is entitled to reign in Iran? If birth
-gives right, is not the gracious King, your father, this
-day entitled to succeed my father? For he is of an older
-branch of the Achæmenian family. Let him assert this
-right! The men of Iran will uphold him. As for me, I
-shall be satisfied to become queen of the world, when you
-succeed to your father’s place.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of all these matters have I thought much,” he replied
-slowly. “It is true my father is entitled to reign
-in Iran; but the empire of Cyrus reaches on every side
-beyond the utmost limits of Iran; and it was his by right
-of conquest. It is a new empire based on the provinces<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[56]</span>
-of Persia and Medea over which he was always entitled
-to reign. Perhaps our ancient customs and laws would
-give my father the best right to succeed. But he has
-refused to assert that right. He has sworn to Cyrus to
-support Cambyses and Bardya on their thrones forever.
-I, too, in obedience to my father’s will, when the Great
-King lay dying, made solemn oath that I would likewise
-support them on their thrones, according to the terms of
-his will. Our oaths cannot return. But such oaths do
-not take away our ancient right to rule as Kings of Iran.
-That we will ever maintain; but not to the overthrow of
-Cambyses or of Bardya. I am troubled to know how to
-act in the future. Cambyses surely will not permit
-Bardya to reign even over part of this empire; and all
-the provinces of the East have been given to Bardya
-with the sole condition that he acknowledge the overlordship
-of Cambyses. If the King of Kings should lead an
-army hither to overthrow his brother, we must fight him;
-if Bardya seeks to overthrow his brother, we must prevent
-him. Alas! the mind of Cyrus must have been affected
-so that he could not see clearly! I can see before
-us long years of civil war, wherein Aryan will fight
-Aryan. Of one thing I am convinced, Bardya should not
-accompany the body of his father to Pasargadæ. Here,
-in the faithful city of Bactra, with the army of King
-Hystaspis at hand, he may be secure. Would it not be
-better that you also remain here, while I go to stand before
-the King and demand his consent to our marriage?”</p>
-
-<p>“Shall I not honor my father by attending when he
-goes to his tomb? I have no fear of Cambyses. Surely
-he will attempt no harm to me or to my brother when on
-this sacred mission! Besides, will you not also be present?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I shall be near. Let us hope that the King of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[57]</span>
-Kings will be gracious. My life shall be between you
-and harm. It would be valueless to me without you!”</p>
-
-<p>“And mine would end without you! Have no fear
-that Cambyses may give me to another! I, the daughter
-of Cyrus, will submit to no such disposition! He dares
-not violate the ancient custom which gives a woman the
-right to reject one who may be proposed. Not yet do the
-slavish laws of the Assyrians have force in Iran. Cambyses
-may rage; he may slay me! Yet will he not have
-his way with me! Truly if he attempts to oppress
-Bardya and me, the people of Iran shall be appealed to;
-and I know they will rise!”</p>
-
-<p>He drew his encircling arm closer and sighed deeply.
-“Oaths, lives, and crown shall not stand between us!” he
-said.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[58]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER V<br />
-
-
-<small>CAMBYSES</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">SOME days were given to rest before the Prince of
-Iran and his guard, escorting the royal dead and accompanied
-by the royal family, marched out of Bactra
-on the long journey, over verdant plain and hill, over
-rugged mountains and sandy wastes, to Pasargadæ.
-Their route lay westward to Rhages, with the Elburz
-chain of mountains on the right and the vast deserts of
-Iran on the left, thence southward by way of Hamadan.
-A caravan accompanied them, bearing provisions and
-luxuries for the journey. In spite of the sad errand, it
-was a pleasant experience for the Prince and his beloved.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Prexaspes, riding at courier speed, rushed
-on in advance to carry tidings to Cambyses. As he rode,
-he formulated plans. He knew Cambyses well,—in fact,
-it had been reported to Cyrus that Prexaspes had abetted
-his wayward son in his excesses. As much to remove
-him from his son as to please the Medes, the King had
-taken the powerful noble with him on his expedition
-against the Touranians. Prexaspes had not dared demur.
-Much as he loved ease and luxury, he was personally
-brave and capable. He had performed his duties
-and had won the approbation of the just old King.
-Knowing the weaknesses of Cambyses, his vanity, his
-selfishness, his gross passions, and his superstitious nature,
-he now planned how he should gain advantage by
-them; and in his mind he saw himself raised to the second<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[59]</span>
-place in the empire, covered with riches, honors, and
-power.</p>
-
-<p>He soon arrived at Rhages, an ancient city situated
-near that famous pass through the Elburz mountain-chain
-known as the Caspian Gates, and not far from Mount
-Demavend, around which cluster many legends of ancient
-Iran. Here the stream of Aryans had halted many
-years before separating into the three branches, one of
-which passed northward through the Gates into the Caucasus
-and thence into Europe, another westward into the
-mountains of Azerbijan, and another southward to Medea
-and Persia. But Hamadan, the Ecbatana of the Greeks,
-situated farther south, had grown greater and had become
-the capital of Medea. Rhages had ceased to be the capital.
-It was, however, a great and important city, a base
-for the army guarding the Caspian provinces beyond the
-great mountain-chain and a market through which flowed
-commerce from the sea of the north, the caravans of the
-east and south and from the herdsmen of the mountains
-in the west. Mount Demavend, magnificent in its snow-capped
-grandeur, on whose peak, it was said, God sometimes
-rested to view His created world, is one of the
-great mountains of earth.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes halted here but a day. He sacrificed a horse
-at the temple, where the ancient Aryan rites were performed,
-and he drank soma and was sprinkled with holy
-water afterwards at a Magian shrine, where he left a gift
-of money. Having thus satisfied his conscience and invoked
-good-luck from all sources, he galloped southward
-towards Hamadan, where he expected to find King Cambyses.</p>
-
-<p>The queen city of the empire, celebrated in song and
-story, strong in the martial spirit of its people, called
-Hamadan by the Persians, Agmetha by the Hebrews,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[60]</span>
-Ecbatana by the Greeks, sat upon a rolling plain, close to
-the foot of Mount Elwend, sometimes called Mount
-Orontes. In the center was an eminence on which was
-the citadel and around which were seven walls rising in
-gradations, each painted a different color from the others.
-On the top of the eminence was the far-famed royal
-palace, covering acres of ground. Its glittering metal
-roof reflected afar the rays of the sun. Its porch columns,
-its doors and walls, were plated with precious
-metal. Its deep, cool interior was luxuriously furnished
-with carved and curiously wrought tables, divans, settees,
-and chairs, and with costly tapestries from Srinigar
-and rugs and carpets from the looms of Medea. Its
-throne room was vast and magnificent. A stone-built
-treasury vault occupied one corner, where was stored
-untold wealth, gathered during the years of conquest,
-when Crœsus and other unlucky kings fell before the
-conqueror. A park lay at the rear, inclosed within the
-walls.</p>
-
-<p>To this city from east and south caravans, with their
-spirited horses, their complaining camels, and their slow-moving
-elephants, came, and from the west long trains of
-pack mules and slaves, to exchange commodities and to
-outfit for new expeditions. Here came armies, returning
-from chastisement of some rebel or from conquest of
-some nation, to recruit for further forays. Half a million
-people, dwelling in wooden, stone, or tent houses,
-here made their homes and proudly claimed to be rulers
-of the world by virtue of the palace on the hill and the
-power of its royal occupant.</p>
-
-<p>It was midsummer. Royalty and nobility, leaving the
-lowlands and the heat of the capital city, sought cool retreats
-in the mountains. Mount Elwend, whose peak is
-capped with eternal snow, thrusts downward vast spurs<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[61]</span>
-into the plains eastward and southward; and, between
-their wooded sides, babbling streams of cool water flow
-down from the snows. In the vales and canyons of the
-foothills were many tents and rustic cabins, where the
-rich and powerful dwelt and enjoyed the cool, sweet air.
-Pack-trains fetched provisions and supplies from the
-city. In luxury and dissipation, with sport and game, the
-elect of earth here passed the time pleasantly. Here
-Cambyses was residing, all unconscious that he was now
-King of Kings.</p>
-
-<p>Riding down from the north, with a score of soldiers
-at his back, Prexaspes saw the dome and towers of the
-great palace flash in the afternoon sun and knew that his
-mission was almost accomplished. His heart beat high.
-He would be the first to greet Cambyses by his new title,
-King of Kings, the Great King, and it would depend upon
-the mood of Cambyses whether he would be given honors
-as the bearer of good tidings, or be disgraced as the
-bearer of evil. The guard at his back, picked up at
-Rhages, did not know his errand or that Cyrus was dead.
-The dark, eagle-like countenance of Prexaspes was impassive
-and never betrayed his thoughts. Worn by
-weather and hardened by exposure, he now looked more
-the soldier than the courier. But he looked forward to
-many days of ease and pleasure, when he could discard
-his dusty uniform for clean linen, perfumed vestments,
-and the elegant Medean cloak.</p>
-
-<p>At a point about two miles north of the city, he met a
-train of donkeys led by slaves and under guard of half
-a dozen mounted troopers. They were moving slowly
-and they insolently neglected to give way to Prexaspes
-and his followers when the latter came galloping down
-towards them.</p>
-
-<p>“On the King’s business!” shouted Prexaspes, wrathfully,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[62]</span>
-reining in his foaming steed. “Out of the way,
-swine! Offscouring of the earth and filthy jackals! must
-we ride over you?”</p>
-
-<p>“We also are on the King’s business!” retorted the
-leader of the troopers, a dour, whiskered Mede, bringing
-his short spear into position. “By the whiskers of
-Merodach! keep a civil tongue and do not try riding over
-the train of Cambyses!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes glowered at the speaker a moment. He
-recognized the sullen face.</p>
-
-<p>“Ha, Merobates, is it you?” he cried. “I might have
-known the captain of the King’s houseguard! Know you
-not Prexaspes?”</p>
-
-<p>Anger left the swarthy countenance of Merobates.
-He grinned as he answered:</p>
-
-<p>“Truly I remember the Lord Prexaspes! But I did
-not suppose you were within a thousand parasangs!
-Whence and whither?”</p>
-
-<p>“From the King to the King,” answered Prexaspes,
-enigmatically. “But where is he,—Cambyses? I bear
-a message to him and must not delay.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wise it is not to delay on his business, indeed!” rejoined
-Merobates. “The Prince is now at his summer
-camp some parasangs over there,” indicating the slopes
-of Elwend. “I am just returning from the city with the
-daily provisions for his use.”</p>
-
-<p>“Guide me to him, good Merobates, and great will be
-your reward!” said Prexaspes. “In the King’s name, I
-command! Leave your men to bring the train and lead
-on.”</p>
-
-<p>Merobates hesitated, considering whether it were wiser
-to stay with his men and thus assure the performance of
-his daily duty or to obey the order of the noble Prexaspes.
-But the compelling gaze of the nobleman was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[63]</span>
-upon him, and, having issued several gruff orders to his
-subordinates, he led the way along a beaten trail into the
-hills. As they went, Prexaspes sought information.</p>
-
-<p>“How long has the Prince been at his summer house?”</p>
-
-<p>“Seven days only. He has just married a new wife,
-the daughter of Nebuchadezer, Prince of Nineveh, and
-he has taken her there, as he says, to be at peace, leaving
-his other wives at the palace.”</p>
-
-<p>“Has he many people with him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes! Thirty notables of Nineveh came as an escort
-with the new wife. Thirty Medean nobles are with
-them for company. Besides, King Crœsus is there and
-also the son of Hillel of Damascus. There be the Babylonian
-hostages and Gaumata, the chief Magian, and a
-hundred others from far and near. A thousand cavalry
-guard the camp. Great games have there been! The
-Prince has proven himself to be a mighty archer and
-spear-thrower. He outshoots them all. Well it is for
-them! For the liquor—you know?”</p>
-
-<p>Merobates waved his hand suggestively towards his
-mouth as though quaffing from a goblet. Prexaspes
-nodded assent.</p>
-
-<p>“How is the Prince’s temper?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Excellent! Never better! His new wife pleases him
-and his servants have learned how to avoid crossing him.
-But what is this news, which you have galloped from
-afar to bring?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is for the Prince’s ears first; but know, O Merobates,
-that great fortune either of good or evil hangs over
-your head and mine to-day. How does the Prince regard
-himself now?”</p>
-
-<p>Merobates laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“He has adopted the customs of the lowlander dogs
-who salaam to the earth before royalty. Cambyses has<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[64]</span>
-forgotten that he is mortal and swears that he will do
-even greater deeds than the Great King, his father. If
-you would please him, prostrate yourself and bow very
-low to the earth. Were he God himself, he could not be
-pleased more with adulation and homage! Praise his
-deeds—he swells with pride. Fail to praise—you
-may as well leap from the tower in the city market!
-Please him—a gold chain and a chief place at feasts is
-your reward! Displease him,—a bowstring at your
-throat, or hanging by your heels to a beam, or some other
-evil! Me has he ever commanded to treat him as ever
-I have,—with respect and obedience, but not with lying
-adulation. I tell him his faults. He laughs.”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember, he used to say that Merobates was his
-conscience and was the only man who dared to cross him
-or to speak plainly to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“It has always been so. He is violent. He fears not
-to smite in wrath; but he is subject to persuasion and
-art. He has no patience with those whom he dislikes and
-he dislikes all who neglect to praise him. Even the
-great Belteshazzer, appointed Governor of this province
-by Cyrus, has not escaped his anger. The Prince has revoked
-his authority.”</p>
-
-<p>Presently they entered a canyon, in which a clear brook
-tumbled over rocks. Following this they soon entered
-a small valley. Great trees bordered the margin of the
-stream and were scattered over the valley, forming a
-natural park. In the midst was the Prince’s palace, a low
-structure built of hewn timbers. A score of lesser houses
-and many tents stood at the sides of an open field several
-acres in extent, which lay in front of the palace. On this
-field the sports and contests of which Cambyses was fond
-were held.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes now perceived a group of men gathered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[65]</span>
-beneath the spreading branches of a great live-oak near
-the palace. One, who was seated on a thronelike chair
-higher than the others, was engaged in conversation with
-another who stood uncovered before him and whose
-dress indicated that he was a priest. Others standing
-near appeared to be giving close attention. He who was
-seated was a large, heavy-limbed man, well-padded with
-fat and short-necked and gross. His big, round head
-was covered with a mass of curly black hair and was encircled
-by a gem-studded coronet. His face was dark,
-heavy, and flaccid, but his black eyes looked forth
-shrewdly from beneath overhanging brows. Bushy eyebrows
-met above his beaklike nose. A heavy black beard
-cut to a length of about six inches covered the lower part
-of his face. He was a powerful man physically and was
-said to be agile and quick in spite of his fat.</p>
-
-<p>Such was Cambyses, elder son of Cyrus. There were
-marks of dissipation on his face. From early youth he
-had indulged his passions, until now, at the age of thirty
-years, he was a slave to them.</p>
-
-<p>The sound of approaching hoofs called the Prince’s attention
-to Prexaspes and his followers. He paused in
-his discourse and exclaimed angrily: “Who comes? It
-must be very important service to cause men to ride thus
-into my presence!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes halted at twenty paces’ distance, gave the
-reins of his steed to Merobates, sprang to the earth and
-drew near, uncovering his head as he advanced. Cambyses
-then recognized him and uttered an exclamation of
-surprise and pleasure. Prexaspes, throwing himself on
-his face at the Prince’s feet, cried: “All hail, King of
-Kings! May the Great King of all the World live forever!”</p>
-
-<p>For a moment, Cambyses was silent. He knew the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[66]</span>
-meaning of those words. His face paled and he sank
-back upon his seat. But recovering he said, in a voice
-quivering with excitement: “Rise up, Prexaspes!
-What mean you? Why are you here? What of my
-father?”</p>
-
-<p>“I will speak only if you bid me, mighty King!”</p>
-
-<p>“Speak on!”</p>
-
-<p>“King Cyrus, the Great King, the immortal hero,
-greater than Jemshid, greater than Kaiomur, is no more
-alive! But there lives a greater, even Cambyses, King
-of Kings, King of the Whole Earth; and, to him bring I
-this message at the command of the noble Hystaspis, King
-of Iran, thy subject. May I find forgiveness as a bearer
-of this evil news of the death of thy father, and favor as
-a bearer of the good news of thy accession to the throne!”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses was again silent, unable fully to realize his
-elevation to supreme authority. His eyes turned upon
-his courtiers, who forthwith fell on their faces before
-him, and cried out: “All hail, King of Kings! Live
-forever!”</p>
-
-<p>He drew a deep inspiration. Graciously extending his
-hand he motioned to Prexaspes to rise and draw near;
-and, taking from his own neck a heavy gold chain, he
-placed it around the messenger’s neck, saying:</p>
-
-<p>“I give you my favor, noble Prexaspes! A long and
-weary journey have you come to bear me this news; and
-you shall be rewarded. That has come to pass which had
-to come. Henceforth Cambyses, the Achæmenian, son
-of Cyrus, heaven-born, reigns and shall reign! I thank
-you, Prexaspes! You shall have room in my palace here
-and shall feast this night. On the morrow we will return
-to our capital and proclaim my accession to the
-throne. Sit down here on my right hand and tell me of
-the death of my father. There shall be proclaimed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[67]</span>
-throughout the empire forty days of mourning for my
-father and, after that, forty days of rejoicing for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am indeed weary and travel-stained,” rejoined
-Prexaspes, looking down upon his dusty clothes. “I
-have ridden day and night, that I might hasten to you. I
-pray you command that I may retire and dress as becomes
-one who stands in the presence of the King.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mind not the clothes! It pleases me to note such
-eagerness in my service. Ho, there, cup-bearer!” cried
-the King, turning to a youth who stood waiting near the
-palace door. “Bring cups and wine!”</p>
-
-<p>Instantly the cup-bearer clapped his hands. Two
-servants came running from the palace, one bearing a jar
-of wine, the other a tray of golden goblets. The goblets
-were quickly filled with ruby wine and the cup-bearer
-presented them to the King, after duly tasting them.
-Cambyses took one and handed it to Prexaspes.</p>
-
-<p>“Drink!” he said. “You must be thirsty. But, perhaps,
-my father has trained you to soberness?”</p>
-
-<p>“While King Cyrus lived I obeyed him. Now that
-Cambyses is King of Kings, I obey him,” answered Prexaspes,
-taking the cup.</p>
-
-<p>“Well said!” exclaimed Cambyses, taking a huge goblet.
-“Come, let us first pour a libation to the earth and
-its gods.”</p>
-
-<p>He poured a little of the wine out upon the earth and
-drank the remainder. Prexaspes followed suit. The
-King laughed as he looked around upon his courtiers and
-saw that their countenances were expressive of curiosity
-and mild astonishment. Pouring libations to the gods of
-earth was sin with the orthodox Aryans and a new practice
-to the majority of those present. But they expected
-that Cambyses would disregard custom and law, even
-more now as King than he did while only a prince.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[68]</span>“Now sit here by me and briefly tell how my father
-died and all that happened thereafter,” said the King to
-Prexaspes. “Afterwards you shall rest.”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes sat down at the King’s right hand on a low
-bench. The courtiers and attendants, obeying a motion
-of the King’s hand, retired beyond hearing.</p>
-
-<p>“I thank you, O King, for this favor!” answered
-Prexaspes. “My last message was written just before
-your father encamped with his army on the left bank of
-the Jaxartes and two days before the last great battle. It
-had been in the King’s mind to cross the river and pursue
-the enemy farther when he learned from his scouts and
-some prisoners that the Touranians were gathering at a
-point ten parasangs above us with the intention of giving
-battle. Then the King set his army in battle-array, in a
-very strong position, with the left wing resting on the
-river and the right far out in shifting sand-dunes. In
-front was a deep, narrow water-course beyond which lay
-an open plain over which the enemy must come. He
-commanded the Prince of Iran to lead the Imperial
-Guard to a position behind the sand-dunes, ready to come
-out upon the enemy’s flank and rear when the battle
-should be joined.”</p>
-
-<p>The King interrupted, exclaiming: “A young man is
-Prince Darius to hold so important a command! By my
-beard! Infants shall not command under me!”</p>
-
-<p>“Your will is law, O King,” rejoined Prexaspes bowing.
-“But I must say that Prince Darius is a most loyal
-subject of Cambyses and a very brave and able general.
-King Cyrus took position at the left of our army and the
-weight of the enemy’s charge fell upon that part. It was
-a fearful struggle. My light-armed troopers went out to
-draw the enemy to charge and, as commanded, fell back
-before the thousands on thousands of shrieking, howling<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[69]</span>
-foemen. They followed us into the great ditch in our
-front and pressed across. They bore back the Persian
-and Medean heavy-armed infantry. They broke through
-and would have ruined the army, had not King Cyrus at
-the head of five thousand men of the Imperial Guard
-thrown himself into the breach and held them back by
-most mighty exertions! Then came the Prince of Iran
-and the remainder of the Guard down from the right
-upon the rear of the enemy, crushing and rolling them
-back into the Jaxartes. His charge saved the day. It
-was magnificent. The light horses of the Touranians
-went down like leaves before a gust of wind. But just
-as the victory declared for us, the King received a poisoned
-dart in his throat and was borne from the field by
-the noble Otanes. In spite of all that the surgeons could
-do, he died that night.”</p>
-
-<p>“What message did he leave?”</p>
-
-<p>“King Hystaspis was in command of the army. He
-called a council of officers and designated me as a messenger
-to bring to you the last decree of the Great King.
-Here it is.”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes drew a packet from a pouch at his belt and
-presented it to the King. Cambyses eagerly unbound it
-and began to read. A dark frown slowly gathered on his
-face. He suddenly cast the paper upon the earth and set
-his foot upon it, while his gleaming eyes showed bitter
-wrath.</p>
-
-<p>“What!” he exclaimed. “Does he think to divide his
-empire and confirm that hair-brained, beardless Bardya
-as ruler of Iran and Persia? I say, it shall not be! I am
-King of Kings now, and I shall reign alone! I will cut
-that young sprout off if he dare claim a shadow of sovereignty!
-My father always hated me and loved Bardya.
-He always did shield that boy from my wrath. Now he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[70]</span>
-gives him the best part of the kingdom! What if he does
-acknowledge me as overlord? Is he not ambitious? He
-will ingratiate himself with the people and then will attempt
-to overthrow me! King Hystaspis and his son,—they
-doubtless will aid him!”</p>
-
-<p>He rose and paced back and forth, swinging his arms
-and smiting his hands together. Prexaspes also rose and,
-though standing in a humble attitude, covertly watched the
-King.</p>
-
-<p>“What say you?” demanded Cambyses, halting before
-Prexaspes.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes, after some hesitation, answered: “Doubtless
-it was not just in the Great King to make such provisions;
-but he was old and very fond of Prince Bardya.
-Why allow the decree to be published? There is no need
-until you are firmly established. Afterwards there will
-be time to deal with the matter.”</p>
-
-<p>The King silently stroked his whiskers a moment considering
-the advice. It seemed shrewd and good. His
-wrath cooled somewhat. A cunning look came upon his
-flushed countenance.</p>
-
-<p>“That is good advice, Prexaspes!” he assented.
-“You shall be my chief counselor. This decree shall be
-burned. None know its contents but you and I. I
-count on your silence and will greatly reward you. If
-you deceive me, no death shall be too severe for you!”</p>
-
-<p>“Have no doubt of me, Great King! I am your servant
-and will do as you bid. There is no decree. I have
-forgotten it. Let it not be seen of men. But Bardya
-has a copy of it and the Persian nobles witnessed it.”</p>
-
-<p>He recovered the paper from the earth and restored it
-to Cambyses. The latter laughed as he tore it in small
-pieces. Calling a servant to bring a brazier of coals, he
-placed the fragments upon the embers and watched them
-burn.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[71]</span>“Hark you, Prexaspes!” he then said. “This Bardya
-must not be allowed to divide this kingdom. See to it!
-Great will be your reward. The second place in the kingdom
-shall be yours. Do you understand?”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes considered a moment. He well understood
-the meaning Cambyses sought to convey.</p>
-
-<p>“I understand,” he then said. “Perhaps misfortune
-will overtake the young man. Who knows?”</p>
-
-<p>The King laughed harshly. “An accident perhaps!
-Rather than that the empire be divided, one of us should
-die. The world is not large enough to hold two kings
-when Cambyses is one of them! What do you advise?”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes thoughtfully contemplated the earth. The
-King impatiently waited, glowering at him with the restless,
-cruel eyes of a tiger.</p>
-
-<p>“Speak!” commanded the King at length. “Shall we
-send a force and take him?”</p>
-
-<p>“If it please you, O King, that I should offer advice,
-no. Bardya is strong in the love of the Aryan race. He
-now dwells in the midst of hosts of stout men who are
-his friends and who would overthrow your throne if they
-could for his sake. Persian and Medean soldiers cannot
-be compelled to make war upon Bactrians when led by a
-son of Cyrus. Babylon, Assyria, Damascus, Sardis, and
-the Ionian cities will not uphold your hands; they but
-wait for an opportunity to rebel. You must court the
-favor of the Aryan race. Above all I advise that you
-show favor to the King of Iran and to his able son. They
-are the idols of the veteran army of Cyrus.”</p>
-
-<p>“But Darius is Bardya’s friend!”</p>
-
-<p>“True, but he is also your loyal supporter.”</p>
-
-<p>“How know you? Is it not said openly among the
-nobles of Persia that Hystaspis by right of birth should
-have ruled instead of Cyrus? Darius is ambitious. I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[72]</span>
-know that youth! I have hated him since my father
-showed more favor to him and to Bardya than to me!
-He knows this. How then say you he will be my supporter?”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you not remember his love of truth and his hatred
-of lies and deception from his boyhood up?”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember! No doubt it was a disease in him!”</p>
-
-<p>“Just so! Nevertheless it is said throughout Persia
-and Iran and by every man of the great army, that, when
-once the word of the Prince of Iran is given, it will stand
-forever. No one ever requires of him a witness or a
-written tablet. Now at the request of Cyrus and with
-consent of his father, he placed his hands in those of the
-Great King and swore to support you and Bardya on the
-throne of this empire. Therefore you need not fear him;
-but, rather, you may depend upon him for aid if you need
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>The cloud on the King’s face lifted somewhat. He had
-watched with jealous eye the growing power of the young
-Hystaspis and had feared him even more than Bardya.</p>
-
-<p>“Nevertheless, wait till his ambition meets opportunity,”
-he suggested.</p>
-
-<p>“No, it is as I say. I have proof. On the march to
-Bactra, the Prince with the Imperial Guard was in charge
-of the transport of the King’s body. The Guard, on the
-morning of the second day’s march, saluted Darius as
-King of Kings; and all had taken oath to support him if
-he would consent. But he rebuked them, told them of his
-oath to support you, and then and there made them also
-swear with uplifted hands to support you. I myself witnessed
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is it so? Treason must be flourishing indeed!” exclaimed
-Cambyses, bitterly. “This Guard shall no longer
-be the Imperial Guard! It shall be decimated!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[73]</span>Rage again possessed the King’s soul. He knew himself
-to be unpopular save with a few boon companions.
-His jealous heart was filled with hatred towards the popular
-Prince. Prexaspes ventured to remonstrate.</p>
-
-<p>“Let not the Great King be offended with his servant!
-I am acquainted with the army and all its soldiers. The
-Aryans are a proud race and the nobles will not bow the
-knee even to their kings, as you know. Do not anger
-them. Without them your subject nations will revolt and
-you will have no one to support your empire. Rather,
-dissemble your feelings. You are very wise, O King, if
-you but stop to think. First, be well established on your
-throne. After the body of your heroic father shall have
-been placed in its tomb, send the Prince and his Guard to
-conquer new provinces. Be advised by me in this.
-Should evil befall his son, old Hystaspis would lead the
-veterans of Cyrus five hundred thousand strong against
-you. Who could stand before them?”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses ceased pacing back and forth and sat down,
-saying: “Your words are wise, Prexaspes. I will be
-advised. Proceed!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes smiled slightly behind his hand. He had
-properly gauged the King’s impulses. He continued:
-“I advise that you issue your formal decree as King of
-Kings to-morrow and send copies thereof to be proclaimed
-in every province of the empire; that you issue a
-decree confirming the Prince of Iran in command of the
-Guard and in his mission to transport the body of the
-Great King to Pasargadæ; that you send a messenger to
-Bardya and to your sisters greeting them kindly; that
-you, also, as soon as they shall have arrived at Hamadan,
-show them all honor, go with them to do honor to Cyrus
-at Pasargadæ, and dissemble your real feelings. Thus
-will you begin wisely and thus will you please the Aryan<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[74]</span>
-people. Afterwards we may take counsel; and, should
-Bardya meet with an accident or disappear, who can
-blame the Great King? Be assured, O King, that I advise
-well! I know that upon you only may I depend for
-advancement and power. Bardya does not, nor do any
-of the great Persian nobles, love Prexaspes. Their semi-barbaric
-manners suited not my taste, and my refined
-manners were not approved by them!”</p>
-
-<p>“I will heed your advice,” said the King. “My favor
-shall be with you. First, I will make you Satrap of
-Medea. I will let that old Hebrew, Belteshazzer, rest
-from his labors in his tower. Afterwards, if you serve
-me well, I shall increase your power. See to it, Prexaspes,
-that my will be not thwarted! There shall be one
-King, who shall be King of Kings, and he must be Cambyses!”</p>
-
-<p>“It shall be as you wish. But let us proceed with all
-care.” Thus Prexaspes entered upon a road to great
-gain in wealth and power, but also to ultimate woe.</p>
-
-<p>The King presently dismissed Prexaspes, and the latter
-was conducted to pleasant rooms in the palace, where he
-refreshed himself with a bath, arrayed himself in clean
-linen and rich garments and had himself barbered and
-perfumed by the King’s own barbers. Cambyses was
-lavish with his favorites, and just now Prexaspes was
-chief of them. The latter sat at the King’s right hand at
-dinner that evening. All festivities were abandoned in
-honor of the dead King, but the many courtiers who ate
-at his tables found opportunity to assure the new King
-of their joy over his accession to the throne. He drank
-deeply both of adulation and wine until he became half-drunk
-and maudlin, whereupon Merobates took him almost
-forcibly to his bedchamber.</p>
-
-<p>Next day, the King and all his retinue returned to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[75]</span>
-Hamadan. A royal decree was immediately issued, reciting
-the death of the Great Cyrus and the accession of
-Cambyses to the throne of the world, and commanding all
-officers, soldiers, and peoples to acknowledge him King of
-Kings. The royal treasury was opened. From it the
-golden crown studded with precious gems, which Cyrus
-had worn on state occasions, and the royal scepter were
-brought forth. Clad in purple, and having the high,
-pointed crown on his head, his royal feet encased in yellow
-shoes, and his hair and whiskers curled, powdered,
-and perfumed, Cambyses held his first court in the great
-audience room of the palace. He sat on a golden throne
-placed high up on a dais, with fan-bearers waving ostrich
-plumes over him, with Prexaspes standing at his right
-hand and Merobates at his left, bearing the King’s sword
-and shield. He placed the crown on his head with his
-own hands, while a loud-voiced herald recited his titles.
-Then the thousand nobles and officers who were in attendance
-fell on their faces to the floor before him and
-hailed him King of Kings, the Great King! Cambyses,
-swelling with pride, deemed himself divine, and as a god
-he looked down upon his subjects with haughty demeanor.</p>
-
-<p>The world thus acquired a new ruler.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[76]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VI<br />
-
-
-<small>PERSEPOLIS</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE modern world knows little of the beauty and
-grandeur of ancient Anshan, the home of Cyrus, or
-of the province of Fars and its cities. Mountains shut
-off from them the hot winds of the Persian Gulf and of
-the northern deserts. The high valleys lying between
-the mountain ranges that extend across it like huge dikes
-are of surpassing loveliness. Romantic woodlands, dells,
-lakes, canyons, murmuring brooks, rushing rivers, far
-vistas, plains, mountains, and hills delight the soul. In
-the valleys, flowers perfume the air all the year, and vegetation,
-where irrigation is practiced, is luxuriant. On
-the high hills and mountain tops winter holds sway during
-three or more months and the seasons are well-marked
-as in the temperate zones. It is the land of
-Omar, of Firdusi, and of many lesser poets; the land of
-an ancient white race, whose rugged virtues made them
-lords of much of the earth, but whose descendants have
-degenerated by admixture with lower grades of humanity
-and have suffered much to maintain even their own independence.</p>
-
-<p>The celebrated plain of Mervdasht is between two
-parallel ranges of mountains, one of which lies to the
-west between it and the low hot lands of the gulf-coast
-and the other to the east between it and the vale of
-Murghab, or ancient Anshan. A river comes down from
-the northern mountains through the midst of this plain<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[77]</span>
-and empties into a lake. It is a perennial stream, but
-fordable save in the winter when the rains fall. It has
-been variously named, anciently the Araxes, later the
-Kur or river of Cyrus, and again the Bendamir. Another
-river of less volume but more celebrated, the
-Pulwar, comes down to join it through the mountains
-from northeast table-lands. This passes by the vale of
-Murghab, where a little stream of that name, coming from
-the east, flows into it. In this vale was ancient Anshan,
-the capital of the Achæmenian line of kings, a city also
-known as Pasargadæ. The tortuous bed of the Pulwar
-connects the vale of Murghab with the valley of Mervdasht,
-having cut for itself a deep gorge through the
-mountains. A royal road, passing through this gorge or
-canyon, connected the ancient capital with a more modern
-city, Persepolis.</p>
-
-<p>Persepolis, or the city of the Persians, ancient Parsa,
-lay close to the mouth of the mighty canyon of the Pulwar,
-where it opened into the vale of Mervdasht. The
-city lay principally on the northern banks of the river.
-On the southern bank was a great park; and in this on a
-plateau extending from the base of low mountains that
-border the eastern side of the plain, were the palaces of
-the Kings of Iran. King Hystaspis and his great son,
-Darius, and his grandson, Xerxes, each erected magnificent
-palaces of dark-gray marble on this natural platform.
-The great size and magnificent architecture of
-these buildings were among the wonders of the ancient
-world. Their majestic ruins yet testify to the power, the
-love of art, and the learning of those masters of men.</p>
-
-<p>King Hystaspis, content to rule Iran as a nominal
-vassal of Cyrus and under the shadow of his mighty arm,
-laid out for himself in the valley of Merv a new city and
-there placed his loved friends and retainers. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[78]</span>
-brought artisans from Egypt, Canaan, Syria, Phœnicia,
-and distant Greece, and built for himself a great palace.
-It is said that he or his son formulated a new alphabet
-for his language and caused the books of Zoroaster to be
-translated therein.</p>
-
-<p>Orchards of apple, peach, and apricot, vineyards
-where grape and berry grew, fields of vegetables and
-grain, covered the fertile valley and its surrounding hills.
-On the day when the Imperial Guard, escorting the body
-of the Great Cyrus, halted on the summit of the western
-ridge bounding the valley and looked down upon the
-peaceful scene, autumn was touching all with the signs
-of harvest and the coming winter-rest. On that day,
-while the funeral car halted, Prince Bardya, his sisters,
-and the Prince of Iran rode forward to a bluff jutting
-out from the ridge; and from this position they looked
-down into a paradise,—so it seemed to them, weary with
-dusty roads and desert lands. There, where the Pulwar
-entered the plain from the narrow gorge in the western
-mountains, Cyrus had drawn up his Persian patriots to
-fight a last battle for liberty from the Medean yoke, having
-been driven to bay by the vast army of stern old
-Astyages, his grandfather. That decisive battle not only
-gave liberty to his own province but gave Astyages to
-him as a prisoner and the crown of Medea for his own
-head. From that victory Cyrus had gone forth to conquer
-the world. But now, conquered by the last enemy,
-Death, he was returning there to his final rest. The
-heart of the Prince of Iran was stirred by strong emotions,
-as he looked across the beautiful vale. He could
-see afar the great portico of his father’s palace where, he
-knew, his mother stood watching for the coming of her
-son. Uncovering his head, he extended his hands towards
-heaven, saying:</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[79]</span>“To thee, O Ahura-Mazda, Ruler of Heaven, Giver of
-Life, Lover of Truth, and Protector, we give thanks!
-For thou hast brought us home!”</p>
-
-<p>“Amen and amen!” exclaimed Bardya, uncovering his
-head.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran then addressed his companions:
-“I welcome you to the home of King Hystaspis. This
-valley and yonder city are his property, ceded to him as a
-home for the Achæmenian family, when he consented to
-remove hither from Bactra. I bid you rest at our palace
-yonder this night. The road from Parsa to Anshan is
-rough and ought to be traveled only by day. My mother
-is at the door to welcome you.”</p>
-
-<p>“We gladly accept!” assented Bardya, heartily. “Do
-I not love that mother almost as much as you? Do you
-remember the happy days when we hunted on yonder
-hills and swam in the Pulwar and the Araxes? Do you
-remember the day we were almost drowned? We will
-go to that deep water-hole again to-morrow and swim
-there as boys again. Our troopers should rest a day
-while we send a message to Cambyses at Anshan to
-inform him of our coming.”</p>
-
-<p>Athura added: “It will be delightful to accept the
-hospitality of your mother. I shall return after going
-to Anshan and shall stay long with her and rest. My
-sister is much in need of rest. The long journey has
-made her ill.”</p>
-
-<p>“After we shall have accomplished our mission,” said
-the Prince of Iran, “we shall enjoy many pleasant days
-there. The hunting is good. We shall enjoy the royal
-sport!”</p>
-
-<p>“Unless Ahriman interfere!” added Bardya, waving
-his hand towards Anshan, where his brother now
-awaited their coming. “I propose to stay a month at
-least. I suppose he awaits us impatiently at Anshan.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[80]</span>Athura said reprovingly to her brother: “Speak not
-of the King of Kings thus! He has sent us courteous
-messages, even if he would not await us at Hamadan
-or march with us here. Perhaps it was best that he
-should go on ahead to prepare the tomb and to arrange
-for the ceremonies. Be advised, brother! Remember
-to show him the deference due to his station. His
-anger was ever terrible! Now he has no one to restrain
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya laughed and tossed his head, as he answered:
-“Fear not for me! I shall treat him with all due respect.
-Am I not on the ground my father gave me in
-his will? The Persian lords will not permit him to
-oppress us. When I see that King of Kings, I will demand
-of him that he publish the full terms of my
-father’s will. If he refuse to observe that—Well, it
-may be that he will cease to reign!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran said nothing, but his countenance
-was somber. He feared that the impetuous Bardya
-would precipitate trouble. He foresaw civil war.</p>
-
-<p>Descending into the valley, they approached Persepolis.
-A vast throng of people came out to meet them
-and stood on either side of the road weeping and wailing
-aloud as the funeral car passed. A company of guards
-led by an aged veteran met them at the entrance of the
-city.</p>
-
-<p>Prince Darius greeted the leader warmly: “Ho,
-Orobates, our beloved High Chamberlain! How fares
-my royal mother?”</p>
-
-<p>“All hail, Prince of Iran!” cried the stately old man,
-kissing the Prince’s cheeks as the latter bent down to
-greet him. “God’s blessing of long life and happiness
-be upon you! How good it is to behold you once more!
-Your mother, our most gracious Queen, is well and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[81]</span>
-awaits you at the palace. She begs that you will prevail
-upon the royal Bardya and his sisters to honor her house
-with their presence. All things are prepared. The best
-of the herds, the finest game from the mountains, the
-daintiest fruits and flowers,—all are ready!”</p>
-
-<p>“They have consented to honor us, Orobates. Has
-my mother good health and is she happy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Excellent health, gracious Prince; but she sighs much
-for you and the King.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did Cambyses, the Great King, honor our house with
-his presence?”</p>
-
-<p>“He refused our bidding on the plea that he was in
-haste to reach Anshan on state business. But he sent
-a gracious greeting to your mother.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince led the caravan into the city, nodding and
-waving greeting to many whom he had known when a
-child. Crossing the Araxes over a magnificent stone
-bridge, the cortège marched into Persepolis and encamped
-in a great open field on the shore of the Pulwar.
-The funeral car was driven into the sacred enclosing wall
-of a temple and there rested till a messenger went to
-Cambyses and returned.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving the cares of the encampment to subordinates,
-the Prince of Iran, accompanied by Gobryas and some of
-his chief officers, conducted Bardya and his sisters across
-the Pulwar over a beautiful stone bridge of one great
-arch and through the park to his father’s palace. The
-limpid stream, the great oaks, elms, walnuts, and plane
-trees, whose foliage was tinged with gold and red, the
-flowering shrubs, the fountains, and the greensward,
-smiled a joyful welcome to the weary travelers. Broad
-steps, leading up to the great plateau or bench on which
-the palace stood, gleamed white through the tree-limbs.
-Slender gray columns adorned the portico. On the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[82]</span>
-stairs stood a group of women, and among them a stately
-dame, who waved her hand in welcome. Prince Darius
-galloped on ahead to the foot of the steps and, leaving
-his horse in charge of an attendant, ran up into the embrace
-of his mother.</p>
-
-<p>Age had not greatly affected the beauty of the Queen
-of Iran nor dimmed her blue eyes. Her gray hair was
-gathered in a net at the back of her head and was encircled
-by a golden band set with sparkling gems. Her
-dress was an ample purple robe reaching to her feet and
-encircled at the waist with a silken sash. Its loose sleeves
-revealed arms still shapely and adorned with bracelets
-of gold. The gracious majesty of her countenance, the
-sweetness of her smile, and the soft accents of her voice
-were celebrated in Iran.</p>
-
-<p>That was an age when wife and mother were not
-slaves or prisoners. Recognized as the equal of men,
-their virtues and loveliness made homes where men were
-grown. Not yet had Cambyses, aping the manners and
-customs of the dwellers in Mesopotamia, Syria, and
-Arabia, degraded women to the seclusion of harems; nor
-had custom forbidden women to appear before friends
-unveiled, though veils were commonly worn in public
-places. Polygamy was almost unknown in Iran, though
-its practice had crept into Medea. The wife was queen
-of the home and ruled in the heart of her husband.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince knelt at his mother’s feet, and her arms
-encircled his neck while her lips kissed his brow. “Welcome
-home, beloved son!” she exclaimed. “Long days
-have intervened since you waved farewell to me from
-yonder bridge; but no day has passed that I did not
-think of you!”</p>
-
-<p>She raised him up and stood proudly at his side, leaning
-on his arm, while she welcomed Prince Bardya and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[83]</span>
-his sisters. To Bardya she said as he bent his knee
-before her: “The blessing of Ahura-Mazda be upon
-you, O Prince of the World! Arise! It is not meet
-that you kneel to me! Welcome to the palace of my
-lord, the King of Iran!”</p>
-
-<p>“Gracious Queen,” replied Bardya as he arose, “I
-kneel to you as to my mother! Next to her, who lives
-only in my memory, do I love and reverence the mother
-of my friend, the Prince of Iran. Have we not, in
-years past, stood together at your knee and received
-your instruction? Now that we are indeed orphans we
-come to you for consolation.”</p>
-
-<p>Tears filled the great lady’s eyes. She embraced
-Athura and Artistone tenderly; and, leaving the men to
-the care of her son, she took the girls with her to her
-own apartments and personally saw that they were made
-comfortable. While they are removing the dust of the
-road and enrobing themselves for dinner, we may wander
-in spirit through this typical palace of the Achæmenian
-kings and observe its grandeur.</p>
-
-<p>From the portico which extended the full breadth of
-the palace front, an entrancing view of valley and mountain,
-of river and park, could be had. Sixteen slender,
-fluted, marble pillars supported the massive wooden roof
-of the portico. Their capitals were winged bulls; their
-bases were bell-shaped and carved to imitate lotus buds.
-A high, narrow door gave entrance from the front
-through the thick stone walls into a hall, on either side
-of which were rooms where the palace-guards had their
-abode. The hall led into a reception room fully fifty
-feet square, whose walls were pierced by a dozen narrow
-windows and whose ceiling of heavy carved timbers was
-upheld by slender wooden pillars covered with silver
-plates. The stone walls were hidden by beaten silver<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[84]</span>
-plates and the windows and doors were hung with
-tapestries of fine crimson and purple fabrics. Wooden
-shutters were fitted to the windows, but were now open
-to admit air and light. Later, when winter should come
-with its rains and frost, the windows would be closed
-by semi-transparent oiled silk. Red and purple rugs lay
-on the tiled floor, partially covering the various patterns
-worked out in colored tiles. A throne, shining with
-gold plate, occupied a raised platform at the end of the
-room opposite the entrance. Cushioned chairs, divans,
-and couches, tables of polished wood, mirrors of polished
-silver and bronze, lamps of many patterns fastened to
-the pillars and walls, and a cabinet of dark inlaid wood
-comprised the furniture. The cabinet held a collection
-of books, rolls, and tablets, the library and the special
-treasure of the King of Iran.</p>
-
-<p>Doors at the right of the throne led into the apartments
-of the men; at the left, into the apartments of the women;
-and, immediately at the rear, into a small open court,
-beyond which were the servants’ quarters. Banquets of
-state were held in the throne room, but ordinarily the
-tables were laid in the small open court. The various
-apartments were furnished with couches, and with blankets
-and rugs of skillful weaving and of that fineness
-and texture for which the woven products of Iran have
-ever been famous. All the conveniences of an advanced
-civilization, which power and wealth could provide or
-gather from the many nations over which the Persians
-held sway, were here. Baths and toilets fed by water
-piped from the hills, and drained into the Pulwar below,
-ornamental cabinets, containing scents and cosmetics for
-adorning the person, wardrobes full of costly dresses
-made of silk and fine linen, mirrors, combs, and brushes—even
-the modern homes of many so-called civilized
-people could boast no better.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[85]</span>A narrow stair led up from the inner court to the
-flat roof, where the occupants of the palace, reclining
-on soft divans, under canopies or sunshades, could pass
-the warmer hours of the day, breathe the cool mountain
-air, and enjoy the lovely scenes. Looking down from
-it, one could see the royal stables five hundred paces to
-the south in the park, where scores of graceful horses
-were kept; and farther on was the inclosure where cattle
-and sheep, driven in from the mountain pastures, were
-ready to furnish the royal table with meat or milk. A
-canal led from the Pulwar above the palace through the
-park to the stables below and thence into luxuriant
-gardens where servants toiled to supply their master’s
-table with vegetables. Fowls, dogs, horses, and cattle
-enlivened the barnyard scene. Servants in gay tunics,
-loose, fringed trousers, and with sandaled feet went
-hither and thither on their duties. Guards in shining
-armor walked their beats through the park or lazily
-stood leaning on their spears at the palace steps.</p>
-
-<p>While the guests were removing the dust and stains
-of travel, servants busily prepared the banquet. Tables
-of walnut, plated with silver and bound together by
-golden bands fastened with copper nails, were set in the
-great audience hall. Platters of beautiful porcelain or
-of beaten silver, piled high with fruits and bread, were
-placed on them, and plates of silver and cups of gold
-were also brought forth. Low seats whereon the guests
-could either sit or recline were set in order. A major-domo
-in gorgeous livery saw that all things were made
-ready. Then the guests were called. The men were
-seated at one table; the women, at another. Prince
-Darius sat at the head of the former; his mother at the
-head of the latter. Servants brought on, in regular
-courses, fish, steaming loads of venison and fowl, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[86]</span>
-bountiful supplies of vegetables and pastry. Water,
-milk, and wine of Helbon were the drinks, the latter
-being used sparingly. With appetites sharpened by a
-long day’s journey in the bracing air of the mountains,
-the guests did full justice to the viands. While they
-ate, the soft music of harps, played with considerable
-skill by musicians in the court, floated in through the
-open doors.</p>
-
-<p>The banquet hour having passed, the officers and
-nobles returned to the camp, while Prince Bardya and
-his sisters accompanied Prince Darius and his mother
-to a room adjacent to the dining-hall, used by the King
-of Iran when at home as an office. A large fireplace
-in one corner of the room was filled with a cheerful
-blaze. Gathered about the fire, guests and hosts felt
-much at home and spent a pleasant hour in conversation.</p>
-
-<p>“Now that Cambyses passed through your city with
-scant courtesy,” Bardya said, somewhat warmed by the
-wine he had imbibed and by his genial surroundings, so
-that he felt called upon to express his indignation towards
-his brother, “what think you of such a king?”
-He addressed Queen Hystaspis.</p>
-
-<p>“I marvel not at his action,” she replied quietly. “He
-was never kindly disposed towards us. But it is not
-for us to find fault. I should have met him in person
-and given the invitation to stop with us. I would have
-so done, had I not heard that he believes, with the Medes,
-that women have no place in the affairs of men. He
-passed through our city in a closed litter, not even deigning
-to see our messengers. He made reply through
-his chamberlain that the King of Kings was indisposed
-and pressed for time and would not rest till he should
-arrive at his palace in Anshan.”</p>
-
-<p>“He has ever been ill-natured!” continued Bardya,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[87]</span>
-bitterly. “He believes himself heaven-born! He will
-end by declaring himself a god and appointing set times
-to worship him! What think you the nobles of Persia
-will say of his manners? It is said he has determined
-to decree a law of polygamy, and, like the Arabs,
-fill a harem with many wives. He is a follower of the
-Magi; but I doubt if he believes in the gods. I know
-he will never abide by our father’s will. As I have
-ridden from Bactra hither, I have thought much; and
-I have concluded that the kingdom will be his who can
-strike first!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince had never before spoken his inmost
-thoughts. The Prince of Iran and his mother, though
-much disturbed, remained silent. Athura said reprovingly:
-“Brother, is it right to have such thoughts before
-our father’s body is entombed? Wisdom demands
-silence on your part until you see the King! As King
-he may act justly. If you stir up trouble, civil war may
-be the result. Let us be wise and discreet until we
-return to Bactra, from which you ought never to have
-departed! Then, if he act unjustly, the people of Iran
-will stand justly with you.”</p>
-
-<p>“What say you, my brother?” demanded Bardya,
-turning to the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>The latter answered at once and without hesitation:
-“The words of your sister are wise. Cambyses is King
-of Kings by right of birth and by the will of Cyrus. I
-am bound by an oath to support him in that right. It
-is not wise to plan against the will of Cyrus, nor is it
-even wise to discuss the matter. While we are safe
-here, an unwise word uttered at another place, and overheard,
-may cause great trouble. As for me, I shall ask
-of Cambyses, the King, two favors,—first that I may
-receive the reward that Cyrus, the Great King, promised;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[88]</span>
-second, that I may accompany you to Bactra after my
-father returns here.”</p>
-
-<p>Athura smiled and blushed, as the Prince mentioned
-his promised reward and turned his ardent gaze upon her.
-Bardya arose and paced back and forth.</p>
-
-<p>“Alas! that my father should bind you and the powerful
-King, your father, with an oath!” he cried. “My
-way would otherwise be clear! Yes! let us be wise and
-patient! You shall come with me to Bactra, and together
-we shall extend the empire even as far as the
-great river of India and beyond the roof of the world
-where the slant-eyed Tourans dwell! King Hystaspis
-shall rule Iran in peace, while you and I lead victorious
-armies to the ends of the earth! Then we shall see
-who ought to be overlord of the world!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran now sought to change the subject
-by suggesting that before leaving for Bactra they must
-hunt a lion in the jungles of Lake Baktigan. Plans for
-a hunting-trip to that wild region superseded more
-treasonable subjects. After a while, the guests admitted
-weariness and retired to rest. But the Prince of Iran
-threw a cloak about his shoulders and went out to walk
-in the park now flooded with moonlight. The watchmen
-respectfully saluted as he passed down the broad steps
-and went slowly towards the river. How pleasant it
-seemed after a year of war in desert lands to be at home!
-He could not retire to rest without standing awhile on
-the bridge over the Pulwar and looking down at the
-familiar hurrying waters.</p>
-
-<p>Before he reached the bridge, he was startled by the
-sound of pursuing footsteps. Turning, he beheld Athura
-approaching, followed by one of the guards.</p>
-
-<p>“Pardon, Lord Hystaspis!” she exclaimed, as he went
-back to meet her in wondering haste. “So glorious is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[89]</span>
-the moonlight and so restless am I, that when I saw you
-come forth, I could not resist an impulse to follow! Let
-me walk with you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Most happy am I to have you with me, Athura, star
-of the evening! The light of your eyes surpasses the
-light of the stars! Your countenance, like the sun,
-brings warmth to my soul! Glad will that day be, when
-you shall become my wife; and we shall walk together
-thereafter forever!”</p>
-
-<p>He dismissed the guard. Then with his strong right
-arm around the princess and his ample cloak shielding
-both, they went on together. She laughed happily.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, my lord, you have the tongue of a poet!”
-she said. “What says the great Zoroaster of this
-land?</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“Ahura-Mazda looked upon the desert lands</div>
-<div class="verse">And with his mighty breath gave life to them;</div>
-<div class="verse">Where none could dwell before he poured out life,</div>
-<div class="verse">And Aryans lived and multiplied in peace,</div>
-<div class="verse">Until their numbers were as desert sands.</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>Was not his thought inspired by such nights as this?”</p>
-
-<p>“It may have been,” he answered. “But does he not
-continue:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“Then Angro-mainyus, death’s dark spirit made</div>
-<div class="verse">That mighty serpent, Winter, with its snow,</div>
-<div class="verse">To swallow up within its months of cold</div>
-<div class="verse">The teeming earth, the flowing water-streams,</div>
-<div class="verse">While storm-clouds cast upon the earth their pestilent shade.”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>“You are melancholy, Prince of Iran! Let us not
-think of Angro-mainyus. Are the days not passing
-swiftly? When the forty days of mourning shall have
-passed, shall we not be happy?”</p>
-
-<p>He drew her closely to him. “Most happy, beloved!<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[90]</span>
-But I am filled with forebodings of evil. Like some
-threatening Angro-mainyus, jealously watching the Spirit
-of Life at his creation and the children of men in their
-happiness, does the form of the new King of Kings loom
-up in the sky. I seem to feel even now the malignant
-hate with which he ever seemed to regard Bardya, and
-me because I was Bardya’s friend. When I think of the
-absolute power of life and death vested in him and his
-opportunity to wreak vengeance upon those he hates, I
-am troubled. What if he refuse to give you to me?
-What if he choose to bestow you upon another?”</p>
-
-<p>He felt the small hand now resting in his clench and
-harden. She looked up into his face as she answered
-slowly and solemnly:</p>
-
-<p>“As for me, though he inflict death, yet shall he not
-bend my will! I have chosen you alone of all the world.
-Your wife I shall be or I shall die. Listen, Prince of
-Iran! I am moved to say—some spirit prompts my
-soul to salute you, King of Kings and Lord of Lords.
-At your side shall I be Queen of the world! Is it not
-to be so?”</p>
-
-<p>He drew her closer to him and kissed her forehead.
-“Hush, life of mine!” he replied. “Start no such
-thoughts in my soul! Am I not oath-bound? If I were
-not so, should I plunge Iran into bloody civil war that I
-may wear a crown? Let Ahura-Mazda’s will be done!
-If Cambyses and Bardya cease to exist, in spite of my
-loyal support, then shall I deem myself most fortunate
-to sit on the throne of Cyrus at the side of his daughter.
-Ah, if only Cambyses had a soul like Athura, what a
-happy year would this be for the nations!”</p>
-
-<p>Twenty-five centuries have come and gone since they
-stood on the old stone bridge over the Pulwar and renewed
-their pledges of undying love and faith. Myriads<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[91]</span>
-since then have gazed into each other’s eyes and pledged
-the same faith, moved by the same love; but the story is
-ever fresh and the love is ever sacred, sweet, and entrancing.
-Only traces of the old stone bridge over the
-Pulwar remain. The tall, slender shafts of marble with
-which the neighboring palace was adorned are tumbled
-and broken; and over the ruins of the neighboring city
-the wild dog wanders and bays at the moon. Perhaps
-the spirits of those heroic two who stood on the old
-bridge, listening to the murmur of the waters below,
-while they murmured to each other, may return there
-again and again, to live once more in the ecstasy of love.
-Who knows?</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[92]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VII<br />
-
-
-<small>“I AM CYRUS, THE KING, THE ACHÆMENIAN!”</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">WHERE the Pulwar turns westward from its southerly
-course to break through the mountains on its
-way to the Araxes, the little mountain stream Mur
-joins it from the east. In a vale, at the junction of the
-rivers and extending far up along the Mur, was the
-city of Anshan, better known as Pasargadæ, “the Castle
-of the Persians.” In the midst of the city, Cyrus
-had erected a great palace of marble, surrounded by a
-magnificent colonnade, and, near this, a tomb. The base
-of the tomb was pyramidal and on its truncated top was
-a small marble building, much like a Grecian temple,
-which was to receive the royal coffin. On the lintel of
-the palace-gate and above the door of the tomb was engraved
-the legend, “I am Cyrus, the King, the Achæmenian!”
-No other record of his acts did he make.
-That was all, as if no other Cyrus ever had lived or
-could live, who would take from him the attention of
-men.</p>
-
-<p>Another great palace stood on an artificial platform
-of massive stones at the north side of the valley and a
-quarter-mile or so from the tomb. This building was
-ancient even at the time of which we write. It had
-been for centuries the dwelling of that branch of the
-Achæmenian family of which Cyrus was the greatest.
-Below and west of the palaces, at the junction of the
-streams, were the barracks of the Imperial Guards and
-their parade-ground. Above and on the south side of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[93]</span>
-the valley lay the city with its narrow streets, its great
-market-place, its stores and dwellings. Many roads
-radiated from the city to all parts of the province, some
-following the beds of the streams and others crossing
-over ridges and spurs of the mountains, or excavated in
-the sides of the hills and by bridges passing over deep
-chasms.</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses, with one of his wives and his servants, upon
-their arrival at Anshan, took possession of the new palace
-of Cyrus and remained in seclusion. He gave little
-thought to the preparations for the funeral, leaving the
-management to Prexaspes, now his Lord High Chamberlain,
-and to the nobles and priests in charge of public
-services and worship. It was perhaps well for him that
-he did, since Prexaspes was gracious and tactful. He
-explained to all who were disposed to complain because
-Cambyses was inaccessible, that his royal master chose
-to remain in seclusion on account of his great grief. He
-flattered one and asked advice of another. He impressed
-the burly nobles of Persia so well that when the day for
-the funeral arrived, they were inclined to think well of
-Cambyses.</p>
-
-<p>The time approached when the body of Cyrus should
-be placed in its tomb. All roads leading to the capital
-city had been for a week enlivened by people coming
-from all parts of Iran and even from many foreign
-provinces, to witness the solemn ceremony and incidentally
-to gaze upon the new King. On horseback, in
-carts drawn by oxen or donkeys, on camels or in litters
-borne on the shoulders of slaves, the nobles and the
-wealthier came; while the lowly plodded along on foot
-carrying their food on their backs. The city became a
-vast camp, and the hills surrounding it were dotted with
-tents and booths.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[94]</span>Great multitudes of people massed themselves along
-the road leading down to the Pulwar, on the morning of
-that day, to await the coming of the funeral cortège approaching
-from Persepolis. It was noon before the
-Prince of Iran with a company of the Imperial Guard
-and the funeral car appeared on the bridge which spanned
-the Pulwar, and, followed by a vast train, slowly defiled
-across to the parade-ground. The great car, drawn by
-eight white horses and followed by chariots in which
-rode Prince Bardya and his sisters, moved slowly to the
-center of the parade-ground and there halted. The remainder
-of the Imperial Guard then crossed and formed
-in open square around the car. The people massed themselves
-on every side, leaving only a narrow road open to
-the city, through which the King would come to greet
-his sire’s body.</p>
-
-<p>An officer was despatched to the palace to notify the
-King. A sentinel in the gaudy uniform of a palace-guard
-met and conducted the messenger into the outer hall of
-the palace, where he was received by Prexaspes.</p>
-
-<p>“I bear a message from the Prince of Iran to the King
-of Kings,” he said, bowing low before the Lord High
-Chamberlain.</p>
-
-<p>“I am Prexaspes, the Lord High Chamberlain,” responded
-Prexaspes. “Give me the message. I will bear
-it to him. He is at dinner.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am directed by the royal Prince of Iran to report
-that the Imperial Guard has arrived with the body of the
-Great King, Cyrus, King of Kings and Lord of Lords.
-We are ready to deliver our charge over to the King’s
-hands. We await his orders.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is well. Remain here. I will go in to the King.”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes disappeared through a door, the heavy
-curtains over which at a motion of his hand were drawn<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[95]</span>
-aside by a page. He proceeded slowly and solemnly to
-the door of the banquet-room, where a guard in armor
-stood aside while he knocked. A harsh voice commanded
-him to enter. He opened the door and went in,
-falling gracefully on one knee as he saw the King. The
-latter was reclining at a table, with only his Assyrian wife
-for company. The woman hastily drew a veil over her
-face as Prexaspes appeared.</p>
-
-<p>“What now?” demanded the King, frowning. “Am
-I not to eat in peace? Presume not too far, Lord
-Prexaspes! Speak!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes rose and, clasping his hands before him in
-humble attitude, with his eyes directed to the floor lest
-they might look upon the Queen, answered, “Let not my
-gracious Lord be offended! A messenger has come from
-the Prince of Iran announcing his arrival with your
-lamented father’s body at the parade-ground by the Pulwar.
-I recall that you directed he should await you
-there, in order that you might ride forth and do honor
-to the great dead and thus gain favor with the people
-who loved him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Please the people! Bah! Pigs and dogs are they!”
-snorted the King. “Nevertheless your words contain
-wisdom. I will follow your advice until such time as
-there can be no choice of kings in this realm. Have my
-horse ready. Call out my new Imperial Guard. One
-can never say what that Bardya may attempt or what
-assassins lurk about. Send my armor to the dressing-room.
-Begone!”</p>
-
-<p>The King turned away and raised to his lips a huge
-cup, wherein sparkled the royal wine of Helbon. Prexaspes
-backed out of the room. He told the messenger
-to return to the Prince of Iran and command him to
-await the coming of the King. Arraying himself in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[96]</span>
-brilliant armor, he mounted a horse and marshaled the
-guards, the nobles, the captive potentates who ate at the
-Great King’s table, and all the notables of the city, in
-due order.</p>
-
-<p>The King, clad in flexible golden mail and wearing a
-plain black cap on his head, after some delay came forth
-and mounted his horse. The illustrious company then
-moved solemnly down towards the parade-ground. A
-score of uniformed officers rode in front with spears
-held perpendicularly, the hafts resting on their stirrups.
-After them rode the King, followed by Prexaspes and a
-company of guards. The nobles and notables followed.
-The King’s expression was gloomy and abstracted. He
-looked over the heads of the people, and his glance was
-high and haughty.</p>
-
-<p>Moved by habit, the people bowed low as he went by
-and remained thus until he had quite passed. There was
-no sound. Had Cyrus been passing, roars of worshipful
-shouts would have greeted him from all sides. Cambyses
-knew this and in his heart raged because of the silence.
-His square, heavy body, his bull neck, and his round,
-bloated face suggested to the people no majesty. A
-murmur ran through the masses in which were mingled
-fear and derision.</p>
-
-<p>At one point the crowd pressed too heavily and forced
-back the guards drawn up at the sides of the way.
-Cambyses, whose horse shied somewhat at the commotion
-as the guards endeavored to drive the crowd back, shouted
-angrily: “Beat the dogs back! Use the points of your
-spears!” The guards, thus urged, smote lustily with the
-hafts of their spears, bringing cries of agony and imprecations
-from the hapless ones who received their
-blows. The crowd surged back and the King passed on
-without further comment.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[97]</span>Meanwhile Bardya and his sisters and the Prince of
-Iran patiently waited the coming of the King. The
-Prince occupied himself in passing slowly along the
-massed ranks of the Guard, greeting his veteran comrades
-with a word of praise or inquiry and granting them leave
-to return home for a twenty days’ furlough. A guard
-of twenty officers stood around the funeral car and
-grooms stood at the heads of the white horses hitched
-to it. Two other grooms held by the bits the war-horse
-on which Cyrus had been mounted when stricken by the
-fatal dart. The noble animal pricked up his sharp ears
-and looked about with interested, intelligent eyes, not
-understanding that he was about to be sacrificed to
-Ahura-Mazda in honor of his master.</p>
-
-<p>Bardya and several Persians of high degree, among
-whom were three of the seven lords of Persia, Gobryas,
-Metaphernes, and Aspathines, were standing in a group
-near the car. Upon them the Prince of Iran cast many
-uneasy glances. He feared plots and treason. Some
-paces from them were two litters with drawn curtains,
-wherein rested the Princesses Athura and Artistone.</p>
-
-<p>A subdued murmur rose from the multitudes as they
-waited. The veteran troopers commented on all things
-and all men, some of their remarks being decidedly
-treasonable.</p>
-
-<p>“By rights,” growled one, whose whiskers covered the
-larger part of his face and chest, “our Prince here ought
-to be King of Kings! May Ahriman fly away with
-oaths! Now this Cambyses is no soldier. As for
-Bardya, he compares not with our Prince.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right!” admitted his neighbor. “Cyrus lives in the
-Prince of Iran. The King is a drunken savage. Prince
-Bardya is a gentle giant of no great wit. It is said the
-Princess Athura is most like her father. She and our<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[98]</span>
-Prince will marry. Cyrus promised it. God send the
-day when our Prince shall wear the double crown and
-she shall stand at his side as Queen!”</p>
-
-<p>“Treason, brother!” chided a third. “Hush! Let
-your jaws cease to wag of royalty.”</p>
-
-<p>Finally the King appeared. He drew near to the
-funeral car alone. His gloomy, black eyes rested coldly
-for a moment upon his brother, to whom he bent his
-head slightly. Bardya returned his salutation with a low,
-somewhat ironical bow. At that instant the Prince of
-Iran, who had drawn near, raised his hand as a signal,
-and instantly a crash of spear-hafts dashed against bucklers,
-a roar of voices from the Guard and fanfare of
-trumpets, sounded in royal salute. The old Imperial
-Guard thus recognized the new King of Kings. Cambyses,
-at first startled, flushed with pleasure and acknowledged
-the salute with bow and wave of hand. The
-great lords of Persia now advanced, one to hold his
-horse, another to hold his stirrup, and a third to receive
-the imperial scepter from his hand as he dismounted.</p>
-
-<p>Having safely dismounted, Cambyses turned to his
-brother and said, “Well, Prince, we meet under altered
-circumstances! If I recollect rightly, our last meeting
-was somewhat unpleasant, resulting in guard-house treatment
-for me on account of you. But on this day we
-forget old animosities and bury our sire’s body. Afterwards
-I shall have somewhat to say to you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have forgotten the incident referred to,” answered
-Bardya, coldly. “We are here now to honor the dead.
-Afterwards I shall be pleased to converse with you about
-the welfare of our empire.”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses said no more. Uncovering his head, he approached
-the funeral car and bowed his head towards it,
-remaining thus a moment as if in prayer. Silence fell<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[99]</span>
-upon the people as they watched the King. Then the
-sound of weeping began. A wave of grief and sympathy
-swept over the assembled multitude. The King was
-mourning. The people mourned also.</p>
-
-<p>Having thus greeted the spirit of his sire, Cambyses
-turned away and went to the litters where his sisters
-reclined. They came forth and bowed to him in greeting.
-He kissed their foreheads, saying: “It is a great
-pleasure to have you near me. You shall have the old
-palace for your residence,—you and Prince Bardya,—while
-you remain here. At a more fitting time we shall
-renew our acquaintance.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he remounted his horse and ordered the final
-march to begin. Prexaspes with the King’s body-guard
-led the way back to the city. The funeral car followed.
-The King rode behind it and, following him, were
-Prince Bardya, the Prince of Iran, the Princesses, and
-the great nobles. The lesser notables and the Imperial
-Guard marched next, followed by the people. Thus with
-royal pomp, amidst the mourning of his people, Cyrus,
-the Great King, the Achæmenian, completed his worldly
-march. A band of white-robed priests slaughtered the
-noble war-horse and presented his blood and burned
-portions of his flesh as a sacrifice to Ahura-Mazda, with
-many prayers. The solemn chants being ended, the
-golden casket in which the body of the great dead was
-encased was carried up the steps of the pyramid and
-deposited in the temple-like vault on its top. The brazen
-door of the tomb was closed, bolted, and sealed and a
-guard set over it. The people then dispersed.</p>
-
-<p>The King made a decree by which a special order of
-military rank was instituted, whose sole duty it was
-to watch the tomb, that no man should disturb the sacred
-body of the hero.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[100]</span>So was laid to rest the body of the most knightly
-king and heroic figure of ancient Iran. The great Darius
-probably equaled him in generalship and excelled him
-in statesmanship; but the brilliant career, the gentle and
-knightly qualities, and the heroic spirit of Cyrus, are
-without parallel in ancient story. Not until the great
-Alexander flashed across the western sky did any meteor
-excel in brightness him whose simple epitaph was, “I am
-Cyrus, the King, the Achæmenian!”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[101]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VIII<br />
-
-
-<small>A ROYAL COUNCIL AND A ROYAL HUNT</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was the day after the funeral of Cyrus. Cambyses,
-the Great King, was in a black humor. The fatigue
-incident to the funeral services and the reaction from
-intoxication caused by too much drink, indulged in afterward,
-had darkened his vision and sharpened his
-acerbity. When he awoke and sat up on his silk-covered
-couch, he felt the need of immediate refreshment. He
-jerked a cord hanging conveniently at hand, and a bell
-jangled in an adjoining hall. Instantly two servants
-appeared, slipping in between the heavy folds of a curtain
-at the doorway, and prostrated themselves before
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Rise up, dogs! Bring me soma!” he roared.</p>
-
-<p>Swiftly and noiselessly as fleeting shadows they arose
-and disappeared. In a moment the King’s cup-bearer
-appeared with a golden goblet in hand, followed by the
-servants bearing a vessel of milky, fiery liquid. The
-cup-bearer bowed low, the servants set down the jar and
-were about to prostrate themselves again, when Cambyses
-cried impatiently, “Omit salutations and pour!”</p>
-
-<p>The potent fluid sparkled as it flowed into the goblet
-from the vessel. Twice was the goblet filled and twice
-did he drain it. “Begone!” he then commanded.
-“Send the bath hither!”</p>
-
-<p>Cup-bearer and servants withdrew, walking backward.
-A moment later the servants came in again, bearing a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[102]</span>
-large tub of water. With their assistance the King proceeded
-to bathe. Unfortunately for one, he dropped a
-towel and received a buffet from the King’s fist that
-caused him to reel.</p>
-
-<p>“Have care!” roared Cambyses. “To the guard-house
-you go to-day and thence to the kitchen as scullion!”</p>
-
-<p>The man prostrated himself and prayed for pardon.
-Royalty made no sign and he withdrew. Another came
-to take his place. After the bath, the King’s hair was
-combed, curled, and perfumed. The royal barber
-trimmed his whiskers deftly and carefully waxed them.
-Then he was arrayed in fine linen and purple. His
-breakfast was brought into the room, and he sat down
-to eat. He then sent a page to summon Prexaspes. The
-latter, elegantly dressed and well groomed as usual, soon
-appeared and, bending till his hands touched the floor,
-saluted.</p>
-
-<p>“May the King live forever!”</p>
-
-<p>In obedience to a wave of the King’s hand, the servants
-disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>“See that none stand near the door! Let the guard
-move away to the outer room!” commanded the King.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes saw that the orders were obeyed. Then,
-resuming his deferential attitude before his royal master,
-with bowed head, eyes to the floor, and hands crossed
-before him, he awaited the royal pleasure. The King,
-having eaten in silence some minutes, pushed away the
-remainder of the food.</p>
-
-<p>“Prexaspes,” he said truculently, “I know you! I
-know you are faithful to me because you hope to win
-power and not because you love me. So be it! Royal
-place you cannot have owing to the accident of birth, but
-royal power you may win if you will. Are you ready
-to carry out all my wishes or must I seek another?”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[103]</span>He paused. Prexaspes raised his eyes and noted his
-master’s expression.</p>
-
-<p>“Royal master,” he said quietly, “you read men with
-the eye of God! It is true I love power and riches and I
-know that both may be given me by you and none other.
-I am your slave to command.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well said! I, who am descended from Jemshid
-and Kaiomurs, from Achæmenius and Cyrus, am able
-to make you great. Just as there may be one God in
-heaven, so I am the one God on earth. There is but one
-family fitted to rule the earth and that is mine. Is it not
-so?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Since it is so, is not the will of the Great King of the
-Persians and Medes and of the whole world above the
-laws of this empire?”</p>
-
-<p>“The King’s word is law.”</p>
-
-<p>“If, then, the Great King command you to do an act,
-that act, even if it be the taking of life contrary to Persian
-law, becomes lawful. Is it not so?”</p>
-
-<p>For an instant Prexaspes clasped his fingers together
-nervously.</p>
-
-<p>“It might be lawful, O King,” he answered slowly.
-“But though your power is great, there are in this land
-of Persia great nobles who claim great rights and
-powers, and who would maintain that Persian law must
-not be broken even by the Great King. I know the
-great wisdom and the courage of the King; but if I may
-be permitted to speak, I would give the advice of one
-who has studied these matters deeply.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know!” exclaimed the King, impatiently. “I saw
-the dour faces of the nobles and the hostility of the people.
-My father unreasonably inflicted punishments upon
-me and my friends, and knowledge thereof has soured<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[104]</span>
-the minds of all toward me. That cursed Bardya, who
-supplanted me in my father’s love, yet lives! I would
-sooner trust Darius Hystaspis than those nobles; and he
-loves me not!”</p>
-
-<p>“It is true the Prince of Iran loves you not. But he
-is loyal. My only fear is that if Bardya should—should
-be slain by your order, the nobles would attack even you,
-and by their vast power among the Persian people they
-might overthrow you and place the King of Iran on the
-throne.”</p>
-
-<p>The King arose from the table and paced back and
-forth, grinding his teeth in wrath. He realized the
-truth of Prexaspes’ words.</p>
-
-<p>“There can be but one King on earth!” he exclaimed.
-“That King must be Cambyses. Bardya must die! As
-for Darius Hystaspis, I would order him to death, did I
-not believe his father would head a revolt in Iran such
-as I care not to meet. But I hate him! What then do
-you advise?”</p>
-
-<p>“As to Bardya, I advise that he be put away secretly,
-if he must die. Let it be reported that he has returned
-to Bactra or that the King has given him a secluded residence
-in Medea, where he chose to retire for meditation.
-A stout person might—”</p>
-
-<p>“No!” roared the King. “I have said he shall die!
-But let it be secretly done. Do it yourself and I will
-make you chief counselor of state forever, second only
-to myself!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes drew in his breath sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“The King hath spoken!” he answered slowly. “I
-myself will slay the young man. Let the King’s word
-stand and not be withdrawn.”</p>
-
-<p>“It shall stand!” the King assured him, taking a seal
-ring from his finger. “Take this in token of the King’s
-word.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[105]</span>Prexaspes bowed low and took the glittering band.</p>
-
-<p>“Now as to this Prince of Iran and his seditious
-Guard, what of them?” demanded the King.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes hesitated a moment before he answered.
-“The Prince may be dealt with in two ways. Possibly
-the King may not have heard that he has dared to raise
-his eyes to Athura, the King’s most beautiful sister; and
-it is reported that she regards him with great favor.
-And your father promised her to him. Now it might be
-that if she be given him in marriage at once, it would
-bind him more firmly to support your rule, and—”</p>
-
-<p>“Never!” cried the King, smiting his hands together.
-“Let them marry? Why, that would indeed be showing
-him favor! That would be placing him on the
-throne! For I have no children; and if Bardya die, who
-remains? Athura would be queen, and he would be
-King. Never! I hate him as bitterly as I do Bardya.
-I hate Athura, the haughty favorite of my father, ever
-preaching good deeds and well-doing to me!”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I advise that he be given a command in a distant
-province. It is rumored that the Lydians are restless
-and that the tribes on the northern borders thereof
-are making forays. Send him and the old Guard
-thither. Mayhap a dart shall find him. At least he will
-be far from these Persians. His oath will keep him
-faithful. Let a decree be made praising him for faithful
-service and elevating him to the honor of a satrapy where
-war will keep him busy.”</p>
-
-<p>The King laughed, a cruel, mirthless laugh, as he
-assented. “The advice is good! So be it. Bardya
-shall disappear to meditate—beyond the stars! Darius
-and Athura shall love each other, verily, but separated
-by two hundred parasangs! See to it! Prepare
-proper decrees. And Prexaspes—it is in my mind to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[106]</span>
-occupy these warlike peoples in a war of conquest, even
-as did my father. We will prove that we too know how
-to conquer! There is Egypt still independent and very
-rich and powerful. We must have tribute to live in
-state as becomes the ruler of the world. Amasis claims
-to be equal to Cambyses—he shall bite the dust!
-After him, the Hellenes shall feel my power beyond the
-sea. Go, Prexaspes! It shall be yours to estimate the
-necessary revenues and to prepare the means to feed an
-army of five hundred thousand men who will march with
-me to Egypt. But, first, see to it that no brother remains
-behind to rouse up rebellion!”</p>
-
-<p>“It shall be as you order. The King is very wise.
-War with Egypt will occupy the minds of the Persian
-nobles and will enable us to levy taxes on all the nations
-for the King’s treasury.”</p>
-
-<p>“Be not in too great haste with this war,” continued
-Cambyses. “There is much to do; and life is very enjoyable
-in fall at Susa, in winter at Babylon, and in
-spring at Hamadan.”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes bowed low and withdrew.</p>
-
-<p>Later that day, the King sat in state on the throne in
-the great central hall of the palace and received the
-nobles of Persia and Medea and the officers of his court.
-Prexaspes stood at his right hand. Embassies from distant
-realms, visitors from foreign lands, and deputations
-from divers cities came to wait upon the Great
-King before returning to their various places. All petitioners,
-in accordance with the new etiquette, prostrated
-themselves before the King and so remained until bidden
-to arise. But the nobles of Iran, though they bowed
-low before him with hands on their breasts, did not bend
-the knee or prostrate themselves. The King greeted
-them coldly, resolving within himself that he would some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[107]</span>
-day humble them till they also should prostrate themselves
-at his feet and feel his foot on their necks.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran, tall, stately, richly but plainly
-appareled, came also. He was cordial in his greeting of
-the King, as became a blood-relative, but beneath the
-folds of his Medean cloak a light chain armor guarded
-his body from dagger-thrusts, even as his cordial manner
-concealed the distrust he felt towards Cambyses.
-To him Prexaspes made low obeisance. The nobles of
-Persia also bowed low before him with profound respect.
-The King became very gracious and smiled upon
-him as he approached. He arose from his throne and
-gave the Prince his royal hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Cousin Darius,” he said, “it pleases me very greatly
-to have you here! I have disturbing news from the
-satrapy of our old friend Crœsus. It is said that discontent
-and revolt arise there and that bands of Scythians
-trouble its northern borders. I have been considering
-deeply what reward would be sufficient for one who
-brought the body of the Great King, my father, to its
-tomb. I have determined to appoint you satrap of all
-our empire beyond the Euphrates. In order that you
-may be well supported, I have prepared a decree that
-you may take with you the old Imperial Guard of my
-father to become the nucleus of the army which shall,
-under your command, uphold our empire there. I contemplate
-no less a conquest than that of Egypt at some
-convenient time; and it shall be your duty to levy additional
-soldiers among the people of your provinces for
-that war. When I march by Damascus and Tyre, you
-shall join me there with a well-disciplined army and you
-shall have chief command under me.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince listened in amazement. Except Babylon,
-the western provinces were the richest and most important<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[108]</span>
-of the conquered provinces in the empire.
-Knowing the King’s ancient hatred towards him, he was
-at a loss to understand why this great honor was given
-him. From the keen, beadlike stare of the King’s dark
-eyes he turned inquiringly to Prexaspes, who averted
-his face. He was silent a moment, seeking to penetrate
-the King’s design. It must be that, as King, Cambyses
-was not following the footsteps of Cambyses, the
-Prince.</p>
-
-<p>“The Great King’s commands will be obeyed,” he answered
-presently. “I thank you for the honor so little
-deserved. But I had somewhat in my heart to ask the
-King, should I be permitted to speak.”</p>
-
-<p>“Say on!” said the King, the expression of his face
-denoting apprehension.</p>
-
-<p>“When your sire, the ever victorious Cyrus, was about
-to die, he gave me his consent and promise that I should
-marry the Princess Athura if she were willing. This
-was a special mark of his favor. I now ask of you,
-Great King, that which he promised and which you, as
-the head of your father’s family, may grant—the hand
-of the King’s sister in marriage.”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses was astonished at the boldness of the
-Prince. His face instantly flushed with wrath. He was
-about to exclaim violently, when he observed the gaze
-of Prexaspes turned upon him warningly and remembered
-that it was his part to dissemble. He resumed
-his seat on the throne. Constraining his anger, he said,
-speaking rapidly and in some confusion:</p>
-
-<p>“This is a matter to which thought must be given.
-The time is not right. The matters demanding attention
-in your satrapy are urgent. I wish you to make ready
-and depart within ten days. I must have a Prince of
-the Empire in that part of my dominions. Your subjects<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[109]</span>
-are a warlike people who need a firm hand. As to
-my sister, I will talk with her. It would not be meet
-that the marriage take place before you go or until the
-days of mourning for her father elapse. The urgency
-of the case will not admit at this time of any delay, lest
-those Lydians and Scythians rise in open rebellion. I
-see no obstacle in the way of such marriage; but later
-I will consider it. Some months’ active campaigning
-may be your lot when no thoughts could be given to marriage.
-Prepare to march without delay and to put down
-the King’s enemies with a strong hand. If the hand of
-my sister in marriage be a prize to be sought after by
-you, faithful service to my interests may be thus rewarded.
-Here is my decree appointing you to your
-office. Rest assured that if my sister wills to be your
-wife, she shall be given by me to no other man.”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes drew from his belt a roll of papyrus and
-presented it to the King, who handed it to the Prince.
-The latter took it, bowed low, and, turning on his heel,
-departed without further word. After he had disappeared
-the King turned to Prexaspes.</p>
-
-<p>“What think you?” he asked. “Does it please him?
-And what will he do?”</p>
-
-<p>“It pleases him not, but he will obey.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran passed out of the King’s presence
-deeply troubled. Was the King seeking to honor him
-and beginning to reign in a truly kinglike manner? Or
-was he seeking to be rid of him and his favorite troops?
-Mounting a horse at the gate of the palace park, where
-his faithful groom, Orobates, awaited him, he rode
-directly to the old palace where Bardya and his sisters
-were residing. There he dismounted and was quickly
-ushered into the presence of Princess Athura. He
-found her sitting upon a divan in the inner court, playing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[110]</span>
-on a harp and softly singing to its accompaniment.
-Several young women companions had left the room
-when the servants announced the coming of the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>“Greeting and welcome!” she said smilingly, as the
-young man bowed low before her. She put aside the
-harp and arose. “Be seated, illustrious Prince, at my
-right hand!” He kissed the hands extended to him,
-and both sat down on the divan.</p>
-
-<p>At once noting the serious expression of his countenance,
-the Princess asked, “What so serious as to cause
-frowns and wrinkles?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have stood before the King as I said I would and
-asked that he consent to our marriage,” he answered.
-“Instead of consenting, he does me the honor to appoint
-me governor of Lydia and command me to depart forthwith,
-saying there is urgent need and that I must take
-with me the Guard.”</p>
-
-<p>“What? Another war? And must you go?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is the King’s command! It is not an honor that
-he is giving me. It is his desire to place me among those
-who know me not! Foolish King! He will find none
-less likely to rebel than I. It is not in his mind to consent
-to our marriage. He made no promise. He said
-he would think of it and speak with you.”</p>
-
-<p>“But he shall consent!” exclaimed Athura, warmly.
-“If not, then will I go with you and marry you without
-his consent. He shall never control me or send me
-where I do not choose to go!”</p>
-
-<p>“My soul rejoices to hear you say this!” said the
-Prince, drawing her close to him with encircling arm.
-“But we must have patience. He is King. He is the
-head of your family. Should we marry without his consent,
-he might deem it such insult to his majesty as to
-lead him to immediate violence. I fear that I may some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[111]</span>
-day be compelled to forget my sacred oath to his father.
-Let us exercise patience, light of mine eyes, hope of my
-soul!”</p>
-
-<p>Her regal head rested on his strong shoulder. She
-touched lightly with her fingers the dark locks of hair
-that graced his brow. Presently, as she remained silent,
-he continued:</p>
-
-<p>“He may consent that you come to me. What happiness
-would be mine! But you—it would mean a
-foreign land, and possibly dwelling in the midst of
-war.”</p>
-
-<p>“Am I not my father’s daughter? Am I afraid of
-war? It would be joy to go with you, to see new lands,
-new peoples, to be a queen where you would be virtually
-king, to ride a horse in battle! I will wait for you
-to come or to send for me. No other man, be he King
-or noble, shall I ever marry. If not you, none other!”</p>
-
-<p>“Nor shall I have any other queen than you, beloved
-of my soul! Let us not despair. I will speak to the
-Persian nobles if he does not presently consent. Their
-influence and my father’s may force his consent. If danger
-threaten you, fly to my mother. She will protect you
-even against Cambyses.”</p>
-
-<p>Further converse was interrupted by the sound of footsteps
-approaching from the outer hallway and the immediate
-appearance of Prince Bardya at the door. He
-had evidently just come from a ride, as his clothes and
-whip indicated. His handsome, flushed countenance indicated
-rapid riding through the wind. He smiled, as his
-sister and the Prince arose in embarrassed silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Pardon my intrusion, beloved sister and brother!”
-he begged. “I have had a wonderful gallop over the
-hills towards Lake Baktigan, and some rough climbing.
-Have you seen the other King this day?”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[112]</span>The Prince of Iran briefly related his visit to the King
-and its result. Bardya nervously slapped the riding whip
-against his boots and a frown gathered on his brow as he
-listened.</p>
-
-<p>“His object is plain!” he exclaimed, as the Prince
-ceased speaking. “He sends you to a distant place that
-you may not be near me, a very shrewd trick! He will
-never allow you to marry Athura because he hates you
-both. But let us defy him! My sister shall go with me.
-Then you may come, Prince, and marry her! We shall
-defy him. We shall acknowledge him as overlord, according
-to my father’s will; but not a foot shall he set
-on our lands—neither he nor any servants of his!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran was disturbed at Bardya’s words.
-It was evident that the latter intended to declare his independence
-as soon as possible and that war would ensue.
-What would be his own duty then? His oath would align
-him with Cambyses; his heart would drive him to Bardya.</p>
-
-<p>“Great Prince,” he answered, “I know you love me as
-a friend and so I make bold to speak a warning. Do not
-utter such thoughts aloud any more. Ears may hear and
-tongues may carry to the King’s ears. Then he would
-surely have you arrested and slain. I counsel prudence
-and extreme watchfulness. Return as soon as possible
-to Bactra. I long to go with you. But I must obey his
-decree or be placed in the position of rebelling. I go as
-ordered. After the war is finished (if I find it necessary
-to make war), I will demand Athura. If he refuse consent,
-I will leave his service and enter yours, but never as
-against him. But I do not think he will dare deny my
-suit. Am I not an Achæmenian, and is there any of
-higher birth?”</p>
-
-<p>“I will heed your advice,” replied Bardya. “You<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[113]</span>
-were ever wise and far-seeing. I will be silent and
-watchful. The guards you gave me ride with me always.
-One sleeps at my bedroom door, and the others guard
-the palace doors and grounds. But if you march hence
-in ten days, it behooves me to seek others.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will furnish them from the faithful retainers on
-my father’s estate. But I advise immediate return to
-Bactra, even if it must be by flight in the night. I am
-greatly troubled for your safety.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya laughed. “You are needlessly alarmed,” he
-asserted. “But on the morrow I will announce to the
-King my purpose of returning forthwith.”</p>
-
-<p>At this moment there came a knock at the door and a
-servant appeared. “A messenger stands at the door,” he
-announced.</p>
-
-<p>“Admit him!” commanded Bardya.</p>
-
-<p>A man in the King’s livery entered, and bowing almost
-to the floor before royalty, presented a folded bit of papyrus
-to Bardya. The latter took it, unfolded it, and
-read. He then ordered the messenger to retire, and after
-he had disappeared he read aloud:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“‘Cambyses, the King of Kings, King of the World, to
-his Brother, Bardya, and to his Sisters, Athura and Artistone,
-greeting:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Know that I propose to remain here two weeks
-longer and will then return to Hamadan. It is my will
-that you make ready to accompany me to that city in
-order that my court may be graced by your presence and
-that the people may know that we are of good-will towards
-you. Later my brother may depart thence to
-his provinces. Farewell.</p>
-
-<p class="right">“‘<span class="smcap">Cambyses.</span>’”</p>
-</div>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[114]</span>“My brother is beginning to rule us very soon!” exclaimed
-Athura, indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“He shall not order me!” exclaimed Bardya, fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>“He is King!” warned the Prince of Iran. “Hamadan
-is many parasangs nearer Bactra than this city. It is
-also nearer Lydia. I counsel obedience. It will be
-easier to escape from Hamadan than from Pasargadæ,
-if escape you must; and a week’s journey will then bring
-you into your own realm. Besides, it may be, the King
-is earnestly desirous of showing good-will.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good-will!” rejoined Bardya. “The King speaks
-of my ‘provinces,’ as if I were a mere satrap! It seems
-to me that I should be first consulted in such matters.
-It is in my mind to return to him a message that I choose
-to remain here for a time and then to return direct to
-Bactra.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya strode back and forth across the room wrathfully.
-He threw the King’s message on the floor and
-trampled upon it. The Prince of Iran watched him in
-gloomy silence. Athura went to her brother and placing
-her hand on his shoulders made him halt and look down
-into her clear, steady eyes. More than once she had
-calmed the anger of her impetuous younger brother
-thus.</p>
-
-<p>“Brother, listen to me!” she said imploringly.
-“Listen to the Prince of Iran, if not to me! We are
-older than you, and you have never found us unfaithful
-to your interests. Cambyses is King of Kings, King of
-the World, by right of birth and by your father’s last
-decree. He speaks fairly to you. It is right that we
-visit him at his court in Hamadan and render him the
-honor due to him. You are here in his power. You
-should never have come hither at all. Wisdom dictates
-that you go to Hamadan, in all brotherly kindness. Then<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[115]</span>
-should he show an evil disposition, it will be much easier
-to escape to Bactra. At all events, brother, be not first
-to bring on war. Only in a just cause will the Aryans
-follow you.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya was impressed. He kissed her forehead. “I
-will do as you advise,” he replied. “I am crippled by
-that oath our father exacted of the King of Iran and of
-our Prince here. Without their aid, it would be wild,
-foolish, and impossible to begin war. I feel that should
-I begin the war, even they would oppose me with the
-armies of Iran. I am no better than a caged tiger.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran looked upon his young friend
-sorrowfully. “My father and I have sworn!” he said.
-“How can our words return to us? We are bound to
-support Cambyses as King of Kings. No less are we
-bound to aid you if oppressed by him. We will not
-fail you. Should he seek to detain you, we shall demand
-your release, even at the head of an army. What can
-you ask more? That we be oath-breakers?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I ask it not! I will be guided by your advice.”</p>
-
-<p>Having thus decided, the three composed a message
-from Bardya to the King, notifying him that it would
-please Bardya to visit Hamadan on his way to Bactra and
-be his guest for some days. The Prince of Iran then
-took his departure and went to the camp of the Imperial
-Guard. After detailing a strong company to guard the
-palace wherein slept his beloved, he called a council of
-all his chief captains and read to them the King’s decree
-directing him and the Guard to march into Western
-Asia. The captains were delighted. The common soldiers,
-when they heard the news next day, broke forth
-in a pandemonium of jubilation. To march into the
-rich country of rich old Crœsus with their beloved Prince,
-to gain renown and wealth, though by hard knocks,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[116]</span>
-under such a leader—what more could a stout warrior
-ask? So they all rejoiced and one and all agreed that
-King Cambyses was a wise King. But their Prince and
-Commander was silent and sorrowful.</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses announced, two days later, that it pleased
-him to accept the invitation of the Prince of Iran to
-hunt royal game on his estates in the jungles surrounding
-Lake Baktigan. This lake is a brackish body of
-water lying in the bottom of a long, narrow valley between
-low mountains, a day’s journey south of Persepolis.
-It is shallow in summer and fall, but in spring, after the
-winter rains, fed by the floods of the Araxes and several
-mountain torrents, it rises to respectable dimensions,
-and is then about sixty miles long by five wide. Reeds,
-grass, shrubs, and stunted trees cover its shores. On
-the hills near is some heavy timber. Little known to the
-modern traveler, yet, in the ancient days, it was a resort
-of royal hunters who dared to seek the lion and the tiger
-in their lairs. It was a part of the estates of the King
-of Iran. The Prince, as was the custom, had invited
-the King of Kings to make free use of all his father’s
-property. But he was surprised when Cambyses indicated
-that he would hunt. Prexaspes had advised his
-royal master to accept because it would please the Persian
-nobility. Cambyses also desired to show himself
-a mighty hunter, as had all his ancestry, and this influenced
-him to dissemble his true feeling towards the
-Prince and to accept his invitation. Prince Bardya and
-the great lords of Persia were invited to attend. It
-fell upon the Prince of Iran as host to provide transportation,
-victuals, equipage, and beaters; and right
-royally did he provide.</p>
-
-<p>It was an imposing expedition that marched down the
-swift Araxes to the jungles of Lake Baktigan. First,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[117]</span>
-on a big horse, rode a magnificently attired master of
-the hunt, glittering in gold and silver and gorgeous
-in crimson uniform. Then followed several hundred
-skilled hunters, wardens of the estate whose duty it
-was to furnish the table of King Hystaspis with game
-and to guard his preserves against common robbers and
-poachers. They were arrayed in distinctive uniform
-and were mounted on wiry animals used to hill-climbing
-and hunting. With them was a pack of hounds. Then
-rode King Cambyses, on a beautiful white stallion, and
-looking right royal in his close-fitting tunic, his leather
-riding-breeches, red shoes, and round felt cap in which
-were stuck several black eagle feathers. A stout armor-bearer
-rode next with the King’s short sword, a buckler,
-a stout bow, and a quiver full of arrows. Another
-servant carried javelins and a heavy spear. At the
-King’s left and half a horse behind rode Prexaspes
-similarly arrayed. Behind them rode the Prince of
-Iran, Prince Bardya, and a hundred or more notables.
-Many pack-animals and servants followed with the impedimenta.</p>
-
-<p>They camped in a dense forest at the northern end
-of the lake, where the Araxes poured in its flood of fresh
-water. Next day the hunt began. The chief huntsman
-built a low platform in the branches of a live-oak
-which stood at the crossing of several jungle paths
-about a mile below the camp. The King and his armor-bearers
-took station on this, while the nobles and retainers
-formed in line at some distance to the rear in
-order to turn the game should it pass him. Cambyses
-was a great archer. It was his daily custom to practice
-shooting with the heavy Persian bow. He boasted that
-no man in Iran could excel him. None ever did excel
-in his presence, it being convenient to miss and stand<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[118]</span>
-lower in the scores than his Royal Highness. It is
-related that the King was accustomed to shoot apples
-from the heads or hands of boys, an example possibly
-followed by William Tell of later fame. The King
-later attempted this feat with the son of Prexaspes and
-slew the son.</p>
-
-<p>The huntsmen went to a point several miles down the
-lake, and, having formed a long line with one end resting
-on the shore and the other far out on the hills, marched
-with shouts, horn-blowing, and drum-beating northward
-and drove the savage denizens of the wilderness towards
-the King. The latter acquitted himself very well. Deer
-and antelope fell before his arrows. Jackals, snapping
-at the shafts which pierced their vitals, tumbled about and
-died. The King roared with savage laughter as the
-stricken animals leaped to their death. A wild boar was
-smitten, but, gnashing his teeth in rage and pain, he
-turned upon the beaters desperately and gashed one
-severely with his tusks. Animals which escaped the
-King ran the gantlet of weapons in the hands of the
-nobles. The slaughter was great. Two lions were
-aroused, but they broke through the line of beaters and
-escaped. That night all feasted on the King’s meat and
-praised his skill.</p>
-
-<p>On the next day Cambyses decided to hunt on foot,
-following the hunters with hounds through the jungle
-paths. His nobles followed to witness his feats of arms.
-Hunters and beaters formed a long semicircular line
-with the wings thrust forward, one along the margin of
-the lake, and the other along a ridge running parallel
-thereto. The King was at the middle of the line with
-the chief hunter. The Prince of Iran, Prince Bardya,
-and several of the nobles followed closely after him.</p>
-
-<p>Several smaller animals soon fell before the King’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[119]</span>
-archery, but he fretted because no lion or tiger appeared.
-He ordered the hounds unloosed. They sprang away
-into the jungle, and almost immediately terrific roars announced
-the presence of lions. A female and a young
-lion appeared, dashing towards the hills, the mother
-turning now and again to leap at the snarling pack baying
-at her heels. The King loosed an arrow at her, but
-it fell short. He was about to pursue, when a more
-thunderous roar close by warned him of the proximity
-of another royal beast. An instant later, a black-maned
-male lion appeared in an open space twenty paces distant,
-lashing his tail and emitting breathy coughs of rage.
-The animal paused but an instant, crouching low, then
-leaped towards the King with gigantic bounds. The
-King drew an arrow to its head and launched it. It
-smote the lion in the shoulder, but missed a vital point.
-Cries of terror arose from the attendants, and the armor-bearer
-of the King sought to interpose his buckler between
-the beast and his master. But master and man
-went down in a heap under the impact of the lion’s
-heavy body. Then the Persian nobles gallantly hastened
-to the rescue. The Prince of Iran dashed forward with
-a heavy spear and thrust the sharp blade into the red
-mouth of the lion as it sprang to meet him. It reared
-up on hind legs, battling with the heavy spear. Prince
-Bardya then shot an arrow into the beast’s side with
-such force that the barb passed through its body. Its
-heart was transfixed; the great beast gasped, fell over,
-and died.</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses was not severely injured, but was much
-chagrined. He had missed a fair shot, been ignobly
-thrown down, and saved by those he hated. He gave
-short thanks to his saviors and berated his armor-bearer
-for not interposing more effectually. He hunted no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[120]</span>
-more after that on foot in the jungle, but he succeeded
-in slaying two lions from the safety of a platform
-erected in a tree.</p>
-
-<p>The hunt thus having proved a success, the King returned
-to Pasargadæ.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[121]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER IX<br />
-
-
-<small>THE DEEPER THINGS</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE Prince of Iran, about to depart on the King’s
-business, knelt before his mother to receive her
-final blessing. The stately dame allowed no tear to dim
-her eye and no tremor to weaken her voice during this
-ceremony.</p>
-
-<p>“Go, my son, with my love and faith in you,” she
-said. “But remember your royal birth. Should your
-sire die, you will be head of the royal family in Iran;
-and by reason of your descent from an elder brother,
-you will be entitled to overlord even Cambyses. Your
-father has been content to be second to Cyrus, but I
-shall yet behold you crowned King of Kings!”</p>
-
-<p>“Not while Bardya and his brother, the Great King,
-live, mother!” replied the Prince, arising from his knee.
-“But I shall remember your words.”</p>
-
-<p>She bowed low before him, as to a superior. “Son,
-I salute you, King that is to be!” she said, smiling.</p>
-
-<p>Troubled in spirit, he kissed her cheek and turned
-away.</p>
-
-<p>The mother watched her son until he disappeared
-among the trees of the park. Then, throwing a veil
-over her head and face, she went to the seclusion of her
-bedchamber, there to weep the bitter tears of grief she
-would not let the world see. The Prince hastened to
-the stone bridge where Bardya and Athura, who had
-preceded him, were waiting to utter their farewells.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[122]</span>Bardya kissed his friend’s cheeks, embraced him tenderly,
-then mounted a horse and rode away to the city.
-Athura and the Prince lingered on the bridge awhile,
-loath to part. The perfume of flowers filled the air,
-as the sun kissed away the dewdrops from their petals.
-The voices of birds and the ripple of water formed an
-orchestra attuned to the songs of love.</p>
-
-<p>“When I am permitted to return to this paradise, I
-will build there, by the side of my father’s palace, another
-twice as large and adorned with greater splendor,” he
-said, as they were about to separate. “There shall you
-dwell as becomes the Queen of the Aryans and the
-ruler of my soul.”</p>
-
-<p>“May your mother’s prophecy come true, beloved!”
-she replied. “I shall count the days till your return,
-or until I go to you. Send for me quickly and I will
-come. That brother of mine, who calls himself King of
-Kings, shall not prevent me. Listen! Should I send to
-you, asking aid, will you come, even though in disobedience
-to his orders?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes! Did not Cyrus at the same time he exacted
-my oath also promise you to me? But Cambyses will
-not dare refuse you or insult me by long refusing his
-consent to our marriage.”</p>
-
-<p>“His hatred toward us may overrule his reason.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then he shall listen to force! I will send a letter
-to him as soon as my government is placed in order, demanding
-that he send you to me. He will then have no
-excuse.”</p>
-
-<p>“Send quickly then, for I fear trouble!” Tears filled
-her dark eyes as she spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Should he trouble you, go to my father!” he said
-reassuringly. “He will call in the seven great nobles
-of Persia to your aid. Even Cambyses will fear them.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[123]</span>What else was said need not be recorded. Love, in
-these great ones of earth, produced the same sighs, the
-same halting words, the repetition of promises, assurances,
-and pledges, the same beaming eyes and fluttering
-hearts, as it ever has in all who have loved, be they
-high or low, known or unknown, sung or unsung. They
-parted, he to join the waiting Imperial Guard, now to
-be known as the Prince of Iran’s Guard, and she to
-return to his mother.</p>
-
-<p>Having marched rapidly to Susa, the Prince and his
-army encamped in a plain near that city. The satrap
-of Susa was ordered to procure supplies and a caravan
-for his long westward march. The camp lay on the south
-bank of the swift Choaspes, in a park set apart for the
-King’s use. Here were many palms and plane trees.
-The Prince’s tent was erected beneath the spreading
-branches of trees on the margin of the river, where in
-soldierly simplicity he received the visit of the satrap.</p>
-
-<p>On the evening of the second day after his arrival at
-this camp, the Prince, as was his custom, went out for
-a walk. The dark peaks of the Zagros range in the
-east lay bathed in the last soft rays of the sun. Shadows
-were falling in the glades and upon the river. With
-bent head and hands clasped behind him, he took little
-note of his surroundings, until at the end of half an
-hour he was met by a man, who seemed also absorbed
-in meditation. This man was tall and graceful. His
-body was clad in a long cloak, a plain but fine Babylonish
-garment, and on his head he wore a round, black
-Persian cap. His feet were shod with sandals. A full,
-dark beard, streaked with gray, adorned his face. His
-eagle-like countenance was strong and placid. Large
-dark eyes glowed with intelligence from beneath his
-heavy brows.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[124]</span>The Prince whose eyes were bent on the earth, was
-startled from his reverie by a deep, musical voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Hail, Prince of Iran!”</p>
-
-<p>Involuntarily he grasped the hilt of a dagger in his
-belt and gazed doubtfully a moment upon the speaker.
-Then with a glad cry, he hastened forward and bending
-low, exclaimed: “Hail, Belteshazzer, prophet of God!
-I did not expect to meet you here! I rejoice exceedingly!
-I pray your blessing!”</p>
-
-<p>“May the Lord of all the earth bless you, my son!”
-said Belteshazzer, solemnly, laying his hand upon the
-Prince’s bowed head. “It is a great pleasure to behold
-you again after so many months. Tell me how you
-come here. Is that your army yonder? I have been
-away several days in the mountains whither I go to
-study, and I am now returning to the city.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince stood before the prophet reverently, as
-one stands before a loved teacher.</p>
-
-<p>“My guard is encamped yonder,” he answered, indicating
-his camp. “We march upon the Great King’s
-business to the lands beyond the Euphrates, where, it
-is said, I shall find the people in rebellion. The King
-has seen fit to honor me with the government of the
-western provinces.”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer smiled. Knowing well the political
-affairs of the empire from his long experience as adviser
-to the late King and as governor of several provinces,
-also knowing Cambyses and his dislike for the Prince,
-he perceived the pretext which the King had used to
-send the Prince far away from Iran.</p>
-
-<p>“I had not heard of any serious disturbances in those
-provinces,” he said. “It is true that some wild, turbulent
-bands infest the outlying mountains on the northeast;
-but the provinces have been happy under the rule of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[125]</span>
-Cyrus and have not suffered at the hands of Cambyses.
-Perhaps the Great King deems it wise to scatter the
-veterans of Cyrus to distant provinces!”</p>
-
-<p>“That may be,” assented the Prince. “But you,
-Teacher, why here? The governor of Medea should
-not be in Elam.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am no longer governor of Medea. The Great
-King has deprived me of that office. I am no longer
-an adviser to the King. I am going to Babylon to
-resume my duties in the college of wise men, to spend
-my time in the study of ancient records and to observe
-the changing heavens, until such time as the God of
-heaven and earth shall order otherwise.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come with me!” exclaimed the Prince, impulsively.
-“I shall profit by your knowledge and experience. You
-shall have the chief place in my satrapy.”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“No, it would not be best. The Great King is very
-jealous. He is scattering the men who surrounded
-Cyrus and is building up a circle of his own. His
-command was laid on me to proceed to Babylon, there
-to reside with the college of priests. But fear not,
-Prince! We shall come again in due time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is this a prophecy?” inquired the Prince, his countenance
-alight with eagerness. “Ah, Belteshazzer! how
-I have longed to obtain that power you have,—the
-power to look into the future, to listen to the voice of
-Shraosha and to tell that which will be! Come with me
-to my tent and take refreshments. You shall stay with
-me at least until I march on to my provinces. I will
-consult God through you. My heart is very heavy.
-Upon my soul is an oath that galls me; and I fear for
-my friends and for the Aryan people under this King.
-After you are refreshed, it may be you will consult the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[126]</span>
-messengers of God and tell me the right course of
-action.”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer looked upon the young man with sympathy.
-Gifted beyond all living men with the power
-to read souls in their nakedness, he saw here a strong,
-upright spirit of good intent, in whom truth held sway,
-whose mind was large enough to grapple with and solve
-the problems of earth, a leader among men; and he
-loved the youth. He did not answer immediately, but
-looked into the eyes of the Prince earnestly as if reading
-his thoughts. The Prince could not drop his gaze. Belteshazzer
-presently looked away to the west, where the
-last glow of the sunset still reddened the sky, and he
-sighed deeply. Then his eyes swept slowly around the
-horizon, resting an instant on the towers of the distant
-city and then upon the tents of the army. The river’s
-low murmur came up from the darkening vale mingled
-with whisper of leaves moved by the breeze.</p>
-
-<p>“I know, my son,” he said after a moment’s silence,
-“that you have given an oath which may not be broken.
-I read the thoughts that recur, tempting you to break it.
-I read your heart and the love in it for the sister of the
-King, and the brotherly love you hold towards the
-brother of the King. I know that in the King’s mind
-is a fierce hatred towards you and a foul intent to make
-away with his brother; and that he is even now plotting
-against him. I know that dark and bloody days are
-impending; but the God of Spirits has guards around
-you, and as long as you walk after the good intent in
-your heart, you will triumph over all dangers and you
-will come at length to a higher estate. More than this
-I do not know.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince bowed his head reverently before the
-speaker. In the presence of this man he was humble,—this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[127]</span>
-man about whom wondrous stories had been told:
-of his great wisdom; of his power over the spirits of
-men; of the prophecies he had uttered; of the handwriting
-on the wall at the close of Belshazzar’s feast, when
-the great Cyrus was entering the inner city of Babylon
-by the river-bed and seizing it while the people feasted;
-of his immunity from fire and from the wrath of wild
-beasts, which, it was said, were his friends, no matter
-how savage; and of his steadfastness in the worship of
-his God.</p>
-
-<p>“O Prince of God!” he exclaimed as the prophet
-ceased speaking, “I would give all that I have to hold
-communion with the unseen powers as you do! I have
-read the teachings of the great master, Zoroaster, and
-I have listened to the wise men who have studied all that
-is to be known; but, when I stand before you and listen
-to your words, my soul sinks, and I wonder if I worship
-the true God, or whether there are two gods, yours and
-mine, or more; or whether Ahura-Mazda is but an idea.
-I wish that I might sit again at your feet and learn the
-whole truth!”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer looked upon the young man, with love
-and admiration expressed in his large, deep eyes. His
-voice when he again spoke, was full of sympathy and
-fatherly kindness. “Son, there is not much to learn,
-save this: that God, the Supreme Ruler of all, is one
-God; that He manifests His power by His Spirit and by
-His messengers; that He is known to all peoples, but
-under different names and different aspects, and that He
-is the Father of all. Men have forgotten Him and have
-attributed to Him qualities that He has never possessed.
-Some have made Him a monster, have carved Him in
-wood and stone, made idols to represent Him and fallen
-down before them, forgetting that God is a Spirit, who<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[128]</span>
-never looks upon idolatry with allowance—forgetting,
-because not seeing! But of old, when there was but one
-family of men on this earth, God was known to all men.
-His spirits and messengers walked and talked with men,
-until men by gross and sensual lives made it impossible.
-The Ancient of Days gave man a life of immortality;
-breathed His own life into the first man, and he became
-a living soul; made him free to live as he would, to
-choose good and evil. Men, from the first days, ages
-ago, lived happily, until selfishness drove them to quarrels,
-to murder, and to other sins. Then they separated,
-families moving hither and thither over the world, forgetting
-each other; some descending into ignorance and
-barbarism; others ascending to a higher state of knowledge;
-all looking upon nature and clothing nature’s God
-in their own vain imaginings. Some kept the knowledge
-of God more perfectly than others. The Spirit of God
-talks with every man, bringing up to his spirit suggestions
-of better life. From time to time great teachers
-are sent. So came Moses to us, the sons of Abraham
-and Heber. So came Zoroaster to the Aryans. And
-a day will come—I have seen it in a vision!—” here
-the Prophet’s voice thrilled with awe and his eyes were
-cast upward to the heavens,—“I saw in a vision one
-night, years ago, before the great Cyrus overthrew Babylon,
-One, like the Ancient of Days, sitting on the clouds
-of heaven; and there came before him One like unto a
-son of man; and to Him did the Ancient of Days give
-dominion and glory over all peoples of all the earth and
-all people should in all their divers languages serve Him.
-His dominion is an everlasting dominion and His kingdom
-shall never be destroyed. All the nations of the
-earth shall serve Him gladly!”</p>
-
-<p>He ceased a moment and stood enraptured, contemplating<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[129]</span>
-the heavens and recalling again the glories of his
-vision. The young man looked upon the seer’s countenance
-with awe. He endeavored to gather the full meaning
-of the spoken words. Whether he spoke, he knew
-not, but his mind did form the question, “When shall
-this be?”</p>
-
-<p>The question came to Belteshazzer and he answered:
-“I know not when, but He will come in the fullness of
-time. He will not reign as kings reign, but only in the
-souls of men. He will waken men to everlasting life,
-men who have endeavored to do well. He will waken
-others to shame of their evil lives and to everlasting contempt.
-Then all men shall have full knowledge of God.
-None shall fail to know their Redeemer. He will come
-when God wills.”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer ceased and again sighed deeply, and for
-a time gazed at the sunset glow in silence, but his eyes
-saw not the glories of the sun. With his inward eyes
-he was looking again at that mighty vision of which he
-had spoken. The Prince broke the silence.</p>
-
-<p>“You said that a Spirit stands guard over me and that
-I shall triumph over dangers. How stands such spirit?
-What is he? Why may I not see him? If I could commune
-with the unseen presence, perhaps he would guide
-my steps that I make no error.”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer shook his head and replied: “To some
-it is given to commune with spirits, but it is only to those
-whose lives are spiritual. To me it has been given to
-speak with Gabriel, the messenger of God, and with
-Michael, the soldier of God and leader of his hosts
-against the powers of evil. It may be that God will permit
-you to see. Come, let us sit down! I feel even
-now the nearness of spiritual influences.”</p>
-
-<p>They sat down side by side on a flat rock at the margin<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[130]</span>
-of the river bank. Below them the bank fell away with
-gentle slope to the stream. The valley was now full of
-shadows. Trees and shrubs were seen as dark spots on
-the dull gray of sun-scorched grass. Twilight was
-rapidly deepening into darkness. Belteshazzer took the
-Prince’s right hand into his left. Raising his right hand
-to the heavens, he prayed inaudibly, the movement of his
-lips alone indicating his action. The Prince sat motionless,
-with wide eyes and bated breath. Awe entered
-into his soul and a chill ran over his body, not from
-fear but as if a cold current of air from the mountains
-had touched him. Suddenly a light cloud of mist seemed
-to come up out of the valley and from it emerged the
-semblance of a stately warrior, whose countenance, seen
-as in a white light, bore a striking resemblance to the
-Prince’s father. His stature was above that of ordinary
-man. He was clad, it seemed, in brilliant chain-mail.
-A sword hung at his belt, a spear was in his hand, a bow
-at his back. He stood erect with one foot advanced
-and one hand outstretched as if in benediction over the
-Prince’s head. Luminous, translucent, quivering with
-light, yet very real, was the presence. The Prince involuntarily
-raised his hand and bowed his head in salutation.
-Belteshazzer sat still, calmly regarding the
-vision.</p>
-
-<p>“You may speak to him freely,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Who are you that comes so gloriously?” demanded
-the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>A strong voice seemed to answer: “I am Achæmenius,
-your ancestor, Prince of Iran. I am permitted by
-the Supreme Power to march at your side. In you I
-see the hope of the Aryans, the most worthy son of my
-family. Be of good cheer! A host encamps about you.
-Only seek ever after the truth and avoid the lie. Behold!<span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[131]</span>
-error is creeping into the minds and hearts of the
-Aryan people. Idolatry and false magic, fostered by
-the evil ones, gain headway among them. It is for you
-ever to strive for truth and for the knowledge of God,
-the one supreme God, known to our race from the
-ancient times, known to this Belteshazzer and by him
-worshiped. It is your duty to restore our people to
-right worship!”</p>
-
-<p>“But what is to come? What course shall I pursue,
-O glorious Spirit?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is not given me to prophesy. Only the Supreme
-One may give the spirit of prophecy. But I know that
-you are chosen to be a leader and that many peoples
-shall bow down before you as lord. Keep ever your
-purpose to be true and truthful, to live uprightly and
-justly, and to banish from among our people idolatry
-and lying. More am I not permitted to say. Farewell!”</p>
-
-<p>As suddenly as the presence had appeared, it passed
-away, seeming to dissolve in thin air; and only the two
-men remained, sitting side by side on the rock, with the
-dark vale before them, the breeze whispering about them
-and the brilliant stars above. The young man was the
-first to speak. He rose and shook himself as one might
-who rises from a troubled dream.</p>
-
-<p>“Was it a vision, O Prince of God?” he demanded,
-“or was it a man? Was it a spirit, or did I dream?”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer answered somewhat reproachfully:
-“My son, this was no dream! You have seen a veritable
-spirit, one who lived in the flesh and reigned in
-Iran centuries ago. Under him marched a great army
-from Bactra to Rhages and thence south into Fars,
-driving out the ancient peoples and there establishing his
-kingdom. I have seen this great Spirit before, when
-Cyrus was King.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[132]</span>The Prince exclaimed fervently: “Then it is no
-fable that men who die shall live again! That which I
-have heard and doubted, now I know!”</p>
-
-<p>“Truly you have spoken! Death is but a change,
-the taking off of a worn-out garment, this body of
-earth. It is the release of the soul, that glorious body
-within, from the trammels of mortality.”</p>
-
-<p>“To be so glorious, it were better to die!”</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, not till your work is done! The life now
-given you is but a training for the future and should
-be lived by you in such manner that men will rise up
-and call you blessed.”</p>
-
-<p>They turned towards the camp, and, walking slowly,
-continued to converse upon the mysteries of life. They
-passed the sentinels and soon came to the Prince’s
-pavilion, where the cooks anxiously awaited their
-master’s coming to his supper, long since ready. While
-they supped, they continued the discussion and, long
-after their meal, they sat together as teacher and pupil,
-the one pouring forth wisdom from his vast store of
-knowledge, the other receiving and storing it in his mind.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[133]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER X<br />
-
-
-<small>A FAREWELL FEAST</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">CAMBYSES, the King of Kings, King of the World,
-made a feast at his palace in Hamadan in honor of
-his brother Bardya, who, as the order announcing the
-feast declared, was about to return to his future capital
-and home in Bactra. All the rulers and notables of
-Persia and Medea were commanded to be present on a
-certain day to meet the departing Prince and to say
-farewell.</p>
-
-<p>Forty days and more had passed since the funeral of
-Cyrus. The King accompanied by his brother and
-sisters, had departed with all his retinue from Pasargadæ
-and returned to Hamadan. Cambyses had no
-love for the Persian capital, but he did love Hamadan.
-At the latter city resided his boon companions, and there
-the moral laws were less observed and the people cared
-little what their rulers did so long as they themselves
-were allowed some license.</p>
-
-<p>Bardya had twice demanded of the King audience
-without result, and finally had written to him a note stating
-that he would presently return to Bactra with or
-without his permission. It was then that the King had
-called Prexaspes to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Prexaspes,” he said, glowering upon him truculently,
-“I expressed a wish to you concerning that sprig, Bardya,
-when we talked at Pasargadæ. It seems that my wish
-is forgotten!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[134]</span>The King’s countenance was clouded. He held in
-his hand a tablet on which was written the last message
-from Bardya. He read this aloud to Prexaspes, then
-dashed it to the floor with such force that the delicate
-plate was shattered in bits.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes was not alarmed. He had seen such
-ebullitions of wrath before. “I have not forgotten the
-King’s words,” he replied smoothly. “His commands
-shall be obeyed. But the Prince is so closely watched
-by the men of his body-guard and he so invariably refuses
-to accept my invitations to visit places where the—the—accident
-could happen without the people knowing
-the true cause, that it has been impossible to accomplish
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing should be impossible when the King commands!”
-bellowed Cambyses. “Look to it sharp!
-Here is he demanding leave to return to his kingdom.
-His kingdom, indeed! His presence here is a displeasure
-to me. Away with you and immediately accomplish this
-task, or I will give your body to the vultures!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes bowed low in affected terror. “If the King
-will permit his servant to speak, I have thought of a
-plan,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses glared at him a moment, his bloated countenance
-flushed with passion and his right hand clutching
-nervously at the dagger on his thigh. It was an inner
-room of the great palace and they were alone. Prexaspes
-watched the madman closely, ready to flee or to
-engage him in mortal combat should he attack. Beneath
-his own Medean robe lurked a long, keen dagger which
-he well knew how to use. But the King was not so
-angry as he pretended. Seeing that his servant was
-properly impressed, he said more calmly: “A plan?
-Well it is that you have a plan! Speak!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[135]</span>“Permit me to see that no one listens or lurks near,”
-suggested Prexaspes, backing towards the door. He
-drew the heavy curtains and looked into the hall. He
-looked out of the narrow windows into the garden.
-Satisfied that no one could hear, he went close to the
-King.</p>
-
-<p>“O King, your gracious leave being given,” he said,
-“I suggest that you give a great feast in honor of your
-brother and that you publicly consent that he may return
-to Bactra. Permit me to arrange for his departure. I
-will suggest to him that he is in danger and that he flee
-from this city at night. I will pretend to be his friend.
-He shall arrive at no other destination than death.
-There will ride out towards Rhages next day one who
-looks like him so much that they cannot be distinguished
-save by friends. In the desert beyond Rhages, this man
-will disappear, and it will be announced that your brother
-has been carried away by robbers. His friends must be
-kept here by your order. Let me have your signet ring,
-that I may have my orders obeyed.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who is the man that resembles Bardya so much?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is Gaumata, the man whose ears the great Cyrus
-caused to be cut off because of his insolence.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, not for any fault of his, Prexaspes, but because
-my father hated and despised him. Now I think of him,
-I do remember a great likeness between them. Proceed!
-Here is my signet. Only see to it that I be rid of this
-pestilent fellow!”</p>
-
-<p>The King turned away, dismissing his chamberlain
-with a gesture. Prexaspes at once left the room and
-proceeded to his quarters in the palace, where he shut
-himself in and occupied himself for some time in writing
-three documents—one, an order from the King commanding
-Prexaspes to slay Bardya, the King’s brother;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[136]</span>
-one, a message to Bardya permitting him to return to
-Bactra on a certain day; and, the third, a decree directing
-a great feast to be held in honor of his departure. Having
-sealed these with the King’s signet, Prexaspes went to
-the west wing of the palace, where Bardya and his sisters
-had their residence and where the King never went. He
-requested the servants to inform the Prince that he bore
-a message from the King.</p>
-
-<p>Bardya was moodily pacing back and forth in the park
-adjacent to the palace when the servant found him. He
-was going over in his mind the details of a plan he had
-formed for escape. By the King’s orders he had not
-been allowed to go and come as freely in the city as he
-chose. He knew that spies were constantly watching his
-movements and that any attempt to escape on his part
-would lead to instant arrest. He directed the servant to
-bring Prexaspes to him, and presently that worthy appeared
-and bowed low before him.</p>
-
-<p>“Live forever, O Prince!” said Prexaspes. “If I
-am permitted to speak, I have a message from the King.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya looked upon Prexaspes loftily and disdainfully.
-This carefully dressed, combed and curled courtier
-of the King pleased him not. This man was the
-embodiment of the Mede, the luxury-loving, mixed breed
-of Aryan and Semite, whom the Prince despised.</p>
-
-<p>“Speak!” he said shortly.</p>
-
-<p>“I have here an order of the Great King directing
-that you may return to your dominions one week from
-to-day, and a second order that a great feast be made in
-your honor and that you be sent forth properly escorted
-by one hundred men under my charge.”</p>
-
-<p>He paused. The Prince’s face lighted with joy and he
-struck his hands together as he exclaimed: “Truly this
-is good news, Prexaspes! How about my sisters and
-companions?”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[137]</span>“It is not ordered that they accompany you.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince’s face grew dark. “What?” he demanded
-harshly. “Does this King deny my sisters their right to
-go where they choose and does he insult me by withholding
-the company of my friends?”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes glanced about uneasily and placed a finger
-on his lips, shaking his head warningly. He drew nearer
-to the Prince, saying in a low voice: “Have a care,
-Prince Bardya! The King waits only for some excuse
-and for a convenient day, to slay you. I will reveal to
-you what I know. Swear to keep silent should you
-escape! Give me the royal word of an Achæmenian
-that you will not betray me and that when you come to
-your kingdom you will remember me as a King should.
-Then will I reveal what is planned to compass your
-death.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya hesitated. He searched the dark countenance
-of Prexaspes, striving to penetrate the mask of earnestness
-there assumed.</p>
-
-<p>“You have my word. Speak!” he said after some
-hesitation.</p>
-
-<p>“I am indeed commanded to lead you with the escort
-of one hundred men toward Rhages, but it is also ordered
-that you be slain before you reach that city. I am not
-willing to stain my hands in the royal blood of Iran.
-Neither am I willing that my head pay the forfeit of
-failing to have the King’s orders obeyed. Therefore,
-believe me, I have planned in good faith for your escape.
-On the night before the day set for your departure, the
-feast will be held. You must attend the feast. At midnight
-there will be a great exhibition of magic by the
-priests of the Magi. The King will be drunk by that
-time and engrossed with watching the performances.
-You will then have opportunity to leave the assembly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[138]</span>
-room unnoticed by him and to return to your apartments.
-I will see that the guards are removed. You will take
-what jewels you have and leave your apartments to meet
-me at the western gate of the park, where horses will
-await us. Wear a rough soldier’s cloak over your armor.
-It will be easy for us to pass the guards and leave the
-city, as I shall have the pass-words. I will accompany
-you beyond the city limits on the northern road. I will
-put money in your saddle-bags and you may travel as a
-merchant. As soon as you are beyond the city I will
-return. Next day, there will ride forth one who much
-resembles you and who will dress as you dress,—Gaumata,
-the Magian. He will ride beyond Rhages. He
-will there disappear, and those who allow him to escape
-will feel the wrath of the Great King. Meanwhile you
-may travel unnoticed to Bactra. Is it not a good plan?”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya listened with distrust. He did not answer immediately.
-He pondered, not the plan, but the man who
-proposed it. As if reading his thoughts, Prexaspes
-added: “Why need you distrust me? If I chose to
-slay you, could I not come with the King’s order, take
-you to the dungeons, and there have you slain? Why
-should I make this plan? Surely you do not fear that
-I am able, single-handed, to overcome you on the northern
-road,—you, than whom no stronger swordsman rides
-a Nicæan steed! You will be armed and have a coat of
-mail. You may take all precautions. I seek only to do
-you a service.”</p>
-
-<p>His words touched the Prince’s vanity. Of course he
-feared no single man, he the celebrated strong-arm Prince
-of the world! The desire for liberty was strong in him
-and the romance of a night escape appealed to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Prexaspes, I agree,” he said. “It matters little
-whether you speak truly or falsely. It will be better to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[139]</span>
-try an escape than to remain here; and, should the King
-overtake me with his guards, I can no more than die.
-Should I escape by this plan, come to me at Bactra and
-I will reward you royally. Or better still, times and
-seasons may change and Kings may change; and if
-Ahura-Mazda be willing, I may be here again some day
-able to give great honors and rewards!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes smiled beneath his curly beard. His snake-like
-eyes flashed. “Let it be settled, then,” he rejoined.
-“At the midnight hour, return to your apartments, not
-letting any of your friends know your purpose. Meet
-me at the western park gate alone, and we will ride forth
-alone. Leave word with your servants that you are
-tired and are not to be called until the noon hour on the
-morrow. Farewell for the present!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes turned away and disappeared through the
-shrubbery. The Prince paced onward till he came to the
-western limits of the park and noted the gate of which
-Prexaspes had spoken. He also saw that a company of
-soldiers had their tents pitched among the trees beyond
-the gate and that certain of them as guards paced back
-and forth along the wall bounding the park. He turned
-on his heel and returned to the palace. The guards
-watched him as long as he was in sight and murmured
-to each other concerning him, their attitude being sympathetic.
-The Prince was a man of soldierly figure and
-gracious demeanor. These men would go far to execute
-the orders of the King of Kings, but they admired the
-Prince and would not willingly have harmed him.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince walked slowly, his mind revolving the plan
-suggested for his escape, his head bent and his eyes cast
-down. He did not see his sister, Athura, coming towards
-him until he heard her soft voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Brother, why so downcast? Why so thoughtful and
-preoccupied?”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[140]</span>His countenance lighted with pleasure. There existed
-between these two a sincere affection. He leaned much
-upon this sister, whose mind, like that of her great
-father, was acute and whose judgment was sound.</p>
-
-<p>“How beautiful is my sister!” he said, quoting one of
-the poets—“Fairer than all the women of earth, more
-to be beloved than wealth! Her breath is as fragrant
-as the breath of the rose; her eyes are deeper than the
-dark vault of heavens at night; her heart is as pure as
-the white snow on Demavend!”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait till you behold some maiden who will find
-favor in your sight! Then your sister will be remembered
-only as your very good friend and your songs of
-praise will be another’s,” she said. “Did I not see that
-man, Prexaspes, with you a moment ago?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Princess. I have something to tell you. Let
-us go yonder to that seat beneath the oak tree. It is
-apart from all others, so that no one may overhear.”</p>
-
-<p>They went to a rustic seat beneath the spreading
-branches of a great oak and sat down side by side, and
-he related all that Prexaspes had said.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you advise?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>Athura listened closely, her countenance expressing
-distrust, surprise, and incredulity. She took from the
-wide belt, that gathered her beautiful robe loosely about
-her waist, a small roll of papyrus.</p>
-
-<p>“Here is a letter from my Prince which has somewhat
-to say of this danger you are in,” she said. “I advise
-that you distrust Prexaspes.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya looked over her shoulder as she unfolded the
-paper. “‘<i>Fairest and best of all maidens, Princess of
-my soul</i>,’” he read aloud laughingly.</p>
-
-<p>Athura quickly turned the first portion of the letter
-under, saying, “You would joke if death were about to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[141]</span>
-seize you! You shall not read the sweet things he has
-written. You know not the meaning of them, even if
-you did believe yourself in love with the daughter of
-Orobates.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya in pretended anger placed his hand over her
-mouth. “Let not that be mentioned!” he exclaimed,
-with simulated sternness. “I was sixteen and she was
-very fair. Though she was the daughter of a groom,
-even yet I sigh for her.”</p>
-
-<p>Having found that part of the letter which she desired
-to read, Athura said: “Listen to what my Prince
-says. This was written thirty days ago and was sent to
-his mother’s house, where he supposed I would be and
-where I should have been but for a bear of a brother
-who is King. Listen!</p>
-
-<p>“‘I have been much troubled concerning the words
-of that great teacher, your father’s former counselor,
-Belteshazzer, the Hebrew. He is a prophet, acquainted
-with all wisdom, speaking face to face with the messengers
-of God. He showed me a vision on the day we
-halted near Susa. He had been in the wilderness near
-by and was returning to the city, when I met him on the
-bank of the Choaspes. He showed me a vision of
-Achæmenius, the common ancestor of our royal family,
-yours and mine. A glorious vision! Belteshazzer can
-read all minds and knows what is in the hearts of men;
-and he said that the King meditated harm to Prince
-Bardya. Therefore, I beseech you, my soul, that you
-advise Bardya to escape as soon as he may and return
-to Bactra, where he will be safe.</p>
-
-<p>“‘I am now at Damascus, the chief city of Syria, resting
-before we continue to Sardis. I hear nothing of
-wars in the realms I go to govern, save the depredations
-of certain wild tribes on the northeastern border. I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[142]</span>
-look forward to lonely days without you. I may find
-opportunity to subdue the Ionian cities, which are far
-too independent and do not properly recognize the
-majesty of Iran. Till I hear from you I—’”</p>
-
-<p>Athura paused and replaced the letter in her belt, saying,
-“The rest is for me alone.”</p>
-
-<p>Bardya sat dreamily listening to the rustle of the
-breeze in the oak leaves and gazing at the dark ridges
-of Mount Elwend in the west. “I have never thought
-much of visions, prophecies, or wonder-working performers
-who deceive the eye by quick movements,” he
-said after a moment of silence. “Darius says there is
-a future life; that the soul, leaving this body as one
-leaves a worn-out cloak, passes into the unseen world
-and continues to live; that Ahura-Mazda is a God in
-very truth and that He sends messengers to earth.
-Darius is wise and learned. If there is a future life and
-if congenial spirits hover round us, then indeed must
-those spirits who surround the King be all devils! His
-savage mind is blinded by love of power and moved to
-murder by jealousy and fear of me, his brother. I remember
-Belteshazzer, when he was a great and trusted
-counselor of Cyrus, our father. I feared him, too; and
-no man who ever looked into his reproving eye could do
-otherwise than fear him. I wish I could know the mind
-of Prexaspes. He seemed sincere. I will go with him
-and trust to my own arm for protection. But, sweet
-sister, I fear to leave you here in the power of my
-brother. Can you not flee with me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Fear not for me, brother. Cambyses will not harm
-me. He has no excuse. I am not in line for the throne.
-The right to rule goes to the male descendants of the
-Achæmenian family. I must not leave Artistone.
-How can I go now? I should hinder you. Besides, I
-must wait here for my Prince.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[143]</span>Bardya did not argue with her further, and she did not
-oppose his plan of escape further.</p>
-
-<p>The feast day came. There gathered into the great
-assembly hall of the palace a thousand of the notables
-of earth to honor the departure of Prince Bardya to his
-realms. Prexaspes had spared no expense in adorning
-the palace and in preparing the feast and the entertainments
-that should accompany it. The many pillars
-shining with burnished gold plate, which supported the
-gilded beams of the palace roof, were festooned with
-garlands of flowers, interwoven with streamers and
-bunting of many colors. The heavy tapestries of the
-doors in the assembly room were drawn back with silver
-chains. Across one end of this room a table was set,
-from the ends of which extended two longer tables in
-such manner that the King, when sitting at the center
-of the first, could see all his guests before him. Those
-he delighted to honor would sit at his table; others of
-less consequence would occupy the others. Snowy linen
-covers were laid. Heavy dishes of gold and silver, jars
-of beautiful Samos pottery, and vases from Egypt and
-Greece were put in place on them. Apples, peaches,
-plums, grapes, pomegranates, figs, and other rare and
-luscious fruits were heaped on shining platters. Confections,
-sweet cakes, nuts, salads, and relishes were in
-profusion. Flowers filled the air with delicious odors.
-Magnificent couches, on which the feasters might sit or
-recline as they chose, were placed along the tables. At
-one side of the room facing the King’s place was a low
-platform with seats for musicians, who with divers musical
-instruments would furnish sounds more or less harmonious
-while the great ones feasted. In adjacent
-rooms, graceful dancers, supple tricksters, and athletes
-were waiting to go in before the King and perform. A<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[144]</span>
-thousand servants, cooks, tasters, waiters, and attendants
-made ready the feast.</p>
-
-<p>As the sun disappeared behind the western mountains,
-a fanfare of trumpets announced that the feast was
-ready, and thousands of candles were lighted in the great
-banquet-room. None of those invited had failed to
-come. The King’s invitation was regarded as a command.
-In the cloak-room adjacent to the banquet-room,
-each guest received a purple robe to be worn
-during the feast and to be carried away by him at its
-close.</p>
-
-<p>At the appointed moment Prexaspes, as ruler of the
-feast, appeared, gorgeously dressed and having in his
-hand a wand. As the guests entered he indicated the
-seats to be occupied by them, placing them according to
-their rank. At the King’s table sat Crœsus, late king of
-Lydia, a prisoner, but an honored guest. There sat also
-Nebuchadezzer, Prince of Nineveh, and a score of
-other princes whose dominions were no longer theirs to
-rule, but who, though prisoners of the King of Kings,
-sat at his table and showed to the world that they lived
-on his bounty. When all had been duly placed, they
-remained standing with faces turned towards the throne
-at one end of the room and awaited the coming of the
-King. At the left of the throne was a door covered by
-heavy purple curtains hanging from ceiling to floor.</p>
-
-<p>Having placed all the guests, Prexaspes touched a
-cord and the tinkle of a bell announced the coming of
-royalty. The curtains of the door near the throne were
-parted and disclosed the King advancing, followed by
-his brother, his wife, and his two sisters, the women
-being closely veiled. The King strode heavily forward,
-his swarthy countenance lowering and his black eyes
-sweeping over the guests. All the guests bowed low towards<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[145]</span>
-him. He sat down heavily at his table. The
-guests remained standing until Prince Bardya, his sisters,
-and the King’s wife had taken their places at the
-King’s table. Then, at a wave of Prexaspes’ wand,
-the guests sank upon their seats. Immediately, nimble
-servants with pitchers and goblets appeared from side
-doors and poured wine for each guest. The King’s cup-bearer
-stood with a great cup of Helbon wine at the
-side of his master. The King seized the cup and, after
-waving it slightly toward his guests, drank from it long
-and deeply. The guests also drank. The musicians
-took their places and began playing a weird melody,
-monotonous and long-drawn-out, with many repetitions
-and variations. A murmur of conversation arose.</p>
-
-<p>Servants brought on trays of smoking meat, of delicious
-vegetables and pastries, and for each guest the
-food to which he was accustomed, prepared to suit his
-taste. The King ate and drank in silence, not even
-addressing a word to his wife, who sat at his right hand.
-Bardya and the royal sisters ate little. Their hearts
-were full of anxiety over the proposed escape of the
-Prince. But the King drank much wine. He also
-called for soma and drank of that liquor deeply. And
-as he drank, he watched Prexaspes, who ever moved
-nervously about the room directing the feast. Would
-the elegant Mede fail? The King began to devise a
-sufficient punishment to inflict on him should he fail.
-Dancers were brought in after the feast had well begun
-and gave an exhibition of sinuous movement, like the
-curving of a snake’s folds, or the graceful undulations
-of the sea waves. After the dancers there were
-performances by jugglers, mountebanks, and tricksters,
-and athletes displayed their strength and agility in wrestling-bouts.
-At the close of the feast, Prexaspes stood in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[146]</span>
-the midst and called for silence. Then he said, “O
-King, by your gracious permission, I will now bring in
-the Magians who hold communion with the spirits of
-the departed, who have control of the powers of the
-gods, and who will divine and prophesy for you, besides
-doing many other wonderful things.”</p>
-
-<p>The faces of all were turned upon the King; and only
-on the countenances of the Persian nobles and the faces
-of Bardya and his sisters was disapproval written.</p>
-
-<p>“Let them come in with their tricks,” said the King,
-sneeringly. “They may delude us, but they will not
-convince us. Let them come!”</p>
-
-<p>“Let the lights be partially extinguished!” commanded
-Prexaspes.</p>
-
-<p>Immediately servants extinguished the candles, except
-a few at the King’s table, and semi-darkness enveloped
-them all. Then a band of six Magians entered. Servants
-brought in a heavy square table and set it in the
-open space between the dining tables. Others brought
-in some small tablets and balls, which were placed
-on the table. The magicians prostrated themselves before
-the King in salutation and afterwards gathered around
-the square table in silence and joined hands. They were
-clad in black robes, which covered their bodies in loose
-folds from their necks down. Their hands were visible
-below the wide sleeves of the robes, and their pallid
-faces shone dead white in the semi-gloom below the dark
-turbans wound loosely around their heads.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the lights were extinguished, the King
-turned his back upon Bardya as if weary of his presence.
-Then a hand touched Bardya on the shoulder, and, turning,
-he saw Prexaspes who beckoned with a nod
-and disappeared into the gloom of a side chamber.
-Bardya waited a moment until the attention of all was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[147]</span>
-concentrated upon the group of magicians; then, after
-pressing Athura’s hand lightly, he rose and quietly followed
-Prexaspes. The King seemed not to notice his
-movements, but was really watching.</p>
-
-<p>Five minutes later, the Prince, wrapped in a soldier’s
-cloak, stole out through the park, met Prexaspes there
-alone, mounted a horse held by him in readiness, passed
-through the park, and rode away with him through the
-city towards the northern road. When clear of the city
-environs, they spurred away at a gallop side by side
-towards the city of Rhages lying at the foot of distant
-Mount Demavend.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, in the King’s presence, many wonderful
-things were happening. After several minutes of
-silence on the part of the Magians, the heavy table
-around which they stood rose to the ceiling without apparent
-supporting hands and there remained several
-minutes. Balls of light floated about the room near the
-ceiling. A tree sprang up out of the floor and visibly
-grew till its top touched the suspended table. Then the
-table slowly circled about the room, returned, and settled
-down to the floor. The tree disappeared as it settled.
-Upon the table, immediately, a mass of writhing snakes
-appeared, hissing and shooting forth angry red tongues,
-so that the guests were about to rise and flee in terror.
-They disappeared. The voice of the chief magician said
-in sepulchral tones:</p>
-
-<p>“None of these mighty wonders will bring harm to
-any of you, unless you make a noise and attempt to flee.
-Remain quietly in your places and behold the wonders of
-the gods! Know that the spirits of the mountains and
-of the valleys and of the plains are here, the rulers of
-earth, whom we serve. Know that there is no other religion
-worthy of practice than ours. Let the Great King
-behold and act accordingly!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[148]</span>The voice ceased and a hush fell over the assembly.
-The King moved uneasily in his seat, and answered in
-loud, sarcastic tones: “Tricksters have existed in all
-nations and in all ages! Your spirits are lying spirits
-conjured up in your own minds to frighten superstitious
-men. Bah! There are gods and gods! Show me a
-spirit!”</p>
-
-<p>“It is well!” answered the magician. “We obey the
-King of Kings. Only say nothing and move not!”</p>
-
-<p>A deep hush fell upon the assembly. The group of
-magicians drew together again and formed a circle
-about the table, placing their joined hands upon it and
-bowing their heads. Only the chief stood as if in a
-trance, looking upward. Then, above the heads of the
-group a pallid, misty light suddenly appeared, growing
-in density and assuming shape, until it became the shape
-of a man, wavering, translucent, with a sneering, evil
-countenance and sinister eyes, such as are ever ascribed
-to evil spirits. The King drew in his breath sharply
-and bent forward startled and alarmed. A voice seemed
-to come from the spirit:</p>
-
-<p>“What would you ask, O King of the Earth?”</p>
-
-<p>For a moment the King could not reply. He was
-agitated beyond measure. He summoned all his
-bravado, and with a great effort stammered, “Who and
-what are you?”</p>
-
-<p>A derisive smile curled the features of the apparition,
-as the voice replied: “I am your soul’s companion,
-the spirit that goes with you wherever you go! I
-am your evil genius! I am—you!”</p>
-
-<p>Rage filled the heart of the King.</p>
-
-<p>“This trick shall not benefit you, O Magians!” he
-shouted. “Prove to me that this is no delusion or death
-shall be your portion!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[149]</span>“Demand of me any proof, O King!” responded the
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Make your own proof!” retorted the King.</p>
-
-<p>Again the derisive smile curled the devilish features
-of the apparition, while a shivering silence possessed
-the wondering guests, who looked from it to the King
-and from the King to it, astonished at the resemblance
-between them.</p>
-
-<p>“At midnight, O King, last night,” said the apparition
-in a sepulchral tone, “I walked with you on the
-portico at the door of your bedroom and your thoughts
-were of your father and of your brother. Did you hear
-the whispering in the plane-tree? The thought then in
-your mind has been accomplished; and there comes
-hither the spirit of him that troubled you!”</p>
-
-<p>The apparition seemed to turn about and look in fear
-to the north; then, suddenly, it faded away. A groan
-arose from the chief Magian. He stirred uneasily and
-turned his pallid face towards the north. His hands
-were clenched and he stared into space with terror-stricken
-gaze. Deathlike hush pervaded the great hall.
-Then slowly and waveringly there appeared in the place
-where the former apparition had stood a ghastly face;
-and it was the image of Bardya, the King’s brother.
-With fierce eyes it glared down upon the King; and it
-seemed that blood poured down over the forehead in a
-trickling stream from a deep cleft in the crown of its
-head.</p>
-
-<p>A shriek of terrified anguish arose from the Princesses.
-A chorus of exclamations broke from the guests.
-The apparition suddenly disappeared. The King sat as
-if stunned for a moment, looking fixedly at the point
-where the apparition had been, while his face was contorted
-with fear and horror. The Magians silently dissolved<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[150]</span>
-their circle and quickly disappeared. The lights
-flared up as servants ran hither and thither relighting
-the candles. The King arose unsteadily. The guests
-arose and stood in their places while he wearily moved,
-or rather tottered, to the door by which he had entered,
-and disappeared. The sisters, supporting each other and
-weeping, left the room. The guests then broke into
-noisy comment and wonder and proceeded to fortify
-their shaken nerves with wine. Orthodox Persians
-muttered curses on all Magians. The unorthodox
-shook their heads and superstitiously resolved to make
-sacrifices on the morrow to the spirits of the hills and to
-the gods of the Magians. Arguments arose for and
-against Magism; but the advocates of that cult had the
-better of it, since as all had seen, it was capable of ocular
-demonstration. But the orthodox said it was the religion
-of devils; as for them, they would continue to
-worship the Good Spirit! Besides, the latter said, it
-was evident a fraud had been perpetrated, because Bardya,
-the King’s brother, had been at the feast well and
-alive. How could this apparition have been his ghost?
-In this argument they had the best of it. But they marveled
-at the King’s agitation.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[151]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XI<br />
-
-
-<small>THE GREAT KING INTRODUCES A STRANGE CUSTOM</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE Great King was much shaken by the strange
-apparitions which the Magi had conjured up; but
-he assured himself that the whole performance had been
-trickery and he fiercely planned vengeance upon the
-performers. He had always boasted of his disbelief in
-gods and spirits, though puzzled sometimes at the magic
-of the fire-worshipers. This time, however, his gross
-nature had received a severe shock and while he awaited
-the return of Prexaspes that he might learn how his
-brother had been dealt with, he drank deep potations of
-soma and half-wished that his brother were indeed alive
-so that the horrid vision might be proven false. He
-paced back and forth impatiently in his apartments,
-while his servants stood without, breathlessly watching
-for every command lest in his present mood delay on
-their part would entail upon them grave consequences.</p>
-
-<p>A horseman galloped through the silent city from the
-north shortly before daylight and, with a hasty word to
-a sleepy guard, passed through the walls into the park
-and thence to the stables at the rear of the palace.
-Leaving his horse in the care of servants, he entered the
-palace. It was Prexaspes. After a few minutes in his
-own apartments, he emerged clad in his elegant court
-dress and went to the King’s apartments, where he knew
-the King waited. A servant announced his presence and
-he was at once admitted to the King’s presence. He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[152]</span>
-entered, closed the door behind him, and stood before
-the King with bowed head.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” demanded the King, hoarsely.</p>
-
-<p>“The King’s orders have been obeyed.”</p>
-
-<p>“How?”</p>
-
-<p>“A sword-stroke from behind as we rode northward.
-The body has been safely disposed. Let the King be at
-peace. Bardya is no more!”</p>
-
-<p>“Swear to me by all that you deem holy! Did the
-sword cut penetrate the brow?”</p>
-
-<p>“It did. I swear by all the gods of the hills and valleys,
-by Ahriman and by the spirits of my fathers!”</p>
-
-<p>The King shuddered. Mingled relief and fear shone
-in his countenance.</p>
-
-<p>“I have had strange proof of the truth of your words,
-Prexaspes,” he said. “Surely you are in league with
-devils! I knew you belonged to the Magian sect, but I
-did not know their power. How did they know the
-manner of Bardya’s death? How could they show it?”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes smiled. He had learned what had transpired
-before the King.</p>
-
-<p>“Without their aid it would have been impossible to
-have accomplished the destruction of the Prince,” he
-answered. “It would be well if the Great King should
-show favor to the Magi. They can help him much.
-With the assistance of the diviners and those who have
-familiar spirits, who can speak with the spirits of the
-dead and with the gods of the hills, the King will be
-able to detect those who might plot against his life.
-Nothing can be done but what they may find it out if
-they desire. They help and protect their friends.”</p>
-
-<p>“But they worship the Lie, which from all ages has
-been proscribed by the laws of Iran,” said the King,
-doubtfully. “I know they have power to perform<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[153]</span>
-wonders; but I deem them tricks. What care I? If
-their tricks aid me, they shall be rewarded.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is right for the Great King thus to speak for the
-ears of the people!” returned Prexaspes, insinuatingly.
-“But if the Great King does practice all the good precepts
-of Ahura-Mazda, what avails it or how does it
-benefit him? I dare to speak plainly, so that you may
-receive the aid of the powerful Magi whose followers
-are more numerous than all others in Medea, Assyria,
-and Babylonia. The deed done at your command this
-night has been accomplished by their aid. The men of
-orthodox faith, the worshipers of Ahura-Mazda, hate
-you. Only by allying yourself with the Magi can you
-hope to retain your throne. With their aid you may
-defy your enemies if they should learn of Bardya’s end.
-Ally yourself with the Magi and their gods and they will
-gratify all your wishes. Know, O King, that these men
-have wonderful powers, even greater than the priests of
-Egypt or of Babylon who know some of their arts.”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses was shaken. In him there was some good.
-Unconsciously his physical passions had been overcoming
-the good; but, occasionally, there broke through the
-density of his grosser nature an inward voice urging
-him to a better life. But he had no doubt of his absolute
-right to do as he might will, and he had come to
-believe that ordinary rules of right and wrong did not
-apply to him. Prexaspes, seeing the King’s hesitation,
-continued:</p>
-
-<p>“Let not my words arouse resentment, O King! I
-seek but to do you good. My own welfare depends
-upon your will. I can call to your aid the Magi and the
-unseen powers. In their circle I stand next to Patatheites,
-the High Priest. Have I not obeyed your will
-and removed from your path the greatest danger to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[154]</span>
-your rule? Trust me still further and you shall continue
-to have true service. Give to the Magi the chief
-right to exercise religious power throughout the world,
-and their vast power will keep you safely. Make now
-an alliance with them and it shall be well with you.”</p>
-
-<p>The King paced back and forth across the room, debating
-the matter. Hating all religions, because he
-wished to disbelieve them, his long-standing prejudices
-were not easily moved.</p>
-
-<p>“If I do not make this compact, then what?” he
-asked presently.</p>
-
-<p>“If you are abandoned by them, how shall you receive
-any aid?” rejoined Prexaspes. “Certainly you
-can expect nothing of the followers of Zoroaster!
-They have the power and the will to do you hurt. But,
-through me, the Magi offer you their powerful aid. Believe
-me, O King, it will be your only wise course to
-accept their support.”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses nervously stroked his beard. He was not
-a coward. No one had ever accused him of a lack of
-courage. He despised the orthodox faith because of
-its moral laws, and he hated its followers. But he recognized
-the strength of the argument advanced by
-Prexaspes. The Magian sect was a powerful one.
-Medea, Assyria, Babylon, Syria, and Phrygia were full
-of them. They claimed to be in league and communion
-with the gods of the earth, and indeed practiced the
-occult arts, known more or less to all peoples, and in
-modern days followed by some so-called spiritualists.
-All of them were not evil. Many of them were reputed to
-be the prophets and seers and warned the people against
-the evil men who made use of their arts for their own advancement.
-Stringent laws had been made and enforced
-throughout Iran against that branch which attacked the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[155]</span>
-doctrines of Zoroaster. But this cult had flourished
-especially in the mountains of Medea. Fire-worshipers
-fed their sacred flames on every hilltop. The evil
-and depraved gathered to them and harassed those who
-opposed them. They were known to the orthodox as
-worshipers of the “Lie,” to distinguish them from those
-who worshiped the “Truth,” as embodied in Ahura-Mazda.
-Cambyses had sometimes consulted the Magians
-and required oracles of them. His father had
-severely reprimanded him for such practices and had
-caused the ears of Gaumata, one of the leaders of the
-Magi at Hamadan, to be cut off as a warning to him
-and to his sect that Cambyses should not be influenced
-by them.</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses reviewed these matters as he paced nervously
-back and forth, while Prexaspes awaited his decision
-with bowed head and downcast eyes. He decided
-to comply.</p>
-
-<p>“So be it! Only let everything be done in a politic
-way!” he exclaimed harshly. “I will make a league
-with the Magi. They shall have freedom to worship as
-long as I rule. They must nevertheless obey me. I will
-be King alone and will not permit interference. But the
-laws against them shall be annulled and I will favor
-them with offices.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is well!” said Prexaspes, bending low and touching
-the floor with his hands. “Now, if the Great King
-will permit, I will withdraw and will carry out our plan
-to deceive the populace into the belief that Bardya still
-lives in the flesh.”</p>
-
-<p>The King nodded and turned away. Prexaspes, with
-a smirk of triumph on his face, left the room. Passing
-out into the hall, he was about to go to his room, when
-a servant approached and, after a low salutation, said,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[156]</span>
-“Noble Prexaspes, my royal mistress, the Princess
-Athura, commands that you come to her waiting-room.
-She would speak with you.”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes hesitated a moment. Then, drawing his
-breath sharply, as if bracing himself to a severe task,
-and assuming a cheerful demeanor, he followed the servant.
-Athura and her sister had not retired to
-their beds after the banquet. The departure of Bardya,
-followed by the fearful scene produced by the Magi,
-had rendered them sleepless. They had ordered their
-servants to watch for and report the return of Prexaspes
-to them. Prexaspes entered the room where they
-awaited him and bowed very low before them, touching
-the floor with his hands. Then he stood in respectful
-attitude with downcast eyes, awaiting their pleasure.
-The eyes of the maidens were red with weeping.</p>
-
-<p>“Speak, false traitor! Was it you that struck
-Bardya and slew him?” exclaimed Athura, approaching
-him with clenched hands and blazing eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes raised his brows in well-simulated surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“You wrong me greatly, most noble Princess! What
-mean you? No one has slain Bardya,” he answered.</p>
-
-<p>“But I saw his spirit! He appeared at the close of
-the feast, and his head was cleft in twain as with a
-sword-stroke!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes smiled reassuringly, and drawing nearer to
-the Princess he whispered: “Believe it not, O most
-royal! That was but a delusion to convince the Great
-King that his will had been done. How could a spirit
-appear with cleft head? Spirits have no bodies that
-may be seen. But Patatheites was able to influence all
-there so that they believed they saw the spirit of Bardya,
-while the great Prince was riding swift as the wind to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[157]</span>
-Rhages. Dry your tears! Bardya is beyond the reach
-of the King now, and in due time you will hear that he
-has arrived in his dominions. You saw no spirit. It
-was but a picture from the mind of the Magian chief.”</p>
-
-<p>So sincere were his words and manner that Athura
-was reassured. She never had been superstitious or believed
-that the Magi were other than tricksters. The
-sternness left her countenance. She smiled graciously
-and extended her hand, which Prexaspes on bended
-knee respectfully kissed while his brilliant eyes glowed
-with admiration. Never, he thought at that moment,
-had he seen so beautiful a face or so perfect a form,
-never such a gracious and winning smile. For a moment
-his heart, used to the ways of the world, satiated
-with the pleasures of life, leaped within him; and he felt
-that to deserve that gracious smile he would have undone
-all that he had done and given up all that he had
-won. The music of her voice and the sweetness of her
-smile dwelt with him many a day thereafter, bringing to
-him the only regret and shame that he had ever known
-since childhood.</p>
-
-<p>“Noble Prexaspes,” she said, “I recall my harsh
-words! But that was a horrible thing the great magician
-showed us; and it was well thought of to deceive
-the King! Surely my brother and I will reward you in
-days to come when all danger shall have been removed.
-As you have this night served Bardya, I promise on the
-word of an Achæmenian, which has never been broken,
-you will have a fitting and suitable reward. Farewell!”</p>
-
-<p>Bowing many times, Prexaspes backed from the room
-and passed hastily to his own quarters. The sisters, relieved
-of their apprehension, retired to rest.</p>
-
-<p>Next day there was much excitement in the city of
-Hamadan. A great crowd gathered along the northern<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[158]</span>
-road to shout a farewell to Bardya, the beloved. Their
-greetings to him who impersonated Bardya, when he
-appeared riding in the midst of a group of nobles, bowing
-right and left, were hearty and prolonged. Prexaspes
-rode at his side, smiling cynically beneath his
-beard and glancing occasionally up at the great palace
-on the hill where the King stood at a window gazing
-down upon the demonstration. The false Bardya
-passed out of the city; and so perfect was his resemblance
-to the departed in feature and dress that none
-suspected the imposture. At Rhages, a new escort was
-provided; but at a point a day’s journey beyond Rhages
-it was attacked by a band of men, supposed to be robbers,
-and scattered. Bardya, whether true or false,
-there disappeared and the Great King sent a punitive
-expedition into the mountains to lay waste the robbers’
-homes. Certain innocent mountaineers suffered the
-Great King’s vengeance, but the King’s brother could
-not be found.</p>
-
-<p>Thus did Cambyses make himself sure of his throne,
-and for many months thereafter he gave himself up to
-riotous living, seeking in strong drink forgetfulness of
-his crime. Meanwhile he prepared for war against
-Egypt. He levied heavy taxes and called for troops
-from every province. His pride grew. He deemed
-himself divine. The Magi encouraged him in this faith
-and brought messages from the gods of the hills to him
-as the god of earth.</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses had one great sorrow. He was childless.
-He took many women as wives. His seraglio was filled
-with the most beautiful of the earth. But no child
-gladdened his heart. As the months passed, his mind
-became darker and more imbued with hatred of good
-and the love of evil. The Magi served him well. As<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[159]</span>
-his spies they listened among the common people and
-invaded the palaces of the great. He knew that the
-people feared him and did not love him. His vanity
-was easily wounded. Some who spoke offensively of
-him to putative friends suddenly disappeared and were
-never heard of more. Throughout the vast regions governed
-by him, his spies watched for plots and conspiracies.
-Incipient rebellions were ferociously repressed
-and those who plotted were tortured to death as examples
-to others.</p>
-
-<p>Reviewing these things in his mind one day, while
-walking on the balcony of the palace, the King looked
-down upon the park surrounding the palace and noticed
-a group of women sitting on benches beneath a tree, and
-saw that among them were his two sisters. Their gay
-chatter and laughter came up to his ears. He watched
-them a moment in scowling silence, and was about to
-resume his walk, when, as he turned, he was startled at
-seeing before him the tall form of Patatheites, chief
-priest of the Magians. The King uttered an oath, and
-placed his hand on the haft of his dagger.</p>
-
-<p>“How come you here?” he growled. “I like not this
-sudden appearing! I turn here or there and I behold
-you and know not how you come or go! Speak,
-slave!”</p>
-
-<p>The large, dark eyes of the Magian looked calmly
-into the fierce, sparkling orbs of the King; and before
-his direct gaze the latter quailed. Possessed of wonderful
-hypnotic power, Patatheites easily ruled those
-with whom he came in contact. He dared even to exercise
-his power upon the King.</p>
-
-<p>“Let not the King’s anger strike me!” he said soothingly.
-“I am his most obedient and willing slave. I
-have a message from the gods, who have seen fit to
-whisper it to me for you.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[160]</span>“What is it?” demanded the King, cringing somewhat
-and experiencing a chill along his spinal column.</p>
-
-<p>“Your expedition against Egypt will be successful,
-say the gods of the hills. Concerning that which you
-had in your mind as to an heir for your throne, I have
-a message also.”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses looked upon the man with growing awe.
-To no one had he ever expressed the thoughts concerning
-his lack of an heir. How could this priest know that
-he had just been considering that subject?</p>
-
-<p>“How knew you my thoughts?” he demanded.
-“What is this message?”</p>
-
-<p>“How do the gods know?” returned the Magian.
-“This message is, that one of your race shall fill your
-throne after you, but it will be a son of your sister.”</p>
-
-<p>“What?” almost shouted the King. “Her son? and
-who shall be his father?”</p>
-
-<p>“That I know not. But I do know that it lies in your
-power to say who shall be husband to your sisters. Look
-about over the world and choose one equal to yourself.”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses was silent a moment and his thought ran
-to one only who might claim to be of equal birth, the
-Prince of Iran. Jealous wrath arose and almost choked
-his utterance.</p>
-
-<p>“There is none,” he stuttered, “unless it might be
-that accursed Hystaspis!”</p>
-
-<p>The Magian nodded meaningly.</p>
-
-<p>“Even now,” said he, “she has in her bosom a letter
-from him which she is instructed to deliver to you, demanding
-that you give her leave to go to him and marry
-him. She will present this request. What then?”</p>
-
-<p>“She shall not go to him! Instead I will send him
-a bowstring in the hands of our trusty servants.”</p>
-
-<p>Patatheites shook his head.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[161]</span>“No, it would mean your overthrow. The Persians
-and Bactrians are restless because you have seen fit to
-give freedom to the Magi; and they only await a leader
-to rise against you. They yet look for Bardya to return
-and raise the standard of rebellion. They think
-you have him imprisoned. If he could return they
-would that instant join him. If harm befall the Prince
-of Iran, remember that his old lion of a father reigns
-at Bactra, and that he has three hundred thousand of
-Cyrus’s veterans under his immediate command. The
-son is the apple of the old man’s eye, the center of his
-soul; and, in spite of his oath to Cyrus, which pledged
-him to your support, he would tear even you from
-your throne should you harm the Prince. You have
-nothing to fear from that young man. His oath binds
-him to you. He is such a stickler for faith and truth
-that he will not break it, even though you should refuse
-him the hand of your sister. But there is a plan
-whereby you may move in accordance with the advice
-of the gods, yet inflict on that Prince most grievous suffering
-if you will.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is this plan? I would go far to harass him.
-What mean you?”</p>
-
-<p>“The King has two sisters, both fair to look upon.
-There is none in all the world to equal them in birth
-save the King. Why not do as the ancient Egyptian
-kings used to do—marry these two sisters yourself?”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses stared at his interlocutor with open mouth.
-Such an idea had never entered his brain. It was contrary
-to Aryan law that one should marry any one closer
-than a cousin in blood relationship. He swore a great
-oath of astonishment. He looked down at his sisters,
-the one in all the glory of well-developed womanhood,
-the other just emerging from childhood to womanhood,
-both beautiful and of royal carriage.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[162]</span>“Which of these sisters shall mother a king?” he
-demanded of the Magian, presently.</p>
-
-<p>“It was not said. But why should the King choose?
-Is not the King of Kings above the laws of the Medes
-and Persians and may he not do as he will? Is not the
-King’s word and his decree law? If the King decree
-that he marry both his sisters, is it not law? Bah!
-The customs of the Aryans must give way to your divine
-will. I have spoken. Let the King act on my
-advice!”</p>
-
-<p>The King was silent. He contemplated his sisters.
-He turned again to the Magian, but the latter had disappeared.
-He looked about. He had not heard him go.
-This uncanny habit of Patatheites in appearing and disappearing
-at will made the King shiver. This new idea
-of taking his sisters in marriage, however, was a
-novel one and worthy of thought. He slowly descended
-by steps from the balcony to the earth and walked towards
-the group of women. As soon as the latter noticed
-his approach, there was a hasty movement among
-the women, some of whom departed. The sisters of
-the King arose as he approached, and stood in respectful
-attitude.</p>
-
-<p>“Hail, sisters!” he said, attempting to speak graciously.
-“I trust you are enjoying this pleasant
-weather. Winter approaches and we shall soon go
-down to Susa.”</p>
-
-<p>They bowed in reply. He looked them over critically.
-Yes, they were very beautiful. The younger he
-did not dislike so much as the elder. He had hated the
-elder with the same jealous hatred that he had felt towards
-his brother; but the younger had been a child and
-had not incurred his displeasure, nor had she ever said
-bitter words to him. He was surprised when Athura
-sank to her knee, saying, “I have a petition, O King!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[163]</span>He frowned down upon her, suspecting what she was
-about to ask.</p>
-
-<p>“Speak!” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“O brother, the Prince of Iran has begged me to remind
-you that our father, Cyrus, promised me to him
-in marriage. He requests that you now send me to him
-as his wife.”</p>
-
-<p>A smile of disdain curved the heavy lips of the King.
-This was the first time his proud sister had ever bent her
-knee or presented a petition to him. He gloated a moment
-over her in silence, seeking words that might assure
-her once for all of the hopelessness of her request.</p>
-
-<p>“Impossible!” he ejaculated. “I come to you with
-a message from the gods. His request cannot be
-granted now or ever. There is no one fit to mate with
-one of our family. Therefore it remains that we, you
-and I, you two and I—that we intermarry, so that the
-throne of our fathers may continue to be filled with the
-race of Cyrus!”</p>
-
-<p>Artistone gasped in astonishment. Athura rose to
-her feet, shocked and amazed. Her eyes searched the
-evil, leering face of her brother, to ascertain whether he
-were crazed or drunk.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you demented?” she gasped. “Marry your
-sisters? Never since Aryans lived has it been permitted!
-Death will be preferable! Are you in earnest?
-Or is it a horrible joke?”</p>
-
-<p>“Never have I been more in earnest, my beautiful
-sister!” answered Cambyses, mockingly. “Am I not
-King? Is not my decree above all law and custom? I
-tell you that presently I will issue my decree making it
-lawful for the King of the World to marry even his sister!
-I shall marry you, Athura! I will bend your
-proud spirit to my will. You, Artistone, shall be my<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[164]</span>
-wife. You shall be my chief wife, my queen. If either
-of you refuse, a bowstring will be your portion. My
-other wives shall be subject to you, except as I command.
-I have spoken. It shall be so!”</p>
-
-<p>He turned on his heel and stalked back towards the
-palace, while his sisters stood as if rooted to the earth
-staring at his receding form. He turned after going a
-dozen paces.</p>
-
-<p>“Write no more messages to that Darius,” he said to
-Athura. “I shall send a bowstring to him if you do so.
-The world is not large enough to contain him and me at
-the same time. I have spoken!”</p>
-
-<p>He continued to the palace, while his sisters, dumb
-with amazement and hot with anger, watched his receding
-form in silence.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[165]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XII<br />
-
-
-<small>THE FORCE OF AN OATH</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE Prince of Iran paced slowly back and forth on
-the roof of his palace in the citadel of Sardis, in
-company with his friend Gobryas. From it, grand
-views of famous seas and lands could be had. At one
-side, the rugged crests of Mount Tmolus stretched
-away in verdant splendor; at the other, and far below,
-lay the beautiful plain of Hermus through which flowed
-the river Pactolus on its bed of golden sand. Just below,
-lay the great city of Sardis, capital of his province,
-rich and splendid in its Grecian beauty and Persian
-strength. Far away to the west lay the blue waters of
-the great sea, with its hundred isles where Grecian
-genius had made fairylands of nature’s own gracious
-handiwork. Overhead, the softly tinted azure was a
-well of golden sunshine. The air was smooth as water
-to the face and like nectar to the lungs. But the eyes
-of the Prince gazed not on these splendors. They were
-moody and introspective.</p>
-
-<p>“Brother of mine,” he was saying, “is not this a land
-of infinite pleasure? No wonder these Hellenes cling to
-it! No wonder they talk in poems and work out poems
-in stone. One could live here very happily, provided
-other conditions were assured.”</p>
-
-<p>Gobryas smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“By ‘other conditions,’” he suggested, “you mean<span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[166]</span>
-that if a certain Princess who excels all others in the
-world in beauty were here, you would be content.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince nodded a smiling assent.</p>
-
-<p>“Truly you are deep in your reasoning!” he replied.
-“Now, while these hills and valleys, this sea and this
-plain, may be beautiful, it is not such a paradise for me
-as would be the rugged hills of Persia or the hot sands
-of Iran, were I permitted to dwell there with that same
-Princess. I have often wondered whether, if I were a
-simple farmer or a sheep-herder and permitted to have
-her with me, I would not be far happier than as a ruler
-of this great province without her. Power is sweet to
-a man. The right to rule, to speak a word and give life
-or death, to sit as a judge righting wrongs and endeavoring
-to make the people prosperous and happy, accords
-with my disposition. But truly, Gobryas, I would give
-all these in exchange for a shepherd’s life with her, the
-incomparable queen, the sweetest spirit and most intelligent
-mind ever given to inhabit a perfect body. Ah,
-God grant that when my letter reached the King through
-her, his heart was inclined to justice and to redeem his
-father’s pledge to me! But I fear it was not. Else why
-this delay? No letter has come from her for weeks,
-nor has the King sent me word of his decision. I have
-been planning how I would march with ten thousand
-men to meet her, even at Damascus.”</p>
-
-<p>“May Ahura-Mazda favor you!” said Gobryas,
-heartily. “It may be the King will demand delay on
-account of his approaching war with Egypt. It may be
-that, instead of a gracious assent to marry, an order
-will come for you to lead your fifty thousand veterans
-to meet his army at Tyre. Is not your army well appointed
-in all its equipment, able to march even to Hamadan
-to meet this Princess—perhaps to rescue her? It<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[167]</span>
-may become necessary. The oath that you and your
-father took to Cyrus has bound you to serve an insane
-master, who may refuse your just petition.”</p>
-
-<p>“A letter from my father is overdue also,” said the
-Prince, ignoring the suggestion of his friend. “How I
-would like to see my royal father! Truly he knows the
-secret of youth. His years sit lightly upon his shoulders.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is because he has observed the ancient customs
-of his people—to live temperately, uprightly, and
-energetically.”</p>
-
-<p>“You have said only a part of it. Much is due to
-his calmness. He never allows passion or prejudice to
-upset his equanimity. He smiles at all terrors, hardships,
-or dangers. He accepts that which comes as a
-duty. His calm is infinite!”</p>
-
-<p>Their attention was now given to a horseman who
-was toiling slowly up the steep side of the mountain to
-the citadel. He was dust-covered, and his horse was
-wet with sweat.</p>
-
-<p>“A messenger!” exclaimed the Prince. “Now perhaps
-we shall hear the decrees of fate! Ah, Gobryas,
-you have never known what it is to have the love of
-such a woman, and be so in danger of losing her! God
-grant that you may some day know the sweetness of
-love!”</p>
-
-<p>Gobryas laughed. He twirled the ends of his long
-mustache and smoothed down the folds of his cloak.
-“While I have never been as deeply in love as you,” he
-responded, “yet I know somewhat of it. Has not your
-Princess a sister? Perhaps she has smiled on me.”</p>
-
-<p>“What! Artistone? She is a sweet child! Has she
-looked upon you with favor?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have thought so,” admitted Gobryas. “I may be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[168]</span>
-mistaken. She condescended to talk with me sometimes
-when we were journeying from Bactra with the
-body of her father. Her smiles and her eyes have led
-me to believe that she regards me with approval. When
-I return from the Egyptian campaign, I shall demand
-leave of the King to speak to her of marriage, if you
-consent. My family is ancient. I am one of the seven
-nobles of Persia from whose daughters the kings have
-often chosen their brides.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will leave no influence untried in your favor,” said
-the Prince, warmly. “That will be a happy event, if
-we who have mingled our blood as brothers, should
-marry sisters! How slow that messenger is! His horse
-seems to have come far.”</p>
-
-<p>The messenger soon arrived at the citadel wall.
-Presently he appeared before the Prince, accompanied by
-a servant who carried his dispatch-bag. The Prince
-recognized him as one of his father’s messengers, a man
-who had followed the King of Iran on many campaigns.</p>
-
-<p>“Hail, royal Prince!” exclaimed the messenger, bending
-his knee. “I bring you greetings from your royal
-father and letters from him and from Cambyses, the
-King of Kings, who was kind enough to entrust me with
-a packet for you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad to see you, son of Darya,” said the Prince.
-“Go and rest while I read the letters. My servants will
-see that you have food and drink. You shall have new
-clothing and a bag of gold. After you have been refreshed,
-come hither again, as I would question you.”</p>
-
-<p>The servant took the messenger away and gave him of
-the best. The Prince hastily broke the seals of the dispatch-bag
-and poured out its contents upon a table. He
-examined the several packets hastily and was disappointed
-at not finding any letter from Athura.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[169]</span>“This is evil luck!” he exclaimed. “Surely she
-could have sent me a letter by the hand of this messenger!
-Here is an official dispatch bearing the King’s
-seal. Here is one from the noble Otanes. Ah, here is
-one from my father! We will read it first.”</p>
-
-<p>He broke the seal and unwrapped the vellum which
-covered the inner roll of papyrus. Unrolling this, he
-read aloud:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>Beloved Son</i>:</p>
-
-<p>“It gave me very great pleasure to receive your letter
-and to hear that you are well and at peace in your
-provinces. A letter from your mother has also arrived
-this day. She is well and speaks of her great loneliness
-in that both you and I are absent. I have determined to
-send for her that she may be with me here, since it now
-seems that I shall have to remain here several months.
-I have just received a letter from the King of Kings,
-by the hand of the Grand Chamberlain, Prexaspes, advising
-me that the Prince Bardya has departed for Bactra
-from Hamadan. But the Prince has not yet arrived.
-This letter also calls for a levy of one hundred thousand
-men for the proposed war in Egypt. What Prince
-Bardya will say to this request, I fear will not please the
-King. Reports have come which cause me much uneasiness.
-It is said the King of Kings is consulting the
-sorcerers and consorting with those who worship the
-Lie. His delay for months to permit Bardya to come
-hither has caused much uneasiness.</p>
-
-<p>“This realm is peaceful now, although the Sogdians
-are turbulent and the Getæ are ever plotting raids upon
-their neighbors. The fear of my veterans is upon them,
-however, and the mountain chiefs are making daily professions
-of fealty and devotion. But I think it is fear<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[170]</span>
-rather than love which causes them to be at peace and
-to turn traders instead of looters.</p>
-
-<p>“But I will write no more, except to say that the son
-of Darya will make due inquiries and observations of
-affairs at Hamadan so that he may report fully to you
-concerning them.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Prince re-read that portion of the letter referring
-to Bardya.</p>
-
-<p>“I look for trouble as soon as Bardya arrives in
-Bactra,” said he. “It is well that my father has remained
-there. He will restrain the Prince. Now I will
-read the King’s letter.”</p>
-
-<p>He took up the largest packet, broke the seal, and
-untied the cord around it. The vellum wrappings having
-been removed, two clay tablets, written closely in
-the cuneiform script of official decrees, were revealed.
-He read aloud:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“I, Cambyses the Achæmenian, son of Cyrus, King
-of Kings, King of all the Earth, Ruler of All Nations,
-the Great King, have decreed:</p>
-
-<p>“First: That it is lawful for the King of Kings to
-take to wife any woman whether it be his sister or another.</p>
-
-<p>“Second: That the Princesses Athura and Artistone
-shall be his wives.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Prince stopped reading. He was speechless with
-amazement. He trembled and seemed about to fall; but
-Gobryas seized his arm and supported him.</p>
-
-<p>“Am I dreaming? Read it, brother, and say if what
-I read is there!” he exclaimed, handing the tablets to
-Gobryas.</p>
-
-<p>The latter seized the tablets and looked at them.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[171]</span>“There is no mistake!” he said. “So runs the writing!
-But God forbid that such act of a maniac could be
-accomplished! Will he dare do this thing and the Persian
-nobles not tear him from the throne?”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince, with a mighty effort, recovered his
-strength and drew up his tall form to its full height, as
-he might if facing death. He looked as in a dream at
-the distant mountains, at the sparkling sea and the deep
-blue of the heavens filled with the soft golden light of
-the afternoon sun. His words, when he spoke, were
-low and tense:</p>
-
-<p>“This I know, that the Princess Athura will not become
-his wife! She may be at this moment dead or in
-prison! She would never submit to such infamy! This
-is a deadly insult to me, the son of the King of Iran, the
-son of kings better in the right to rule than he; and it
-shall not be borne! I will march to Hamadan! I will
-throw down that cursed beast from the throne! By the
-living God, I recall my oath to Cyrus! I am not bound
-because he has broken faith. He may have slain her.
-He shall die! Come, Gobryas! Not a moment is to be
-lost. Gather together my officers. Call into the ranks
-every man. We will march before the sun goes down!”</p>
-
-<p>He smote his palms together. His chest heaved
-with mighty emotions. The world seemed rocking to its
-dissolution and he about to fall with it.</p>
-
-<p>Gobryas placed one arm around his friend and compelled
-him to walk slowly back and forth. He feared
-for a moment that the Prince’s reason was tottering.
-Never had he seen him so moved. He sought for words
-to comfort him.</p>
-
-<p>“Beloved Prince,” he said, “listen to me! Athura is
-not one who will tamely submit to such wrong. She has
-not submitted. She has escaped or she has slain herself.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[172]</span>
-But let us hear further from the messenger. Let
-us read these other letters. Then let us take counsel
-so that we may not fail. We who have not taken an
-oath to Cyrus will pull Cambyses down from his throne
-and slay him like a dog! Have good courage, brother!
-Let me depart this night for Persia. There I will
-gather the lords of Persia and with an army march up
-to your aid when you cross the Tigris. Athura and
-Artistone may have perished, but vengeance remains.
-Let us make Bardya King. Forbid it not! I will depart
-this night. Three months from now a hundred
-thousand Persians will be camped around the royal palace
-at Hamadan.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince sat down on a bench beneath the awning
-and buried his face in his hands. He was silent for
-some moments, while Gobryas nervously paced back and
-forth. After a while, the Prince again arose, pallid
-but calm. He said, speaking argumentatively: “He is
-King. My loyalty is to the King, though my hatred is
-towards the man. Must we not put aside personal
-wrongs, Gobryas, and trust that God will avenge us?
-No Achæmenian has ever broken an oath, but has kept
-it in spirit as well as in letter. It is hard to serve such a
-King, but let us consider well before we start civil war.
-If what he has decreed has been accomplished, then am
-I absolved from my oath. But I must wait until I know
-what has occurred. We will send a dispatch to my
-father, seeking his counsel. Shall I plunge the world
-into war because of my personal wrong?”</p>
-
-<p>“I had not considered that,” answered Gobryas. “I
-am not oath-bound. I dreamed of Artistone; and lo,
-this cursed maniac has spoiled my dream! But I shall
-be guided by you.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince went to the table on which the other letters<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[173]</span>
-lay, and took up the one sealed with the seal of
-Otanes. He read it aloud:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“<i>To the royal Prince of Iran, son of Hystaspis, the
-King, greeting</i>:</p>
-
-<p>“I have intrusted this letter to your servant, knowing
-his fidelity, and have instructed him to deliver it to
-you alone and not to let it pass from his hands to any
-other while he lives. Know that the King has broken
-all the ancient laws and customs of Persia; and we, as
-one of the seven families of Persia, are calling to the
-other six for counsel. We have sent letters to your beloved
-father, begging him to consent to reign.</p>
-
-<p>“This Cambyses has proven that he is no longer sane.
-He is possessed of devils. His debaucheries have
-weakened his mind, while sharpening his appetite for
-doing evil. He has advanced the Magi to the choicest
-places in the realm. He has failed to remember that
-the seven noble families of Persia are entitled to the
-chief places under him, as in the time of Cyrus. He is a
-worshiper of the Lie and not of the Truth. He has
-forgotten the religion of the Aryans and has fallen into
-the hands of the fire-worshiping Magi, devil-worshipers
-of the hills. He has slain without cause many who
-have displeased him, even Persians of high rank. He has
-disregarded all laws and customs. The last and most
-infamous thing is this marriage with his two sisters
-which he purposes to accomplish. He has declared that
-he as King is above all laws and customs, that
-Aryan laws are not binding on him. Knowing by common
-report that you and the royal Princess Athura
-are promised to each other, all Persia is in a ferment
-of discontent over the gross insult shown you in thus
-taking your promised wife by force to his own vile
-harem.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[174]</span>“Prince Bardya left Hamadan ten months ago for
-Bactra. But it is reported that robbers set upon and
-captured him just after he left Rhages. He has disappeared.
-I think the robbers were the men of Cambyses
-and that Bardya has been slain.</p>
-
-<p>“Send us, therefore, but one word, telling us that you
-march hither with your army; and we will meet you at
-Susa with two hundred thousand men, to throw down
-this beast from his throne. In you alone do the Persian
-people hope. Your father’s age and inclination may not
-permit him to accept the great burden of ruling this empire,
-in case Bardya cannot be found; and we shall call
-you to the throne. Send us orders.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Prince was greatly moved. Gobryas watched
-him curiously. Would not this letter overcome his
-scruples? The Prince sat down heavily by the table and
-supported his head on his hands. After a moment of
-silence, he said:</p>
-
-<p>“Call the son of Darya.”</p>
-
-<p>Gobryas pulled a silken cord, and immediately a servant
-appeared.</p>
-
-<p>“Bring the messenger here,” he commanded.</p>
-
-<p>The son of Darya appeared quickly. He bowed low
-before the Prince, who pointed to a bench, indicating
-that he might sit. But he remained standing.</p>
-
-<p>“Son of Darya,” said the Prince, “you have come
-far and served faithfully. How is the old man, my
-father? Has he changed much? Is his body bending
-with age and toil?”</p>
-
-<p>The man’s dark eyes glowed with affection as he answered:
-“No, royal Master. Your father stoops not,
-nor does his face show care. It is not wrinkled save
-when he smiles on his sons, as he calls the soldiers.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[175]</span>
-Bactra is happy, because the people dwell in safety and
-have justice dealt out to them. Your royal father remains
-youthful and is ready to march on smooth or
-rough roads at any moment. There is no man in all
-Iran like unto him.”</p>
-
-<p>“You saw and heard much as you came hither. You
-stopped at Hamadan and you gathered news there for
-me. Is it not so?”</p>
-
-<p>“I was commanded to see and hear and to report all
-to you.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is well. From what you saw and heard, know
-you anything concerning the marriage of the King to his
-sisters?”</p>
-
-<p>“It was all the talk in the rest-houses and in the
-streets of Hamadan when I came to that city. I was
-not permitted to see the royal Princesses, as the marriage
-feast had occurred but two weeks prior to my
-arrival. But I caught a glimpse of the royal lady,
-Artistone, at a window in the palace. I thought it was
-she. It was said that the King has ten other wives and
-keeps them in one part of his palace separate from all
-others, like the Assyrians. There had been much murmuring
-among the Persians and some rioting between
-them and the Magi. I saw the noble Otanes, who was
-very wroth and who has since left the city, going southward
-to his castle in Persia. He bade me say to you
-that you should make quick answer and that he hopes
-to hear that your army will march at once to Damascus.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you hear whether the Princesses consented?”</p>
-
-<p>“They both refused to consent to the marriage; but
-the King decreed the marriage instead of observing the
-Persian custom of marrying. It was reported that he
-gave them their choice of marriage or death, and that
-Princess Athura chose death. It was also reported that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[176]</span>
-one of the Princesses had escaped from the palace and
-had disappeared. I know that squads of cavalry were
-searching the country all around the city. It was said
-to be Athura who fled. I have also a verbal message
-from Prexaspes, who bade me say to you these words,
-‘The bird has escaped the fowler’s net.’”</p>
-
-<p>“What else said he?” demanded the Prince, greatly
-agitated.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing. But he gave me a purse of gold.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have you heard whether Athura was found?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. The palace servants are quaking with terror
-and dare not talk. It is said that the King slew three of
-them with his own hands on the day when the Princess
-fled. She had not been discovered, I think, when I
-left.”</p>
-
-<p>“What heard you of the Prince Bardya?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing, except that he had departed from the city
-some months before I arrived, going towards Rhages.
-At Rhages, it was said that the Prince had passed
-through and had then been set upon by robbers and
-taken into the mountains. It is a great mystery. Some
-say that he is dead, slain by the Magi, or that the Magi
-have him imprisoned in their mountain strongholds.”</p>
-
-<p>“What rumors of the war with Egypt did you hear?”</p>
-
-<p>“The King is gathering a great army from all parts
-of his empire. It is said he will gather it at Arbela in
-the spring and march thence by way of Damascus and
-Tyre.”</p>
-
-<p>“You heard nothing more of the Princesses?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing. I spoke with the guards of the palace.
-But they are black-faced villains from Azerbijan, under
-the control of the Magi; and they would tell me nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>“You may go now,” said the Prince. “You have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[177]</span>
-done well. Go and rest. I will call you again. Make
-ready to return in three days.”</p>
-
-<p>The man departed.</p>
-
-<p>“What mean the words of Prexaspes, think you?”
-asked the Prince, turning to Gobryas. “Does he refer
-to Bardya or to Athura?”</p>
-
-<p>“I should say, to Athura. Prexaspes loved not
-Bardya, but he admired you. Undoubtedly he referred
-to Athura. Perhaps the packet containing the King’s
-decrees contained a letter from him.”</p>
-
-<p>Gobryas took the wrappers up from the floor where
-they had fallen and found a closely written sheet of
-vellum.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a letter from Prexaspes,” he said.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>To the Prince of Iran, greeting</i>:</p>
-
-<p>“Cambyses, King of Kings, the King of All the
-Earth, the Great King, commands that you gather fifty
-thousand soldiers and, leaving only force sufficient to
-garrison the chief cities under command of Metaphernes,
-that you march to Tyre, there to await the gathering of
-the other armies of the King. He has determined to
-punish the King of Egypt for injuries and insults heretofore
-sustained. You are ordered to hire all the Phœnician
-ships and as many of the Hellenes as you can.
-Let them also gather at Tyre. Also to engage all the
-Cretan slingers and Greek hoplites from Ionia and the
-islands. Pay them liberally from the King’s money.
-Bring with you the treasures of your provinces and
-gather provisions at Tyre to subsist five hundred thousand
-men for a year’s campaign in Egypt. Be ready to
-lead the King’s armies. For the King orders that you
-have chief command under him. In four months be at
-the place appointed.</p>
-
-<p class="right">“(For the King) <span class="smcap">Prexaspes</span>.”</p>
-</div>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[178]</span>“The King does me honor indeed!” exclaimed the
-Prince, angrily. “One day he insults and wrongs me;
-the next he appoints me leader of his army. I will
-march to Tyre, indeed! If I march no further towards
-Hamadan, it will be because I find that Athura has indeed
-escaped. But, alas! Gobryas, I fear much that
-she escaped only by the aid of a dagger.”</p>
-
-<p>“Better the dagger than the fate of Artistone! Did
-the messenger not say he saw her at a palace window
-two weeks after the marriage? She is but a child, and
-could not escape! O, my Prince and brother! Give
-me leave this night to start for Persia! I do not ask
-you to raise your hand against the King! But I will
-stir up all Persia against him. May Ahriman seize
-him!”</p>
-
-<p>Gobryas paced back and forth, greatly agitated. But
-the Prince shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Let us not be hasty, dear brother!” he said. “In
-my own grief I had forgotten that you love Artistone.
-Whatever has been done cannot now be undone. Vengeance
-will wait and be more sure to those who make
-sufficient preparation. Let us hasten our departure.
-Perhaps Athura is flying hither, and we must prepare to
-receive and protect her. If it means war, let it come!
-I cannot throw Cambyses down from his throne; but my
-oath does not prohibit me from resisting his tyranny by
-force. I cannot agree with Otanes to make war on him.
-Nor can I permit you, my brother, to go into Persia to
-aid in a conspiracy against him. He has wronged you
-unwittingly and has put no insult upon you, as he has
-upon me. Nevertheless, if Athura has escaped and
-claims my protection, she shall have it even if war be
-the result.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[179]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIII<br />
-
-
-<small>A CLASH OF WILLS</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">ATHURA and Artistone, sisters of the Great King,
-were alone in their magnificent sitting-room in the
-palace, having dismissed all their attendants. They sat
-on a velvet-covered couch with heads close together,
-discussing the latest action of the King. Between
-them lay a tablet on which was engraved a copy
-of the King’s decree, declaring the new law, that the
-King of Kings might marry his sisters. Some days had
-elapsed since the King of Kings had told them of his
-intention, but as he had not again spoken on the subject,
-they had concluded that he was jesting. This decree
-indicated his set purpose.</p>
-
-<p>“Is the decree law?” asked Artistone.</p>
-
-<p>“No, it is not law! The King cannot set aside the
-customs of his people by decrees,” answered Athura.
-“I am sure that the Kings of Iran in all ages have been
-bound by law and custom. But in this new empire,
-it may be that the King’s decree is law, since there is
-none to gainsay it. This decree shall never bind me!
-Death will be welcome rather than submission to this
-brutal decree!”</p>
-
-<p>“What shall we do?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have my dagger! I shall slay Cambyses, or myself,
-should he seek to force us into marriage with him.”</p>
-
-<p>Artistone sighed. Her wan countenance indicated
-fear. She was only a child of fifteen years. But<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[180]</span>
-Athura lacked neither courage nor decision. The spirit
-of her father blazed within her.</p>
-
-<p>“Let us plan escape,” she said. “This night we will
-leave the palace. We will disguise ourselves in men’s
-clothing and we will fly to Persia for safety. The lords
-of Persia will protect us. We cannot escape to Bactra.
-There is but one road and that will be watched.”</p>
-
-<p>“How can I travel so?” her sister rejoined, tears
-flowing down her cheeks. “I am not strong like you.
-But I will follow you.”</p>
-
-<p>Further conversation was interrupted by the noise of
-heavy footsteps in the hall without. The heavy curtains
-at the door were pushed aside and the King himself
-appeared. He stopped just within the threshold and,
-folding his arms, struck a majestic attitude and looked
-down at his sisters.</p>
-
-<p>He writhed his brutal countenance into the semblance
-of a smile and said: “All hail, great Queens, wives of
-the King of Kings, the Great King! Are you not rejoicing
-that I have condescended to do you so great
-honor as to make you both the first ladies in all the
-world?”</p>
-
-<p>The sisters were speechless. They gazed up at the
-harsh features of their brother, as if upon a serpent.</p>
-
-<p>As they did not answer, he continued: “I never did
-like the formalities of a state marriage. My decree was
-the shortest and best way, since it did not require
-your assent. I come now to ask you to set a near date
-for the marriage feast. At the end of the week, you
-shall be crowned Queens of the Earth. What say you?”</p>
-
-<p>He ceased and waited for an answer, leering at them
-drunkenly.</p>
-
-<p>“Surely you mean not to make us actually wives,
-contrary to all the laws of the Medes and Persians?”
-said Athura.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[181]</span>“But it is not contrary to their laws,” he retorted.
-“Have I not decreed a new law? Am I not supreme?
-Is there any other that can make a law? Ah, you are
-a proud woman, Athura, and your heart is set on that
-Prince of Iran whom I hate above all men and would
-slay, were it not greater satisfaction to make him serve
-me without his hoped-for reward of marrying you! I
-have thought well on this noble revenge! I hate you
-also; but I will bend you to my will, and you shall be my
-concubine if not my wife, whether you desire or not!
-As for Artistone, I hate her not. I prefer to make her
-my chief wife. She shall be Queen. I have spoken!
-Artistone, go to the Queen’s room and there abide.
-Athura, follow me now to the room set apart for my
-women!”</p>
-
-<p>Athura rose, her eyes blazing, and moved swiftly towards
-the King, with her right hand drawing from her
-bodice a short, keen dagger.</p>
-
-<p>“Truly, brute without sense or reason,” she hissed,
-“I come to you, but with death in my hand!”</p>
-
-<p>She leaped towards him and the dagger gleamed in
-her raised hand. With an exclamation of alarm the
-King sprang backward through the door. He stumbled
-and almost fell as he ran down the hall. As she did
-not pursue, he halted and shouted at her, while shaking
-his fist: “Death is it? So shall it be to you, after I
-bend your proud spirit!” Then he roared for his
-guards.</p>
-
-<p>Athura paused at the door. She heard the King’s
-threat and his wrathful call for his body-guard. She
-saw the hall filling with armed men. She turned back
-and fled across the room, crying to her sister: “Come!
-Follow me into the bedroom! They come to seize us!”</p>
-
-<p>But Artistone, as if dazed, sat still, and, weeping<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[182]</span>
-aloud, wrung her hands. Athura paused at the door of
-her bedroom and cried: “Come! Hurry!”</p>
-
-<p>A dozen men poured into the room and rushed towards
-her. Artistone did not move. Athura entered
-her room, threw shut the heavy door, and bolted it just
-as the men hurled themselves against it. The King
-shouted in a loud voice so that Athura might hear:
-“Let her stay there and starve awhile! She will come
-to her senses! Establish guards here and watch! Let
-her not escape on forfeit of your lives! She will kiss
-my hand presently. As for you, Artistone, come with
-me. You shall be my Queen!” He went to Artistone,
-took her by the hand, and led her, weeping bitterly,
-away. The sisters never saw each other again.</p>
-
-<p>Athura waited like a tigress at bay, dagger in hand,
-at her bedroom door, until satisfied that no attempt
-would be made to force an entrance. Then she examined
-the brazen lattice-work with which a window
-looking out upon the inner court was guarded and saw
-that it was securely fastened. She drew a heavy curtain
-over the window. Thus securely shut in she began to
-prepare for escape. She realized that she was powerless
-to aid her sister. It was equally clear to her that only in
-immediate escape could she avoid disgrace or death.
-It would be useless to ask mercy of the King. Her plan
-of escape was already formed. She was acquainted
-with every room and passage in the palace, and knew
-the secrets of it. Her only fear was that Cambyses
-also knew those secrets and would set guards to watch
-every avenue of escape.</p>
-
-<p>After assuring herself that no immediate attempt
-would be made to break into her retreat, she entered a
-large closet, which was connected with her room by a
-door and in which were stored her clothing and jewels.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[183]</span>
-It was a long, narrow room. At one end was a window
-guarded by brazen lattice-work and by shutters of the
-same metal. The shutter was hinged to the sills and
-commonly stood open to admit air into the closet. The
-lattice-work was also hung on hinges but was secured
-by a massive lock on the inside. Athura took a key
-from a convenient hook, cautiously inserted it into the
-lock in the lattice, and found that it would readily turn.
-She looked out across the roof of a lower portion of the
-palace into the park at the western side and saw no
-guards. Satisfied that the way was yet clear, she
-quickly opened a chest at one corner of the closet and
-took from it a short ladder of rope, a suit of clothes of
-a sort commonly worn by young men, and a jeweled
-belt from which hung a short sword. It had been years
-since she had used these. She sighed as she remembered
-how she and her brother Bardya, without the knowledge
-of the Great King, her father, had sometimes disguised
-themselves and wandered forth at night to observe the
-common people, to take part in their sports and entertainments,
-and to mingle with those who came and went
-on the streets of the city. How long ago that seemed!
-As she knelt by the chest and laid out the clothes, she
-recalled how the Prince of Iran, having been admitted
-to the secrets of her escapades, had gravely rebuked her,
-but had nevertheless disguised himself and accompanied
-her and Bardya, as he said, to protect them. The danger
-of her situation allowed her to think but a moment of
-those happy days. From another chest, bound with
-silver bands, she took a long necklace of precious stones,
-and a belt of beautifully embossed leather to which were
-fastened purselike compartments full of gold coins.
-She undressed and fastened the money-belt around her
-waist. Then she put on the suit of men’s clothing and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[184]</span>
-stowed away the jewels in its pockets. She then cut her
-hair to a length just sufficient to touch the collar of her
-tunic. Upon her head she set a round felt cap. Critically
-surveying her appearance in a mirror, she saw that
-she resembled a well-dressed youth of the nobler class
-of Medes, but one whose face was far too beautiful and
-feminine to pass for that of a man. Taking from a
-cabinet a box of unguents and powders, she skillfully
-deepened the color of her eyebrows and darkened her
-complexion, until she resembled a young Mede of mixed
-Semitic and Aryan blood.</p>
-
-<p>These preparations consumed much time. Darkness
-fell upon the earth. Then a heavy knocking sounded
-upon the door of the bedroom and a rough voice said:
-“May you live forever, O Great Princess! I have a
-message from my royal Master, the King of Kings!”</p>
-
-<p>She made no answer and, after a moment, the voice
-continued: “Once more does the King of Kings offer
-you peace and a place of honor as his wife. Otherwise
-his sentence is that you have neither food nor water
-until you submit to his royal will.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Athura answered, “Tell your Lord and Master
-that I will take until the morning to consider.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am your slave!” responded the voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, well!” exclaimed the King, when he received
-Athura’s message. “Our proud-spirited sister may submit,
-since she sends me back so mild an answer. It is
-well! The word of the King must prevail. A day or
-two of solitude will not harm her. We shall yet be a
-happy family!”</p>
-
-<p>He laughed loud and long and drank deeply of soma.
-Artistone, who sat with him at dinner, made no answer,
-but her eyes, red with weeping, gave evidence of her
-woe.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[185]</span>As soon as darkness came fully over the palace,
-Athura went forth cautiously upon the roof of the
-portico, descended to the ground by means of her rope
-ladder, and stole away through the gloom among the
-trees and shrubbery in the park. Knowing every path,
-every bush and tree, it was not difficult for her to find
-a way and to avoid the points where the guards sauntered
-listlessly to and fro, keeping careless ward. The
-King had not remembered her avenue of escape, or the
-guards were careless. She climbed over the stone walls
-surrounding the park, with the aid of her rope ladder,
-and, making a détour to avoid the guards, walked rapidly
-and boldly into the city. She went straight to a horse-market
-and roused a sleepy servant, who, though at first
-disposed to grumble at so late a visitor, speedily turned
-obsequious when a coin was pressed into his hand. He
-forthwith brought out one of the dealers in horses.</p>
-
-<p>“A pretty time to come buying horses!” grumbled
-the latter, yawning and stretching his limbs. “Think
-you, my young sprig, that I work day and night?”</p>
-
-<p>“Peace, grumbler!” retorted Athura, speaking
-hoarsely. “If I come to buy a Nicæan steed by lamplight,
-what is that to you, seeing that I have the coin?
-I must go on a journey to-night many miles to the
-northward and need to hire a horse. But lest you deem
-me a robber, I will deposit the full price of the animal,
-to be returned when I return the horse. One condition
-only I exact—he must have speed and go comfortably
-without fright or stumble. Fool me in this and I will
-bring down the wrath of a mighty man upon you! Have
-you a good horse?”</p>
-
-<p>“Have I a good horse? I keep nothing else, young
-sir! Come to the stalls!”</p>
-
-<p>He led the way with alacrity. He pointed to a large<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[186]</span>
-animal, saying, “This one is good in bottom and long
-in legs. He will carry your insignificant weight all night.
-Here is a Nicæan steed; but he is a fierce animal and
-will not brook punishment of whip or spur. Speak
-gently to him and he will carry you a week without
-rest. But he surely is beyond your price!”</p>
-
-<p>“What is his price? I doubt that he has such mettle
-as you think.”</p>
-
-<p>“Fifty Lydian staters is his price. For riding him
-this night the price will be one Lydian stater, if you
-return him to me to-morrow without injury. Assuredly
-you may have a cheaper horse than this!”</p>
-
-<p>“Extortioner! Twenty staters is more than a good
-price for that animal. I will surely report you to the
-governor of the market. Think you I know nothing of
-horses?”</p>
-
-<p>The dealer spread out his hands and bowed as if in
-deep humility, saying: “I perceive your worship is well
-acquainted with horseflesh. Come, I will not haggle
-with you. Deposit your twenty staters in my hand and
-take him. But you will surely pay an additional stater
-for a fine saddle!”</p>
-
-<p>“Verily you are an extortioner! But I will not haggle.
-One half-stater and no more! Make haste, since
-my lady-love will not wait for my coming too long!”</p>
-
-<p>Athura took a handful of coins from a purse at her
-belt and counted it into the outstretched palm of the
-greedy dealer, whose eyes sparkled in triumph. The
-amount was a third more than the animal was worth.
-The horse was brought out, saddled and bridled, champing
-his bits and pawing the earth, impatient to be gone.
-Athura loved a good horse. She was an accomplished
-rider. She sprang lightly into the saddle and trotted
-away, shouting back at the dealer: “Farewell, son of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[187]</span>
-Ahriman! Keep the gold should I not return. I may
-go on to Rhages before I come back.”</p>
-
-<p>The dealer waved his hand in reply and said to his
-servant: “Young sprig! Thought he knew the prices
-of animals! Bah! But then, he has a good horse, even
-if he paid a stiff price. Who can he be? May the dogs
-bite him if he try to return that animal! See that you
-be ready to testify that this was a sale and not a letting.
-We shall not repurchase the horse.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yea, verily, Master, it was a sale,” answered the
-servant. Then they retired to their couches well satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>Athura cantered rapidly along the principal street of
-the city going north. Night watchmen threw upon her
-the rays of their lanterns. She passed a squad of soldiers
-in front of a public house, where, under the influence
-of wine, they were singing and making merry.
-To their gibes, she waved her hand, but declined their
-invitation to alight and join them. She came to the
-outer boundaries of the city on the road to Rhages.
-There the guards sat carelessly playing dice in their
-shelter at the roadside. They heard the rapid hoof-beats
-of a horse approaching from the city, but before
-they could come forth to challenge, the horse with its
-rider flashed by at full speed. In a second, the twain disappeared
-in a cloud of dust and darkness. Grumbling
-that their ease should be thus broken, the guards returned
-to their game. Had they known who had passed
-and that on the morrow they would be flayed alive and
-quartered by an infuriated King, they would not have
-been so careless. This was not their first omission of
-duty, but it was the first in which the King was directly
-concerned; and it was their last. They met their fate
-at sundown on the morrow in the market-place after<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[188]</span>
-a short interrogation by the King himself, as an exhibition
-to all men of the King’s justice upon those who
-neglected duty.</p>
-
-<p>It must be said of Cambyses that although to his own
-passions and desires he gave loose rein and was brutal
-to those who interfered therewith, yet to his subjects he
-was just, and was strict in the enforcement of law. Because
-he regarded himself as the lawgiver, he regarded
-a breach of the law as an insult to himself. He caused
-one corrupt judge to be flayed alive in the market-place.
-Other evil-doers were maimed or strangled. Not only
-did the guards of the road whose orders compelled them
-to exact a pass of any one passing in or out of the city
-after nightfall suffer, but several palace-guards whose
-duty it was to watch the palace walls, were strangled
-with the bowstring. His fury even threatened Prexaspes,
-but that astute official was able to prove that he had
-gone on a mission to a neighboring city and could not be
-involved in Athura’s sudden disappearance. Spies soon
-learned of the flight of the steed and its rider on the
-northern road. They found the horse-dealer, whose
-description of the rider indicated that it was Athura in
-disguise who had hired the horse. Bands of troopers
-were sent out on every road and into the fields and
-mountains around the city. None knew except the captains
-in charge of the bands for whom the search was
-being made. It was reported generally that a robber
-had broken into the palace and carried away some of
-the King’s jewels.</p>
-
-<p>Athura rode northward for half an hour, then turning
-sharply to the right and following a road which was
-little better than a path, but which led to one of the
-King’s desert gardens, she came to a well-beaten caravan-route
-leading southward towards what is now the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[189]</span>
-city of Isfahan. Taking this road, she followed it southward
-until she entered a road branching southwestward to
-Adrapan, the winter palace of Cyrus. By this circuitous
-way she hoped to deceive those who might pursue into
-the belief that she was fleeing to Bactra by way of
-Rhages. She did not dare take the road to Persia direct,
-but planned to ride by way of Susa, or, perhaps, if her
-intention should change upon reflection, she would flee
-to Damascus and thence to her Prince at Sardis. As
-she rode, her active brain elaborated her plans.</p>
-
-<p>The night was cool and clear. The brilliant stars
-scintillated in the autumn sky. A quarter-moon gave
-down a subdued light. A breeze swept down from
-Mount Elwend, whose rugged heights lay darkly against
-the western sky. The road to Adrapan followed the
-base of a promontory of the Zagros range, which here
-jutted out into the plain. Here and there near the
-highway were the cottages of gardeners, who by irrigating
-their crops with the precious waters of Elwend,
-caused the fertile soil to yield the vegetable supply for
-the capital city. The odor of flowers and fruits permeated
-the air. The strong, spirited horse, glorying in
-his strength and scarce feeling the weight of his rider,
-galloped onward with long, even strides. No one interrupted
-their progress. The cottagers, if partially
-aroused by the rapid beat of hoofs and the barking of
-dogs, sleepily muttered, “A King’s messenger!” turned
-over on their pallets, and again slumbered.</p>
-
-<p>Adrapan lay on the southern slopes of Mount Elwend.
-Here the snows, which annually fell over Hamadan, seldom
-came; and, if they did, the southern exposure to
-the sun caused them quickly to melt away. To the right
-of the highway which passed westward through the
-village was the palace, in a great park of noble trees.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[190]</span>
-On the left were several houses occupied by those who
-made their livelihood trading with the thousands of
-nobles and retainers who honored the King as his guests
-or served him as retainers. Here caravans from Damascus
-and the west coming by way of Nineveh, or from the
-south, coming by way of Babylon and Susa, stopped to
-enjoy the salubrious climate and recuperate after enduring
-the hot districts along the Tigris and the difficult
-roads across the Zagros Mountains. At this time the
-palace and its park were in the care of keepers and
-Adrapan was deserted, save by inn-keepers and traders.</p>
-
-<p>Athura sighed as she came in sight of the village.
-She remembered the pleasant days when, a child, she
-had wandered in the park with her father, or played
-there with Bardya and the young Prince of Iran. How
-long ago those days seemed! Her noble, erect, keen-eyed,
-kind-hearted, and loving father; her joyous, laughter-loving,
-and boisterous brother; and the tall youth,
-whose calm demeanor, royal bearing, and worshipful
-eyes were ever in her mind—all appeared in her memory.
-Tears came into her eyes, and her lips trembled
-with emotion. She brought her panting steed to a stop
-within the deep shadows of the trees and halted a moment
-to consider her course. If she should pass through
-the village, she might be seen and accosted. If she
-should enter the park, she would incur danger from wild
-beasts which sometimes came down from the mountains.
-Bears, wolves, a leopard, a tiger, and even a lion had
-been seen in the park. She knew all the paths through
-the woodland and that, by going a roundabout way, she
-might avoid the palace and the village, but it would lead
-through wild, dark places. Though she had fear of wild
-beasts, she feared more to be overtaken by the pursuers
-that her brother might send after her. She decided to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[191]</span>
-follow the dark paths of the forest and defy the dangers
-from wild beasts. Turning her horse, she plunged
-boldly into the woodland.</p>
-
-<p>The turf deadened the hoof-beats of the horse. No
-sound was heard save the cry of an owl, the song of a
-bulbul, and the chirp of insects. Gathering the bridle
-reins in one hand, she drew the short sword from its
-sheath at her belt with the other and carried it ready to
-meet any danger that might assail her. Once she raised
-the sword high towards heaven and prayed in a whisper,
-“Thou, Ahura-Mazda, Good Spirit and Protector, send
-Sraosha, victorious leader of the hosts of heaven, to
-guard me from Angro-mainyus and the Devas!”</p>
-
-<p>She went slowly and warily. A dim light from the
-declining moon and the stars enabled her to recognize the
-pathways. Her horse, tossing his noble head and pricking
-forward his slender ears, followed the paths with
-certain step, unafraid of the sounds of the night. If a
-bear or wolf, sniffing the breeze on the heights above,
-became aware of their presence, it did not descend to
-investigate, nor did any leopard, tiger, or lion molest
-her. For an hour she slowly followed the devious ways,
-but at length returned to the highway a parasang west of
-the village. That she had acted wisely appeared on the
-following day, when a squad of the King’s horsemen
-rode into Adrapan and made inquiry. The villagers and
-the palace watchmen swore that no one had passed
-through during the preceding night, although careful
-vigil had been maintained on account of a report that
-a band of robbers had been seen in the neighboring
-mountains.</p>
-
-<p>On the highway again, horse and rider, somewhat
-rested by the leisurely progress through the woodland,
-sped away westward at a gallop. The highway was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[192]</span>
-smooth for several miles, until it plunged into the defiles
-of the Zagros Mountains, through which flowed the
-headwater streams of the river Choaspes. Then it became
-more difficult, with steep grades, crossing on stone
-bridges over deep gorges, the beds of roaring streams,
-and winding about steep bluffs and over sharp ridges.
-Morning found the fugitive many miles from Hamadan
-in the midst of mountains; and her weariness and that of
-her steed warned her that she must find a resting-place.
-Twice she fruitlessly turned from the road to follow
-paths leading up narrow canyons, hoping to find a suitable
-hiding-place. The third time she followed a narrow
-pass leading into a small valley and there found a
-sheepfold and a shepherd’s cabin. The shepherd and his
-flock were in the hills, where the warm rays of the sun
-and the waters of many springs kept the grass sweet and
-tender.</p>
-
-<p>Finding the hut empty and no one near, Athura descended
-stiffly from her horse and searched for food.
-She found a large jar of barley in the hut and gave her
-horse a generous feed from it. Then, having tied him
-to a tree, she searched the cabin for food that she might
-eat. The long ride had made her tired and faint.
-Hunger reminded her that she had eaten nothing since
-the previous noon. She opened cupboards and chests
-and presently found a box in which the shepherd had
-left a piece of roasted mutton and some round flat cakes
-of bread, made of coarse barley flour. The fare satisfied
-her hunger. Then she shut and barred the stout
-cabin-door and threw herself upon a bundle of sheep-skins
-which lay on the floor, and slept several hours.
-When the day was half gone, after another hasty meal
-she went on her way.</p>
-
-<p>The shepherd did not return till the shades of night<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[193]</span>
-were falling. His surprise and indignation were great
-when he found that some one had entered his cabin,
-eaten his bread and meat, and taken some of his grain;
-but he was delighted when he found lying in the bread-box
-a gold piece. He tried the coin with his teeth and
-excitedly turned it over and over in his palm. Then
-he hid it safely in the earth at one corner of his hut.</p>
-
-<p>“Truly,” he muttered, “some god must have rested
-here, or a spirit of the hills! But no, they would not
-eat my food. May luck go with this patron of mine
-forever!”</p>
-
-<p>It was after noon when Athura left the shepherd’s
-hut and rode out of the canyon to the highway. She
-turned her face westward and rode as rapidly as the
-steep grades and dangerous passes would permit, anxiously
-scanning every reach ahead lest she meet a caravan,
-an inquisitive traveler, or a band of robbers. Outlaws
-frequently attacked caravans in those days and places,
-as they do yet. Travel except with guards or in large
-companies was dangerous. Once as she rode past the
-mouth of a canyon she observed several men sitting
-around a camp-fire a hundred paces from the road.
-When they observed her, they shouted and ran to their
-horses, which were grazing near by them. She spoke
-to her horse and urged him to greater speed. He responded
-nobly. The hiss of an arrow passed over her
-head. Her horse, as if realizing the need of haste, fled
-with frightful speed. Once she looked back and saw
-the pursuers; but, as they were mounted on small mountain
-ponies, they were soon left far behind and gave
-over the pursuit.</p>
-
-<p>With an occasional halt at the crest of ridges over
-which the road passed, the fugitive pressed onward till
-night fell. After stopping a short time to allow the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[194]</span>
-horse to graze and rest, she continued the flight during
-the night hours. The brawling river along whose course
-the way led filled the canyons with its murmur. The
-cry of night birds and the howl of wolves sounded dismally
-from the heights. Once her horse snorted and
-sprang away at a rapid pace from the shadow of a
-clump of bushes. At another time he shook his head
-and dashed madly at several dark, slinking forms in the
-road; these leaped aside from his charge, snarling and
-chattering. It required all her will to restrain the fear
-of unknown and unseen dangers of the darkness and
-hills which gripped at her heart. She allowed her intelligent
-horse to pick his own way, and he did not fail her.</p>
-
-<p>At midnight she emerged from the mountain gorges
-and entered the little plain of Bagistan, where she halted
-at the base of the celebrated rock of Behistun. She
-recognized this great rock, on which was engraved in
-huge letters the legend of Semiramis. As she looked up
-at its bold, jagged skyline, she wondered whether the
-time would ever come when she, like Semiramis, might
-stand there the queen of the world. Years afterwards
-she did stand there as queen of the world and watched
-the workmen of her husband erase the story of Semiramis
-and carve thereon a short history of his own exploits.
-She dismounted and, standing by the side of her
-horse, leaned wearily against him and meditated what
-road to take. For here was a parting of the ways. To
-her right, the road led to Nineveh, Damascus, and Sardis,
-where she might find her Prince; to the left lay the
-road to Susa and Persepolis. Should she go to the
-Prince of Iran and thus plunge him into war with Cambyses,
-or should she seek the protection of the lords of
-Persia? It was a grave question, hard to solve, and she
-almost wept because of her own indecision.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[195]</span>“All hail and live forever, Princess Athura! Be not
-afraid!” A voice came to her out of the darkness near
-the great rock.</p>
-
-<p>Gasping with dismay, she sprang into the saddle and
-was about to flee.</p>
-
-<p>“Be not afraid!” said the voice again, and the tone
-was strangely familiar and reassuring.</p>
-
-<p>“Who speaks?” she demanded.</p>
-
-<p>“Your servant, Belteshazzer, the Hebrew, gracious
-lady!”</p>
-
-<p>The voice recalled the days when she sat at the feet
-of the great teacher and listened to his wisdom.</p>
-
-<p>“It must indeed be Belteshazzer!” she exclaimed,
-with a sigh of relief. “None else could know me!
-Now Ahura-Mazda be praised! How come you here?”</p>
-
-<p>A tall form emerged from the darker shadows and
-drew near. “I came up from Susa in obedience to the
-command of a spirit,” he said. “I knew not why I was
-urged to come until I reached the shadow of this great
-rock. Then I knew that I was sent to meet you here.
-In the spirit I saw you coming. Do you remember the
-lessons in the west tower of the palace at Hamadan, and
-how the Hebrew was not easy for you to learn?”</p>
-
-<p>She remembered well this wonderful man, whose wisdom
-was that of a god, whose eyes read the very
-thoughts of men, and whose heart was pure and kind.
-With a happy note in her voice she answered: “Truly,
-Master, I am that unapt scholar in Hebrew! What joy
-to meet you here! Truly God has guided you hither!
-Now I may call upon your great wisdom to advise me
-what to do. Approach nearer, I pray you!”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer advanced to the side of the horse and,
-bending over the fair hand she extended to him, touched
-it with his forehead in reverence and affection.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[196]</span>“I hold it great happiness to be of service to you,”
-he said. “In the village near by is my caravan. I have
-there a new tent with new furniture never used by any
-other. It is at your service. There await your service
-also two handmaidens of my own race, daughters of a
-prince of my family, discreet and worthy of trust. I
-have also many servants, all well-armed. My caravan
-is large. Come and dwell with us until the years of
-Cambyses shall be fulfilled. I know from what you have
-fled. You shall be a princess of my people until these
-troublous days are over. O Most Beloved of the Nations,
-you may abide in my care until the time when your
-Prince shall come to the throne! If you tire of the tent-life
-with the caravan, my palace in Shushan, or my house
-in Babylon, shall be yours.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is it best that I do not go to the Prince now?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is best that you do not. It would mean instant
-war between him and Cambyses. The times are not
-right for that. Neither should you go to the lords of
-Persia. For Cambyses has already sent armed men out
-on all the roads leading to Persepolis. Even now couriers
-are not far behind you going to Susa with orders
-to watch for and intercept you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will be guided by you, O Prophet of God! Lead
-the way and I will follow.”</p>
-
-<p>He led the way towards the village of Bagistan in the
-valley below, and soon came to his caravan. He conducted
-her to a beautiful tent furnished with all the
-luxuries of tent-life. Two beautiful maidens were
-brought to her.</p>
-
-<p>“My children,” said Belteshazzer to them, “behold
-your mistress. She is one of the great ones of earth
-and is worthy of all service. She shall be known to you
-as the Princess Esther. It is enough for you to know<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[197]</span>
-that she is one most highly favored of our God. You
-must obey her slightest wish. Your training in the house
-of Belteshazzer has fitted you to serve the greatest of
-earth. Let your tongues never speak unto others what
-you may see or hear concerning her. To all questions
-say that she is a relative of Belteshazzer. For are we
-not all descended from one common Father?”</p>
-
-<p>They fell on their knees before Athura, the strange,
-beautiful one, whose face was that of a woman though
-her garb was that of a man. Each, taking one of
-Athura’s hands, placed it upon her head, saying in the
-soft accents of the Syrian tongue: “We shall heed
-your words, great Master. We are her servants.”</p>
-
-<p>Athura smiled upon the maidens and raising them up
-impulsively kissed them, saying in the same language,
-with which she was familiar: “Your service will be
-light. You shall be my sisters and companions rather
-than servants. The princesses of the house of Belteshazzer
-are worthy to be friends of the highest born.”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer then retired. From chests full of rich
-garments, the maids quickly produced feminine apparel
-and at once proceeded to bathe, dress, and perfume their
-new mistress. Presently, under their ministrations,
-Athura in all her matchless beauty and royal demeanor
-stood before them like Deborah of old, a veritable
-Hebrew princess.</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer traveled into Arabia, and the Princess
-Esther went with him. No one imagined that the beautiful
-young woman, to whom all naturally gave deference,
-was the first Princess of the Empire.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[198]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIV<br />
-
-
-<small>THE WAR AGAINST EGYPT</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE Great King continued to prepare for war with
-the Egyptians. There came to him a Greek
-named Phanes, who at one time had been high in the
-service of King Amasis of Egypt, but who, having conspired
-against him, was compelled to flee. By flattery
-and art he raised himself high in the estimation of
-Cambyses and inflamed his mind with tales of the wealth
-that would be found in the great temples of the Nile
-Valley. The King then hastened his preparations and
-sent him to raise levies amongst the Ionian Greeks.
-The Greeks who remained in the service of the Egyptian
-King so hated him because of his treachery that
-they had made a blood covenant to kill him. But he
-succeeded in recruiting a large body of his countrymen,
-who marched with him and the Prince of Iran towards
-Tyre.</p>
-
-<p>When spring opened, the vast array of men whom the
-King had gathered from Iran, Assyria, and Babylonia,
-marched by way of Damascus towards Tyre. Many
-nations contributed troops. Wild mountaineers of the
-Caucasus marched shoulder to shoulder with the
-polished, slighter-built Babylonians. The light-armed
-Getæ and Derbicæ rode with the heavy cavalry of the
-Medes and Persians. From Bactra and Sogdiana came
-a portion of the veteran army of King Hystaspis.
-From the Zagros and Elburz mountains poured out the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[199]</span>
-fierce infantry of Aryan blood. Chariots, hundreds in
-number, rumbled over the rough desert roads. Bowmen,
-spearmen, slingers, and swordsmen, a half million
-or more in all, rolled like a tide across the wastes.
-The army under the Prince of Iran was composed for
-the most part of veterans of many wars, inured to army
-life and eager to follow their Prince to battle. Its
-nucleus was the old Imperial Guard of Cyrus, recruited
-to its full number of thirty thousand horsemen. The
-remainder were fighters from the warlike peoples of his
-satrapy—Lydians, Greeks, Scythians of the Black Sea
-regions, Paphlagonians, Hebrews, and Syrians.</p>
-
-<p>It was springtime when the Great King, leaving
-Patatheites, the Magian, as regent of the empire, departed
-from his capital of Hamadan, accompanied by his
-sister-wife, Artistone, and a portion of his harem. A
-thousand servants marched with him to administer to
-his comfort. He journeyed by easy stages to Damascus
-and thence to Tyre.</p>
-
-<p>The city of Tyre, though nominally independent, had
-been coerced into lending her fleets to the King of Kings.
-Though it occupied a strong position on an island and
-though its people carried on a great trade with Egypt,
-yet when the veteran army of the Prince of Iran encamped
-on the mainland opposite, and his demand came
-in the name of the Great King that it should furnish a
-fleet of vessels for his use, it hastened to comply.</p>
-
-<p>During the weeks that had passed since he had received
-a copy of the decree of the King concerning the
-marriage of Cambyses to his sisters, the Prince had
-visibly aged. He had become taciturn and stern. A
-smile seldom appeared upon his countenance. His
-officers, who had known him for years, sympathized
-with him but grumbled at his obstinacy in not declaring<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[200]</span>
-war against Cambyses. They were ready for revolt.
-Gobryas especially was discontented. He was bitter
-towards the King because of the wreck of his hopes of
-winning Artistone. He reported to the Prince the spirit
-of revolt that pervaded the army and urged him repeatedly
-to act; but the latter requested him to wait.</p>
-
-<p>When the Persian and Bactrian troops arrived,
-having outmarched the King, who lingered at Damascus,
-their leaders came to the Prince and offered their
-services, if he would but consent to seize the government.
-Letters arrived from Otanes, urging him to
-seize Cambyses. To all he said, “Wait!” Couriers
-came from his father counseling prudence and loyalty,
-at least until it should certainly appear that the King
-held Athura against her will. A mighty struggle went
-on within him. Oath-bound loyalty to the King could
-scarce restrain the wrath that fired his soul to action
-against the hated tyrant.</p>
-
-<p>When the couriers arrived from Damascus saying
-that the King was about to leave that city, the Prince
-called them aside and inquired of them if they knew
-whether the King was bringing his sisters with him.
-They reported that he had with him Artistone, whom
-he presented to all as his Queen; but as for Athura no
-one knew where she was, though it was currently reported
-that he had imprisoned her in his harem at
-Hamadan. His own couriers and spies returned from
-Hamadan without other information than rumors, some
-of which indicated that Athura was dead, others that
-she had escaped to Persia, and others that she was imprisoned
-in the King’s harem.</p>
-
-<p>While he was in this state of indecision, resolved one
-day to raise the standard of revolt and march against
-Cambyses, and the next to remain loyal, at least till<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[201]</span>
-he should know the truth concerning Athura’s fate,
-Prexaspes, attended by a company of Medean cavalry,
-rode into camp and requested an interview. The Prince
-received him without delay, and alone in his tent. The
-wily Mede, after due salutation, went straight to the
-subject of his mission.</p>
-
-<p>“Great and illustrious Prince,” he said, as he stood
-before the Prince of Iran, who looked upon him coldly
-and suspiciously, “I have come on in advance of the
-King with his permission. I have heard of the efforts
-of the powerful ones to persuade you to revolt and I
-know also that you believe you have just cause in the
-act of the King with relation to his sisters. I have made
-the Great King realize that he has committed the worst
-blunder of his life and that upon your acts will not only
-depend the result of this war but the continuance of his
-empire. I call to your remembrance that the subject nations
-are but waiting for the outbreak of civil war
-amongst the Aryans to throw off the Aryan rule.
-Should you revolt, every conquered nation would revolt;
-and if you should succeed, you would have the world to
-conquer over again. This you know as well as I. Is
-it not so?”</p>
-
-<p>He paused. The Prince of Iran inclined his head in
-assent.</p>
-
-<p>“Proceed with your message,” he said coldly.</p>
-
-<p>“This being so,” continued Prexaspes, “I deemed it
-best to come hither and tell you the facts with relation
-to the King’s brother and sister. I am reliably informed
-that Prince Bardya is dead. He died at the hands of
-mountain robbers. Of course I do not know this for certain.
-As to the Princess Athura, she escaped the same
-day that the King issued his decree, a copy of which I
-sent to you. He never consummated his marriage with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">[202]</span>
-her. I know that she escaped, because the King suspected
-that I had aided her. As to whether I did aid
-her or not, I say nothing, except that I rejoiced when
-I heard it—not openly, for I apparently made every
-exertion to find her. Now the King was advised to
-marry his sisters by a certain Magian prophet who predicted
-that a son of his sister should sit on the throne
-after him. The King is impulsive and acted without
-advising with me. But having married Artistone, he is
-satisfied that he has complied with the prophet’s prediction;
-and in order that you may know his good-will
-towards you he has made a second decree, declaring that
-Athura is free from wedlock with him and granting
-her leave to marry whom she will. This am I directed
-to place in your hand upon being satisfied that you are
-firm in adherence to your oath taken to Cyrus and will
-state that you will remain loyal to the King. The King
-also confirms you in the office of chief commander of
-this army under him. I assure you, Great Prince, that
-the King is sincere, though, I frankly state, it is because
-he knows that one word from you or any injury to you
-would be the signal for the rebellion of all Iran save perhaps
-Medea.”</p>
-
-<p>He paused. The Prince stood in silence a moment
-gazing at the floor, considering the King’s message.</p>
-
-<p>“Will the King give me his statement as King that he
-has not done injury to Athura?” he then demanded.</p>
-
-<p>“Not only that, but he has stated in this his decree
-that the marriage never has been consummated.
-Furthermore I know all that happened from a private
-examination of the servants who saw the King when he
-went to the Princesses to announce his will to them,—how
-he fled from Athura’s dagger; how he set watches
-at her bedroom door; how there stood open the lattice<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[203]</span>
-of a closet-window connected with the bedroom by
-which she escaped; and how, afterwards, the rope ladder
-by which she passed over the walls was found;
-and it is even known how she purchased a horse which
-later was found near Bagistan. She rode away on it
-disguised as a youth. There she disappeared.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince started and smiled slightly when Prexaspes
-mentioned the hinged lattice in the closet-window.
-He had heard from Athura of this means of
-egress before. He asked eagerly, “No further trace of
-her has been found?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. But the King thinks she has fled to you or to
-Persia.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince did not answer this suggestion but held
-his hand out for the decrees, saying: “Assure the King
-that I accept his decree and will loyally support him.
-But let him not again, I implore, place me in so grave
-a position, lest I forget my vow to the great Cyrus!”
-He took the decrees from the hand of Prexaspes, who
-bowed low and backed from the tent with a second low
-salaam.</p>
-
-<p>So it came about that Cambyses feared not to come
-on to Tyre and that the army, duly marshaled in massive
-lines, received the Great King with honor. The
-Prince of Iran, accompanied by Hydarnes of the foot
-soldiers, Vomisces of the cavalry, and a hundred other
-Persian officers, greeted the King at the limits of the
-camp and followed him as he rode slowly between the
-lines of soldiers to his pavilion. The soldiers knelt as
-he passed, shuddering or wondering as they saw the
-bloated red face and cold, glittering eyes of their ruler.
-When they saw the Prince of Iran riding near his right
-hand in the place of honor, they were pleased and broke
-forth in acclamations, which the Great King thought<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[204]</span>
-were given to him. But his countenance gave no indication
-of his emotions, and his greetings to his officers
-were slight and cold.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had the King entered his pavilion and called
-for wine than Prexaspes, who had personal charge of
-the King’s household, entered, and, having bent his knee,
-requested leave to speak. The King said impatiently:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, speak! Undoubtedly you come to preach policy
-again! I liked not the dark looks of those cursed
-Persians! I have a mind to send some of those officers
-a bowstring!”</p>
-
-<p>“Having your gracious leave, O King, I will speak
-plainly,” said Prexaspes, boldly. “Does not my welfare
-depend solely upon your favor? Believe that I
-speak, therefore, for your best interests. There was
-grave trouble brewing amongst those Persians. The
-favor you have shown to the Magi and your marriage
-with your sister, against which, you know, I most
-strongly advised, and the grave insult thereby inflicted
-upon the Prince of Iran, have stirred in them the spirit
-of revolt. I have trembled, O King! My spies have
-kept me well informed. There stands between you and
-destruction at this moment the word of one man, and
-that one is the Prince of Iran! Order me stricken
-dead, if you will, O King, for speaking so boldly; but
-I tell you the truth! I swear by all the gods, I speak
-the truth!”</p>
-
-<p>The King’s face was dark with wrath, but he realized
-the force of his adviser’s words. He gulped down
-a great cup of wine, threw the cup upon the floor, and
-passed a trembling hand over his face.</p>
-
-<p>“You may speak truth, Prexaspes,” he admitted.
-“But how about the Medes and the other levies, are
-they not faithful? They outnumber the Persians and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[205]</span>
-Bactrians. Besides, have I not stultified myself already
-by your advice and placated that same Prince of Iran?”</p>
-
-<p>“The Medes may be depended upon, but none others.
-It is true we have placated the Prince of Iran. But
-with your permission I will offer further advice.”</p>
-
-<p>“Say on!”</p>
-
-<p>“I advise that you send for the Prince of Iran and
-personally greet him with your royal hand and assure
-him of your favor as King. Thus will you fasten him
-to your cause and satisfy the Aryans, by whose power
-alone you may hope to prosecute this war successfully.”</p>
-
-<p>The King broke forth in a torrent of curses and imprecations.
-It was a bitter tonic that Prexaspes had
-prescribed. He hated the Prince of Iran with the hatred
-of jealousy and fear. He ended his explosion by saying:</p>
-
-<p>“But the day will come when I shall surely slay
-that man! Now, indeed, I see that I must dissemble.
-Press me not too far on this path, Prexaspes, lest I slay
-you! Go then and command him to come here. I will
-dissemble. I will be as wise as a serpent—for a
-time!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes bowed low and backed from the royal presence.
-He sent a messenger to the Prince of Iran, who
-came at once.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince was pale but composed. He bowed low
-over the King’s extended hand, saying: “I am here
-at the King’s command. Let it please the King to command.”</p>
-
-<p>The King glowered sullenly upon the Prince, but endeavored
-to infuse into his tones a note of cordiality,
-as he said: “Prince Hystaspis, I have trusted you
-greatly, though, as you well know, no love has ever
-been between us. I hear that there has been much treasonable
-talk in this army.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[206]</span>“I know there is much dissatisfaction, O King!” answered
-the Prince. “But it cannot be said to be treasonable.
-The people of Iran like not the power and
-place given to the fire-worshipers of the hills. The
-Persians, who occupied the chief places under King Cyrus,
-are grieved that they have not found favor with his
-son.”</p>
-
-<p>“We will show these proud slaves who grumble, that
-the King of Kings brooks no interference!” exclaimed
-the King, his anger blazing forth for an instant. “Prexaspes
-has given you my decree concerning Athura. You
-may rest assured that she and you may marry safely.
-Where is she? Of all men, you should know.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince was surprised at this question, and the
-manner of the King. Evidently Cambyses was endeavoring
-to restrain his passions and speak pleasantly to
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“I have not seen the royal lady since I bade her
-farewell at Persepolis and took with me her pledge to
-marry me,” he answered. “Neither have I had a letter
-from her since the day when it pleased you to make
-a new law that the King might marry his sisters. Nor
-have I heard what has become of her, save that I did
-hear rumors that she had escaped or had been slain by
-your orders.”</p>
-
-<p>“The report that Athura is dead is not true!” said
-Cambyses. “She fled from the palace the day my decree
-was made and keeps well hidden, though my slaves
-have searched the world for her. Find her and marry
-her, if you will! You have my consent. Let that subject
-be forgotten between us. Is this army ready to
-march?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is ready.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then let the march begin on the morrow. The insults<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[207]</span>
-we have received from Egypt’s King must be
-avenged and that country added to our empire. It is
-said to be very rich. I am weary with the day’s journey
-and will rest. Give such orders as you deem necessary.
-Cambyses, the King of Kings, remembers not the
-former days. My trust and favor I give to you; and
-my consent to your marriage with Athura shall not be
-withdrawn.”</p>
-
-<p>He turned away, and the Prince with a salute left
-the pavilion. It seemed to the latter that the sky had
-taken on a new glory and that the golden rays of the
-setting sun were indicative of joy. A load had been
-lifted from his heart. Athura had escaped a miserable
-fate and must be still alive. One so resourceful as she
-would know how to save herself. It mattered little
-that Cambyses hated him. His duty demanded faithful
-service to the King and his oath to the Great King
-would remain unbroken. He called together his
-friends among the officers and briefly informed them that
-all present cause for dissatisfaction had been removed
-and that he expected of them loyal service to the King.</p>
-
-<p>On the next day the great army slowly uncoiled its
-vast length and moved down the narrow coast-line of
-Canaan, bearing woe to ancient Egypt.</p>
-
-<p>Egypt was ill-prepared for war. From the time that
-Cyrus had reduced all Syria, including Canaan, to subjection,
-the Egyptian King, Amasis, had known that a
-conflict with the new world-power would come. He
-had heard of the preparations for war made by Cambyses
-and had endeavored to make ready. But Egypt had long
-since lost its ancient vigor. Its people had become rich
-and indolent. They loved not war. They depended
-mainly upon foreign auxiliaries hired by their money
-for their defense. Thirty thousand Greeks and many<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[208]</span>
-thousand adventurers from other lands formed the main
-strength of the Egyptian army. Levies drawn from an
-agricultural and trading people among the Egyptians
-themselves were neither practiced in war nor enthusiastic
-in the service and made poor soldiers. They
-were brave and many in number, but they knew little
-discipline. They could not stand before the fearful rush
-of the Persian cavalry or the tiger-like ferocity of the
-Aryan infantry. They outnumbered the army of Cambyses,
-but their very numbers were a source of weakness
-because of their lack of discipline.</p>
-
-<p>Just as the war was beginning, old King Amasis had
-died, leaving his throne to a youth named Psammenitus,
-who had not the skill himself nor good generals to lead
-his army. But he marched forth and took position in
-the desert near Pelusium, with the left of his line of
-battle resting on the Great Sea and its right protecting
-the water-wells and barring the main caravan road to
-Egypt, determined to strike one blow in defense of his
-kingdom. His Greeks were placed on the left, supported
-by Cretan slingers. The center was held by
-stout Ethiopian infantry, black men of ferocious courage,
-armed with javelins and swords, terrible in close
-contest. Behind them was a mass of Egyptians. On
-the right, where the plain was more level, there were
-two hundred chariots supported by a mass of irregular
-cavalry, principally Arabs, armed with scimiters and
-long, slender spears.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran led the Aryan host with his thirty
-thousand horsemen of the Guard, driving back the Arab
-cavalry which came out to harass his advance, until the
-position and extent of the Egyptian army were disclosed.
-From the crest of a sand-dune near the sea,
-he carefully surveyed the position occupied by Psammenitus.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[209]</span>
-It was the afternoon of a cloudless day. At
-his right glistened the sea, its oily waves scarce rippling
-on the shores. At his left and rear, the mountains of
-Palestine were a dim cloud on the horizon. Before him
-was a vast plain, gray and brown with dust and sand,
-where the opposing army was making ready for battle.
-He noted the orderly Greeks, the dark array of Ethiopians,
-and the wheeling, clattering chariots, taking their
-appointed places. The Prince was accompanied by
-Gobryas and several of his chief captains, who stood
-near with the light of battle in their eyes and joy in their
-hearts. For the long, hot marches would end here in
-victory. They did not dream of defeat.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince soon formed his plan of battle. He directed
-the Guard to take a position in a long line, with
-its right resting at the sand-dune and its left thrown
-back in a wide curve so as to protect the approaching
-infantry from attacks of the Arabs.</p>
-
-<p>“Let all our forces be brought up to-night and placed
-in position. Let them sleep on their arms and be ready
-to attack at daylight. The wells of water are in possession
-of the enemy and we must have them to-morrow
-or die of thirst. Here must we conquer or die. If we
-lose the battle, every tribe in Syria and Armenia will
-revolt and attempt to cut us off from retreat to our
-homes,” said the Prince, turning to his officers after a
-long survey of the field.</p>
-
-<p>He then gave orders for placing the troops. As the
-sun went down, his dusty battalions were taking their
-appointed positions behind the long line of cavalry. He
-placed the Persian and Medean infantry opposite the
-Greeks, with its right resting on the sea. In the center
-were the allied races, principally footmen. On the left
-were the war-chariots, opposing the chariots of the enemy.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[210]</span>
-Then the cavalry was withdrawn to the rear and
-massed behind the extreme left. Imitating the tactics
-of the Great Cyrus in his last battle, he intended to
-make a détour to the left with the cavalry, assail the extreme
-end of the enemy’s right, and roll it back to the
-sea. The pack-train, camp equipage, and the King’s
-pavilion were placed in the rear near the sea and enclosed
-within a palisade of stakes driven into the earth.
-But the King, as became a Persian warrior, bivouacked
-with the soldiers, having taken his station on the sand-dunes
-at the right, where he could see the field of battle.</p>
-
-<p>Night fell upon the opposing hosts, and midnight arrived
-before the final dispositions were made. Videttes
-and sentinels were duly stationed, and the tired soldiers
-lay down on their arms to snatch a few hours of rest.
-The Prince of Iran was about to lie down on the sand
-in the midst of his guard when a slave, clad in the livery
-of the King, came and prayed leave to speak with him.
-Bidden to speak, he said: “My gracious mistress, the
-Queen, requests you to come to her if it be possible.
-I am directed to guide you.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince hesitated. He knew that Artistone, the
-younger of the King’s sisters, was referred to as the
-Queen. It was the privilege of the noble Persians and
-their wives to visit each other; but the King had introduced
-the customs of the seraglio, the separate harem,
-the veiled faces, and the seclusion of wives. The slave,
-noticing his hesitation, continued: “The King is not in
-his pavilion and the Queen will meet you in the tent
-of her slaves. She greatly desires you to come. She
-would speak of the Princess Athura.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince no longer hesitated. He drew Gobryas
-to one side and informed him of his design. Then,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[211]</span>
-throwing a rough cloak about his shoulders, as a disguise,
-he motioned the servant to proceed, and followed
-him. They entered the palisadoed camp and went to
-a tent near the King’s pavilion. The slave watched
-outside while the Prince went in and met the child-wife
-of the King.</p>
-
-<p>The interior of the tent was dimly lighted by a lamp
-burning perfumed oil. At one side was a low couch,
-and, reclining thereon, was Artistone. He bent his knee
-before her and kissed the slender white hand she held
-out to him.</p>
-
-<p>“Greeting, Prince and brother!” said she. “How
-I have longed to see some one I do not fear! This
-camp is full of spies, placed by the King to watch me and
-the other women he has brought with him. Only in
-this one slave who brought you hither and in two maidens
-who dress me, have I any confidence. How good it
-is to see your face!”</p>
-
-<p>“It gives me great delight, little sister, to come at
-your bidding. How may I serve you?” he returned.</p>
-
-<p>“I hear that a great battle is about to take place. Is
-it true?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is. But have no fear of the result. We shall
-scatter the enemy like sand before a desert wind.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have no fear. I would go out and watch the battle
-if I were permitted. Know you aught of Athura?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing, except that the King said she had escaped.
-Can you tell me of her?”</p>
-
-<p>Tears filled the Queen’s eyes and wet her cheeks.
-“Alas!” she said, “I fear she is dead. She locked
-herself in her room after attempting to stab the King
-with her dagger when he came and announced to us
-his decree of marriage. The palace-guards were set
-to watch at the door. I was taken away and never saw<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[212]</span>
-her more. Sometimes, when the King is savage and
-drunken or is displeased and desires to cause me grief,
-he says that he had her tortured to death. But at other
-times he says that she escaped. I hoped that she had
-communicated with you. Surely she must be dead or she
-would have done so!”</p>
-
-<p>“She attempted to slay him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Her fury was terrible. The King would
-have been killed had he not fled. He came to our sitting-room,
-the room in the palace where we so often
-played when we were children, and announced that he
-would make us his wives. After some words, Athura
-drew a dagger and sprang upon him. He leaped back
-out of the room and ran. He shouted to the guards.
-They came. She retreated to her bedroom and barred
-the door. Then the King dragged me away and—I
-am the most unhappy woman living! Ah! how often
-I think of those pleasant days of our childhood when
-our mother loved and played with us and our father
-smiled upon us so graciously! Do you not remember
-them? Will happiness never return to me again?
-Should I die by my own hand as I am tempted?”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince was deeply affected. His voice shook
-with emotion, as he answered: “Child, it may be the
-day of deliverance will come, perhaps to-morrow. Who
-knows? I know not what to advise. Death is but a
-step into a better existence. Did not Zoroaster, the divine,
-so teach? What said Belteshazzer, the Hebrew?
-He, the wisest of men, who talks with spirits, who reads
-all dreams and riddles, who prophesies of the future—he
-says that death is a blessed relief, in that we drop
-a body which suffers and is weak, while the spirit life
-is one of great glory and peace. I do not advise death.
-I do not think Athura is dead. It may be she has gone<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[213]</span>
-to Prince Bardya or to my father in Bactra. It is a
-long way to Bactra, and it has been difficult to send
-messengers. There are many reasons why she should
-not communicate.”</p>
-
-<p>Artistone shuddered and leaned nearer to him as she
-whispered in a frightened manner: “But she could
-not go to Bardya! I am sure that the King has murdered
-him. Oh, I saw him as one slain! On the night
-of the farewell feast, long after he had left the room,
-the Magi were performing wonders and producing specters
-and awful forms. At the last there came the pale
-face of Bardya, floating in the air above them, fierce,
-blood-stained, with a horrible wound in the forehead
-as if made by a sword! I have heard the King mutter
-in his sleep, as he lay half-drunken in the night, about
-the murder of Bardya. He talks in his sleep and sees
-fearful visions! He wakes trembling and shrieking
-with fear. Ah, my brother, I know that Bardya is
-dead!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince believed her and smote his knee with his
-clenched fist, as he exclaimed: “The day will come
-when the devil-worshipers, with their black lies and
-conjuring, will be put down with a mighty hand! And
-thou,” he cried, raising his face and one hand to heaven,
-“O Ahura-Mazda, the only God, grant to me the opportunity
-to avenge the death of Bardya, to avenge the
-insults to your altars, upon that whole evil caste; and
-I will declare your glory upon all the hills!”</p>
-
-<p>“May your prayer be granted!” said the Queen, fervently.
-“How the world would be blessed if some day
-you should lead the hosts of truth against these evil
-and idolatrous men! The nations would rejoice if you
-were monarch of the world instead of this monster!”</p>
-
-<p>“Hush!” warned the Prince. “My oath will permit<span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[214]</span>
-no such thoughts, and it is not wise that you should
-thus speak. But I must now leave you. Is there anything
-I can do for you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, my brother. I desire you not to think evil of
-me. I am not gifted with the will of Athura. I have
-elected to suffer awhile in patience my strange and unnatural
-position as wife of the King. Sister and wife!
-Such I have heard is the evil custom of the Egyptians,
-who, it is said by Phanes, the Greek, even married their
-own mothers as well as their sisters, in order that their
-royal race might not mingle with a less royal! Have
-great care, my brother! The King would slay you if he
-dared. He is jealous of you.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince arose and stood looking down in great
-pity at the childish, careworn face of Artistone.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not fear the King,” he said. “I am guarded
-by a powerful spirit who will not permit harm to come
-to me. I do not serve Cambyses, but, rather, the King
-of Kings and the Aryan race. I shall go into battle,
-rejoicing to fight for my people. I hope the day may
-soon come when I may aid in crushing those liars who
-are destroying true religion and leading Cambyses astray.
-But now I must go. Should need come, send for me.”</p>
-
-<p>He turned to leave; but she asked, while a faint color
-suffused her pale cheeks: “What of the noble Gobryas?
-Is he well and—happy?”</p>
-
-<p>“He is well, but he is not happy. Gobryas has been
-much pained by the action of the King in forcing you
-into this unnatural marriage. May I say to him that
-you remember him kindly?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Tell him that it will please me more than all
-else, if he shall acquit himself well in the battle, and
-that he must not too greatly endanger his life. We
-know not what the future has in store. Farewell,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[215]</span>
-brother! May Sraosha place his buckler before you on
-the morrow!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince departed quietly. The child-queen buried
-her face in her arms and wept bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>At the first gray light of morn the Prince and several
-officers rode swiftly along the front of the army. As
-they passed, the soldiers sprang up and shouted, clashing
-their arms upon their shields and demanding to be
-led to battle. He paused here and there to utter words
-of direction and advice to the officers. To the center
-he said: “You must move slowly forward and hold
-all the ground you gain until you see the cavalry charging
-the right of the enemy. Then go forward with a
-rush.” To the general of the right wing he said:
-“Stand fast here on the sand-dunes and attack not those
-Greeks until you see the cavalry charging the Egyptian
-right. Then go forward and quit you like men. For
-those Greeks are brave warriors.”</p>
-
-<p>He paused before the King, who sat on a rude throne
-placed upon the summit of a hillock of sand from which
-he could view the battle. “Live forever, O King!” he
-said, saluting. “When it pleases you to order the battle
-joined, we are ready.”</p>
-
-<p>The King glowered at him sullenly. He was sore and
-ill-natured after his night on the ground. “See to it
-that you win this battle for me, or death shall be your
-portion!” he said. “Let no quarter be given to those
-dogs yonder, who by their impudence have brought on
-them my wrath and have caused me weariness in sleeping
-out here beneath the stars!”</p>
-
-<p>“I hear your words,” replied the Prince, coldly.
-“Rest assured that we shall win this battle or we shall
-welcome death.”</p>
-
-<p>“Enough!” exclaimed the King. “Join battle when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[216]</span>
-you please! I have no appetite for talk. I have sent
-for wine and will drink while you slay yonder reptile-worshipers.
-I do not see their godlike calf at the front.
-Have a care of his horns!” The King laughed at his
-own wit.</p>
-
-<p>Again saluting, the Prince turned his horse and galloped
-off, followed by his staff. He saw that the enemy
-was also making ready for battle, and he forgot the
-King in the fierce joy of conflict. Placing himself at
-the head of his cavalry, he gave the signal for advance.</p>
-
-<p>Two hundred chariots sprang forward, and the long
-lines of infantry moved. From the other side opposing
-chariots dashed out and, in a moment, the crash of
-colliding wheels and the shouts and screams of combatants
-arose. The Persian cavalry rode at a brisk trot out
-to the left and by a wide circuit came in upon the right
-flank and rear of the Egyptians, scattering the Arabs
-who vainly sought to oppose. Along the whole front,
-two miles or more in extent, the battle was joined. The
-sky was filled with darts. The sun, springing up from
-the east, flashed upon sword and spear and upon struggling
-men who stabbed and slashed and reviled and
-cursed each other. The Aryan right as ordered stood
-still. But the Greeks of the opposing line came forward
-to the assault, like a moving wall prickly with spears,
-their fair, eager faces ablaze with the light of battle;
-and as they came on they shouted to Phanes daring him
-to come and meet them whom he had betrayed. Slingers
-and archers pelted them as they advanced; but,
-partially covered by their big, round shields, they did
-not halt. The Persian and Medean infantry was not
-terrified, but prayed the captains for leave to charge.
-The presence of the King, in whose sight they must do
-or die, nerved the Aryan soldier for the contest. When<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">[217]</span>
-the Greeks arrived at the base of the sand-dunes, the
-King, disregarding the orders of the Prince of Iran,
-directed his infantry to charge, and the men sprang
-forward and down upon the Greeks with spears at rest.
-Then was shown the splendid discipline of these mercenaries
-of Psammenitus. They met the living wall of
-men rolling down upon them with firm, up-thrusting
-spears. The shock was terrific. The lines swayed
-back and forth. The longer spears of the Greeks gave
-them the advantage. Unable to reach their enemies, the
-Persians impotently struggled against the iron hedge
-and were thrust back. Cambyses observed the contest
-with alarm. He sent in his own body-guard to aid the
-hard-pressed infantry. But the Greeks moved steadily
-onward. Their phalanx could not be pierced. They
-seemed invincible. They surmounted the hills. But
-here the uneven ground broke their formation somewhat
-and enabled the Persians to press in and come to
-close quarters.</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses was no coward. He stayed with his guard,
-but he began to cast about for aid. He saw the long,
-swaying lines of men to his left, where the allies fought
-with the fierce Ethiopians. He observed the mixed and
-tangled wreckage of struggling horses and men where
-the chariots had met. Looking beyond, he saw the
-dense mass of Persian cavalry, led by the Prince of
-Iran in person, on a magnificent white horse, wheeling
-about upon the rear and right flank of the Egyptians,
-driving back a cloud of Arabs. He watched the cavalry
-come thundering down upon the rear of the enemy,
-bringing terror and confusion. Psammenitus, who was
-mounted on a fleet dromedary, also saw the coming
-destruction and, terrified, fled from the field at full
-speed. The Ethiopians, trodden down and overthrown<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">[218]</span>
-by the heavy Persian horse, lost courage and quickly
-became a mob. The savage allies of the Persian line
-hewed them down without mercy. In a very short space
-of time none but the Greeks were left to present any
-resistance. Their captains, seeing that the battle was
-lost, ceased the forward movement and sought to form
-their ranks in a square. Surrender was not considered,
-for the hated Phanes was with the enemy. But because
-of the inequalities of the ground, they were not able to
-form before the Prince’s cavalry rode in upon them,
-broke through their wavering lines, smote them with
-maces, hewed them with swords, and stabbed them with
-javelins, until few were left. They stood their ground
-to the last and, in death, nobly redeemed their oaths to
-Psammenitus. So, in vast slaughter, the army of the
-Egyptian King disappeared, and with it fell Egypt.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">[219]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XV<br />
-
-
-<small>THE MADNESS OF CAMBYSES</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE King of Egypt fled on his swift dromedary,
-while the men who had marched with him to battle
-gave up their lives in his behalf and a red riot of slaughter
-stained the desert sands. The Persian cavalry, now
-unhindered by any organized resistance, carried death
-to the despairing, panting fugitives who fled from the
-contest. The Egyptian army was annihilated. Barely
-did the King himself enter his city of Memphis and
-close its gates ere the Prince of Iran, at the head of a
-picked body of men on horses almost spent with rapid
-going, appeared and demanded his surrender. The vast
-array of invaders soon spread over the fertile valley
-of Egypt and shut the king so closely within his city-walls
-that no succor could enter and only hope could
-flee. Psammenitus, unable to face a hero’s death,
-bowed to the power of the King of Kings, surrendered
-into his hands his crown, and acknowledged him as lord.
-He took his place with other captive kings at the table
-of his master and ate in bitterness of spirit the bread of
-peace.</p>
-
-<p>Victory having come to him easily, Cambyses became
-puffed up and arrogated to himself divine attributes.
-Secretly his heart was eaten with envy of the Prince
-of Iran, the idol of the army, to whom all men attributed
-the great victory. As a result, the king openly slighted
-the Prince, relieved him of the general command, placed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">[220]</span>
-other officers near his own person and through them
-issued his orders. Leaving barely enough troops to garrison
-lower Egypt, Cambyses himself led a great army
-southward into Ethiopia; but, as he had failed to take
-into account the vast deserts through which he had to
-pass to reach that region, his army soon came to want
-and starvation, and half of the soldiers composing it
-died of disease and privation. Had not the Prince of
-Iran asserted his prerogatives, assumed command of
-the garrisons of Egypt, and gathered a great caravan
-which he sent to the King’s relief, the remainder of the
-ill-fated army would have perished. Undeterred by this
-experience, the King sent a second expedition against
-the people of the oasis of Ammon and the priests of its
-great temple; but the whole army perished in a mighty
-sand-storm. He contemplated a third expedition for
-the reduction of Carthage and the northern littoral of
-Africa; but it failed because the Phœnicians refused to
-give the aid of their fleets against their kindred.</p>
-
-<p>All of these events consumed much time. Meanwhile
-in Egypt the King of Kings ruled with an iron hand.
-He looked with suspicion upon everybody. Knowing
-that he was loved by none, he filled his court with spies
-that he might detect any who would dare even to whisper
-against him. He blotted out in the blood of Psammenitus
-and his relatives an incipient revolt of the
-Egyptians, who, encouraged by the vast misfortunes that
-had befallen the army of their conqueror, dared to dream
-of liberty. He derided the Egyptian gods, closed their
-temples and made granaries of them, and slew the sacred
-bull, Apis, with his own sword. His jealousy led
-him to murder many of his own officers. Some of the
-most valiant men of the army upon slight pretext were
-arrested and executed summarily; others were found
-dead from the stabs of hired assassins.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">[221]</span>The Prince of Iran now habitually wore a coat of
-mail beneath his tunic, and to it he owed safety twice
-from the weapons of assassins. Once in the night, as
-he walked alone in the garden of the palace occupied
-by him as headquarters, a man leaped upon him and
-drove a javelin into his back, almost hurling him to the
-earth, but, owing to the mail, only bruising him. The
-assassin escaped. An arrow, shot from the shadow of
-a deserted temple as he rode by, slightly wounded his
-left arm and rebounded from the mail on his body.
-Again the assassin escaped. Thereafter Gobryas and
-other officers insisted that the Prince keep a powerful
-body-guard around him; and the King, having been informed
-of the attempts on his life, could not reasonably
-object.</p>
-
-<p>One day shortly after King Cambyses had departed
-on his expedition against Ethiopia, the Prince walked
-alone in the garden surrounding his dwelling in Memphis,
-examining with much interest the flowers and
-shrubs growing there. He had no duties to perform.
-Others administered the civil offices. Five thousand only
-of his own troopers were in the city under his command;
-and except to watch them drill and see that they were
-fed, he had nothing to do. His thoughts were of Athura
-and of the many messengers he had dispatched to the
-east in search of her. Presently as he drew near to the
-street-gate, he noticed a beggar sitting by the gate apparently
-resting and asleep. He glanced at the man,
-whose countenance was that of a Hebrew, and was about
-to turn away, when the beggar opened his eyes and at
-once prostrated himself with his face in the dust.</p>
-
-<p>“Live forever, O friend of God!” said the beggar.
-“Do I indeed behold the mighty Prince of Iran?” He
-spoke in the Medean dialect.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">[222]</span>The Prince answered: “You have said who I am.
-What do you wish?”</p>
-
-<p>“I bear a message.”</p>
-
-<p>“Arise and deliver it.”</p>
-
-<p>The man arose and, taking from his tunic a small
-packet, delivered it to the Prince, at the same time ejaculating
-with a deep sigh of relief: “Praise be to the God
-of Abraham! I have kept my word to the Prophet!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince tore off the wrappings and unfolded a
-sheet of papyrus, on which was written in a hand he well
-knew:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“<i>To my beloved, the Prince of my Soul, greeting</i>:</p>
-
-<p>“The bearer of this letter is to be trusted even as his
-master, the one who met you on the banks of the Choaspes
-and showed you the spirit of your ancestor, is to be
-trusted. He will tell you many things of me. He cannot
-tell how much I long to be with you or how my
-heart is sick with anxiety for your safety. How long
-are the days! How lonely the nights! But lest the one
-whose shadow darkens the world should pursue me or
-injure you, I have long kept silence. Now I must hear
-from you. I have promised the messenger great rewards
-and I know that you will make good my promises. Send
-him back to me quickly, for my soul is exceedingly weary
-and sick with waiting for word from you. Farewell, beloved!”</p>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The missive was unsigned, but the Prince knew from
-whom it came. His heart leaped with such joy that he
-became dizzy and he staggered like a drunken man. Recovering
-his usual calm demeanor with a mighty effort, he
-said: “Though in the guise of a beggar you come, son
-of Abraham, yet do you appear to me as an angel of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">[223]</span>
-light, bringing joy to my soul such as I have not felt for
-many sad days! Know you the writer of this? Have
-you seen her lately? How is she? Speak, man! Great
-shall be your reward!”</p>
-
-<p>The man’s face shone with joy. The gladness he had
-brought to this great one of earth was infectious. He
-arose and stood in humble attitude.</p>
-
-<p>“Great Lord,” he said. “I have not seen this star
-of the morning for three months, having come hither
-by a long journey; but, when mine eyes looked upon her
-as I started to come hither, they were blinded by the
-light of her eyes and I shaded them before the majesty
-of her countenance. Like a rose of Sharon is she! Like
-a cedar on Lebanon stands she, strong and beautiful!
-The music of her voice is as the song of many waters
-and loveliness enshrouds her as the darkness enshrouds
-the moon! Behold, are not all men her slaves? They
-upon whom she deigns to smile would cast themselves to
-the lions if she commanded, or would fall upon their own
-swords if she wished. She is well, but she is not happy;
-for she speaks much of my lord, the Prince of Iran, and
-sighs because she sees him not.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where is she?”</p>
-
-<p>“She is with the prophet of God, the great Daniel,
-known to you as Belteshazzer, in an oasis of the desert
-of Arabia. The sons of the desert are kindred to the
-prophet and they dwell happily and safely together.
-None except I and her two maids know who the royal
-maiden is. Most happy am I to enjoy the trust of the
-great master!”</p>
-
-<p>“Then she escaped, indeed! O thou glorious life-giving
-Spirit, Ahura-Mazda, I thank thee!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince raised his eyes to the blue vault of heaven
-and removed the helmet from his head. The Hebrew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">[224]</span>
-watched him sympathetically; then, as the Prince turned
-to him again, he said, “Yes, Great Lord, she escaped
-from the palace at night and rode on a horse to the rock
-known as Behistun on the road to Susa. There my master,
-moved by the spirit, met her and took her with him
-into the desert ten days’ journey west of Babylon, where
-in all honor and safety they have kept her. I am requested
-to bear to her again a message from you, if it
-please you to give me one. Her message was unsigned
-and bore no words by which its meaning would be known,
-had I fallen into the hands of the King. But I can discourse
-to you of her. The prophet sends to you greeting,
-with words of good cheer. He bids me say that the
-times and seasons are changing rapidly and that great
-events will happen presently, in which you will have
-large part.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come, then, into my house, servant of Belteshazzer!”
-said the Prince. “You shall have great rewards. You
-shall be fed and clothed and be given riches beyond your
-dreams. We will spend the remainder of this day in converse
-of her and of her great protector.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince led the way into his dwelling, and there
-his servants hurried to bathe and dress the messenger
-and to set before him victual and drink. And while he
-ate, his royal host sat near, plying him with questions.
-It was a great day in the life of Eleazer, the scribe, servant
-and confidential friend of Belteshazzer, the prophet
-of God. In the years to follow, when his host had become
-the mighty King of Kings, he never tired of relating
-this interview to his sons and to his son’s sons,
-and how the gracious Prince had talked familiarly with
-him as with a friend.</p>
-
-<p>Three days later, escorted by a strong body of Persian
-cavalry, he returned by way of Damascus to Babylon,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">[225]</span>
-loaded with riches. At Babylon he left his escort, resumed
-his disguise, and went into the desert, bearing
-with him a message from the Prince of Iran to Athura.
-This related the giving of the King’s consent to their
-marriage and advised her that it would be safe for her
-to go to Persepolis and there dwell in seclusion with his
-mother, under the guardianship of King Hystaspis, who
-had returned there, until the close of the present campaign.
-Then he would come and marry her, and thereafter
-defy Cambyses.</p>
-
-<p>Weary of the tent-life of the desert, she prevailed upon
-Belteshazzer to go with her to Persepolis. Here he and
-the philosophical King of Iran spent many happy days in
-study and learned dispute, while she, protected from
-danger by a strong guard of the King’s own men, resided
-in comfort and safety, waiting with patience the
-coming of her chosen one.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the King of Kings, having suffered the severe
-reverses of fortune before mentioned, had abandoned
-himself to drunkenness and debauchery. His evil
-temper, aggravated by his reverses, was ungoverned.
-On the slightest provocation, he slew servants with his
-own hands or caused them to be cruelly tortured. If
-his spies or favorites mentioned unfavorably an officer
-or soldier, death, often accompanied by tortures, such as
-flaying alive, impaling on stakes, or dismemberment, was
-inflicted upon the unfortunate accused. He even dared
-seize and execute several noble Persians, thus carrying
-into effect his jealous resolve to reduce their haughty
-spirits. Finally a day came, when a dreadful murder
-forced to action a conspiracy among prominent Persians
-to dethrone him.</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses and his sister-wife were at dinner, when the
-King, after alluding to her sad countenance, derisively<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">[226]</span>
-said to her: “You are like these other proud, upstart
-Persians, moping about with disapproving countenance!
-They shall all learn to bow the knee and to fall on their
-faces in the dust before me, or they shall die! Who
-am I that I should bear with them? I swear by Ahriman,
-that I will arrest every Persian officer; and on the
-morrow twelve shall die, on the day after twelve more
-shall die, and on each succeeding day a like number, until
-they are finished!”</p>
-
-<p>He banged his great fist down upon the table before
-him. His sister was greatly moved. Her state of health
-was such that she was extremely weak and nervous.
-Her face was white and her eyes were full of horror.
-The half-drunken King, noticing her look of repulsion,
-was infuriated, and, calling her a vile name, shouted:
-“What? Do you also defy me? Speak, craven, ere I
-tear out your tongue!”</p>
-
-<p>The spirit in the child-woman suddenly blazed up and,
-arising from the couch where she had been reclining,
-she stood before the brute with clenched hands and flashing
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Murderer!” she cried. “You have abandoned all
-good! You are all evil! You foully murdered Bardya!
-You have driven Athura to her death! You have dishonored
-me! Would you murder all the Aryan race?
-Are you a Persian? Or are you a devil?”</p>
-
-<p>For a moment Cambyses was too dazed to speak.
-Never had any one addressed him thus. Lashed to insane
-fury by her words, he sprang up with stuttering
-curses, knocked the frail woman down, and jumped upon
-her prostrate body with his feet, stamping and crushing
-her into insensibility. The servants screamed, and some
-of them endeavored to prevent him; but he drew a dagger
-and stabbed one to death, wounded another, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">[227]</span>
-drove all out of his presence. Then, recovering his
-senses somewhat and stricken with remorse, he knelt at
-the side of his sister and wept aloud. He then called
-for his surgeons and bade them save her or die. They
-tried faithfully to restore her to consciousness, but without
-avail. She died within the hour.</p>
-
-<p>This horrible crime soon became known among the
-Persians. There were then encamped near Memphis
-about fifty thousand men, the remnant of the Aryans who
-had followed the King into Egypt. Conferences were
-at once held among the Persian officers and it was decided
-that Cambyses, being insane, should be deposed.
-The Prince of Iran had no part in these deliberations.
-With Gobryas and a body-guard, he had gone to visit
-the nearest pyramids and had been absent several days.
-Spies duly reported to the King the discontent of the
-army. On the next day after the murder of his sister,
-the King caused the arrest of fifty of the chief officers
-of the army, many of them sons of the highest nobility
-of Iran. True to his oath, taken before his sister, he
-slew twelve of them and caused their heads to be hung
-on the gates of the city with an inscription warning all
-traitors of a like fate. At once there was a vast uproar.
-The Aryan troops arose in a mass and marched into
-Memphis to seize the King. A bloody battle took place
-in the gardens of the King’s palace, in which the King’s
-body-guard was cut in pieces and its remnants driven
-into the palace, where behind heavy gates and doors
-they pantingly awaited death. Prexaspes commanded the
-body-guard and made a brave defense. But the veteran
-Persians and Bactrians were not to be repulsed. They
-were about to batter down the palace gates, when the
-Prince of Iran arrived. Immediately the infuriated men
-raised a roar of welcome and thrust upon him at once the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">[228]</span>
-chief command, begging him to lead them and to allow
-them to set him up as King.</p>
-
-<p>The King was not deficient in physical courage. Sobered
-at last by the awful results of his fury in the murder
-of his sister, and caring little what the end of this
-revolt might be, desperate and savage, ready to fight to
-the end, he paced back and forth behind the battlements
-surrounding the roof of the great palace wherein he was
-besieged, and glowered sullenly down upon the raging
-mob below. Prexaspes came to him, ostensibly for orders
-but really to advise that overtures of peace be made.
-To him the King said rabidly: “What! Will you turn
-against me also? Why not go down and join those?
-Perhaps they will honor you! Saw you not that Prince
-of Iran out yonder? I thought I saw him ride up. Even
-now, if I mistake not, he stands yonder in the midst of
-his officers planning how best to take me. Bring up a
-dozen of the best archers. Him at least shall they
-slay!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes shook his head impatiently, and, while keeping
-his eye on the King lest the latter might attack him,
-he said harshly: “Have I not said that the Prince of
-Iran is oath-bound to you? He alone can save you this
-day! Would you slay the only man who can call off those
-wolves yonder? It is madness to slay him. We shall be
-torn limb for limb if he save us not!”</p>
-
-<p>The King did not answer immediately. He watched
-the movements of the mob with tiger-like eyes. He saw
-Prince Hystaspis pass slowly through the mob and observed
-that the officers were also passing back and forth
-shouting orders. He saw the men falling in with orderly
-precision and, in a few minutes, that the mob had become
-an army. Company after company formed in the open
-garden and the adjacent streets, until on all sides of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">[229]</span>
-palace a solid cordon of men stood at rest with officers
-duly advanced before them. Prexaspes waited impatiently
-for orders, but the King only ordered wine to be
-brought.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran had said to the officers who were
-directing the mob: “Captains of Iran, I am grieved
-to the heart! Never before have the Aryans turned on
-their King in this manner and assaulted his high Majesty!
-But the provocation has been great! Nevertheless,
-if the Aryans rule the world, they must obey their
-kings! By your act you have forfeited your lives and
-under the law are as dead men! I will go to the King
-and seek his pardon for you and for those he now holds
-in prison. Speak to the men and say that I, the Prince
-of Iran, their commander, order them to desist until I go
-to the King and return!”</p>
-
-<p>Up spoke a grizzled veteran, who had campaigned with
-Cyrus: “O most beloved Prince, go not to the King!
-Does he not hate you? Has he not without cause murdered
-his brother and his two sisters? Why do the heads
-of our comrades hang on yonder walls? By the great
-God, we have sworn that he shall release the others or
-die! He is a madman, and it is no treason to dethrone
-him. Go not to him! He will slay you also!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince looked upon the rugged face of the speaker
-with love, but he said reprovingly: “I know your heart,
-Arbax; but you forget that he is the son of Cyrus, the
-Great King. What of me? Have I not suffered at his
-hands? Yet do I counsel obedience. Will you not be
-guided by me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Always and forever!” answered Arbax. “But is it
-not just to demand that he release our officers as well as
-pardon the men?”</p>
-
-<p>“It is just. If he refuse, then indeed is he mad and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">[230]</span>
-you do well to take him from the throne. I will go to
-him demanding this. Will you abide the result?”</p>
-
-<p>A common assent was given by all. Only Gobryas,
-whose soul was bitter because of the death of Artistone,
-exclaimed: “Prince and brother, let me carry this demand
-to the King, and you remain here! If he refuse
-our request, or slay me, it will matter little. There may
-be no need of further rioting! Let me go in your stead.”</p>
-
-<p>But the Prince shook his head. To send Gobryas
-meant to send death to the King, as the latter, he knew,
-was in a mood to slay the monster who had crushed the
-life out of the woman he loved.</p>
-
-<p>“Have patience, my brother,” said the Prince. “The
-state is above all else. Shall we slay our King and
-plunge the whole world into anarchy? Every subject
-nation would revolt. We are in the midst of our enemies
-and far from home with a weakened army. Terror
-of the King of Kings lies heavy upon the subject-peoples.
-It must not be removed now. No, the time is
-not ripe! Iran must be prepared to set up another King
-before throwing down this one. The King will see the
-justice of our demands.”</p>
-
-<p>Another captain spoke up, voicing the decision of all:
-“We will obey you, as our commander. But our brothers
-must be released and pardon extended to all. If
-you return not in one half-hour with their pardon, we
-storm the palace and slay every man therein. We swear
-it!”</p>
-
-<p>“We swear it!” echoed all.</p>
-
-<p>“Do as you say!” answered the Prince. “But I will
-return. Fear not for me! One higher than I goes with
-me. Remain here and let the men not move from their
-places.”</p>
-
-<p>He departed at once to the palace-gate, and, to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">[231]</span>
-guards peering forth from loopholes at its sides he commanded:
-“Open! I go to the King, bearing peace!”</p>
-
-<p>The door was swung back to admit him. The guards
-had expected only death at the hands of the savage men
-who stood around the palace in silent, menacing attitude,
-and peace they greatly desired. The Prince was
-conducted to the roof, where he found Prexaspes and
-the King. The latter had seated himself at a small table
-and was drinking wine. He turned to the Prince, who
-was startled at the sight of his haggard face, his bloodshot
-eyes, and trembling hands—trembling, not in fear,
-but from nervousness and debauchery. The King’s voice
-was full of bitterness and hate, as he said: “Prince of
-Iran, I bid you welcome! Your eyes are doubtless glad
-to behold your King at the mercy of yonder rabble!
-What come you for? My crown?”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince saluted the King gravely and looked down
-upon him with ill-concealed disgust and pity. He said
-in cold, measured tones: “King of the World, the day
-has come when even I am unable to restrain the soldiers
-of Iran. Those men and their fathers made your father
-King of Kings, King of the World, the Great King.
-They have added Egypt to your empire. How have you
-rewarded them? Think you that without these Aryans
-and their officers whom you have imprisoned, you could
-sit here in safety one day? Not so! These Egyptians,
-these Syrians and Babylonians, serve you not because
-they love you, but because they fear our soldiers. Are
-you mad? Why have you given yourself over to murder
-and debauchery? Why have you forsaken your God
-and allied yourself with the vile Magi? I speak plainly
-but loyally. I am oath-bound to support you, but I
-swear that unless you now be advised by me, I will do
-nothing to save you from these men, who thirst to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">[232]</span>
-avenge the blood of Bardya, of Artistone, and of these
-others you have slain without just cause!”</p>
-
-<p>The King’s face grew purple with rage. He sprang
-to his feet and half-drew his sword. But his eyes, looking
-into the eyes of the Prince, saw in them a fierce, savage
-light and a compelling gaze that drove him back to
-his seat. He dared not lift his hand against this man.
-A chill of abject fear ran through his body; and he saw,
-as if by revelation, a hideous chasm opening before
-him. Into that chasm of present and eternal destruction
-he had been about to leap. He drew back and shudderingly
-covered his face with his hands. His nerves were
-unstrung by debauchery and by his fearful crimes. He
-had come to a place where, in the face of death, he realized
-how evil his life had been. It was true, as he now acknowledged
-to himself, that the position he held was due
-to the men he had slighted, insulted, imprisoned, or murdered.
-He was silent a moment, and as he sank back
-upon his chair he weakly passed a hand across his eyes
-and said: “What do you advise? Your words are true!
-I have been mad, but now I am restored to reason and
-I see clearly.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince was surprised. He had not expected such
-sudden change. He thought rapidly, not only for the
-present safety of the King, but for the good of the Aryan
-race. A friendly, cordial note sounded in his voice, as
-he answered: “Be advised by me, O King! Put away
-from you the Magi. Put aside these Medean favorites.
-Surround yourself with men of your own race and fill
-the high offices of the empire with its nobility. Renounce
-the witchcraft of the fire-worshipers and proclaim to the
-world the rule of Ahura-Mazda. Pardon the men in rebellion
-and release all prisoners. Bestow compensation
-upon the widows and relatives of those you have slain.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">[233]</span>
-Then will the people of Iran support you and yours on
-the throne forever. Then will your reign become truly
-great and glorious!”</p>
-
-<p>The King remained silent a long time after the Prince
-ceased speaking. A good impulse stirred within his
-heart. Life had been without happiness to him since
-that fatal night when he had ordered Bardya slain.
-Hate, envy, and malice towards the best men of his own
-race had filled his heart. Remorse over his brother’s
-fate had been with him, but it was as nothing to the remorse
-and grief gnawing his soul over the death of Artistone,
-the gentle sister and wife whom he really loved.
-Could he ever atone? He would try.</p>
-
-<p>“Let it be done as you say,” he commanded, rising
-unsteadily and shaking himself as if he would shake
-off a horrible dream. “Prexaspes, you shall write decrees
-to fulfill all that our beloved Prince advises. So
-be it! I turn back into the old ways of my fathers.
-I will dismiss the Magi. I will fill all chief offices with
-Persians. I will dismiss my new body-guard of Medes,
-and you, Prince, shall furnish the new Imperial Guard
-and command it. Write a decree, Prexaspes, making
-this Prince the chief man in my empire after the King.
-Evermore will I be guided by his advice. The Magi
-must go down and back to their haunts in the hills. The
-temples of Ahura-Mazda shall open; and I will offer a
-thousand sacrifices to atone for my sins. Order the prisoners
-released. Write an address to be read to the army,
-telling of my new resolve. I will go down to the soldiers
-and tell them this myself!”</p>
-
-<p>“Not so, O King!” said the Prince. “Let me deal with
-these men. Let your decrees be prepared and signed at
-once. I will go down, release the imprisoned officers and
-return to the army with them. This, O King, may be a
-great day for good to the Aryan race!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">[234]</span>“Let every order given by the Prince of Iran be
-obeyed,” said the King to Prexaspes.</p>
-
-<p>The latter bowed low, and, followed by the Prince,
-departed immediately to release the imprisoned officers,
-and in a few moments these went forth to join the rejoicing
-troops. The palace gates were thrown open, its
-defenders marched out and departed to a distant garrison,
-and a new guard of Persians was placed in charge.
-The Prince of Iran, having secured the decrees and published
-them, assumed charge of the King’s affairs. Thirty
-days of mourning for Artistone were observed. Compensation
-for the death of those slain by the King’s orders
-and banishment of the Magi from affairs of state followed.</p>
-
-<p>King Cambyses determined to return to Medea in
-order to complete the work of restoring to power the
-Persian faction. Aryandes, a noble Persian, was appointed
-satrap of Egypt and the bulk of the army was
-left with him. The King, with a guard of ten thousand
-Persians and an army of fifty thousand mixed troops,
-escorting a vast train loaded with the wealth of Egypt,
-marched by easy stages out of the latter country, through
-Canaan, along the shore of the Great Sea, to a point near
-Mount Carmel, where he turned towards Damascus.
-The curses of Egypt went with him. Her priests, under
-the milder rule of the sane Aryandes, then returned to
-her deserted temples. But so broken were the Egyptians
-and so strong was the Persian hold that no rebellion occurred.
-The Egyptian people, having learned that while
-the Persian King might be harsh yet his rule in the main
-was just, did no more than dream of revolution; and for
-a century Egypt slept peacefully beneath the paw of the
-Persian lion.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">[235]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVI<br />
-
-
-<small>THE END OF OATH-KEEPING</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">AFTER resting some days by the sea near Mount
-Carmel, the King’s army moved eastward towards
-Damascus, passing north of Lake Chinneroth and south
-of Mount Hermon, through the ancient land of Bashan,
-and so came to the small city of Hamath near the head-waters
-of the Jordan.</p>
-
-<p>Since leaving Egypt the King had kept himself secluded,
-either riding in a closed litter carried on the
-shoulders of stout slaves, or staying within his tent. He
-was gloomy and morose. He brooded much alone, and
-when in his darkest moods was a savage and unreasonable
-maniac. The Persian cavalry, of which his body-guard
-was composed, regarded him with ill-suppressed
-hatred. The remainder of the army was disaffected and
-mutinous. A factional spirit had sprung up among the
-soldiers. The different nationalities and religions
-clashed. Especially did the Aryan monotheists despise
-the worshipers of many gods and the devil-worship of
-the Magi. Only the strong hand of the Prince of Iran,
-for whom all had respect, could repress disorder and enforce
-discipline.</p>
-
-<p>The King halted a day at Hamath and allowed the
-army to rest before entering the desert road for Damascus.
-The Prince of Iran mounted his favorite horse
-and, accompanied by Gobryas and a score of men, rode
-out towards Mount Hermon. As they were about to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">[236]</span>
-ascend the lower hills, they met a runner or message-bearer,
-coming down from the mountain, who, when he
-saw the Prince, stopped running and bowed himself to
-the earth. The Prince halted. He saw that the man
-was a Hebrew.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not mine eyes behold the great lord, the mighty
-Prince of Iran?” asked the runner.</p>
-
-<p>“I am he,” answered the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>The man produced a roll from his close-fitting tunic
-and handed it to the Prince, who, greatly surprised,
-opened and read:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Greeting to the royal Prince, Darius of Iran, son of
-King Hystaspis! May God have you in favor! Hearing
-that you are with the great army near Hamath, and
-having much to say of those you love well, I pray that you
-will appoint a time and place where I may meet you. I
-do not think it best to come into the King’s camp, unless
-you may assure me of a safe escort. My trusty servant,
-Joseph, will bear safely to me any message you may
-send. If you would visit me, he will guide you to my
-tent.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="indentright">“Farewell,</span><br />
-“<span class="smcap">Belteshazzer</span>.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Prince’s heart leaped with joy. Once only had
-he heard from the Princess Athura, and he knew not
-whether she had taken his advice and gone to Persepolis.
-Perhaps she had chosen to stay with Belteshazzer and
-was now with him. He handed the letter to Gobryas to
-read and said to the messenger: “I will go to your
-master. Lead the way!”</p>
-
-<p>The messenger again saluted and, turning his face to
-the mountain, led the way with a long swinging stride,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">[237]</span>
-going so swiftly that the horses of the Persians occasionally
-galloped to keep near him. The road wound upward
-around the spurs of the mountain. Having surmounted
-a high ridge, they came at length upon a small
-plateau several acres in extent, from which the rugged
-heights went up still farther and upon which were several
-cedar and fir trees. At one side a dashing torrent
-poured out from a gulch, spread out in a swirling pool,
-leaped over a rocky barrier, and disappeared into a canyon.
-Near the pool on a grassy plot was a pavilion
-of dark cloth and, clustered near it, a score of lesser
-tents. Several horses grazed on the green before the
-tents, and a group of men armed with bows and spears
-stood near the pavilion. As the Persians drew near,
-a man of stately and benign aspect emerged from it and
-spoke reassuringly to the men, who were uneasily regarding
-the newcomers as possible enemies. Then he
-remained standing at the tent-door and waved a hand
-in greeting to the Prince. It was Belteshazzer. The
-Prince spurred his steed forward and, dismounting, hastened
-to Belteshazzer, embraced him affectionately, and
-kissed both his cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>“Hail, Master,” he exclaimed. “How long it has been
-since I last saw you! Are you well?”</p>
-
-<p>“My health is excellent, my son,” answered the Hebrew,
-cordially. “Glad indeed am I to behold you!
-Bid your men dismount. My servants shall set food before
-them and attend to their horses.”</p>
-
-<p>He called a servant to him and gave the Prince’s retinue
-in his charge. Then he led the Prince into the
-pavilion and caused him to sit down and partake of refreshments.
-The Prince looked about him expectantly,
-but was disappointed in finding no indications that
-Athura was in the camp. Belteshazzer knew his thoughts<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">[238]</span>
-and smilingly said: “She is not here, my son. When
-we received your letter bidding her go to your father,
-we considered your advice good and traveled thither
-by easy journeys. We were guests of your father many
-months. I left her there under his protection and in the
-love and care of your mother, when I journeyed hither.
-She was well. More beautiful than the morn, sweeter
-than the roses that bloom in Persian gardens, as pure
-as the snows of Demavend, she waits for you! Your
-father has established such a strong guard around his
-palace that it resembles a camp; and none go in or come
-out who are not known.”</p>
-
-<p>“My gratitude is unspeakable, O Prophet of God!”
-said the Prince, fervently. “If there shall ever be any
-favor I may render you, it shall be rendered. Have
-you ever loved a woman? And know you the pain of
-separation from her?”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer sighed as he answered: “Yea, I have
-known the love of a wife. But she has gone before
-and awaits me on the shore of the river of life. Like
-a spring of water and a green tree in a desert, is the
-love of a good woman. I have much to tell you, my son;
-but I know you desire me to speak of her most.”</p>
-
-<p>He then related the manner of Athura’s escape from the
-palace of Cambyses at Hamadan, and the manner of her
-life since. Then he gave to the Prince a large packet,
-containing letters from the Princess, from King Hystaspis,
-and from the Queen-mother.</p>
-
-<p>“Now,” he continued, “having told you that which
-you wished most to know as a man, I must speak with
-you of matters of state in which you are concerned as a
-Prince and as the King to be. Even as you drew near,
-it was given me of the spirit to perceive that this day
-is full of mighty portent. Even now there enter men<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">[239]</span>
-into the King’s camp bearing news that will shake the
-King’s soul. I have also received from trusty agents
-within the week great news that has traveled to others
-less swiftly. Evil men have seized the government of
-the world at Hamadan. Patatheites, the regent, has
-brought forth one whom he calls Bardya, the King’s
-brother, and has proclaimed him King of Kings. He
-has caused a decree to be published remitting all taxes
-for three years, declaring that Cambyses is a maniac and
-possessed of evil spirits, and ordering that he be apprehended
-and imprisoned. You are surprised. Well may
-you be. But fear not. It is not Bardya that reigns, but
-an impostor. He is that Gaumata whom the Great King
-maimed by cutting off his ears. Evil has been the life
-of Cambyses, but not so evil as are the lives of those men
-who have usurped power.”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince uttered an exclamation of wonder and incredulity.</p>
-
-<p>“But is Bardya dead? How knew you this? How
-can that Gaumata hope to impersonate him long?”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer smiled and remained silent for a moment.
-His eyes were fixed as if looking within, and
-he assumed a listening attitude, as one might in revery.
-Presently he spoke softly and dreamily:</p>
-
-<p>“Yea, I see them even now sitting in a room of the
-great palace! Patatheites paces up and down, his pale,
-sharp countenance wreathed in a triumphant smile. Gaumata,
-the earless one, sits on the throne, uneasy and
-afraid. He wears a turban low down on his head after
-the fashion of the Arabs, but it is to conceal his lack of
-ears. He resembles Bardya, but he is Gaumata. He
-has shown himself to the people, who have acclaimed
-him. He awaits uneasily the return of messengers sent
-to all parts of the earth. In him the Magi triumph and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">[240]</span>
-Ahriman, that old serpent, the devil, rules. God is forgotten.
-As I said, even now there run into the King’s
-camp at Hamath the emissaries of the false Bardya.
-They are proclaiming the decree aloud to the wondering
-soldiers. They are distributing copies to all who
-can read. A mighty spirit of unrest broods over the
-army!”</p>
-
-<p>He paused and Prince Hystaspis sprang to his feet,
-exclaiming: “Then there is need that I return to the
-army at once! It loves not the King. But is Bardya
-truly dead, O Prophet of God? Out of all your divine
-wisdom assure me of this. Direct my course. Tell me of
-the future. Not while I live shall the usurper throw
-down the seed of Cyrus from his throne!”</p>
-
-<p>He paused. A tremor passed over the face of Belteshazzer,
-and with half-closed eyes he continued the low,
-even-toned words of the seer:</p>
-
-<p>“My son, Bardya is dead! He was slain by Prexaspes
-in pursuance of the King’s command. A sword-stroke
-from behind, as they rode northward out of Hamadan,
-was given by the Mede, with such power that it
-cleft the Prince’s head to the eyes. Have no doubt of
-this. I have seen it in visions and heard it of the spirit.
-What of the future? I see Cambyses dead! I see raised
-on high one with the countenance of Darius, son of Hystaspis,
-like an eagle; and he looks at the sun and spreads
-his wings over the whole world. More I cannot see.
-God does not decree all things; but He brings to pass
-that which He does decree. He controls not the wills
-of men, nor forces them to do good or evil. But in accord
-with His mighty purpose, He ordains that you, O
-son of Hystaspis, shall rule the world; and it shall come
-to pass! Fear not! Go forward! Cast down the liars
-of earth and those that delude the people to their hurt,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">[241]</span>
-idolaters and worshipers of earthly things! Restore
-again the altars of God. With great power shall you
-rule and give peace and justice to the peoples of the
-earth.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it is not required that I raise my hand against
-Cambyses?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. It is not required. The King is his own avenger.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come with me, beloved Master. I need your advice
-and guidance.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will come to you at Hamadan in due time, my son.
-Now I go down to Jerusalem to encourage my people.
-When you come to your high estate, remember my people,
-who languish in foreign lands. The Great Cyrus
-decreed their return, but died before it could be accomplished.
-Let them return and rebuild the temple of God
-and live happily beneath the shadow of the King of
-Kings.”</p>
-
-<p>“I swear to you, O Belteshazzer, it shall be done!
-Your God is my God. Is is not so? Your people shall
-be even as the Aryans, favored of me, when I sit on the
-throne.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yea, it is so. God is a spirit. Ahura-Mazda, the
-good spirit, is the same as Elohim. Have we not so decided,
-your father and I, in discourse by the Pulwar?
-Truly your father is a man of knowledge!”</p>
-
-<p>“He sat at the feet of Zoroaster in his youth. Has
-age touched him and my mother harshly?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. Their eyes are undimmed. Their hearts are
-young. Age but puts wisdom into them.”</p>
-
-<p>Many other questions, of his home, of his parents, and
-of Athura, asked the Prince. Servants having spread a
-lunch beneath an awning before the pavilion, he and
-Gobryas sat down with Belteshazzer and refreshed themselves.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">[242]</span>
-It was an inspiring scene. To the west and
-north were the rugged spurs and ridges of Mount Hermon.
-Below and to the east was the great plain spreading
-out towards Damascus and Edom. The sparkling
-cascade with its soft rush of waters, the song of birds,
-the brilliant sunlight over all, were elements of an impression
-on the mind of the Prince that he never forgot.
-From this point he set out to seize the throne of the
-world. Convinced that the great prophet spoke truly, he
-now set his gaze on the greatest place of power in all the
-earth and went steadily towards it. But he did not linger
-here. With the blessing of Belteshazzer ringing in his
-ears, he hastened back to the army.</p>
-
-<p>As he rode into camp, he saw evidence of excitement
-and turmoil. His ten thousand Persians composing the
-body-guard were standing in battle-array, in a hollow
-square around the King’s pavilion, with officers pacing
-back and forth at the several fronts in gloomy silence.
-A vast concourse of men was gathered near around a
-speaker, who, mounted on a chariot, was haranguing
-them. A roar of voices arose as the speaker paused and
-pointed towards the Prince and his party.</p>
-
-<p>“Long live Bardya! Down with Cambyses! Hail to
-King Bardya! Slay the murderer of his sister!
-Death to the tyrant!” were some of the shouts that
-came to the Prince’s ears. He paused but an instant to
-listen. Then, riding up to one of the officers of the
-guard, he demanded, “What means this?”</p>
-
-<p>“Praise God you have come!” answered the officer,
-joyfully. “Now we shall know what to do. Messengers
-have come from Damascus bearing copies of a decree
-from Bardya, the King’s brother, announcing that
-he has assumed the throne of the King of Kings and
-has been crowned at Hamadan. He decrees that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">[243]</span>
-Cambyses be seized and brought to him so that he may
-be punished for the murder of the King’s sister; and he
-also promises peace and remission of taxes. Here is a
-copy. We of the guard knew not your pleasure,
-whether we should defend King Cambyses or deliver
-him as a prisoner to your hand. So we have surrounded
-the King’s pavilion and are ready to do your will.”</p>
-
-<p>The officer presented a roll of papyrus to the Prince,
-who quickly read it. Then the Prince directed all the
-officers to come before him and said:</p>
-
-<p>“Men, as to this report that Bardya has set himself
-up for King, I know that Bardya is dead and he who is
-set up on high is an impostor. The liars of the hills
-have done this thing, having heard of the King’s decree
-that they shall be cast down from their places. Order
-the soldiers to remain steadfast and resist those men
-who have stirred up mutiny. Say to them that I, their
-Prince, have spoken, and my word they must obey. No
-impious hand shall be laid upon Cambyses, the King!”</p>
-
-<p>The officers were amazed. But they doubted not the
-words of their commander, and went along the lines,
-repeating to the excited soldiery his words. He, dismounting,
-went alone into the King’s pavilion. A
-trembling slave announced him to the King and admitted
-him to the presence. He found Cambyses pacing
-back and forth in great agitation.</p>
-
-<p>“Ha!” exclaimed the King, “you have returned!
-I thought you too had turned from me. How is it that
-rebellion has broken loose in this camp? Are you not
-commander? You shall answer for it with your head!
-But perhaps you come to tell me that I am a prisoner!
-And you will put me in chains and take me to Bardya!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince saluted gravely and stood with uncovered
-head. “I come to assure you that the Guard and I intend<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">[244]</span>
-to defend you against any attack,” he said. “Is it
-your order that we arrest the mutineers and punish
-them?”</p>
-
-<p>The King paused in amazement. He was incredulous
-and shaken. He could not believe that this man, who
-had suffered such wrongs at his hands, would not seize
-him and carry him to Bardya. He believed that
-Prexaspes had been faithless in executing his order to
-slay Bardya and that the latter had seized an opportune
-time to appear and claim the throne. His army in
-mutiny, what chance had he to regain his lost throne?
-He passed a trembling hand uncertainly over his haggard
-face.</p>
-
-<p>“I am mightily shaken,” he said nervously. “The
-words of a sorcerer ring in my ears. He said that I
-should die at Hamadan. I thought you had come to
-seize me and carry me thither to death. I thought
-Bardya dead! Prexaspes so reported. Where is this
-Prexaspes? Let him be brought hither!”</p>
-
-<p>He jerked a cord connecting with a bell in the servants’
-quarters. A servant instantly appeared.</p>
-
-<p>“Send Prexaspes hither!” commanded the King.</p>
-
-<p>They waited in gloomy silence until Prexaspes came.
-There was a mocking light in the Mede’s dark eyes and
-a perceptible sneer on his face as he met the King’s
-savage gaze. He bowed low to both the King and the
-Prince.</p>
-
-<p>“Hark you!” exclaimed Cambyses. “Hear those
-cries! They acclaim Bardya King! Did you not swear
-to me that my brother was dead?”</p>
-
-<p>“I did swear, O King!” answered Prexaspes, coolly.
-“Here was my authority to slay him.”</p>
-
-<p>He drew a paper from his tunic and deliberately
-handed it unrolled to the Prince, who glanced at it. It<span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">[245]</span>
-was the order of King Cambyses to slay Bardya. The
-King’s face grew livid with wrath.</p>
-
-<p>“Thus commanded,” continued Prexaspes, “I rode
-with Bardya along the Rhages road after leaving the
-hall where the King gave a feast in his honor. I returned
-and reported that I had slain Bardya with a
-sword-stroke from behind. But he died not, it seems.
-Why should I have the blood of kings on my hands?”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince studied the Mede’s face with growing
-rage. The latter’s bold gaze fell before the accusing
-fury of the Prince’s eyes. The King seemed speechless.
-The Prince smote his hands together, and burst
-forth: “By the living God, you both deserve the death
-of murderers! Why should I interfere with the wrath
-of God? You lie, Prexaspes! I know the truth!”</p>
-
-<p>He cast the order at the King’s feet and without ceremony
-turned and left the tent. The King turned upon
-Prexaspes with maniacal fury.</p>
-
-<p>“Villain! Dog!” he screamed. “Why show that
-order? You know that my only hope depends on the
-Prince! Now you have turned him from me! You
-shall be skinned alive! Your heart shall be cut out and
-given to swine! You shall hang on a stake!”</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes laughed and snapped his fingers in the
-King’s face.</p>
-
-<p>“I fear you not, foul beast!” he shouted. “Your
-day has come, as comes the day of every villain,
-whether crowned or not! Am I to die? I know it. I
-read death in the eyes of the Prince. I also read your
-death there, son of Ahriman! Listen! You slew my
-son, in cruel sport, one day. The arrow that cleft his
-brain killed my loyalty to you. I know a lingering death
-awaits you at Hamadan or I would myself slay you
-now!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">[246]</span>For a moment the King was so astonished as to be
-speechless. Then, roaring inarticulate curses, he sought
-for his sword. But it was not at his side. He rushed
-about the tent searching for it. Prexaspes, laughing derisively,
-disappeared through the rear door. The King
-presently found a long dagger in a pile of armor and
-with it rushed out after Prexaspes. But though he
-searched through the servants’ quarters, he did not find
-him. He returned to his pavilion and after pacing back
-and forth a moment went out in front of his quarters,
-uncertain what course to pursue.</p>
-
-<p>A vast mob of soldiers, waving arms and shouting
-maledictions upon Cambyses, was moving down upon
-the Persian square. The Prince of Iran was mounting
-his horse, while several orderlies were galloping along
-the tense lines of the Guard delivering orders to the
-captains. A squad of cavalry under Gobryas was
-marching towards the King’s tent.</p>
-
-<p>“They come to arrest me!” muttered the King.
-“But I shall not be taken alive! Prexaspes lied. My
-brother lives and the world turns to him. He will
-surely slay me, knowing that I ordered him slain. If I
-die, I will die as a King!”</p>
-
-<p>A sudden high resolve entered his soul. He went
-back into the tent, placed the crown and tiara, which he
-wore on state occasions, on his head, threw over his
-shoulders a long purple cloak, composed his countenance
-to a calm dignity, and, with the long, keen dagger
-in his hand, again went forth. Gobryas and his troopers,
-who were under orders to place the King in their
-midst and to cut their way out and escape with him
-should the Guard be unable to repulse the expected attack,
-opened up to let the King pass through. The
-Prince was riding towards the mob intent on a parley<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">[247]</span>
-before the necessity of bloodshed should come. The
-King passed through the ranks of the Guard and halted
-at ten paces in front. The leaders of the mob, seeing
-him, suddenly halted at a hundred paces’ distance and
-fell silent, astonished at the appearance of the terrible
-Cambyses. The Prince, turning to investigate the cause
-of the mob’s action, saw Cambyses look a moment at
-the low, western sun and around at the sky and distant
-mountains, and at last turn his burning eyes upon
-the hostile faces of his subjects. Then, with a swift
-motion, the King elevated the gleaming dagger and
-plunged it into his own chest. A cry of horror involuntarily
-rose from the throng. The King swayed, his
-knees bent, and he fell prone upon the earth. The
-Prince, realizing what the King had done, turned upon
-the mob and shouted: “Back to your tents, scoundrels!
-You have slain your King! Back, I say, before I let
-loose the Guards upon you!”</p>
-
-<p>An immediate backward movement of the mob took
-place, and it melted away in awed silence. The Prince
-rode quickly back to the King, and, assisted by his
-officers, carried the injured man into the tent. Surgeons
-were called, the dagger removed, and the wound
-bandaged. The blade had failed to reach the heart, but
-had passed through a lung and inflicted a fatal wound.
-The shock had rendered the King insensible. Blood
-poured from his mouth, but he did not die immediately.</p>
-
-<p>Night had fallen before the King regained consciousness.
-He opened his eyes and looked at the flaring
-lamps, as if wondering whether they were torches in
-the underworld, and at the soft-footed attendants as if
-wondering whether they were lost souls. His eyes presently
-rested upon the Prince of Iran, who stood at the
-foot of his couch with folded arms looking sadly down<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">[248]</span>
-upon him. Recognition arrested his wandering mind.
-He strove to rise, muttering feebly, “Then I am not
-dead!”</p>
-
-<p>An attendant sought to restrain him. Blood gushed
-from his mouth, and he fell back with a bubbling groan.
-After resting a moment and clearing his throat, he said
-with difficulty: “Let all retire save the Prince. I am
-about to die. Let me die in peace.”</p>
-
-<p>At a nod from the Prince, the attendants left the
-room. The Prince drew near to the head of the couch.
-The King looked up at him and spoke in weak, halting
-words:</p>
-
-<p>“Strange it is, Prince of Iran, that you alone stand by
-me in death! A thousand times I have planned your
-death, but my hand has ever been held. I have done
-you wrong. But in you alone have I trusted. How is
-it that I have hated yet trusted you?”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince shook his head. “I know not,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“But it is fate!” continued the King. “What of the
-future? Where now are the wise men? Where those
-prophets of the hills who predicted good fortune, who
-said that my seed should sit on the throne, who said I
-would conquer all my enemies and die at Hamadan?
-Would God that I had heeded the words of the prophet
-Belteshazzer, when he sought to teach me how to live
-rightly! Where is that Belteshazzer? I wish that he
-were here!”</p>
-
-<p>He paused. There was a rustle of the curtain at the
-tent-door. It drew aside and the tall, majestic presence
-of Belteshazzer came into the tent. The musical, quiet
-voice of the prophet said, “I am here, O King Cambyses!”</p>
-
-<p>Cambyses stared in amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“What wonder is this?” he exclaimed. “Am I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">[249]</span>
-dreaming? Is this a vision? Are you that prophet,
-Belteshazzer?”</p>
-
-<p>“I am Belteshazzer, the Hebrew,” answered the
-prophet. “Your life is almost ended, Cambyses. What
-do you demand of me?”</p>
-
-<p>“I demand to know what awaits me in the future.
-About to die, I would atone for many grievous sins.
-What of the future? What of God? What of forgetfulness
-through eternity to come?”</p>
-
-<p>Belteshazzer’s countenance exhibited both pity and
-sternness, as he answered, “Your time is short to atone
-for the grievous sins of your life, O King. The blood
-of many cries against you from the ground. Through
-long years to come, wherever your soul may wander,
-the evil you have done will be with you and bitterness
-will be your portion. But God, the great and only God,
-is a loving Father; and, perhaps, if you humble yourself
-and repent, you may at length win His forgiveness and
-favor. There will be no forgetfulness without forgiveness.
-Greatly have you sinned. Deeply must you repent.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I have sinned greatly,” murmured the King.
-“In frantic wrath I slew my sister-wife! In willful
-oppression I drove my sister Athura to her death—”</p>
-
-<p>“She is not dead,” interrupted Belteshazzer. “She
-lives!”</p>
-
-<p>“Praise be to Ahura-Mazda!” said the King. “Now
-I know what that Magian meant, when he said that a
-son of my sister shall sit on the throne of the King of
-Kings. For she shall marry the Prince of Iran. I feel
-upon me the spirit of prophecy! Prince of Iran, you
-shall be King of Kings! In the presence of Belteshazzer,
-I declare you my successor. Marry Athura. I give
-her to you. She is your wife. Thus do I atone for one<span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">[250]</span>
-sin. But that other prophet lied when he said I should
-die at Hamadan. For I die here in the Syrian desert.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did he say Hamadan of Medea?” inquired Belteshazzer.
-“If not, he spake truly. For this village
-where you are encamped is named Hamath, which is
-Syrian for Hamadan.”</p>
-
-<p>The King gasped. “Then he spake truly!” he said.
-“He was not of the Magi. He was a hermit, alone in
-the mountains. He reproved me one day—and he was
-slain. Truly have I sinned! I have slain the prophets
-with the sword!”</p>
-
-<p>He was silent a moment. Blood choked him and he
-coughed. The Prince gently aided him. The King’s
-strength was rapidly failing. His voice was gone and
-he whispered hoarsely, “O that I might see those I have
-wronged and of them seek pardon!”</p>
-
-<p>He fell silent and his eyes were partially closed.
-Presently he shuddered and opened his eyes wide. He
-half rose, stared in amazement and terror towards the
-foot of his couch, and raised his hand as if to ward off
-a blow. The Prince, following the direction of the
-King’s gaze, saw (or did he dream?) at the foot of the
-King’s couch a company of apparitions, one of which
-seemed to have the pallid, serious, reproving countenance
-of Cyrus, the Great King, another the sorrowful face of
-Artistone, another the fierce countenance of Bardya,
-while a score of others, unknown to him, seemed to come
-and go. Their faces were turned towards Cambyses;
-but, as the Prince gazed spellbound, the face of Cyrus
-turned towards him, his lips seemed to move, and he
-seemed to say: “You have kept your oath. You are
-free. Ascend the throne of the King of Kings!”</p>
-
-<p>A gurgling shriek from the King aroused the Prince.
-The apparitions disappeared. Cambyses was dead.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">[251]</span>Belteshazzer said, as the surgeons and attendants,
-alarmed by the King’s outcry, rushed into the room:
-“The King is dead. Let the body be embalmed for
-transportation to Pasargadæ, that he may sleep with
-his fathers.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let this order be obeyed,” added the Prince, addressing
-the attendants. Then he said to Belteshazzer:
-“Come, prophet of God, to my tent. I need your counsel
-and aid.”</p>
-
-<p>They left the pavilion and walked slowly to the
-Prince’s headquarters. To Gobryas whom they met still
-on guard the Prince said: “The King is dead. Let the
-men be fed and tell them to rest. Let the news be proclaimed
-throughout the camp. Send a company of men
-to arrest Prexaspes and bring him before me.”</p>
-
-<p>He passed on with Belteshazzer. Gobryas hastened
-to execute his orders. He sent a squad to arrest
-Prexaspes, but found that the latter had escaped. The
-wily Mede had hastened from the camp during the confusion
-incident to the King’s death, and was journeying
-northward as fast as his horse could carry him.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the Prince and Belteshazzer sat at meat
-in the Prince’s tent and talked of many things. When
-the prophet arose to depart, he said: “Have great
-care, my son! Those men who brought the news of this
-false Bardya’s usurpation are likewise commissioned by
-the Magi to slay you. They do not dare openly harm
-you, but they will secretly assassinate you if opportunity
-offer. But fear not! Within the year you will reign
-as King of Kings!”</p>
-
-<p>“Give me your blessing, O Prophet of God!” besought
-the Prince. “When I reign, you shall come to
-me and be my chief counselor. You shall be at the head
-of the college of wise men. Ease and plenty shall be
-yours and peace shall come to your people!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">[252]</span>“May the blessing of God, the Almighty, the Eternal,
-the Ancient of Days, rest upon you!” said Belteshazzer,
-solemnly, laying his hands upon the Prince’s bowed head.
-“Remember when you come to the throne that Cyrus
-promised that my people should return to Jerusalem and
-recover their homes and property.”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember, and it shall be done. Let me send
-guards with you beyond the camp.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is needless. I shall go as I came, without the
-need of guards. Farewell!”</p>
-
-<p>With a smile he disappeared, and the Prince was left
-alone, to stand awhile in deep thought and then to pace
-back and forth many minutes. Presently he called his
-orderlies and directed them to call the chief captains
-into council. They soon arrived, and he greeted each
-affectionately. When a score of them had assembled,
-he said:</p>
-
-<p>“I have called you together to hear the orders made
-necessary by the death of Cambyses, King of Kings.
-It has become necessary for me to depart at once to
-Hamadan. I take with me the Imperial Guard. I
-leave Alyates in command of the army. He shall see to
-it that the King’s body is properly embalmed. It must
-be buried at Pasargadæ with the other Kings. Let the
-army march leisurely to Damascus and there halt until
-the orders of the new King shall have been received.
-Let it be known that this army stands ready to enforce
-obedience to the house of Achæmenius.”</p>
-
-<p>Alyates, a tall, soldierly Mede, saluted and said,
-“Your orders shall be obeyed, my Lord Prince.”</p>
-
-<p>After other suggestions concerning the movements of
-the army, the Prince dismissed the council and sat down
-to write letters to his father and to the Princess Athura.
-He related what he had heard from Belteshazzer concerning<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">[253]</span>
-the false Bardya, gave an account of the death
-of the King, and stated his own purpose, to march at
-once to Hamadan and seize the impostor. He prayed
-that his father would declare himself King of Kings and
-lead an army of Persians to Hamadan at once. These
-letters he entrusted to Gobryas, who, with a dozen trusty
-men, at once set out for Persia, riding at courier speed.</p>
-
-<p>At daybreak, the Prince and his ten thousand men,
-in light marching order, moved quietly out of the camp
-and proceeded to Damascus. Thence, by forced
-marches, they moved across the desert towards Babylon,
-taking for guides trusty Arab sheiks to whom Belteshazzer
-had commended him. Nor could the uneasy
-Gaumata and the scheming Patatheites, at Hamadan,
-discern his movements and so lay plans to intercept him.
-When they heard that he had started for Hamadan at
-the head of ten thousand Persians, they made haste to
-gather together an army with which to resist him, and
-a portion of the army was moved out towards the fords
-of the upper Tigris. But the Prince and his guards
-came not that way. It was his plan to seize Babylon
-and Susa and form a junction with the Persian army
-which he knew would march up from Persepolis.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">[254]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVII<br />
-
-
-<small>THE EARLESS KING</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">KING HYSTASPIS, ruler of Iran under the shadow
-of the King of Kings, walked leisurely through the
-park surrounding his palace at Persepolis and meditated
-upon the doctrines of Zoroaster. Student and mystic,
-loving rather the peace and quiet of his home than the
-martial camp or the ruler’s throne, he found his greatest
-enjoyment in his beautiful park where he might be
-alone. Quiet walks, dreamy hours by running streams
-beneath shady trees, communion with the learned and
-wise, and meditation on the mysteries of life and of
-nature occupied his leisure moments. Delightful indeed
-were the October days. Brown and golden were
-the leaves where deciduous trees made ready to cast
-their burdens. The evergreen of pine and fir interspersed
-the more brilliant colors. The sky was hazy
-and the sunbeams, softened by shimmering mists, had
-lost their great heat and vivid glare.</p>
-
-<p>The King was at ease. No armor burdened him.
-A round felt cap with a purple band sat lightly on his
-massive head. His long gray hair fell in masses to the
-collar of his Medean cloak. His white beard touched
-the belt at his waist. The purple cloak, reaching from
-shoulder to knee, partially covered in its graceful folds
-the dark tunic of his under-dress. His feet were shod
-in boots of soft leather. In his hand was a heavy cane,
-with which as he walked he flicked pebbles from his
-path. A large shepherd dog walked at his side. Master<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">[255]</span>
-and dog had enjoyed the park alone for a long time.
-But there came an interruption. The dog suddenly
-bounded away through the trees towards the palace,
-whose massive portico was partially visible through the
-foliage. The King stopped to observe the cause of his
-follower’s movements and saw a woman coming rapidly
-towards him, at sight of whom his countenance shone
-with pleasure. It was the Princess Athura. She held
-in her hand a roll of papyrus. Following her at respectful
-distance was a man in the uniform of a King’s
-messenger, whose dusty habit and halting steps told of
-a long ride and weariness.</p>
-
-<p>“My brother has written me!” cried the Princess, as
-she drew near. “See! I have here a letter from him,
-sealed with his own private signet!”</p>
-
-<p>“Which brother mean you?” inquired the King, with
-surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Bardya!”</p>
-
-<p>“Is it so? What says he?”</p>
-
-<p>The old man’s brow was clouded as he spoke. Not
-yet had he declared for the new King Bardya, though
-he did not suspect as yet the imposture by which the
-Magi hoped to retain power. He had called the nobles
-of Persia to a council on this matter, and the meeting
-would be held shortly. He had loved Bardya almost as
-a son and knew that the people hated Cambyses. But
-Bardya had not begun his reign by calling back the
-Persian nobles to the chief offices, nor had he banished
-the Magi—much to the chagrin and sorrow of the King
-of Iran. He listened attentively as Athura read:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“<i>My beloved sister, Athura, Light of the World and
-Queen of the Aryans</i>:</p>
-
-<p>“Now that I have come forth from my place of safety
-in the royal mountain, Demavend, and taken upon me<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">[256]</span>
-the crown of King of Kings, my heart goes out to you.
-Do you not remember how we used to talk of ruling this
-great empire of Cyrus together? My brother, Cambyses,
-would have killed me and you, could he have done
-so. The good priests of Mithra saved me and hid me
-away until the time was ripe to come forth. Of this I
-will tell you more when I see you.</p>
-
-<p>“I have heard that you are with the royal Hystaspis
-at his palace in Persepolis. May peace be with him!
-I have sent him greetings by a suitable embassy, confirming
-him in all his titles and requesting him to acknowledge
-my rule. For Cambyses is dead. The army
-near Damascus has revolted from him and slain him.
-I know how the royal Hystaspis loves you. Persuade
-him, therefore, to assist me in my great task and he shall
-be the second man in the empire.</p>
-
-<p>“As for yourself, come to me. I need you here at
-Hamadan to advise me. You were ever the wiser and
-you shall be joint ruler with me in fact if not in name.
-I am sending an escort to meet you at Susa. To that
-point, royal Hystapsis will give you suitable escort.</p>
-
-<p>“Come to me. It is a command.</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Bardya</span>, King of Kings.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>She paused and looked inquiringly into the King’s
-eyes. The latter took from her hand the scroll and read
-it himself in silence. Then he said: “If it be true that
-Cambyses is dead, my course is clear. Yet am I not
-satisfied. It seems almost inconceivable that Bardya
-has come back from the dead. Yet it must be so.”</p>
-
-<p>He beckoned to the messenger, who had discreetly
-halted a score of paces distant, and asked, “Are you in
-the regular messenger service?”</p>
-
-<p>The man bowed low till his hands touched the earth,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">[257]</span>
-and then, standing in humble attitude, answered, “Yes,
-Master.”</p>
-
-<p>“How many years?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ten years, Master.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you have often seen Cyrus, the Great King?
-Also Cambyses and Bardya?”</p>
-
-<p>“Truly have I seen them, my lord, many times. I
-know them well.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have you seen King Bardya since he returned to
-Hamadan?”</p>
-
-<p>“Twice, but only at the public audiences. He rides
-not forth as formerly, because, it is said, he fears assassins.”</p>
-
-<p>“How looks he?”</p>
-
-<p>“The lights were dim when I saw him, but I recognized
-him. He has lost flesh, as if he had been ill. He
-used to take part in the martial sports, but does not do
-so now.”</p>
-
-<p>“What say the people of him?”</p>
-
-<p>“They praise him for the most part. He has remitted
-the taxes, pardoned all political offenders, and
-proclaimed a year of peace and jubilee. Only the old
-priests grumble, who are displeased because he favors
-the Magi.”</p>
-
-<p>“You may return to the palace, where you will be
-entertained.”</p>
-
-<p>Saluting again, the messenger gladly hastened away
-to the ample refreshments he knew awaited him at the
-palace. The King returned the scroll to Athura and
-sighed. After a moment’s thought, he said: “Daughter,
-I like not the situation. If Cambyses be dead, as here
-reported, then Bardya is rightfully King. But he has
-abandoned the ancient religion of his fathers very suddenly
-for the accursed superstition of those Scythian<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">[258]</span>
-interlopers, the Magi. But his decree concerning the
-Magi shall not run in Iran! I have heard that some of
-the temples of our religion in Medea have been closed
-and that the altars of the fire-worshipers on the hilltops
-have multiplied. So changed is he in all this that I am
-astounded. He commands you to come to him. It is
-for you to decide. It may be that you can turn him back
-from his evil way. But I fear to let you go.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am greatly troubled,” said Athura. “Bardya
-never was inclined to give much thought to religion.
-He loves sports, the army, and the hunt. His heart is
-easily touched. In gratitude to those who saved his life,
-he has granted them great privileges. All the more
-should I, on whom he ever leaned for advice, be near him,
-to lead him back if possible to the old paths. I have
-nothing to fear from him. It is my duty to go. But I
-desire your advice. You have been a father to me, and
-the gracious Queen, a mother!”</p>
-
-<p>The King smiled. “If my son returns from Egypt,”
-he said, “I shall deem myself happy to acknowledge you
-my daughter in fact. If Cambyses is dead, there need
-be no more concealment or fear. I will send trusty messengers
-to Hamadan, Babylon, and Susa and even to
-Egypt to learn the truth. My son would certainly have
-sent messengers to me with news of the King’s death if
-he were dead.”</p>
-
-<p>“May Ahura-Mazda hasten the day of his return!
-How long it has been since I last saw him!”</p>
-
-<p>“If you go to Hamadan, what will be the result?
-Will Bardya act as did Cambyses?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, a thousand times! Bardya will consent to my
-marriage with your son at once.”</p>
-
-<p>“It may be. And yet, knowing how my son loves
-the truth and our ancient faith, I fear that Bardya’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">[259]</span>
-new faith will cause a rupture of their friendship.
-Darius is an enemy of liars. Unlike me, this son of
-mine loves war rather than peace and has little patience
-with those who differ from him in opinion. Perhaps
-his love for you will cause him to overlook the errors of
-your brother. As to this letter, if you go, my blessing
-shall go with you; and, should you call to me for aid
-from the ends of the earth, I will march to you at the
-head of a hundred thousand Persians. If you stay here,
-all Iran will be a bulwark around you and my home shall
-be yours.”</p>
-
-<p>Tears filled the eyes of Athura. Kneeling, she placed
-the right hand of the King on her head, saying: “I will
-take your blessing, my father, and go. Well do I know
-the love of our people. Sometimes in the bitterness of
-my condition I have thought of calling them to arms and
-throwing down from his throne the dread Cambyses.
-Had it not been for that oath you and your son swore
-to the Great King, I would have done so!”</p>
-
-<p>Hystaspis bent over and kissed her forehead.</p>
-
-<p>“May Ahura-Mazda, giver of all life, bless you!” he
-said solemnly. “May Sraosha, his powerful messenger,
-ever be at your right hand to convey to Him your
-slightest petition! May happiness in the love of a husband
-be yours and peace in your own home! Come, let
-us go to the palace and break the sad news of your going
-to the mother there.”</p>
-
-<p>They went to the palace side by side and were met on
-the portico by the stately lady who ruled the King’s
-heart even as he kept sway over millions of proud subjects.</p>
-
-<p>She sought to persuade Athura not to go to Hamadan,
-until more certain information of the conditions there
-could be had; but Athura was firm in her determination<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">[260]</span>
-to obey the call of her brother. Therefore next day a
-company of cavalry escorting the Princess marched towards
-Susa. King Hystaspis rode with her a day’s
-journey.</p>
-
-<p>On the fifth day after the departure of the Princess,
-three of the great Persian nobles, Otanes, Hydarnes, and
-Vomisces, resplendent in military dress and in armor
-adorned with bright metal and precious stones, each
-attended by a score of stout guards, rode over the stone
-bridge across the Pulwar and demanded audience of the
-King. A chamberlain conducted them into the audience
-hall, where the benevolent King sat on his throne
-in state. They saluted him, and Otanes said: “O
-King, live forever! We, your counselors, come to advise
-with you on grave affairs of state.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad to behold you,” responded the King.
-“You are welcome. Speak on!”</p>
-
-<p>Otanes drew a letter from the folds of his cloak.</p>
-
-<p>“Here have I a letter from my daughter, Phædima,”
-he said. “She was the wife of the Great King, Cambyses,
-and she was taken as wife by that one who calls
-himself Bardya, who, having deposed Cambyses, assumed
-to marry all his wives. But listen! Was ever
-such fraud practiced upon a people? This came secretly
-by a messenger, a slave who owed his life to my
-daughter. Let me read.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>“‘<i>To Otanes, my beloved father</i>:</p>
-
-<p>“‘In much shame and agitation do I write this and
-will endeavor to dispatch it to you by Hyrax, my faithful
-slave.</p>
-
-<p>“‘This Bardya is an impostor. He is not Bardya
-the King’s brother. When Patatheites, the regent, announced
-that Bardya, son of Cyrus, had returned from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">[261]</span>
-Mount Demavend where he had been hiding, and had
-declared himself King of Kings, there was great rejoicing
-in Hamadan, and all the people and the army gladly
-declared for him. The new King made a decree divorcing
-us from Cambyses and making all of us his wives.
-What could we do? It was the King’s word.</p>
-
-<p>“‘But, when this man came to visit me, I saw that he
-could not be the true Bardya, though he resembles him
-much. He wore a turban after the manner of the
-Arabs but in such way that it covered his hair and ears.
-This day did I discover that he has no ears. While he
-slept, overcome by wine, his turban was disarranged.
-Then I remembered that I saw this man led away from
-the presence of Cyrus, who had sentenced him to have
-his ears cut off for some offense. His name was Gaumata
-and he was a wizard, a priest of the Magi. This
-is the man! I had no dagger or I would have slain him.
-We are prisoners in the palace and are not permitted
-to go even to the park walls. Haste, then, my father, to
-rescue your daughter from this foul creature! I have
-heard it proclaimed that Cambyses is dead, slain by his
-own hand in Syria. Of the truth of this I know not.
-My hands reach out to you!</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="indentright">“‘Farewell!</span><br />
-“‘<span class="smcap">Phædima.</span>’”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The King was amazed. He arose from his throne as
-the reading proceeded and nervously pulled at his beard.
-When it was done, he smote together his hands in great
-agitation.</p>
-
-<p>“Alas!” he cried. “How unfortunate that your message
-did not come five days ago! Then I would have
-kept the royal Athura here or marched with her to Hamadan
-at the head of an army. Only five days ago in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">[262]</span>
-obedience to a letter sent her by this false slave, calling
-himself Bardya, she departed, and even now she may be
-at Susa in his power! May curses rest on him! I perceive
-his scheme! With the last of the children of
-Cyrus in his power, he thinks to be safe. But not so!
-No time is to be lost! Let us take immediate action!”</p>
-
-<p>He pulled a cord near at hand, and a gong sounded
-in an adjacent room. Instantly a door at the right of
-the throne swung open, admitting an officer of the Guard.
-To him the King said: “Captain Arios, take five hundred
-men, the best of the army in Persepolis, with the
-strongest horses, and ride to Susa! Ride day and night!
-Seize horses and supplies as you go! Overtake Captain
-Mardux and bring back the Princess Athura, if you
-can. Ride even to Hamadan if you do not find her at
-Susa. Send messengers in advance to overtake and
-turn her back. Spare not horses or men! Delay not!”</p>
-
-<p>The captain, though filled with wonder at this sudden
-order, did not pause to ask reasons for it, but bowed
-low before his lord and left the room. A moment later
-the clatter of horses’ hoofs on the paved court indicated
-that he had departed.</p>
-
-<p>The King turned to his counselors and said: “It is
-my will that the reserves be called to arms and that all
-the regular troops be gathered at Persepolis. We shall
-march without delay upon the usurper. Secrecy and
-swiftness must be observed. Let us seize the wretch
-before he may gather an army to oppose us. What say
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>“That is my word!” answered Otanes.</p>
-
-<p>“And mine!” added Hydarnes.</p>
-
-<p>“And mine!” said Vomisces.</p>
-
-<p>“Then let it be done! Let every able-bodied man in
-your several districts be called. I will send orders to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">[263]</span>
-the Governor of Bactra to call out the reserves and to
-march to Rhages with the Bactrian troops. He will
-bring two hundred thousand men. We should march
-from Persepolis with no less. I wish that my son were
-here! We shall need him.”</p>
-
-<p>After further consultation as to details, the nobles
-departed. Scores of messengers, riding at breakneck
-speed, penetrated to distant hamlets and summoned
-every man of the military class to Persepolis. Stores of
-weapons and provisions were quickly gathered. The
-great plain near Persepolis quickly became populous
-with men and impedimenta. All Iran was stirred with
-the excitement of coming war; but none knew why they
-were called, save that it was on the King’s business.</p>
-
-<p>On the tenth day two hundred thousand men stood in
-line on the plain near the Araxes for review, and their
-gray-bearded King rode along their serried ranks and
-saw that they were ready and eager to march. They
-saw that the face of the monarch was serious and filled
-with anxiety, and they guessed that they were about to
-engage in a civil war. The King did not enlighten them.
-A messenger had come from Captain Arios at Susa,
-stating that he had found Captain Mardux and his
-men who had escorted Athura to Susa, but that the
-Princess had gone forward towards Hamadan the day
-before his arrival. The King was disappointed and
-anxious. Having ordered that the march begin next
-day, he returned to his palace.</p>
-
-<p>At sundown of that same day, Gobryas and half a
-dozen weary troopers arrived in the camp and after
-hasty greetings to the generals in command went direct
-to the King. The King was on his portico, reclining on
-a couch so placed that he could watch the glories of the
-setting sun, while near him sat the Queen engaged upon<span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">[264]</span>
-some needlework. Recognizing Gobryas in spite of his
-unshaven and dusty condition, Hystaspis rose with an
-exclamation of surprise and went down the steps to meet
-and embrace him.</p>
-
-<p>“It rejoices my soul to see you, noble Gobryas!” he
-said. “Whence come you? What of my son?”</p>
-
-<p>“Gracious King, I have come from Syria by way of
-Babylon and the lower roads,” answered Gobryas.
-“Your son was well when I, obedient to his commands,
-left him to come hither.”</p>
-
-<p>“Praise be to Ahura-Mazda! What of the King?”</p>
-
-<p>“Cambyses is dead. There is no king other than you,
-O King Hystaspis! I greet you King of Kings and
-Lord of Lords!”</p>
-
-<p>He bent his knee and kissed the King’s hand. But
-Hystaspis raised him up, saying: “Not yet, my son!
-The nobles of all Iran must be consulted. We had
-heard rumors of the death of Cambyses, but were not
-sure.”</p>
-
-<p>“Cambyses is dead. I saw him stab himself before
-all the army when messengers came into camp proclaiming
-Bardya King. Yea, truly he is dead and the world
-is better for it! As for this traitor at Hamadan, I have
-come direct from your son to announce that he is not
-Bardya but a false usurper. I perceive you have already
-learned his true character and are ready to march
-against him. I have letters from the Prince. Even
-now he is drawing near to Babylon with his ten thousand
-men of the Guard.”</p>
-
-<p>He produced a packet from his belt and gave it to the
-King.</p>
-
-<p>“Come,” said the King, leading him up on the portico
-where the Queen waited. “You shall be refreshed at
-my own table and shall stay in our palace this night. I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">[265]</span>
-have much to ask concerning our son and of the war in
-Egypt and of the death of the King.”</p>
-
-<p>Gobyras bent low before the Queen, kissed her hands
-extended to him in cordial welcome, and said: “Queen
-of the World, I give you love and greetings from the
-Prince. Daily has he spoken of you. I bear a letter
-for you. I have another for the Princess Athura. But,
-alas! Otanes has explained to me how she has gone into
-the power of that Gaumata!”</p>
-
-<p>The Queen took from Gobyras the packet he handed
-to her, and then, placing her hands on his shoulders,
-drew him down and kissed both his cheeks, saying:
-“My son’s blood-brother is my son! Welcome home!
-How weary you are! You shall rest in the Prince’s
-own apartment this night.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">[266]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVIII<br />
-
-
-<small>THE SPIDER’S WEB</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">CAPTAIN MARDUX and his troopers felt themselves
-highly honored as escorts of the highest born
-and most beautiful woman in the world, when they departed
-from Persepolis with the Princess Athura.
-When she chose to ride a horse, the captain knelt that
-she might place one small foot on his knee and thence
-leap into the saddle. When she chose to ride in a litter,
-the captain had difficulty in choosing from the many
-volunteers those who should be carriers. He had to be
-severe in denying some the right to stand guard around
-her tent as she slept, since all could not do so. These
-hard-fisted, hard-riding sons of Persia deemed themselves
-guardians of a goddess; and all of them were her
-devotees. Her journey was a pleasant pastime.</p>
-
-<p>They arrived at Susa on the sixth day and were met
-by the governor of the city with all his chief officials.
-They conducted the Princess to the royal palace, where
-she rested a day. The city was gayly decorated in her
-honor. Then a company of Medean cavalry, under command
-of a noble Mede, relieved Captain Mardux and
-his men of their charge, and with them the Princess continued
-her journey towards Hamadan. From Susa to
-Behistun the road was better and the pace more rapid.
-On the tenth day they stood beneath the shadow of the
-great rock and were about to turn eastward across the
-mountains, when a courier met them, bearing a letter,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">[267]</span>
-informing Athura that King Bardya had gone to a castle
-in Nicæa on a hunting-trip and asking her to come to
-him there. Athura and her escort therefore took a road
-leading northerly into Western Medea. Thus it came
-about that Captains Arios and Mardux, pushing forward
-in desperate haste to rescue the Princess from the
-usurper, and supposing that she had gone direct to
-Hamadan, missed her by turning to the right at Behistun
-two hours after she and her train had disappeared in the
-northern hills. Thus it came about also that the Prince
-of Iran and his weary ten thousand, having avoided
-Babylon on the right and Susa on the left, lest they
-should meet with opposition and be delayed, when they
-reached the great highway between Persepolis and Susa
-and learned that the Princess had gone northward to
-Hamadan, delayed not to await the coming of the Persian
-army but also turned northward.</p>
-
-<p>Athura’s heart beat high with anticipated pleasure.
-A decree had been published in Susa announcing the
-death of Cambyses in Syria and the peaceful adherence
-of the King’s army to Bardya. Civil war would thus
-be averted. Her beloved brother would doubtless call
-the Prince of Iran to be his chief counselor, the second
-man in the empire. Nothing would hinder her marriage
-to him. The future seemed indeed bright with promise.
-The Medean escort was attentive and obedient to her
-slightest wish. At Nicæa a second message awaited
-Athura, informing her that the King was at the castle
-of Sictachotes, a score of miles farther north, and bidding
-her come there. Here a new escort took charge,
-composed of soldiers and priests whose appearance did
-not at all please the Princess. She did not hesitate to
-go forward, however, but she resolved that she would
-persuade her brother to discharge from his service men
-who resembled robbers rather than soldiers.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">[268]</span>It was late afternoon when they arrived in sight of
-the castle or stronghold of the false Bardya. The
-castle was an irregular pile of stone buildings on the
-summit of a hill, the crater of a long-extinct volcano.
-A small lake filled the mouth of the crater and on its
-rim the buildings had been constructed. At the foot of
-the cone and completely surrounding it was a high stone
-wall through which a huge brazen gate gave entrance
-and egress. The buildings were low and of rude architecture,
-except one tower which rose to a height of fifty
-feet and was about thirty feet square.</p>
-
-<p>The Princess wondered that her brother should bring
-her to such an uninviting place; but, remembering his
-passion for hunting, she had no misgivings. The great
-gate swung open to admit her and her escort, and then
-it closed with a clang. Having ascended the hill to a
-level space in front of the high tower, the escort dismounted
-and its leader came to assist Athura to alight.
-But she said haughtily to him: “Go, call the King.
-Why is he not here to meet me?”</p>
-
-<p>The officer bowed low and went into the castle, whence
-he presently returned with a richly dressed official who
-forthwith prostrated himself before royalty. “May you
-live forever, O gracious lady!” he said loudly. “The
-King is out hunting, not expecting you until the morrow.
-But all things are ready for you. Be pleased to alight
-and enter!”</p>
-
-<p>The Princess then dismounted and followed the official
-into the castle. The room they first entered was
-in the base of the high tower and occupied its whole
-space. It was richly furnished with tables, couches, and
-rugs. Draperies concealed the rough walls. Athura
-had brought with her three maids. Several others presently
-appeared from side-rooms and humbly awaited her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">[269]</span>
-pleasure. The official, who proved to be the King’s
-chamberlain, having called the servants, now said:
-“My Lord the King will return shortly. Meanwhile, if
-it please you, dinner will be served here. Let the maids
-be disposed of in the adjoining room. Should you desire
-to take the air, there is a pleasant walk around the
-lake. If anything be needed, pull the cord at the side
-here and a gong will call servants. Permit me to retire
-and order your dinner served.”</p>
-
-<p>The Princess assented and the chamberlain, with a
-low salaam, departed. Having bathed, and changed her
-riding habit to one more comfortable, she ate dinner
-alone. She was grieved and impatient. But she was to
-suffer further disappointment. For at sundown a messenger
-appeared who reported that a revolt had broken
-out in the army at Hamadan, thus compelling the King’s
-instant return to that city. He had departed at once,
-but promised to return quickly and escort her in person
-to the capital. He bade her rest meanwhile at the castle.</p>
-
-<p>Athura was furious. It seemed strange that her
-brother should treat her thus. He must be indeed
-changed from that former bold youth who would have
-let state matters go to ruin rather than fail to come
-to her at once when so near! She rang for the chamberlain,
-and when that worthy appeared she inquired,
-“Was the King here this morning?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, gracious lady,” he replied humbly.</p>
-
-<p>“How did he seem? Was he well?”</p>
-
-<p>“He seemed very well but somewhat nervous.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do not understand his strange behavior! Order
-immediate preparations for my departure in the morning
-to Hamadan! I shall go to him and ascertain the
-cause of this neglect.”</p>
-
-<p>The chamberlain raised his hands in protest. He
-shook his head and salaamed humbly.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">[270]</span>“I have an order from the King, gracious lady,” he
-said. “It is that I safely keep you here until he return.”</p>
-
-<p>“What! Am I a prisoner?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, no! Say not so! But this is a very unsafe
-country,—wolves, bears, robbers, and brigands! It is
-not safe for you without a strong escort to go beyond the
-castle-walls. The escort which brought you hither has
-departed for Nicæa again, and only the necessary garrison
-is here. Very sorrowful am I, most gracious lady,
-but I dare not disobey orders. The King, I assure you,
-will come soon.”</p>
-
-<p>“Listen!” exclaimed Athura, furiously. “I care
-nothing for the safety of this castle! I order you to
-prepare this garrison to march with me to Hamadan on
-the morrow. I will answer to the King for you and
-no harm shall come to you. Let the castle take care of
-itself!”</p>
-
-<p>But the chamberlain again shook his head and wrung
-his hands together in simulated agitation. “Impossible,
-utterly impossible! The King’s orders must be obeyed.
-You know not this King, gracious lady! He is a magician
-who can destroy one, soul and body. No, no!”</p>
-
-<p>“A magician! What mean you? My brother Bardya
-a magician? Since when gained he that power?”</p>
-
-<p>But the chamberlain, seeing that he had almost revealed
-his master’s real identity, shook his head and continued
-to wring his hands, protesting: “I meant only
-that the King’s eyes were upon all and over all! But I
-cannot disobey him, and—I will not!”</p>
-
-<p>He abruptly turned and left the room. Athura went
-to one of the narrow windows and looked tearfully out
-upon the yellow landscape of hill and mountain, on
-which the setting sun was casting its last mellow beams.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">[271]</span>
-Her eyes ran over the courtyard, the steep descent of
-hill, the high wall below with its brazen gate and its
-sentries, posted at intervals on the top. A great loneliness
-seized upon her, a cold dread of impending evil
-gripped her heart, and a terror of unknown forces that
-seemed to surround her. Turning from the window, she
-met the eyes of one of the maids compassionately watching
-her. The expression of her face caught Athura’s
-attention. Repressing her tears lest the servants should
-deem her weak, she addressed the maid:</p>
-
-<p>“What is your name?”</p>
-
-<p>“Lauretha, gracious mistress,” was the answer.</p>
-
-<p>“Who are you and whence come you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I am a daughter of the captain of the guard, and I
-came from Nicæa hither.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tell me, whose is this castle and how came my
-brother here? He has been acting most unbrotherly to
-me. Have you a brother whom you love most dearly?
-And would he call you to a place like this and then not
-meet you, or run away to the city without visiting you?”</p>
-
-<p>The girl’s eyes filled with tears. The beauty and engaging
-personality of Athura had already made a deep
-impression upon her. She had heard in the old days of
-this beautiful daughter of Cyrus as a very goddess of
-wisdom and beauty. Now that she beheld her, she was
-her devotee. She drew nearer and, kneeling, caught
-hold of the hem of Athura’s dress and kissed it.</p>
-
-<p>“Gracious Queen of the World, I am but a humble
-girl,” she said, sobbing: “My parentage is not even
-noble. But I place my soul and body at your service!
-Let me make confession to you and I will trust in your
-forgiveness for my enforced service here. If you will
-follow me to the chamber above, where you are to sleep
-and where we may be alone, I will tell you the secret of
-your situation.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">[272]</span>“Arise and be assured of my good-will. I will follow
-you,” answered the Princess, touched by the girl’s
-devotion and wondering what she meant.</p>
-
-<p>The girl rose and, going to a curtained door at one
-side of the room, pulled aside the curtain and guided
-the Princess up a narrow stairway, in the thick stone
-wall, to a chamber above and of the same size and as
-richly furnished as that below. Here the Princess seated
-herself on a divan and the girl again knelt at her feet on
-the floor.</p>
-
-<p>“Tell me what you mean,” said Athura, kindly.</p>
-
-<p>“I know the man who calls himself Bardya. He
-owns this castle,” said the girl, speaking rapidly. “I
-also have seen your brothers, both the great Cambyses,
-the King, and the strong, happy Prince Bardya. That
-was years ago when I lived in Hamadan and my father
-was a soldier of the palace-guard under the noble Otanes.
-I also know the regent, Patatheites, whom Cambyses,
-the Great King, left to rule in Medea. O gracious lady,
-it breaks my heart to tell you! But I know that Bardya,
-your brother, is dead and this one who calls himself
-Bardya is none other than Gaumata, priest of the Magi,
-whose ears Cyrus, the Great King, cut off! I have seen
-Gaumata and Patatheites together. I know that Gaumata
-pretends to be Bardya. The chamberlain is one
-of his tribe. This great tower is a fire-worshiper’s
-shrine and on its top is an altar on which fire is kept
-burning. I know not why I tell you this, except that
-when I look upon your face I love and worship you.
-O that I might save you! I fear this prison is intended
-to be your tomb!”</p>
-
-<p>Athura sat very still during this revelation. Her
-head seemed to reel. The earth and all her golden castles
-seemed whirling and falling. Of course Bardya<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">[273]</span>
-would have come to meet her! She knew the girl was
-telling the truth. Fool, to be so easily beguiled!
-Bardya really dead! The old sorrow resurged in her
-soul. Death or worse her fate! She sat still and silent
-a long time in wide-eyed despair while the maid at her
-feet with bowed head wept bitterly. Presently she
-sighed deeply and asked, “Why do you weep, little sister?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because of your cruel fate, gracious lady,” replied
-the maid. “You know not the magic power of these
-priests! Even now they may know that I have told
-this to you and even now they may be preparing the torture
-chamber for me. They are terrible men! They
-deal with the demons of the hills and mountains.
-They sacrifice to them, even offering up human lives
-sometimes. They are able to read one’s thoughts.
-They bring up the dead and make them talk. Only
-Ahura-Mazda can protect you, and I know not if He
-will!”</p>
-
-<p>“Be comforted, child,” said Athura, calmly. “Let us
-escape in some manner. Once before I fled from a
-prison when Cambyses would have slain me. Is there
-no way of escape?”</p>
-
-<p>“I know of none. These walls have secret doors. I
-have seen Gaumata appear in these rooms even without
-opening a door. But he is a magician. I do not know
-the secret doors. If we could escape from this castle,
-the great wall and its watch is there.”</p>
-
-<p>“You said that your father is captain of the guard.
-Might he not assist us?”</p>
-
-<p>“I know not. He fears the Magi. His father was a
-tenant of this Gaumata who, for his faithfulness, has
-promised him great fortune and a high command. But
-he is a brave man and a good father.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">[274]</span>“Such a man must have a good heart. We shall talk
-with him presently.”</p>
-
-<p>“But these magicians,—is it not useless to strive
-against them? They look one in the eye and point
-their fingers and say, ‘You are a dog! Bark!’ And
-that one gets down on his hands and acts like a dog and
-barks. Or they will say to you that at a certain hour
-you must do something they order; and, at that hour,
-you must do it! They put spells on men, and such men
-thereafter have no power. Oh, it is dreadful, how at
-night they call up and talk with the dead. The evil
-spirits help them.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have seen their spell-working, child. But this I
-know, as the great teacher, Belteshazzer, said, they can
-do no harm to those who love truth and serve the true
-and only God. For He sends mighty spirits of good intent
-who encamp about the good and who drive away the
-evil ones. Fear not, child, I dread not this Gaumata
-and all his evil powers. He shall not harm us. When
-does your father have liberty so that he might come
-to us?”</p>
-
-<p>“At sundown he changes the guard. Thereafter he
-may come.”</p>
-
-<p>The girl went to a window and looked down into the
-court below. She then clapped her hands softly and motioned
-to some one below.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, there he stands now!” she said. “He has
-looked up and will come here. I will meet him.”</p>
-
-<p>She ran down the narrow stair, and presently her voice
-and the heavier tones of a man’s voice were heard in
-conversation. Athura seated herself on a divan in such
-position that the rays of the setting sun, passing through
-the open window, rested upon her face and hair, giving
-to her regal beauty a halo like that of a goddess. A<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">[275]</span>
-moment later the maid reappeared, followed by a powerfully
-built man whose helmet and breastplate were resplendent
-in gold and jewels. His face was strong and
-bold, the countenance of one accustomed to command,
-but now it was clouded and sullen.</p>
-
-<p>“This is my father, Gustasp, gracious mistress,” said
-the maid, presenting him.</p>
-
-<p>The man looked an instant into the eyes of the Princess.
-Then his hand quickly removed his helmet.
-Wonder, admiration, recognition, and awe expressed
-themselves in his countenance. He prostrated himself
-at her feet. He had known the kingly Cyrus and the
-high glance of his eye, before which the most rebellious
-of men had quailed; and here was the image of Cyrus,
-softened and beautified in the feminine, but, none the
-less, with his lofty, commanding spirit, gazing upon him
-from eyes whose glance he could not return.</p>
-
-<p>“Hail, gracious daughter of Cyrus!” he mumbled,
-striking the rug-covered floor with his forehead. “I
-await your commands!”</p>
-
-<p>“I have seen you before, Captain Gustasp, when my
-father lived and Bardya, my brother, and I played in
-the park at Hamadan. Is it not so? Arise and answer!”</p>
-
-<p>The soldier rose and stood in deferential attitude before
-his fair interlocutor.</p>
-
-<p>“I remember, most royal lady,” he stammered.</p>
-
-<p>“If I mistake not I rode on that broad back of yours,
-and you made for me a right-spirited horse.”</p>
-
-<p>The strong features of the soldier quivered as memory
-brought back those days, when he, as one of the guards
-on duty at the King’s palace, not only watched over the
-safety of the children of the King but played with them.
-Halcyon days! The tears started to his eyes.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">[276]</span>“I remember,” he answered.</p>
-
-<p>“And now I am your prisoner!”</p>
-
-<p>Again the man fell with his face to the floor. “Say
-not so, Queen of the World!” he exclaimed. “Rather
-am I your humble slave. If you will let me speak, I
-will explain.”</p>
-
-<p>“Say on!”</p>
-
-<p>He raised his head from the floor but continued to
-kneel, while he spoke rapidly: “After I returned from
-the funeral of the royal Cyrus, I was not in favor with
-the Great King, Cambyses. His dislike for me arose
-when he and your royal brother, Bardya, and you,
-played together as children and, by the express order
-of good King Cyrus, I watched that Cambyses did not
-use violence upon you and the younger brother. He
-swore, then, that when he came to man’s estate I should
-die. When, therefore, the guards were called to Hamadan
-and dismissed by him, I fled; and, luckily, I escaped
-before his order for my execution could be fulfilled.
-I came to these mountains and was concealed by the
-Magian priests who had been friends of my father.
-Then I heard, gracious lady, that both you and Prince
-Bardya had been foully murdered by King Cambyses;
-and I wept much. For I loved you and Bardya when
-you were children. For me the light of the world grew
-dim. Wonder not, therefore, that I willingly served
-Gaumata when he overthrew Cambyses. Had not Cambyses
-slain those I loved and also sought to slay me? I
-did not know you when you entered here yesterday.
-You were veiled. My information was that the King’s
-wife was coming hither; and I dreamed not that you
-were she. May Ahriman wither my soul if I speak not
-the truth!”</p>
-
-<p>His daughter sank upon the floor by her father’s side,
-exclaiming, “Truly he speaks truth, gracious mistress!”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">[277]</span>A wave of sympathy swept over the beautiful countenance
-of the Princess. Impulsively she arose, bent
-over, and touched the man’s forehead with her hand,
-saying: “I believe you, my good Gustasp. Ah, those
-were pleasant days, the days of my childhood. But
-they have gone to return no more. The bloody hand of
-death has taken my father and brothers. Only I, of all
-the royal house of Cyrus, remain; and I am a prisoner to
-this man, Gaumata. But what now? To whom, O
-Gustasp, do you owe allegiance?”</p>
-
-<p>The man did not hesitate. “There is only one sovereign
-on earth for me, the divine daughter of Cyrus!”
-he answered passionately. “Had I not believed you
-dead, I would never have entered the service of Gaumata.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am in your hands. What do you advise?”</p>
-
-<p>“You are safe in my hands, gracious Queen! I will
-guard you with my life. But I am slow of wit and not
-good at making plans. I can execute orders but not
-make them.”</p>
-
-<p>Athura smiled upon the kneeling giant.</p>
-
-<p>“You may arise and be seated there near the door,”
-she said. “Let us think of some plan. How many men
-have you in this castle?”</p>
-
-<p>Gustasp rose and sat on a stool near the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Four hundred and twenty,” he answered.</p>
-
-<p>“Are they trustworthy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not against Gaumata. They are his personal followers.
-But they are a brave and reckless lot. Some
-of them have been brigands all their lives, until called
-hither by the new King’s order.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is apparent to you, Captain Gustasp, that I am
-no friend of this Gaumata. I have been brought here
-by lying letters purporting to be from my brother,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">[278]</span>
-Bardya, and I knew not the truth until your daughter
-revealed it to me. Doubtless I have been brought here
-to suffer death. For, as long as one of the house of
-Cyrus remain, so long will the usurper be insecure on
-his throne. I remember Gaumata. I saw him during
-the last year of Cyrus and I heard of his punishment.
-Now has come his revenge! But I shall escape. There
-is one who comes from the west as swiftly as horses
-may bring him. Do you remember the youth who
-played with us in those days? That grave youth who
-was a man even before he was old enough to enlist in
-the King’s guards—Darius, son of Hystaspis, King of
-Iran?”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember him. Has not his fame filled the whole
-earth? All young Aryans swear by him!”</p>
-
-<p>“True! Had not Cambyses cruelly interfered, I
-would this day be his wife. He took an oath to Cyrus,
-my father, to support Cambyses and Bardya on their
-thrones, as long as they should live. Death has released
-him from the oath. It may not be that I shall reign
-alone as Queen, since it is contrary to the customs of
-the Aryans. The King of Iran is now the head of the
-Achæmenian royal family and entitled to reign as King
-of the Aryans. When he shall pass the bridge to heaven,
-the Prince of Iran will be King. The world will then
-know a just and mighty master. And I shall reign with
-him. Then, Gustasp, I may be able to reward faithful
-service. Is it not possible for me to escape? I escaped
-from Cambyses alone, disguised as a youth. Have you
-not a horse that I might ride away upon this night?”</p>
-
-<p>Gustasp was troubled. He gazed thoughtfully out of
-the window a moment in silence. The red rim of the
-sun was disappearing behind a distant ridge.</p>
-
-<p>“This is a wild portion of Medea,” he said presently.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">[279]</span>
-“Brigands roam about. Traveling without a large escort
-is dangerous. It is now almost night. For a week
-there can be no danger to you here. I am in command
-of the Guard. It will not be so much a prison for you
-as a place of safety. To-morrow I will send to the
-hills for one who owes his life to me. I saved him
-from the wrath of Gaumata, who had ordered me to
-execute him. This man will I send with a message to
-your friends. He may bring help. The chamberlain
-of the castle is a priest of the Magi. He was in the
-room below as we came through. He is here as your
-guard, I suppose. But this night I shall sleep at the
-foot of this stairway and keep watch over you. You
-are weary and must have sleep. My daughter, if you
-will, shall watch with me. Perhaps to-morrow we may
-think of a better plan.”</p>
-
-<p>Athura rose and went to the window, where she stood
-some moments in silence, contemplating the forbidding
-aspect of the darkening hills and considering the words
-of the captain. She was, indeed, weary. She therefore
-signified her assent to the suggestion, and the captain
-retired. His daughter remained with the Princess.
-The captain that night slept on the floor of the room
-below, with his body across the doorway leading to the
-chamber above and his sword at his side.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">[280]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIX<br />
-
-
-<small>A GALLOPING TO AND FRO</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE dull, plodding peasants of Persia, Medea, Susiana,
-and Babylonia wondered why so many messengers
-rode at breakneck speed, on foaming, dusty
-horses, and so many squads of cavalry galloped, along
-the roads, during those last days of the false Smerdis,
-or Bardya, King of the World. They loved not these
-military men, with their over-bearing ways, their oaths
-and blows, their lawlessness and oppression. But they
-only sighed and remained silent, hoping but not believing
-that some day the Great King would lift them up
-and put the soldiers down. The shepherds on the hills
-drove their flocks high up into the mountain fastnesses
-and concealed them in gulches and ravines. For, it was
-whispered, an immense army of Persians was marching
-up from the south. No one knew why it was coming,
-but it was safer to keep the flocks out of sight, lest
-the hungry hordes should have fresh meat at their expense.
-Rumors of war flew about. Some said Babylonia
-was about to revolt; others that the Scythians were
-threatening an invasion.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile at the capital city, Hamadan, confusion
-reigned. Reports came from Persia indicating that the
-King of Iran was gathering a great army. Then came
-messengers from the army at Damascus relating the departure
-of the Prince and the Guard. Patatheites and
-Gaumata at once became uneasy and directed the governor<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">[281]</span>
-of Nineveh to march out and intercept the Prince.
-Then came Prexaspes, who, knowing that he could expect
-no mercy from the King of Iran and his son,
-offered his services to the usurper, and was made commander
-of the army and satrap of Medea. He advised
-immediate preparation for war. Decrees were issued
-to all the governors of provinces commanding them to
-assemble their soldiers and bring them to Hamadan.
-Heralds were dispatched to the King of Iran demanding
-the reason for gathering an army at Persepolis.
-Prexaspes personally went into western Medea, where
-he had large estates, and directed that all Medean levies
-from that section should gather at Nicæa. Then Gaumata
-and Patatheites, learning that their ruse whereby
-Athura had been beguiled into the castle of the former,
-had succeeded, departed from the capital city to visit
-her and make some treaty with, or disposal of, her.
-They had barely departed when Captains Arios and
-Mardux at the head of their combined companies rode
-into the capital on horses almost dead with fatigue,
-and at the palace gates demanded the person of the
-Princess Athura. The commander of the palace-guard
-was insolent and insulting. He even threatened to arrest
-the blustering captains, who thereupon suddenly assaulted
-the palace with their bold troopers, before the
-guards could be warned, and gained possession of it.
-The guards fled into the city and called upon the citizens
-for aid. Captains Arios and Mardux searched the
-palace in vain for the Princess Athura, but found and
-released the usurper’s harem, in which was Phædima,
-the daughter of Otanes. What next to do the captains
-knew not. But the citizens of Hamadan, indignant that
-a company of freebooters should dare to take the King’s
-palace, soon gave them something to do and laid close<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">[282]</span>
-siege to them in it. They were not to be dislodged, however,
-and held the citizens at bay, trusting that they
-would presently be rescued by the King of Iran.</p>
-
-<p>The Prince of Iran, having marched by a short route
-across northern Arabia, avoided Babylon on the right
-and Susa on the left and arrived upon the great highway
-between Persepolis and the latter city, where, as
-narrated, he received information that led him to march
-at once to Susa, intent upon aiding in the rescue of
-the Princess Athura. He seized Susa and deposed its
-governor, who was a Mede in the service of Gaumata.
-He paused here two days to rest and refit his command,
-meanwhile sending scouts northward to gain information
-concerning the movements of the usurper. Then a body
-of Persians, constituting the advance corps of the Persian
-army, having arrived, the Prince left a garrison in
-the city and with about twenty thousand men hurried
-northward on the road to Hamadan, intent upon capturing
-that city before Gaumata could prepare for resistance.
-On the first day out he was met by the messenger from
-Athura, which caused him to change his intention and
-march into western Medea upon Nicæa.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the Princess Athura remained in the castle.
-The messenger had been duly dispatched by Captain
-Gustasp, who advised his fair captive to wait patiently
-several days for his return or until he himself could communicate
-with certain relatives who might consent to
-conceal her in the mountains should it become necessary
-to leave the castle. Then one day a company of cavalry
-rode into the castle-yard and its commander, Captain
-Galutha, displayed an order giving him chief command.
-The next day a large body of cavalry appeared on the
-plain below the castle and encamped, while several of
-their leaders came up to the castle. Two of these, before<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">[283]</span>
-whom all others bowed to the earth, were Gaumata, the
-usurper, and his chief counselor, Patatheites. The
-Princess Athura observed these men with dread. She
-recognized them and knew that a crisis in her affairs had
-come. Later came Captain Gustasp in much agitation.</p>
-
-<p>“Gracious lady,” he said, “Gaumata has come! He
-desires audience with you. If he attempt any harm
-to you, I will slay him! So fear not. I am at your service.
-Shall I slay him at once?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. Let him enter,” she answered, seating herself
-on a divan at the side of the chamber opposite the window,
-where the light was good and where every expression
-of her countenance might be seen. She was calm
-and self-possessed.</p>
-
-<p>The captain’s daughter stood at her side, trembling
-and apprehensive.</p>
-
-<p>A moment later the door opened and the chamberlain
-appeared, announcing: “Our Lord, the King, the Great
-King, King of the World, and his illustrious Counselor!”</p>
-
-<p>Entered then Patatheites, with somewhat shuffling gait
-and embarrassed demeanor, a tall man whose rich habiliments
-and mitered head-dress indicated his priestly rank.
-He bowed very low and touched the floor with his hands,
-saying: “All hail, most beautiful Princess, Daughter of
-Cyrus, the Great King, Light of the World! Live forever!”</p>
-
-<p>Following him came Gaumata, a tall man, with uncertain,
-shifting eyes, a pallid face, somewhat resembling
-the dead Bardya, a puppet evidently in the hands of the
-real ruler, Patatheites. He was about to prostrate himself
-before royalty, as was his habit, when, remembering
-his high position, he checked himself and stood erect,
-folding his arms in much embarrassment and agitation.
-On his head was a vari-colored turban, around which
-was a golden coronet.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">[284]</span>“I give you greeting. What would you?” responded
-Athura, coldly.</p>
-
-<p>Patatheites coughed slightly and glanced at the King;
-then, assuming a very ingratiating tone and manner, he
-said:</p>
-
-<p>“The fates—I should say, the gods—have ordered
-that this man shall be King. It matters not whether he
-be truly Bardya or not,—the spirit of Bardya is in him.
-It has come to pass that King Cambyses by his own
-hand is dead. You alone, royal lady, remain of his
-family. By right of birth you should be Queen of the
-World. Unless you so rule, the kingdom will pass to the
-King of Iran. It has been announced to all the world
-that this Bardya has taken to himself all the wives of
-Cambyses. That is true, and you yourself are included.
-We come, therefore, to make a treaty. Consent to a
-marriage with this King, Bardya, and rule equally with
-him. Your presence with him will reconcile all Iran
-and the world will remain at peace. You cannot rule
-alone. He offers to share the throne with you. Let
-him speak for himself. I, his Chief Counselor, have
-spoken!”</p>
-
-<p>Gaumata, thus prompted, bowed low before her and
-said in high, squeaky tones: “Years ago my eyes beheld
-the most lovely vision of all the earth. It was
-Athura, star of the morning, lovelier than the moon,
-shining on a darkened world. My soul went out to her.
-I said that I would one day sit on the throne of the world
-with her and her slightest wish should be my law, her
-will my will, and that together we would rule the universe
-wisely. Let it be so!”</p>
-
-<p>Athura restrained her indignation with great difficulty.
-Should she temporize, or at once declare herself? She
-remained silent a moment. When she spoke, her steady
-voice betrayed not her deep agitation.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">[285]</span>“For this, then, I have been deceived and brought
-hither,” she said. “It is a very grave matter. I require
-time to consider it. I know there is but one other choice.
-That is—death! I must choose between you and
-death, unless something intervenes. Such presumption
-as yours in the days of Cyrus would have merited death.
-But truly has the situation changed through the wisdom
-of God. How many days may I have to consider this?”</p>
-
-<p>The men glanced at each other doubtfully. Then the
-Counselor spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“Grave events call for quick action. However, if
-to-morrow at this time will suit you to answer, let it be
-so.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall require at least a week.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no! You must decide by to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>“Must?”</p>
-
-<p>Her tone startled the men. In it were unutterable
-scorn and menace. Gaumata shrank back. As she
-looked now, so had he seen Cyrus and Cambyses, the
-terrible. But Patatheites was unafraid and, knowing
-the necessity of quick action, he was determined that
-her choice should be made at once.</p>
-
-<p>“Forgive the expression,” he said. “We are desperate
-men. So stirred up are the people that we must
-act quickly. You said truly that you must choose either
-to consent or to meet death. Rule the world or die!
-Do you hear? But you shall consent!” He gazed
-into her eyes with his flashing black eyes fixedly and
-extended his long, slender fingers towards her slowly.
-He trusted to his great hypnotic power to overcome
-the powerful will that showed in her eyes. “On the
-morrow at this hour you shall say yes!” he added after
-a pause.</p>
-
-<p>Athura smiled derisively. Her eyes showed no less<span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">[286]</span>
-will-power than his, and, extending her hand in a repellent
-gesture, she said: “I say that I will speak freely
-without being coerced by your devil’s power! Dog that
-you are! I shall live to see your carcass thrown to the
-vultures!”</p>
-
-<p>The battle of wills continued in silence for a tense
-moment. Then the eyes of Patatheites wavered and
-dropped. His hand fell at his side. His dusky face
-paled to a sickly yellow.</p>
-
-<p>“Princess, again I ask forgiveness,” he said humbly.
-“Well I know that the spirit of the great Cyrus, living
-again in you, cannot be commanded! Let us reason together.
-Being a woman, you can never reign alone on
-the throne of Iran, or of the world. All the males of
-your family are dead. The kingdom will pass to the
-King of Iran. If his son were living he would make you
-his wife, and thus, when his father dies, you might become
-his Queen but not a joint ruler with him. But the
-Prince of Iran is dead. He was slain in a battle near
-Susa yesterday. It remains only for you to accept
-our proposition and you will become joint ruler with
-this Bardya and reign over the whole world.”</p>
-
-<p>The Princess made no immediate answer, but gazed in
-silence on the face of the speaker, striving to read
-whether he lied or not in speaking of the Prince. The
-cold hand of fear clutched at her heart. Dread seized
-her throat and almost stifled her. But there seemed to
-whisper in her ear a voice like that of the loved Bardya
-of old, saying: “Believe him not, little sister. The
-Prince yet lives and will surely come to your aid.” She
-was startled and looked around involuntarily searching
-for the speaker; but no one, save her maid, was near.
-Arousing herself with a great effort, the Princess again
-controlled her agitation and said: “You are stating a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">[287]</span>
-falsehood, magician! But, even if the Prince were dead,
-it would not alter my determination. What? I, a
-daughter of Cyrus, mate with that slave? Begone from
-my sight!”</p>
-
-<p>The pallid face of Gaumata flushed in anger. Thrusting
-aside Patatheites, he laid one hand on a short sword
-at his side. “Woman!” he cried excitedly, “birth
-makes not a man, but achievement! I am a noble of
-Medea, of ancient lineage and royal stock. Centuries
-ago my forefathers ruled the Scythians, who were once
-lords of Medea. I have dared to seize the throne of the
-world from your tyrant brother, and I mean to hold it!
-I have offered you the right to share it. Choose! On
-the morrow you accept or die! The world is not large
-enough to permit you and me to live therein unless we
-join fortunes!”</p>
-
-<p>The Princess was surprised. She had deemed this
-man a mere puppet. He seemed to have some qualities
-of a strong man. She spoke less bitterly as she
-answered: “You speak somewhat kingly, Gaumata!
-But you are a living lie, ruling not by your own might!
-You rule only by reason of Bardya’s name. Do not
-deceive yourself into the belief that the Aryans would
-permit you to rule an hour, did they know the truth!
-No! Rather it would be better for you to release me
-and place in my hands the scepter and crown. I might
-so far pardon you as to permit you life and property.
-Think of this, my offer until to-morrow, and I will consider
-yours.”</p>
-
-<p>“Until to-morrow then, farewell!” said Patatheites,
-bowing low and backing quickly from the room. Gaumata
-followed without the formality of a bow. Athura
-sat a long time in silence after they had gone, wrapped
-in thought, while the daughter of Gustasp stood in
-silence with folded hands and bowed head at her side.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">[288]</span>The Princess turned to her maid at length and asked:
-“What think you, child? The magicians were not able
-to bend my will, though strong was the power of the
-priest’s evil eyes. I felt my brain reel and I became
-dizzy for a moment.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have never seen one able to resist him before,”
-answered the maid. “Truly Ahura-Mazda has sent to
-your aid some powerful angel!”</p>
-
-<p>The hours of that day passed very slowly for the Princess.
-She spent the greater part of her time in the
-upper chamber looking from the window upon the valley
-below. She had little hope that any aid would arrive.
-She was determined to escape from the castle at all
-hazards as soon as night should come, and she sent word
-to Gustasp that he must arrange for her escape.</p>
-
-<p>About noon two horsemen were seen riding at headlong
-speed from the direction of Nicæa. They came
-direct to the castle. They evidently bore exciting news.
-For the King and his Chief Counselor were observed in
-excited conference with them, and, shortly afterwards,
-the King mounted a horse and rode down into the valley,
-where his cavalry immediately marched away across the
-plain towards Nicæa, and several horsemen rode away
-in divers directions. Later the King returned to the
-castle accompanied by an officer, whose elegantly attired
-form and easy carriage, as he passed across the castle-yard,
-seemed familiar to Athura. She sent the maid to
-call Gustasp, whose duties now consisted in standing
-guard at the castle-door. The captain soon appeared.</p>
-
-<p>“What means this excitement?” she inquired.
-“Who is the officer that came up with the King?”</p>
-
-<p>Gustasp shrugged his giant shoulders. “The officer
-is Prexaspes,” he answered. “He was chief man of the
-empire under King Cambyses. He is in command of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">[289]</span>
-the Medean army which is assembling down there in the
-valley. I do not know just what news the messengers
-brought; but it is rumored that they reported a strong
-force of Persian cavalry moving up towards Nicæa over
-the hill-roads from Susa. If that be true, a battle may
-occur if the Medes dare to stand against them. There
-are but a few veterans here and they may not risk a
-battle. The Persian cavalry is terrible, especially if led
-by the Prince.”</p>
-
-<p>Athura started up with joy, exclaiming, “By the
-Prince, did you say?”</p>
-
-<p>“The Prince of Iran, yes,” he assented. “No one
-knows, but I will bet my shield that he leads the Persians!”</p>
-
-<p>“Ahura-Mazda grant that it be true! What of you
-if there be a battle, Gustasp? Ought I to wait till the
-morrow? Or should I escape this night and trust myself
-to the mountains?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have requested the honor of personally guarding
-you so that you may not escape,” he responded. “The
-King has granted my request. I do not know how to
-advise. The new men who came in with Captain Galutha
-are on guard. There is to be an enchantment, a
-sacrifice, and soma-drinking to-night. Ahura-Mazda
-grant that no spell be cast on us! Let me advise that
-you stay in this upper chamber with all your maids. I
-shall stand here at the foot of the stairs. We may need
-a barricade. That divan and the benches may do.
-When darkness comes, I will bring up javelins and
-spears. I do not know how to get out of the castle with
-you unseen.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you fear?”</p>
-
-<p>“Madmen, drunken with soma! You and the maids
-are the only women in the castle. Even the King himself
-will be drunken and furious.”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">[290]</span>“Bring up the arms, Gustasp! You will find in me
-no weeping, fainting child. We will fight this battle together!”</p>
-
-<p>“Then on the morrow we may need to defend this
-place until the battle be decided down there in the valley.”
-And he added fervently, “It will be a joy to fight for
-you, O Queen of the Earth, and even to die for you!”</p>
-
-<p>Gustasp began immediate preparations for defense and
-secretly brought up a bundle of keen javelins, several
-heavy spears, and a huge bronze battle-ax, which they
-concealed behind curtains and furniture. He also
-brought a supply of bread and fruit.</p>
-
-<p>From her window Athura saw that preparations were
-being made in the courtyard for the sacrifice spoken of
-by Gustasp. First, a square altar of stones was erected.
-Around this, at a distance of twenty feet, a circle of flat
-stones was placed. A priest clothed in long robes then
-drew geometrical figures with a sword-point on the
-ground within the circle. Other priests brought out
-twenty tall jars of soma and placed them at intervals
-touching the circle. Still others brought wood and piled
-it in four heaps at the corners of a square inclosing
-the circle. Many soldiers of the garrison gathered
-around, uneasily and fearfully watching the preparations,
-but they were not allowed to come within twenty paces
-of the circle.</p>
-
-<p>The preparations were completed when the sun was
-yet half an hour high. Then the rumble and boom of
-drums and the shrill scream of trumpets announced the
-beginning of the services. A procession of priests,
-twenty in number, headed by Patatheites and followed
-by Gaumata, who led a beautiful white stallion, appeared
-from the northern portion of the castle-yard. Seven
-times they silently marched around on the outer side of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">[291]</span>
-the circle of stones. Then they halted and a priest took
-station at each of the jars of soma. Every one held a
-large, keen knife in one hand and a goblet in the other.
-The chief priest, Patatheites, took station at the right
-of the altar and raised his hand toward the setting sun in
-prayer. All the others imitated his action. Their invocation
-was silent and lasted a full minute. Then
-Patatheites placed a bundle of fagots on the altar and
-again raised his hands to the sun, and his lips moved
-in recital of an invocation. Instantly a spiral of smoke
-ascended from the fagots and a flame burst forth. The
-soldiers, stricken with awe, fell on their knees at sight
-of this miracle. The sun-god had answered, unless the
-dexterous priest, having a knowledge of phosphorus and
-sulphur, had ignited the wood as he placed it on the altar.</p>
-
-<p>Gaumata now led the white stallion into the charmed
-circle near to the high priest. The beautiful animal
-trembled and sniffed at the altar and the blazing wood,
-then raised his noble head and whinnied. As he did so,
-the chief priest, with a powerful slash of his sharp knife,
-cut the animal’s throat so deeply across as almost to
-sever the head. At the same moment, Gaumata drove
-his knife deep into the horse’s chest through his proud
-heart. With a convulsive backward movement, the
-noble beast sought to break away, but Gaumata clung to
-it and its knees gave away suddenly and it fell. The
-chief priest took a stone vessel and caught the blood
-spouting from the severed throat. When the vessel was
-filled, he presented it to Gaumata, who lifted it on high
-before the fire and towards the setting sun, then poured
-some of the blood on the altar and some on the earth
-while he muttered a prayer. The chief priest then took
-a bundle of rods, known as the baresma, and, dipping it
-in the blood, sprinkled the King and the twenty priests,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">[292]</span>
-chanting a hymn as he slowly performed his labor.
-Then four of the priests attacked the carcass of the horse
-with their knives and rapidly dismembered it. A portion
-of flesh from the chest was taken by the King and
-placed on the burning wood of the altar. The savor of
-it went up to heaven just as the rim of the sun disappeared
-behind the western hills, while the priests broke
-forth into a barbaric chant in praise of Mithra. The
-limbs and body of the animal were then cut in bits and
-distributed by the priests to the soldiers. The piles of
-wood were set on fire by coals from the altar, and the
-men roasted the horseflesh at these and ate of it. Thus
-far the ceremony had been conducted with some decorum.</p>
-
-<p>Then the bloody-handed priests dipped goblets into the
-jars and brought them forth filled to the brim with a
-white, acid liquor, the sacred juice of the soma plant.
-First, the chief priest drank a huge goblet of the liquor.
-The King followed suit. Then the priests drank, and
-as they drank they began a serpentine march, following
-the lines of the geometrical figures drawn in the circle,
-weaving in and out and crossing back and forth, chanting
-in time to their movements. The chief priest led
-the weird dance. The King followed at the rear. Ever
-and anon, as their movements brought them near the
-jars, the priests replenished their goblets. Gradually
-their chant became louder and wilder, and was addressed
-to the gods of the sun, of the moon, of the stars, of the
-earth, and of the seas, entreating them to be present and
-to give counsel and wisdom to the King.</p>
-
-<p>Darkness fell upon the earth, but the fires partially
-dispelled the gloom in the courtyard. The crowd of
-soldiers drew well back from the enchanted circle, dreading
-they knew not what, and fearing the unknown powers<span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">[293]</span>
-of earth and sky. Suddenly one of the priests ceased
-marching and, with a scream, rent the clothes from his
-body. Stark naked he began to dance furiously, leaping
-in the air, frothing at the mouth, and uttering wild words
-of prophecy. Another imitated him and still another,
-until a score of naked, leaping, shouting madmen, brandishing
-knives and soma-pots, encircled the chief priest,
-who, having drunk but little of the powerful liquor, had
-remained comparatively sober, and who now took his
-station with folded arms and bowed head before the
-altar, listening intently to the ravings of his helpers.
-The King took his place on the opposite side of the
-altar and sought to preserve a semblance of dignity, but
-he swayed to and fro under the influence of the liquor
-or of excitement while he also listened to the ravings of
-the prophets.</p>
-
-<p>The Princess and her maids were curious observers
-of the ceremonies, but their curiosity turned to horror as
-the last act of the drunken priests began. Nevertheless,
-they watched and listened.</p>
-
-<p>One of the priests, bellowing for silence, stood before
-the chief priest and shouted: “I am Melchior of the
-Hills! Say to this King, he lacks courage! Say to him
-that instead of entreating the proud woman in yonder
-castle, he should take her by force, lest there come an
-eagle out of the south and carry her away! Let him
-now act! Now! Now! Now!”</p>
-
-<p>Another shouted: “I am sent from Mithra to say,
-The day comes when the Kings of the earth shall meet
-in death struggle! To him of stout heart and quick
-mind will the victory be! Up and act!”</p>
-
-<p>Others took up the burden of prophecy and warning.
-The chief priest listened attentively; then, calling the
-King aside, he spoke rapidly and earnestly to him, pointing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">[294]</span>
-up to the window from which the Princess was looking
-down upon them. For a time the King hesitated,
-then walked uncertainly towards the castle, followed by
-the howling mob of priests, who stumbled, rolled, or
-hopped after him. A moment later they were hammering
-at the castle-door and the King was commanding
-Gustasp to open.</p>
-
-<p>Gustasp, however, had not been idle. He had locked
-and barred the stout doors and had reinforced them with
-furniture piled against them. Now, as the King’s voice
-was heard commanding him to open, he shouted back a
-refusal.</p>
-
-<p>“Open, I command it!” shouted the King.</p>
-
-<p>“I will never open it!” answered Gustasp. “No
-longer do I serve you, Gaumata, the false! I serve the
-gracious Princess of the house of Cyrus!”</p>
-
-<p>“You will be torn in pieces! Open, I say! I will
-have you roasted to death! I will afflict you with spells!
-Open! I command!”</p>
-
-<p>“Never! I warn you that I will slay any man who
-attempts to harm my sovereign lady!”</p>
-
-<p>The King and Patatheites took counsel and sought to
-beguile the giant guard.</p>
-
-<p>“Listen!” said the priest. “We mean no harm to
-the Princess. But she must marry the King now and
-must march with us at daybreak to Hamadan and proclaim
-their union. Open, and I swear she will not be
-harmed, and you shall be the first officer of the army!”</p>
-
-<p>But Gustasp growled a refusal. He was not to be deluded.
-Then began Patatheites to curse him and to call
-down the anger of all the gods upon him. He cursed
-him by the sun whose beams would strike him down; by
-the moon whose rays would drive him insane; by the
-rivers which would drown him; by the hills which would
-fall on him; and by the devils who would ever pursue<span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">[295]</span>
-him. So bitter and dreadful were his words that stout
-Gustasp paled and trembled. With uncertain steps he
-paced back and forth across the lower chamber floor,
-fearing that from the shadows of the chamber half-lighted
-by an oil lamp some specter might leap forth upon
-him. A soft step came down the stairs and Gustasp
-drew his sword. But it was the Princess. She came to
-the trembling giant and placed her hand on his arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Fear not, Gustasp!” she said reassuringly. “Good
-spirits are here around us! Those curses shall not harm
-you. Ahura-Mazda has sent me a messenger saying:
-‘Fear not! We will help you!’ Be strong and brave,
-Gustasp. See, I tremble not.”</p>
-
-<p>The giant guard heaved up his broad shoulders, and a
-cheerful smile passed across his rugged features.</p>
-
-<p>“Have no fear that I will falter, most gracious lady,”
-he said. “Let them curse. If they come within reach
-of my spear, their curses will stop short!”</p>
-
-<p>At length the cursing ceased. The King and the chief
-priest withdrew a space to consult. Presently they
-ordered a company of soldiers with a beam for a battering-ram
-to break down the door. The stout planks
-and bars soon quivered beneath heavy blows. Gustasp,
-seeing that it would presently fall, retreated up the
-narrow stairway to the upper chamber and proceeded to
-barricade it with furniture. A heavy divan was pressed
-into the narrow stair, leaving barely space at one side
-through which a spear might be thrust. Tables and
-benches were piled upon this. Then Gustasp, spear in
-hand, stood ready. The door below presently gave way
-and a squad of soldiers rushed into the room below.
-Finding it empty, they immediately began to ascend the
-stair; but, the moment one appeared in the narrow passage,
-the long blade of Gustasp’s spear flashed down
-upon him and he tumbled back gasping, with a terrible<span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">[296]</span>
-wound in his chest. A second tried the ascent and had
-his face slashed open. This cooled the ardor of the
-assailants. They drew back to take counsel. No one
-dared further attempt the deadly stair.</p>
-
-<p>Then Athura heard a voice, cold, calm, and ironical,
-saying: “It seems to me far beneath the dignity of a
-King of the World to be leading a drunken mob in
-attack upon a woman! I say to you now that I for one
-do not approve!”</p>
-
-<p>“Have a care, Prexaspes!” replied the voice of
-Patatheites. “Such words to the King are not to be
-spoken lightly!”</p>
-
-<p>“Bah!” was the rejoinder in a loud voice that was
-heard by every man in the fortress. “Who are you to
-threaten me? Do you desire to break with me? If so,
-I will lead my Medes over to the Prince. I say to you,
-stop this rioting and give your thoughts to the enemy!
-If I be not greatly mistaken, we shall have the Persians
-upon us before noon to-morrow. I will venture all I
-have that the Prince is commander of that company
-approaching Nicæa! If so, his coming will be like a
-whirlwind. I am going down to the camp, and I demand
-that the King go with me. I demand that no further
-violence be attempted against the Princess Athura. I
-warn you that if we injure her and lose this battle, the
-Prince of Iran will flay and quarter every man in this
-fortress!”</p>
-
-<p>His words greatly impressed all hearers and, after
-further angry altercation, Prexaspes triumphed and the
-drunken priests were ordered to return to their cells
-while Gaumata sulkily mounted a horse and rode with
-him down to the camp.</p>
-
-<p>Athura praised Gustasp and presented to him a gold
-ring, which in after years the guard and his descendants
-treasured above all other possessions.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">[297]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XX<br />
-
-
-<small>THE OVERTHROW OF THE MAGI</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">ATHURA slept little during the remainder of the
-night. She insisted on watching a part of the time,
-while Gustasp slept stretched out on the floor and the
-maids tried to rest. She watched while the stars paled
-and the gray light of the dawn grew into rosy sunrise
-and cloudless day. Her eyes eagerly scanned the horizon
-towards Nicæa. As soon as the light was sufficient,
-she saw moving bodies of horsemen concentrating in
-the plain near the base of the hill on which the castle
-stood. She had often seen large bodies of troops, and
-she estimated that not less than thirty thousand were
-there. Officers were busily riding hither and thither
-placing them in line with their faces towards Nicæa.</p>
-
-<p>When Gustasp awoke and observed the movements of
-the troopers, he gave it as his opinion that an attack was
-expected. Nor was he mistaken. For about mid-forenoon
-they observed two bodies of cavalry approaching
-from the direction of Nicæa, one in advance moving
-rapidly and the other more deliberately. The advance
-body was evidently a scouting party sent out by Prexaspes,
-and it soon joined his array. The pursuers came
-on in wide, extended order, their masses glittering with
-armor and spear-points. At their head rode two men,
-conspicuous on white steeds.</p>
-
-<p>“Look, Gustasp!” exclaimed Athura, while the pursuers
-were yet far away. “Is it not the Prince—the
-one at the right? Is that not Gobryas at his left?”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">[298]</span>Gustasp shaded his eyes and looked closely at the
-distant figures. He smiled and shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“My eyes are counted good, gracious lady, but I
-cannot see any difference in those men,” he answered.
-“If I had eyes as young as yours, I might distinguish
-them. But I know those are the Persians of the Imperial
-Guard. The Prince must be with them. They
-are not half as numerous as the false King’s men, but
-they are veterans and the best soldiers in the world. It
-will be a short battle.”</p>
-
-<p>The Persians came on until they were within a thousand
-paces of their antagonists, when they halted. The two
-leaders rode forward to a slight eminence two hundred
-paces in advance, from which they attentively surveyed
-the field. It was well suited for battle between bodies
-of cavalry. While somewhat rolling and uneven, there
-were no ditches or swamps. The Medean line was more
-extended than the Persian and no less massive and deep.
-The Persian leaders soon returned to their lines and the
-watchers on the hills perceived a movement of the rear
-ranks to the left, where presently a body of troops was
-massed three times as great in depth as the general line.</p>
-
-<p>“The Prince has made a hammer of his left,” said
-Gustasp. “Now look at his right! It bends back so
-that the Medes may not overlap and attack the Persian
-rear!”</p>
-
-<p>It was even so. For when the Persians moved forward
-again there was a perceptible bending back of their
-right wing until it moved forward <i>en echelon</i> to the
-remainder of the line.</p>
-
-<p>Then came two men from the Persians who rode
-rapidly up to the Medes and demanded a parley.
-Prexaspes and the King met them and received a message
-from the Prince of Iran demanding the surrender<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">[299]</span>
-of the Princess Athura and of the false King, and
-promising pardon to all the other Medes save Prexaspes.
-These demands were refused. The heralds rode back to
-the Prince and reported, who then ordered his army to
-advance.</p>
-
-<p>The Persians came on at a smart trot until within five
-hundred yards. Then the front ranks leveled their
-spears, bent their bodies forward, and pressed their
-horses into a gallop. Prexaspes ordered his troops forward
-to meet the onset. The earth shook with the
-thunder of hoofs. A deep-toned roar went up from the
-Persians, their battle shout which had terrified many a
-nation. The Medes answered with a medley of yells.
-The lines came together with a terrific shock. Men were
-unhorsed. Horses reared, plunged, and went down.
-Screams of agony mingled with battle-shouts. The lines
-wavered and stood still, it seemed, for the space of five
-minutes. Then was seen the power of discipline. The
-Medes, while brave, were not inured to battle. After
-the first shock, they became confused. They were overthrown,
-ridden down, and pushed back. Struggling
-fruitlessly against the terrible spears of their enemies,
-they receded. The Persians raised shouts of victory and
-pressed their advantage. The Prince of Iran, leading
-the center, rode over Prexaspes, broke through the
-Medean lines, and made directly for the King. The
-latter turned his horse and fled towards his castle, with
-the Prince and Gobryas close at his heels. So close was
-the pursuit that Gaumata and his men had no time to
-close the brazen gates of the castle, which were opened
-to receive them, before the Prince and Gobryas with a
-company of Persians pressed through and attacked the
-garrison fiercely. Demoralized by the fall of Prexaspes
-and the flight of Gaumata, the Medean army scattered
-and fled from the field.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">[300]</span>The Prince and Gobryas, swords in hand, pressed
-through the confused rabble after Gaumata. They saw
-him leap from his horse and enter the castle. Dismounting
-they pursued him into the chamber below that where
-the Princess Athura had her retreat. Here the false
-King turned at bay, unable to escape. The Prince himself
-attacked Gaumata, though Gobryas begged the
-privilege of slaying him. The struggle was short.
-The Prince was an athlete and swordsman; his opponent
-was neither. Gaumata’s weapon was whirled from his
-hand at the first blow, and the Prince’s blade passed
-through his heart, cutting short his cry for mercy.</p>
-
-<p>Athura, trembling with excitement, had seen the battle
-and the flight and pursuit of Gaumata, and, from
-behind Gustasp’s broad shoulders on the stairs, had
-watched the short, sharp combat between the Prince and
-the usurper. The Prince, flushed with victory as he
-stood above the writhing form of Gaumata, heard her
-exclaim, “Ahura-Mazda be praised!” He turned and
-their eyes met. He sprang towards Gustasp with
-dripping sword, thinking the giant guard an enemy in
-charge of the royal captive. But Athura pressed forward
-in front of Gustasp, exclaiming, “He is a friend!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince dropped his sword and extended his arms,
-with the light of great love in his eyes. Athura threw
-her arms about his mail-covered shoulders. Gustasp
-and Gobryas drove back the crowd of Persian troopers
-who were pressing in to aid their Prince.</p>
-
-<p>But a chief commander must make an end of greetings,
-no matter how entrancing. The Prince and Athura
-passed out into the courtyard, now filled with shouting
-Persians, some of whom were pursuing the luckless garrison
-and cutting them down. When the Persians saw
-the radiant Athura standing by the side of their Prince,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">[301]</span>
-their shouts rent the heavens. For every man who had
-taken part in the battle knew that their leader was seeking
-to rescue his promised wife, the daughter of the
-great Cyrus.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes was among the prisoners. His horse had
-been killed and had fallen upon him. The Persian
-cavalry had passed over him. But save for a broken
-arm, he was not seriously injured. He was brought before
-the Prince. His countenance showed signs of suffering,
-but the usual calm, cynical smile rested upon it
-and he exhibited no fear. The Prince looked upon him
-sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“At last, Prexaspes,” he said, “you have come to a
-day of judgment! What have you to say?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing, great Prince,” he answered. “Fate has
-turned against me. I am in your hands, a prisoner of
-war.”</p>
-
-<p>“But how could you, a noble of Medea, conspire with
-that carrion, Gaumata? And you even obeyed him as
-King!”</p>
-
-<p>“I did not conspire. I was faithful to Cambyses till
-he died—even though he did slay my son, as you know,
-in cruel jest. I did not conspire against him. What
-could I do after his death? By the command of Cambyses,
-I had slain Prince Bardya. For that crime I knew
-that I would be slain by you. So I came and offered my
-sword to the false King. He obeyed me, not I him!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince contemplated his prisoner gloomily. No
-man ever more admired courage than he. Prexaspes
-smiled in the face of death. What punishment should
-be meted out to such a man?</p>
-
-<p>“For taking Bardya’s life, you have merited death,”
-said the Prince, finally. “But you are a brave man.
-You shall die as such. Tell me, Prexaspes, how did
-Bardya die?”</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">[302]</span>“I expect to die,” answered Prexaspes, and the pain
-and despair of his soul snatched away the smile from his
-face, leaving his handsome features haggard and drawn.
-“Remorse has been with me, since by this hand the stout
-young Prince departed! I will tell you. Cambyses was
-jealous of Bardya. His advisers, the Magian priests, who
-by their wonder works had made much impression on the
-King’s mind, also hated Bardya because he clung to the
-ancient religion of Iran and was an enemy to their religion.
-They knew that with Bardya as King they would
-never gain power in the state. They hinted to the
-King that Bardya contemplated rebellion. They artfully
-brought stories of the young man’s popularity.
-They advised his death. It was then that the King laid
-his command upon me to slay his brother. The Magian
-priests sent a body of their armed followers to lie in wait
-on the road to Rhages that night when the feast in honor
-of the Prince’s departure was held; and I rode with
-Bardya that night until, as prearranged, they attacked us.
-Then, in the mêlée, I struck the Prince with my sword
-and he died. Was not the Great King’s word law? I
-executed his word, without malice towards the Prince.
-But I am weary of life! My wife is dead. Cambyses
-slew my son. I have run the full course of power and
-wealth. I am your prisoner, ready to die. But know
-this, great Prince, I have never advised Cambyses against
-your interests!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince listened attentively and believed that
-Prexaspes spoke truthfully. He turned to Athura, who
-had listened to the recital, and asked, “What do you
-advise?”</p>
-
-<p>Athura shook her head sadly.</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot advise,” she said. “Last night when the
-drunken priests and the false King attempted to break<span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">[303]</span>
-into the castle and do me harm, this man interfered and
-compelled them to cease.”</p>
-
-<p>“For that, Prexaspes, I would pardon you, had I the
-power,” said the Prince, turning to the prisoner. “I
-could order you slain now, but I cannot slay you.
-Prexaspes, you have deserved my gratitude. I grant
-you life for the present. I am not the King. My father
-is King of Iran. There is no King of Kings; until the
-nobles of Bactra, Persia, and Medea shall select one of
-the Achæmenian line. You shall go to Hamadan to be
-judged.”</p>
-
-<p>“Rather would I be slain by you now,” responded
-Prexaspes, earnestly. “Let me die a soldier’s death,
-not the death of a dog condemned for murder!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince was troubled. He hesitated. Sympathy
-for a brave man moved him.</p>
-
-<p>“I promise you this, Prexaspes,” he said after a moment
-of consideration. “If you will testify before the
-council of nobles and to the people, that this Gaumata
-was a false traitor and not Bardya and that Bardya was
-slain by your hand, I promise that you may choose the
-manner of your death. The King and the nobles will
-heed my promise. They will not deny me. If you make
-this confession and implicate the Magian priest, they will
-pursue you with bitter vengeance. It is said that their
-death penalties are tortures such as even fiends would
-not inflict. We could not save you from them. It is
-the ancient law that one who lifts his hand against one
-of the Achæmenian race must die. Is it not so? And
-this law, not even the King may set aside.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is so!” answered Prexaspes. “I will testify before
-the people and the council, in order that your reign
-as King of Kings may not be disturbed by other false
-Bardyas. I advise that you carry this Gaumata’s head<span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">[304]</span>
-to Hamadan and exhibit it in the market that all may
-see. I myself will ascend the criers’ tower and confess
-the death of Bardya to the people. So be it. I will
-choose my own death.”</p>
-
-<p>“Meanwhile,” said the Prince, “Gobryas shall be your
-keeper. He will treat you as a brave soldier should
-treat a brave soldier unlucky enough to be a captive.
-We shall rest here this night. On the morrow we march
-to Hamadan.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">[305]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XXI<br />
-
-
-<small>KING OF KINGS</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THAT evening the Prince, accompanied by Athura,
-ascended the narrow stairs leading to the flat top
-of the castle-tower and, seated on the low parapet that
-surrounded it, watched the sun set in golden splendor.
-They found an altar of heavy stones, rudely squared, in
-the center of the roof. It bore marks of long usage.
-But the fire which had blazed on it for years was dead.
-Only ashes remained.</p>
-
-<p>The evening was pleasant. The sky was a deep, blue
-dome. The wide plain to the south, surrounded on all
-sides by hills, the high mountains to the north and east,
-with their sharp crags and peaks, with Elwend and her
-snow in the east and Demavend far to the northeast, a
-diamond point of eternal white, were of entrancing
-beauty. The Prince for a time forgot battles and
-marches. Athura forgot the long years of waiting and
-watching. They were lovers now, rank and royalty forgotten,
-man and maid, each glorified by the other’s love.
-The sun stood still in the heavens and the hills rolled
-up and concealed him. Darkness enveloped them, and
-they were oblivious of all else than themselves. The
-stars appeared, brilliant points in the depths of space.
-The moon rose and drove the shadows from the hilltops
-into the depths of canyon and gulch. A great owl
-winged his way slowly about the tower and, alighting on
-the altar, peered at them suspiciously. When they
-moved he flapped away into the shadows of the hills.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306">[306]</span>
-Bats flitted hither and thither like restless spirits. A
-wolf howled in the distant mountains. The low hum of
-conversation came up from the soldiers gathered about
-camp-fires in the courtyard. In such surroundings, the
-royal lovers again took up and tied the broken threads
-of life and renewed their vows to each other.</p>
-
-<p>Morning brought with it activity. The castle was
-abandoned. The army marched to Hamadan. A special
-guard of gayly-caparisoned officers rode near the
-litter in which the Princess was borne, or followed the
-horse on which, at times, she chose to ride by the side
-of the Prince. There was no organized opposition to
-the march. Bands of soldiers, which were riding to the
-aid of the false King, returned to their homes, stunned by
-the sudden overthrow of their leader. Gaumata’s head
-was borne aloft on a pike-staff; and, in every hamlet
-and village, a crier called the people together and told
-them of the false King’s deception and death.</p>
-
-<p>So it came about that the cavalry under the Prince
-and the infantry under the King of Iran came together
-near Hamadan, entered the city without encountering
-resistance, and relieved Captains Arios and Mardux, not
-only of their danger but also of their soft living in the
-palace of the Great King. But in appreciation of their
-valiant service, they were promoted to higher grades in
-the Imperial Guard and later they became chief officers
-of the Guard.</p>
-
-<p>On the day that they entered Hamadan, Athura became
-the wife of the Prince of Iran. The marriage
-feast was held in the palace. After the feast, the great
-nobles of Iran were called into the throne room by King
-Hystaspis, who, sitting on the throne in state, addressed
-them thus:</p>
-
-<p>“Nobles of the Aryan race, I have called you hither<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">[307]</span>
-to ask what is your will concerning the throne left by
-Cyrus and Cambyses. By right of birth, I, the head
-of the Achæmenian family, am entitled to reign in Iran.
-I am King of Iran. But while Iran rules the world,
-the victories of Cyrus established such rule and his authority
-was paramount to mine. I am old and desire
-to live the few years that may be mine in ease. I desire
-not to assume the burden that must be borne by the
-King of Kings. For I foresee that some of the conquered
-provinces will rebel and that wars will come.
-The line of Cyrus is dead, all save the Princess who this
-day has become the wife of my son. It is my command
-that all here speak freely.”</p>
-
-<p>Otanes stepped forth and looked about him a moment
-in silence. Then his eyes rested upon the Prince of
-Iran and his beautiful bride, who sat at the right hand
-of King Hystaspis. He bowed low before them.</p>
-
-<p>“There can be but one choice, O King,” he said
-gravely. “The royal power has ever been in the Achæmenian
-family. As long as there are men of that royal
-line, none others may dare to aspire to the throne. If
-you, Sire, refuse to reign, there stands the well-beloved
-Prince, your son, whose wisdom and valor are far beyond
-his years, whose name is on every soldier’s tongue,
-as the hero of his race! By him stands Athura, most
-beautiful, most royal in birth. Has not your family and
-the family of Cyrus united? Let Darius Hystaspis be
-King of Kings and Athura, the daughter of Cyrus, be
-his Queen! Thus will all the peoples be contented and
-the world be blest. What say you, nobles of Iran?”</p>
-
-<p>A roar of assent was the response.</p>
-
-<p>“Let the crown of Cyrus be brought hither!” commanded
-the King.</p>
-
-<p>A double crown, one part of which was silver and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">[308]</span>
-the other of gold, studded with gems, was brought forth.
-The King gravely rose from his throne and, addressing
-his son, said:</p>
-
-<p>“You have heard the choice of the nobles of Iran,
-my beloved son! In the presence of these men, I now
-renounce in your behalf the supreme rule of the world.
-Here and now I crown you King of Kings and Lord of
-Lords. Rule wisely and well. As King of Iran, I
-acknowledge you supreme Lord and will support your
-throne forever!”</p>
-
-<p>The Prince, much affected, knelt at his father’s feet
-and received upon his head the double crown, which the
-great Cyrus had made as a symbol of his everlasting
-dominion over the kings of the world. Then he rose
-and sat down upon the throne, with Athura at his right
-hand and his father at his left. The great lords of
-Persia came and did obeisance to him and bent their
-right knees before him. Thus Darius Hystaspis became
-the Great King, and proved to be the wisest and greatest
-of them all. For, to the military ability of the heroic
-Cyrus, he added the wisdom of a statesman, the greatest
-of his age; and, in addition, he was a lover of art and
-science.</p>
-
-<p>On the following day, at noon, in response to the call
-of public criers, a vast concourse of people gathered in
-and around the public square or market-place in Hamadan.
-Soldiers of the Persian army were massed at one
-side. The nobility, men of note and strangers, were
-massed on the other. In the midst, the public criers’
-tower arose forty feet in air, and from it, the people
-understood, announcement would be made concerning
-the accession of Darius Hystaspis to the throne as King
-of Kings.</p>
-
-<p>The people were restive. A bitter factional feeling<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">[309]</span>
-had arisen during the reign of the false Bardya. The
-followers of the Magi, being in favor, had lorded it over
-the more orthodox Medes and Persians, had even prohibited
-their worship, and had taken away from their
-priests the revenues on which they lived. When Gaumata
-fell and the Persian army entered the capital, the
-persecuted ones in turn had come forth and assumed a
-haughty spirit towards the Magians. In all parts of
-Medea, as well as in the capital city, was the same unrest.
-Men hated their neighbors on account of religion,
-the most deadly hatred that men may entertain, and were
-ready to slay each other. It needed only the excitement
-of a great gathering to set afire the smoldering embers
-of hate. The eyes of all turned often to the gruesome
-spectacle of an earless head on the top of a pole planted
-near the tower in such position that the populace could
-see it. A squad of soldiers guarded it from being overthrown
-by the pressure of the crowd. It was the distorted
-and blackened face of Gaumata.</p>
-
-<p>At noon there issued from the palace a company consisting
-of the Great King, his Queen, his father, and the
-nobles of Iran, and they rode between massed lines of
-soldiers to a position near the tower. They were received
-with loud acclaim and clashing of weapons. A
-trumpet pealed forth from the tower, and a deep silence
-fell upon the people. Then Prexaspes appeared, accompanied
-by Gobryas and two armed guards.</p>
-
-<p>Prexaspes was carefully dressed. His hair and whiskers
-were curled and perfumed. His rich Medean cloak
-was gracefully parted so as to display to advantage his
-jeweled vestments. He was at once recognized, and a
-subdued murmur of wonder passed through the crowd.
-He raised his hand in graceful gesture, and said in a
-loud voice:</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">[310]</span>“Behold me, Prexaspes, most unhappy of men! I am
-about to die and let my death, suffered righteously,
-attest the truth of my words!”</p>
-
-<p>He paused a moment, to let his hearers grasp his meaning.
-Then he told the story of the plots by which the
-Magi had influenced Cambyses to order the death of
-Bardya and how he himself had slain the Prince with
-their aid; how they had then conspired against Cambyses
-and caused his overthrow and death; how they had
-set up Gaumata, the earless one, to be King, falsely
-representing him to be Bardya, and had placed the
-Magian on the throne of the world; and, finally, how
-the false King had been overthrown.</p>
-
-<p>For the first time the populace knew that the Magi
-had slain Bardya and that a pretender had through their
-plots usurped the royal power. Every man looked at
-his fellow and laid his hand on the dagger at his belt.
-Hatred, fanned by the speaker’s revelations, blazed up;
-and a growl of anger passed throughout the vast crowd.
-Prexaspes ceased at last and for a moment stood in
-silence. Then he added:</p>
-
-<p>“I have told you all! There, on yonder pole, is the
-head of false Gaumata! My hand is red with the blood
-of an Achæmenian Prince, and by the law I must die!
-By the grace of the mighty King of Kings, Darius, son
-of Hystaspis, who is this day your King, I die as I
-choose. I salute you, O King! May you live forever!”</p>
-
-<p>He bowed towards the King, who sat still on his
-horse, sorrowfully contemplating the speaker. Then
-Prexaspes calmly opened his cloak and drew a long, keen
-dagger from his belt. He poised the dagger in air an
-instant, then drove it to the hilt in his breast. For a
-moment he stood smiling down upon the King, then his
-knees gave away and he fell, headlong, from the tower<span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">[311]</span>
-to the foot of the pole on which the hideous head of
-Gaumata leered. A murmur of horror ran through the
-vast throng. It increased in volume as the people spoke
-to each other. It rose to a vast roar in a moment and
-its burden was: “The Magi! They slew Bardya!
-Down with the Magi! Slay the Magi!”</p>
-
-<p>There was a movement in the great throng. Here and
-there daggers and swords flashed. Screams of agony
-arose. The crowd swayed hither and thither. Then it
-scattered, and broke into groups under self-elected leaders
-who chased the frightened Magi and slew them
-wherever found. A riot of bloodshed and slaughter ran
-throughout the country such as Medea had not seen since
-that day, hundreds of years ago, when the Scythians had
-been massacred. Every man who had a Magian neighbor
-assaulted him. The house of every Magian priest
-was broken open and pillaged and its occupants slain or
-chased into the hills. It is said that a hundred thousand
-Magians died, before the King, with the aid of unwilling
-Persian soldiers, succeeded in stopping the slaughter.
-So deep-seated was the hatred of the orthodox Aryans
-towards the Magians that on the anniversary of this day
-hereafter it was the practice to slay every one of that
-sect that was found on the highway. The King made a
-decree that on such anniversary no Magian should leave
-his house and that if he did so and was killed, his slayer
-would not be punished.</p>
-
-<p>But the remainder of our story is history. The kingdom
-of the Medes and Persians, or rather, the Kingdom
-of Iran, the rule of the Aryans, reached its zenith of
-power and glory under Darius Hystaspis, called Darius
-the Great. Well did he deserve the title “Great.” For
-he made laws for all the world save Greece and Rome.
-His coinage became the world standard. The provinces<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">[312]</span>
-of his empire were ruled by kings. His public roads
-and rapid messenger service enabled him personally to
-supervise the general welfare of all his provinces. He
-invited men of letters to his court. He engraved his history
-on tablets and on the great rocks at Behistun and
-Persepolis. He brought architects and builders from
-Egypt, Palestine, and Phœnicia, and made for himself
-and his Queen a palace at Persepolis, whose stately ruins
-are yet mute witnesses of his power and magnificence.
-He had to reconquer many of the nations of Asia,
-which, because he was a young man and because religious
-feuds had torn Iran into factions, thought to free
-themselves. He redeemed his promise to Belteshazzer,
-the great Daniel of the Hebrew scriptures, and caused
-Jerusalem to be rebuilt, and he restored the Jews to
-their country. He restored the ancient religion of the
-Aryans and banished the false religion of the Magi,
-the Lie, from his empire. He worshiped God, whether
-named Jehovah by the Jew or Ahura-Mazda by his own
-people. His religion was pure and lofty.</p>
-
-<p>But most of all did he love and honor his Queen,
-Athura, whose praises the world sang in those days, and
-whose fame has been preserved in various narratives,
-none of which agree except that all ascribe to her great
-wisdom and beauty. Together they ruled their empire
-many years, and their reign was the golden age of the
-Aryan race.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<p class="ph1">TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:</p>
-
-<p>Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.</p>
-
-<p>Archaic or variant spelling has been retained.</p>
-</div></div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE PRINCESS ATHURA ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/68174-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/68174-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 055543c..0000000
--- a/old/68174-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/68174-h/images/coversmall.jpg b/old/68174-h/images/coversmall.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 934f90d..0000000
--- a/old/68174-h/images/coversmall.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/68174-h/images/i_frontis.jpg b/old/68174-h/images/i_frontis.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b992a58..0000000
--- a/old/68174-h/images/i_frontis.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/68174-h/images/i_title.jpg b/old/68174-h/images/i_title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7142eeb..0000000
--- a/old/68174-h/images/i_title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/68174-h/images/i_titlelogo.jpg b/old/68174-h/images/i_titlelogo.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6fb3d74..0000000
--- a/old/68174-h/images/i_titlelogo.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ